E YE WITNESS COMPANIONS
Classical Music GENERAL EDITOR: JOHN BURROWS
COMPOSERS • PERFOR M E RS I N STRUMENTS • KE Y W OR K S
E YE WITNESS COMPANIONS
Classical Music GENERAL EDITOR
JOHN BURROWS WITH CHARLES WIFFEN and contributions from Robert Ainsley, Duncan Barker, Karl Lutchmayer, Ivan Hewett, Lisa Colton, Andrew Wilson, Nathanial Vallois, Ann Van Allen Russell, Jenny Nex, Richard Langham-Smith, Sam Thompson, Simon Rees
“ M U S I C E X P R E S S E S T H AT W H I C H C A N N OT B E P U T I N TO WO R D S A N D T H AT W H I C H C A N N OT R E M A I N S I L E N T. ” Victor Hugo
LONDON, NEW YORK, MUNICH, MELBOURNE, AND DELHI Senior Art Editor Project Art Editors Designers Design Assistance Project Editors Editors
Picture Research Jacket Designer Jacket Editor DTP Production Managing Editor Managing Art Editor Editorial Director Art Director
Juliette Norsworthy Victoria Clark, Maxine Lea Liz Sephton, Francis Wong Paul Drislane, Kenny Grant, Vanessa Marr Sam Atkinson, Catherine Day, Ferdie McDonald Caroline Reed, Andrew Szudek, Belinda Wilkinson, Darren Henley (for Classic FM) Maria Gibbs Nathalie Goodwin Mariza O’Keeffe John Goldsmid Joanna Bull Debra Wolter Phil Ormerod Andrew Heritage Bryn Walls
First published in 2005 by Dorling Kindersley Limited 80 Strand, London WC2R ORL Penguin Group
First American Edition, 2005 Published in the United States by DK Publishing, Inc. 375 Hudson Street, New York, New York 10014 04 05 06 06 08 09 10 9 8 7 6 5 4 3 2 1 Copyright 2004 Dorling Kindesley Limited All rights reserved under International and Pan-American Copyright Convention. No part of this publication may be reproduced, stored in a retrieval system, or transmitted in any form or by any means, electronic, mechanical, photocopying, recording or otherwise, without prior written permission of the copyright owner. Published in Great Britain by Dorling Kindersley Limited Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data Classical music / general editor, John Burrows.-- 1st American ed. p. cm. -- (Eyewitness companions) Includes index. ISBN 0-7566-0958-5 (flexi) 1. Music appreciation. I. Burrows, John, 1939- II. Series. MT6.C564 2005 780'.9--dc22 2004024370
Colour reproduction GRB, Italy Printed and bound in China by L Rex
Discover more at
www.dk.com
CONTENTS ROMANTIC OPERA
INTRODUCTION 10
1810–1920 232
INTRODUCING CLASSICAL MUSIC 14
NATIONAL SCHOOLS
1830–1950 272
THE ELEMENTS OF CLASSICAL MUSIC
MODERN MUSIC
(INCLUDING KEY TO WAVEFORM GRAPHICS USED IN BOOK)
THE BAROQUE ERA
16
1600–1750 76
CLASSICAL MUSIC INSTRUMENTS 24 CLASSICAL MUSIC IN PERFORMANCE 36
EARLY MUSIC
1000-1600 46
380 GLOSSARY
501 THE CLASSICAL ERA
1750–1820
INDEX
126
505
THE ROMANTIC ERA
1810–1920 166
THE HISTORY OF CLASSICAL MUSIC 44
1900–
10
FOR EWOR D
FOREWORD I was first introduced by my Mother to the live performance of Classical music when I was 10 years old, at the Albert Hall in Nottingham. Sir Malcolm Sargent was conducting the Halle Orchestra, with the soloist Moura Lympany playing the Rachmaninov Piano Concerto No 2. The moment the orchestra began tuning up I was hooked and determined that music would play a vital role in my life. I played piano but it became obvious I was not cut out to be a professional musician, and so I became a music promoter. My first Classical concert was in 1970 with the London Symphony Orchestra conducted by André Previn at the New Theatre, Oxford. Since then I have been privileged to work among many musicians of the highest international calibre. For many years I had wanted to share my passion and commitment to Classical music
in book form. I first approached DK when they were developing an illustrated handbook on Shakespeare. I instantly realised there was much scope for an imaginatively illustrated reference book which covered as much of the subject as would be usefully practical. The book should inform, excite, inspire and be very accessible to Classical music lovers of all ages and levels of knowledge. Two very busy years later, I am delighted to present this book to the public. Many people have been involved with the creation of this book and I am indebted to them – it would not have happened without them. A big thanks to my dear friend Richard Havers, the Music Guru and now a major author himself, whose encouragement was vital to me; to my good friend Lady Solti; and to Dr Charles Wiffen and the many writers and academics who have collaborated on the book. JOHN BURROWS OBE HonRCM
I N T RO DUCT I O N
11
INTRODUCTION Music has played a vital role in my life and from being a child in Yorkshire I was taught to love music by my father who was passionate about the value of music in our lives. Music is in my opinion the missing link between the physical and the spirit; it is also a great educator. Like my late husband, Georg Solti, I have always believed in the value of education and the knowledge that it is the only true foundation for life. Without education, in whatever form, a child is denied a proper chance. The arts have been an integral part of my life, the theatre in all its disciplines, the visual arts, architecture, the countryside – which after all is nature’s art when you consider the music of a mountain stream or the song of a bird. Music has dominated life for me and my daughters through the great influence and accomplishments of my
husband. How lucky we were to have learnt music from him. He had extraordinary dynamism, and sheer vitality. He believed that music was a vital part of human society and overwhelmingly the greatest language of communication the best possible ambassador of world peace. He was a great inspiration to us all and he said on many occasions “My life is the greatest proof that if you have talent, determination and luck, you will make it in the end. Never give up!” Because of the Second World War his early career was interrupted and for many years without any work, life was difficult. How often he was tempted to give up. He always believed that he had a guardian angel who guided him through difficult times and with determination and hard work he really did “make it in the end”.
I N T RO DUCT I O N
13
Georg was considered to be one of the dates and recordings, and make no greatest orchestral conductors of modern attempt to convey the magic and the times and he helped shape the finest majesty, the power and the passion, orchestras in the world. His output was and the sheer excitement of the musical astonishingly prolific, with experience. We are 33 Grammy Awards and lucky to have such a over 300 recordings. But, rich pool of talent throughout our life around us, performers together he wanted to and composers, who wish share his music-making to share their enthusiasm and teaching. I have and love of music. watched with close Recording, broadcasting, interest the way this book and the myriad means has developed from its of other musical early stages of planning. reproduction available Although no book can to us today have greatly AND POPULAR CULTURE convey the extraordinary MUSIC increased everybody’s In recent years, the exposure to, and and rich aural experience making of, serious music has been access to great music. This greatly broadened through recording, that lies at the heart of book has been conceived radio, culture, and television. music’s impact, the for the lay person, and Eyewitness Companion Guide to Classical Music can be used as an authoritative ready goes further than most in providing the reference, or as a beginner’s guide. Its reader with useful signposts and rich array of illustrations serves to build information as they begin their voyage an impression not just of each or careers in the world of serious music. composer’s life and interests, but Many books have been written for hopefully a glimpse of their creative aficionados and experts, and speak only to aspirations, too. Over 300 pieces of them, in a rarified and esoteric language. music are examined in useful detail. Such books often alienate the beginner, I hope this book will provide a useful the student, or those who have always traveller’s guide both for the initiated wanted to enter that world, but are and for those just setting out on their frightened off by the perceived elitism and voyage of musical discovery. old traditions. Some books merely provide LADY SOLTI the bare bones of composers biographies,
Lady Solti was born and educated in Yorkshire and at the Royal Academy of Dramatic Art in London. After a two year spell as an actress appearing at the Cambridge Arts Theatre, Reading Repertory, and the Globe Theatre, London she became a freelance broadcaster and writer with both the BBC and Independent Television. From 1960–1970 she was an announcer and presenter for BBC television, working for both news and current events programmes. Her life changed dramatically in 1964 when she interviewed maestro
Georg Solti about the forthcoming production Wagner’s Ring Cycle at Covent Garden. This meeting resulted in their marriage when the focus of her life changed from television to the world of music. Valerie continued her career for many years as a well-known broadcaster and writer. Among many distinguished positions, Lady Solti is a Trustee of the Solti Foundation set up by Sir Georg shortly before he died with the aim of assisting young musicians throughout the world at the start of their careers.
INTRODUCING
C LASSICAL MUSIC
17
The elements o f
CLASSICAL MUSIC The basic materials of music are pitch and rhythm. Conventions in Western art music have arisen over the centuries by which composers and performers can organize and manipulate these materials. Some composers achieve memorable effects by breaking the “rules”, others by working imaginatively within them. usical notes are assigned different pitches, and are put together to form melodies. These may contain phrases, which can be thought of as musical sentences. Often each phrase contains as many notes as can be sung comfortably in a single breath. The simultaneous sounding of a number of different notes creates harmony. The flavour of these melodies and harmonies often results from the types of scales (or collections of notes) that are used. If the individual notes of a composition are bricks, then the rhythm is like mortar, holding them together. Rhythm, at its most basic, is the beat of a piece of music and the metre – or time signature – the way in which the beat is grouped. An entire piece of music can be constructed from these simple materials. It is like a building, designed by the composer according to a “form” – as with an architect’s plan. A symphony is like a castle
M
(with its own grand structure or form), whereas a short song will have a different and less complex form (more like a modest cottage). The colour or texture of a piece of music depends on how the voices or instruments are used, and how they are combined or orchestrated.
PITCH For a sound to be produced, a vibration must be set up in the air. This may result from the motion of a taut string, the skin of a drum, or the column of air within a cylinder. If the vibration is regular, it is heard as an identifiable note of a certain pitch. If the vibration is fast, the pitch is heard as high; if it is slow, it will sound low or deep. As a general rule, the longer the string or column of air, the lower the pitch. The low threshold of human hearing is about 16–20 vibrations per second, while the upper threshold is about 20,000 vibrations per second.
18
THE E L E M E N TS OF CL A SSI CA L M U S I C
The lowest notes of a pipe organ range from about 20 vibrations per second (or “cycles per second”), while a piccolo can reach about 4,176 cycles. An adult choir can produce anything from 64 to 1,500 cycles.
STANDARDIZED PITCH The letter-name “A” is given to the pitch of 440 cycles per second, which is produced by a key just to the right of the middle of the piano keyboard (known as the note or “tone” a''). This is a standard universal measure of pitch. Without it, players would experience great difficulty adapting their instruments as they moved round the world. MUSICAL NOTATION In Western music, seven letters of the alphabet are assigned to different pitches, ranging from A to G. If you play all the white keys on the piano keyboard from one A up to the next A (eight notes) you will have
HARPIST PLAYING
On the harp, the shorter strings produce the higher notes, demonstrating clearly the relationship between the length of a vibrating string and its pitch.
covered an “octave”. This particular series of notes corresponds to a scale known as the natural minor scale. Once you reach the next A you can repeat the cycle, and will hear higher versions of the same notes. If you start from C and repeat the procedure, you will hear the scale of C major. If the length of a string is halved, a pitch is produced which is exactly double the frequency of the original pitch and sounds eight notes (or an octave) higher. In other words, if you halve the length of a string vibrating at 440 frequencies, you will hear the pitch of 880 frequencies, which corresponds to the next (or higher) A on the keyboard. Although there are only seven letter names, other notes (the black keys on a piano, known as sharps or flats) exist in between some of these to produce a total of 12 notes.
INTERVALS The gaps between the notes are known as “intervals”, and moving from one note on the piano keyboard to its nearest neighbour covers the interval of a “semitone”. Of course, with other instruments (such as the violin) it is possible to play in between these notes; PIPE ORGAN
The lengths of the many pipes on a traditional organ determine the notes the instrument can produce.
19
THE EL EM EN T S OF CL A SSI CA L M USI C PITCH AND NOTATION
Western music uses horizontal lines and spaces against which to plot musical notes in graphic notation. Since the 17th century, five lines have been used, comprising a “staff ” or “stave”. A sign known as a “clef ” is used at the beginning of each stave to indicate which line or space should be used to denote a particular note. The most common clefs are the treble (or G) and bass (or F) clefs, the former being used for higher pitches and the latter for lower pitches. Thus, a violinist would typically use the treble clef, while a double-bass player would usually use the bass clef. A pianist normally uses both, the treble clef being usually assigned to the upper half of the keyboard (played by the
SHARPS AND FLATS
These are used to raise (sharpen) and lower (flatten) a note by a semitone. The interval from, for example, G to A is known as a “tone”, while the interval from a G to G is a “semitone” (the smallest possible interval on the FLAT SHARP keyboard). Although the G is a raised G, it is in fact the same note as an A (in other words, a lowered A).
G
A
B
C
D
E
F
G
A
B
C
D
C above middle C, also written c”
Middle C, also written c’
TREBLE CLEF
BASS CLEF
right hand) and the bass clef to the lower half. The diagram below shows the relationship of the piano keyboard to the treble and bass clefs.
E
F
G
A
B
C
D
E
F
KEYBOARD
Middle C is coloured brown on the full keyboard and on the enlarged section. ENLARGED SECTION
BASSOON
CLARINET
PICCOLO
The range of the bassoon (the bass instrument of the woodwind family) is just over three octaves, similar to that of the male voice. Its lower notes correspond to the low notes of a bass singer, but its top notes are somewhat higher than a tenor. This range is similar to that of the cello and the trombone.
The range of the clarinet corresponds to the female voice. Its lowest notes are in the alto region while its high notes are close to those of a high soprano. It has a range of three and a half octaves and is most powerful in its upper register. The oboe, trumpet, and violin all have similar ranges to the clarinet.
The piccolo (a small flute) is the smallest woodwind instrument and therefore produces the highest pitch of all the instruments of the family. Its range is nearly three octaves and it can reach higher pitches than the female voice. It often doubles lower instruments to provide brilliance and penetration in orchestral music.
THE E L E M E N TS OF CL A SSI CA L M U S I C
as the resolution of tension. In conventional tonal music, certain phrases end in “cadences” (or closing progressions of chords). Common examples are the “perfect” cadence (which sounds conclusive), the “imperfect” (which sounds inconclusive and demands some kind of continuation), and the “plagal” (which sounds serious and final and is often used for the “Amen” of a hymn).
SINGING IN HARMONY
The simultaneous production of musical tones in a complex interweaving of harmony and melody is one of the distinguishing features of Western music.
indeed, it is common for string instruments and voices to slide between notes for expressive effect.
HARMONY Harmony is the result of combining musical notes, and when these are played simultaneously, they are said to form a “chord”. Some chords sound dissonant, others harmonious or consonant. Harmony can be regarded
RHYTHM AND TEMPO Many human activities, such as running, walking, or dancing produce distinctive rhythms, which are often reproduced in music. Rhythm involves not only the positioning or spacing of notes in time, but also their duration, and both of these can be notated in Western music (see p.22). Composers can show duration in terms of sound or silence: for sound, note shapes are used; “rests”,
HARMONY AND INTERVALS
If two notes played together are separated by a consonant (harmonious) interval, the resulting sound will be pleasant or relaxing to our ears, whereas the notes of a dissonant interval clash with each other and demand to be resolved by a 3rd
4th
5th
6th
7th
C–D Dissonant
C–E Consonant
C–F Consonant
C–G Consonant
C–A Consonant
C–B Dissonant
C–C Consonant
2nd
suitable consonance. The intervals considered dissonant have changed since the Middle Ages, but since the Classical and early Romantic eras the intervals illustrated below have been considered either consonant or dissonant. 8th
AMPLITUDE
AMPLITUDE
EXAMPLES IN THE KEY OF C MAJOR
INTERVAL OF AN OCTAVE
INTERVAL OF A SECOND
The waves shown are of two frequencies an octave apart, as in a consonant interval of the type C–C.
These waves are of the two individual notes that are combined to produce a second, a dissonant interval of the type C–D.
21
THE EL EM EN T S OF CL A SSI CA L M USI C
with corresponding values and names, are used to denote periods of silence. The pulse (commonly known as the “beat”) is a regular unit of time around which the rhythm of a piece is organized. In a march, this would be the position in time of each footstep. The composer will decide whether the pulse should be a crotchet or a minim, or any other note value. The speed of the pulse is the “tempo” of the work. Most composers have used Italian terms to indicate tempo. Since the early 19th century, musicians have also used metronome settings. (A metronome is a device that can be set to “tick” at varying speeds and is calibrated according to divisions of the minute – for example, 60 or 120 beats to the minute.
METRE The metre corresponds to the grouping of the pulse. Much classical music is grouped in twos or threes.
PULSE AND TEMPO ITALIAN
ENGLISH
Grave Lento Largo Larghetto Adagio Andante Moderato Allegretto Allegro Vivace Presto Prestissimo
Very slowly Slowly Broadly Rather broadly Leisurely At a walking pace Moderately Fairly quickly Fast Lively Very quickly As fast as possible
Each group is known as a “measure” or “bar” and in notation is separated by a “barline”. The metre is indicated by a “time signature”, such as 3/4. The top number shows the number of pulses or beats in a bar, while the lower number shows the value assigned to each beat. The time signature 3/4 indicates that there are three crotchet beats in a bar (typical of a dance such NATURAL RHYTHMS
In nature, the sounds of horses cantering or of waves crashing on a beach create powerful, distinctive rhythms. Music owes much to such rhythmic sounds, not to mention more immediate rhythms, such as breathing and the beating of the human heart.
22
THE E L E M E N TS OF CL A SSI CA L M U S I C
NOTES, TIME, RHYTHM, AND METRE
The chart below shows the time values of the notes used in Western music. For example, two minims are equal in length to a semibreve and two quavers are equal to a crotchet. All values are relative, however; a crotchet is not an absolute length, such as a second, but varies according to
the composer’s instructions or the performer’s instinct. In slow music, a crotchet could be over two seconds in length; in quick music, less than half a second. The USA uses different names for these values, such as “whole note”, and these are given below the English names.
SEMIBREVE WHOLE NOTE MINIM 1⁄ 2 NOTE
CROTCHET 1⁄ 4 NOTE
QUAVER 1⁄ 8 NOTE SEMIQUAVER 1⁄ 16 NOTE DEMISEMIQUAVER 1⁄ 32 NOTE
WALTZ: 3/4 TIME
The time signature 3/4 indicates three crotchet beats in a bar (typical of a minuet or waltz).
Each bar is made up of the equivalent of three crotchets, giving the time signature 3/4
MARCH: 4/4 TIME
There are four crotchets in each bar, corresponding to the regular “left-right, left-right” of a march.
In the second bar there are two dotted quavers, two semiquavers and one minum, the equivalent of four crotchets
as a minuet or waltz). A march rhythm could be given the time signature 2/4, in which there would be two crotchet beats in every bar.
SCALES AND TONALITY A scale (from the Latin scala, meaning steps) is a step-wise series of notes, usually between one note and the next note of that name an octave higher. In the West, scales may be traced back to medieval “modes”, which were based on the musical
ideas of the Ancient Greeks. These eventually came to be accepted as the principal scales for all music in the 16th century: the Ionian became the “major” scale, and the Aeolian the “natural minor” scale. Traditionally the associations of the major scale are positive – sometimes joyful, sometimes triumphant; Beethoven’s “Eroica” Symphony, for example, is in the heroic key of E flat major. The minor scale is generally recognized as more sombre in mood – sometimes plaintive and sometimes tragic. The Funeral March from Chopin’s Piano Sonata No. 2 is in the key of B flat minor.
MUSICAL FORM All musical works – however short or long – are organized within a kind of frame, known as a “form”. The WALTZ TIME
One of the most familiar time signatures to dancers, the basic waltz metre (one-two-three, one-two-three) is three beats to each bar of music.
two basic forms are “binary” (two sections, stated one after the other and sometimes repeated) and “ternary” (three sections, perhaps comprising section A, followed by section B, then section A again – musical sections or paragraphs are often identified by letters of the alphabet). Variants of these are to be found in more complex forms such as the “rondo”, “variation”, and “sonata” forms (see glossary).
INDIAN MUSICIANS
Across the world, most cultures have their own scales, consisting not only of different notes from those used in the west, but of different numbers of notes.
has become known as “dynamics”. As with tempo, it is common to use Italian terms to describe different dynamics, all of which are relative rather than absolute. DYNAMICS
Pianissimo (pp) Piano (p) Mezzo piano (mp) Mezzo forte (mf ) Forte (f ) Fortissimo (ff )
DYNAMICS Just as the pitch or rhythm of musical sound can be varied, so can the volume or intensity of that sound. In Western music, this variability
Very quietly Quietly Moderately quietly Moderately loudly Loudly Very loudly
KEY TO THE “WAVEFORMS” USED IN THE BOOK
Twenty-two of the “focus” works that appear in the book feature a “waveform” (a computerized image of the music) which shows the acoustic properties of a particular recording of the work. The information shown in the waveform
Exposition
Development Recapitulation A 2
3
First theme played by piano
4
Short lines indicate quiet music
The title, basic tempo, metre, key (where appropriate), and form are given for each movement shown on the graphic
Maestoso: 1minor; Quadruple time; F Sonata form
1
relates only to that specific recording; another performer or ensemble could have performed the same work faster or slower, or placed climaxes at different points. See p.512 for a list of the recordings used to make the waveforms.
5
6
7
8
9
10
11
B 12
13
14
15
A 16
17
Annotations pinpoint landmarks in the music – including instrument entries and changes of key, mood, or tempo
A minute marker shows the duration of the work A
18
19
B 20
21
A 22
23
24
Long lines indicate loud music
Coda 25
26
25
Classical Music
INSTRUMENTS The design, construction, and acoustics of instruments change as musicians explore different ways of achieving what composers ask of them, and as instrument makers experiment with new materials and technologies. In the process, some instruments become obsolete, while those that fit in with new trends become popular. oday’s symphony orchestra has its roots in 16th-century instrumental consorts (p.27) and 17th-century bands. The earliest orchestras, usually attached to a court, a church, or a theatre, varied in structure from place to place. They were often directed from the keyboard or by the principal violinist. During the 18th century, as popular works (such as those by Haydn and Mozart) began to be played all over Europe, some standardization of the orchestra became necessary. A string section comprising violins, violas, cellos, and double basses was usually joined by two oboes and two bassoons, with the occasional addition of two horns, two flutes, two trumpets, and timpani. The clarinet became a standard member of the orchestra only at the end of the 18th century. The 19th century saw the rise of public concerts in large halls, which necessitated louder instruments and larger orchestras. As a result,
T
instruments changed: woodwind key systems were redesigned; the brass acquired valves; stringed instruments were adapted to enable them to project further. Larger and smaller versions of woodwind instruments, such as the piccolo, cor anglais, and bass clarinet, featured more frequently. Instruments were also added to the lower end of the brass section, with trombones and, later, tubas becoming standard members of the orchestra.
THE ORCHESTRA TODAY The orchestra had by now more or less attained its present form, though in the 20th century a whole new range of percussion instruments became available. The Early Music revival has seen the recreation of historic styles of orchestra, but the dominant orchestral line-up remains the symphony orchestra under the direction of a conductor, with orchestras resident in most major cities throughout the world.
26
CL AS SI CA L M USI C I N ST RUM E N TS
Early instruments Many instruments from the past have disappeared from mainstream usage or have been replaced by modern equivalents. Over the last 50 years, however, makers and musicians have revived these instruments in an attempt to create historically informed performances. The ancestors of modern woodwinds usually have no keys, while those of the brass section include trumpets and horns without valves. Early stringed instruments, which have gut strings and lower tensions, tend to be softer in tone than their modern equivalents. STRINGS Viols have six or seven strings, with frets across the fingerboard. The outward-curving bow is held underhand. Some smaller viols, such as the viola d’amore, have additional sympathetic strings that run through the bridge and under the fingerboard. Lutes are plucked with the right hand and are often used as continuo instruments or to accompany singing. Some have additional bass strings known as diapasons. The hurdy-gurdy uses a wheel operated by a crank handle to “bow” the strings, and a small keyboard to stop the strings.
Second peg box for bass diapason strings
Fingerboard
Decorative carved head
Peg box
Tuning pegs
Fretted fingerboard Tuning pegs
Keyboard Diapasons Cover over rosined wheel
Sympathetic strings
Rose hole
Bridge
Handle HURDYGURDY
Tailpiece VIOLA D’AMORE (1774)
18TH-CENTURY GERMAN BASS LUTE
ENGLISH-MADE BASS VIOL (1713)
KEYBOARDS The harpsichord is used in Early-Music ensembles as a continuo instrument, to add brilliance and rhythm to the texture. The strings, made of iron or brass, are plucked by small pieces of quill. The virginal and spinet are plucked in a similar way, while the clavichord uses small brass flags – tangents – to strike the strings. Clavichords are perfect domestic instruments as they are very quiet. In the organ, different sounds are produced by making pipes of different materials with a variety of cross-sections, and by exciting the air in the pipes in various ways, such as blowing air across a fipple (as in the recorder) or by using reeds.
Decorated keyboard 18TH-CENTURY CLAVICHORD
27
CL ASSI C A L M USI C I N STRUM E N TS
BRASS The cornett was a treble instrument with open finger holes, made from a single piece of ivory or two carved pieces of wood glued together. The serpent was used as a bass instrument in military and church bands in the 18th and 19th centuries. The earliest trumpets were “natural” instruments (without valves or keys) which played a single harmonic series. Various devices were added in the 18th and 19th centuries to enable them to play more notes. Horns were also originally natural instruments, sometimes equipped with crooks to enable them to be played in different keys.
“Acorn cup” mouthpiece
Two carved pieces of walnut, bound with string and leather
Finger holes, placed for the convenience of the player’s hands, were not acoustically correct
Keys used to change notes
19TH-CENTURY SERPENT
Crooks attached to extend length of horn
Open finger holes LATE-18TH-CENTURY KEYED TRUMPET
18TH-CENTURY NATURAL HORN
CORNETT
WOODWIND
A WIND CONSORT
The earliest wind instruments were pipes made from wood or bone, with finger holes to change the sounding length and hence the pitch of the note produced. The shawm family are sounded by a double reed on a metal staple fitted into a “pirouette”. Shawms were popular from the 13th to the 17th century and ranged from high soprano to a low bass called a pommer. Also a double-reed instrument, the crumhorn hides its reed within a cap. Its heyday was in the 16th and 17th centuries, when it was used to accompany religious ceremonies as well as secular dances. Recorders have a fipple or whistle-style mouthpiece and holes for one thumb and seven fingers. They were widely used as solo and consort instruments before the 19th century and have re-emerged in the 20th century for teaching music in schools. Many early woodwinds were made of close-grained woods such as boxwood, but makers have also experimented with ivory, glass, and various metals.
SHAWM
Reed
Finger holes
Bell
Beak
Foot joint
18TH-CENTURY TREBLE RECORDER Wind cap
CRUMHORN
Cotton reel
Bell
Consorts were small groups of mixed instruments. The instruments played in a wind consort included the hautbois (ancestor of the oboe), cornett, and sackbut (ancestor of the trombone). In the 17th century, wind consorts would usually have been heard outside, often at gatherings of important people, with quieter string consorts used indoors.
28
C L AS SI CA L M USI C I N STRUM E N TS
Strings The string section is the largest group in the orchestra and forms its core, and the leading voice among the strings is the violin, an instrument of extraordinary range and versatility. Orchestral violins are divided into two sections: “firsts” and “seconds”. Violins, violas, cellos, and double basses are primarily played with a bow but, like the harp, can also be plucked. The left hand is used to stop the strings in order to change their vibrating length and hence the pitch of the notes. A variety of tonal effects can be achieved by placing the bow closer to or further away from the bridge, by damping Orchestra the vibrations of the bridge using a mute, First Cellos or by applying different bowing techniques. violins Since the early 19th century, many earlier Second Double violins basses stringed instruments have been altered to Violas Harp increase their volume and projection. Tuning pegs
Scroll
Screw for adjusting tension of hair
Rosined horsehair
Carved wood, usually pernambuco
Fingerboard, usually made of ebony Ribs, made of maple
Table, made of pine
Bridge
Supporting spike
VIOLIN Characteristics: With four strings tuned in fifths, violins are agile and versatile, and can play two or three notes simultaneously. History: Early violins were in use in Italy from the early 16th century. Cremona and Brescia became important centres of violin-making from 1550.
VIOLA Characteristics: The alto of the family, the viola is tuned a fifth below the violin. It has a darker, richer sound than the violin. History: Larger and smaller violatype instruments were used for both tenor and alto lines from the early 16th century. Its modern role developed in the 18th century.
CELLO Characteristics: Tuned an octave below the viola, the cello is the tenor and bass of the violin family. It is also capable of playing virtuoso passages. History: Appearing in the early 16th century, cellos were made by many of the famous Cremona violin makers.
29
CL ASSI C A L M USI C I N ST RUM E N TS
Heavy, short bow
Peg box. The tuning pegs jut out at the back and a cogwheel mechanism is used for tuning
The double bass normally has four strings, but some are made with five
The double bass often retains the sloping shoulders of the medieval viol
HARP Characteristics: The modern orchestral harp has 47 strings stretched between the neck and soundboard, together with seven pedals for altering the pitches of the strings. As well as playing plucked chords, the harpist can use techniques such as glissandos and harmonics to create special effects. Harps are often associated with heavenly or ethereal music. History: Small harps existed in ancient times and are still important in many folk traditions. The modern double-action pedal harp was developed in the 18th and 19th centuries by makers such as Cousineau and Erard in Paris and London. The strings on a harp are attached at one end to the resonator; in the violin family they run above its surface
Upper bouts
Frenchstyle frog
F-holes
Soundboard Pillar
Pedals for altering pitches of strings Lower bouts
ANTONIO STRADIVARI ( C .1644–1737) Bag for carrying bow
DOUBLE BASS Characteristics: Although properly a member of the viols, the double bass has been adopted as the lowest-pitched voice of the violin family. There are two main styles of bow: the French, held like a violin bow, and the German, held with the hand upside-down like a viol bow. History: Early double basses often had six strings, while many 18th-century examples had only three. Modern ones have four or five.
Stradivari emerged from a long tradition of violin makers in Cremona. Taught by Nicolo Amati, he educated his sons in the trade, and his family workshop produced violins, violas, cellos, pochettes, and guitars. Many consider his instruments the finest ever made. Debates continue concerning the woods and varnishes he used.
30
C L AS SI CA L M USI C I N STRUM E N TS
Woodwind
Crook
Woodwind instruments are derived from basic blown pipes and can be made from a wide variety of materials. Many produce their sound by means of a vibrating “reed”. They come in families, with larger and smaller versions of the main orchestral instrument, and are used to add a variety of colours to the orchestral sound. The standard woodwind section of the modern orchestra comprises two flutes, piccolo, two oboes, cor anglais, two clarinets, bass clarinet, two bassoons, and contrabassoon. In some works, composers may call for additional Orchestra Mouthpiece Clarinets Bassoons woodwind instruments, such as saxophones and smaller Flutes Oboes high-pitched clarinets. SINGLE REEDS Characteristics: Single reeds use a cane reed, held over a slot in the mouthpiece by a ligature and placed against the player’s lower lip. The clarinet can produce a wide variety of tone colours. The saxophone appears occasionally in the orchestra but is more common in wind and jazz bands. History: Johann Christopher Denner of Nuremberg is reputed to have invented the clarinet at the beginning of the 18th century. More keys were gradually added in the 19th century.
CLARINET REED
All tone holes controlled by keys Ligature holding reed
Barrel Keys for left hand
Feathered edge
Levers to extend range
THEOBALD BOEHM (1794–1881)
Born in Munich, Boehm was a professional flautist who also worked in the jewellery and steel industries. He spent over 30 years remodelling the keywork and bores of flutes, and his 1847 cylindrical flute is the pattern for most modern instruments. Boehm’s successors have applied his principles to other woodwind instruments.
Bell Wide, conical bore, ending in bell
Upper octave key Bell
CLARINET
ALTO CLARINET
BASS CLARINET
31
CL ASSI C A L M USI C I N ST RUM E N TS
DOUBLE REEDS Characteristics: The oboe and bassoon families have conical bores and a double reed, consisting of two pieces of shaped cane strapped together, which is held gently between the lips. The treble oboe is often given prominent melodies and requires a significant amount of air pressure to sound properly. The tenor voice of the cor anglais is popular as a solo instrument as it has a rich and sonorous quality. Forming the tenor and bass of the woodwind, the versatile bassoon has a bore which doubles back on itself. The large contrabassoon adds a deep bass to the woodwind section. History: Both the oboe and the early bassoon first appeared in 17thcentury France. While the oboe (from hautbois, meaning “high” or “loud wood”) developed from the shawm, the bassoon’s precursors were the dulcian (“sweet sounding”) and fagot (“bundle of sticks”).
Reed attached to bent crook
Slender double reed
Bell The tubing of the contrabassoon is twice the length of the bassoon’s
Crook (metal tube that holds reed)
Long levers to reach widely spaced finger holes
Staple (corkcovered tube)
Bore of oboe is conical Staple Distinctive bulbous bell BASSOON REED
OBOE REED
OBOE
COR ANGLAIS
Hand support
FLUTES Characteristics: The air in a flute is set in motion by blowing across the edge of the embouchure hole. Usually providing the top woodwind voice, the flute also has a mellow low register. The smaller piccolo can cut through the entire orchestral texture to great effect. History: Early flutes were usually made of boxwood or ivory and had open finger holes. The keywork of the modern flute (usually made of silver) is based on a 19th-century design.
PICCOLO
CONTRABASSOON
Embouchure
Long wooden tube doubles back on itself
Butt
FLUTE
BASSOON
32
C L AS SI CA L M USI C I N STRUM E N TS
Brass
Mouthpiece Keys controlling rotary valves
Brass instruments consist of a length of metal tubing ending in a flared bell. They use a slide mechanism or valves, which engage additional lengths of tubing to extend their range. The air column is set in motion by vibrating the lips against a cupped mouthpiece. Sound characteristics are partly a result of the width of the bore, as well as the shape and size of the mouthpiece and the bell. While they can be played subtly, brass instruments Orchestra are often used for power Horns Trumpets and dramatic effect.
Rotary valves
Trombones and tubas
FRENCH HORN Characteristics: The tubing of the modern horn is mostly conical. It usually has three or four rotary valves, operated by the left hand, while the right hand is inserted into the bell to shape the sound. Most horns are pitched in F (single) or a combination of F and B flat (double or “compensating”). Horn players sometimes specialize in playing either high or low parts. History: The natural horn was used as a signalling instrument on the hunting field. Before the advent of valves, some players used hand stopping (partly closing the bell with the right hand) to play notes outside the harmonic series, a technique that also changes the timbre of the note.
Tuning slide
Smallcupped mouthpiece
Bell
FRENCH HORN MOUTHPIECE
TRUMPET Valves
Mouthpiece
Bell
Cylindrical tubing Cup
Characteristics: The bore of the orchestral trumpet is partly cylindrical and partly conical. It has three valves, which lower the pitch by a semi-tone, tone, or minor third. Different-sized trumpets (C, D, and B flat are most common) are used to make higher or lower parts easier to play. Inserting various mutes into the bell alters the timbre produced. Shank History: The early trumpet – a single length of tubing with a shallow flared bell – traditionally had a military or ceremonial function. From the late 18th century, various methods were developed to make more notes TRUMPET available, including the addition of crooks, slides, keys, or valves. MOUTHPIECE
Water key
Slide to extend length of tubing
33
CL ASSI C A L M USI C I N ST RUM E N TS
TUBA Characteristics: Instruments of the tuba family (including euphoniums, sousaphones, and bombardons) have wide, conical bores and provide the bass of the brass section. Different shapes and sizes are used but the typical orchestral instrument has an upward-pointing bell, with three to six valves. The player uses a great deal of breath but less wind pressure than for smaller instruments. History: First developed in Germany in the 1830s, the tuba was embraced enthusiastically by composers such as Berlioz. It had replaced its predecessor, the ophicleide (an early 19th-century invention) in most bands and orchestras by the 1870s.
Bell
Mouthpiece
Cup Valves
Throat Shoulder
Shank TUBA MOUTHPIECE
TROMBONE Characteristics: The cylindrical bored trombone has a telescoping slide rather than valves to change the tube length. Seven slide positions are used, each changing the pitch by a semitone. Sizes range from soprano to contrabass trombones, with the tenor and bass being the typical orchestral instruments. History: When trombones, or sackbuts, first appeared in the late 15th century, they Largelacked the flaring bell of cupped modern instruments. Valves mouthpiece were added in the 1820s, but it is the slide version that now predominates. TROMBONE MOUTHPIECE
The bore of the trombone varies from country to country
Bell
Strut Mouthpiece
34
C L AS SI CA L M USI C I N STRUM E N TS
Percussion and keyboards The percussion section adds rhythmic vitality and drive to the orchestra. Percussion instruments are divided into two main categories: membranophones (where a stretched membrane is struck, as with a drum) and idiophones (where an object made of resonant material is struck). Some idiophones, such as the xylophone and tubular bells, are tuned and capable of producing melody as well as rhythm. Other idiophones used frequently in orchestral works range from cymbals, triangles, and tambourines to the more exotic tam-tam (a large oriental gong), wood block, castanets, and maracas. Special sound-effect instruments, such as the whip (two wooden slats that are slapped together), sleigh bells, rattles, or sirens, can also be employed. To these, keyboard instruments, such as the piano and celesta, are often added. Orchestra Drums
Other percussion instruments
Tensioned batter head
Tuning gauge
Tensioning screws
DRUMS Characteristics: Timpani (or kettledrums) are used in groups of two to five instruments and can be tuned by altering the skin tension using turning screws or a pedal. The snare drum is smaller and has a set of gut or metal springs stretched across its lower drum head which vibrate when the upper head is struck. The large bass drum is also double-headed and is struck using a stick with a large, soft head. History: Drums came into the orchestra in the late 17th century, initially in combination with trumpets. Timpani arrived first, with other types gradually being added later. Copper or fibreglass shell Batter head Metal frame
SNARE DRUM
BASS DRUM
TIMPANUM AND DRUM STICK
Tuning pedal
IDIOPHONES
CYMBALS
TAMBOURINE
Characteristics: Cymbals are made from metal and are sounded either with a stick or by clashing a pair together. Tambourines consist of “jingles” fitted in a ring of wood, over which a membrane is sometimes fitted. They can be shaken, hit, or used to play a roll. The triangle – a steel bar bent to form an equilateral triangle – is hung from a string and may be hit with one or two metal beaters. Trills are played using quick strokes inside the top corner. History: Many percussion instruments originate in China or Turkey and became regular members of the Jingles orchestra in the 19th TRIANGLE and 20th centuries.
35
CL ASSI C A L M USI C I N ST RUM E N TS
TUNED IDIOPHONES Characteristics: The glockenspiel consists of a series of metal bars tuned to a chromatic scale, laid out like a piano keyboard. Sticks with heads of wood, metal, rubber, or fabric can be used to create different tone qualities. A wooden equivalent, the xylophone, can have resonators fitted beneath its rosewood bars. Tubular bells, which are hit with a small mallet, are commonly used to evoke the sound of church bells. History: Xylophones are found in many cultures, and, like tubular bells, were adopted by European composers in the 19th century. The first orchestral use of the glockenspiel is thought to be in Handel’s Saul (1739).
Tuned steel pipes
Wooden bars
Resonators XYLOPHONE
Metal plates
TUBULAR BELLS AND MALLET
GLOCKENSPIEL
KEYBOARDS Characteristics: The piano, developed from the harpsichord in early-18th-century Florence by Bartolomeo Cristofori, is sometimes defined as a percussion instrument since its strings are struck by hammers. While early pianos are largely made of wood and have a delicate sound, modern grand pianos have metal frames, larger hammers, and heavier strings, and can be played much more loudly. The celesta, invented in 1886 by Auguste Mustel, is a keyboard instrument in which tuned metal plates are struck by hammers.
The left pedal (“una corda”) moves the hammers so they strike only one of the two strings for each note in the treble and two of the three in the bass
Metal frame supports tension of the strings
Keyboard
Some pianos have a third central pedal which raises the dampers of those notes being played when depressed
Right pedal lifts all the dampers, allowing the strings to vibrate freely GRAND PIANO
37
Classical music in
PERFORMANCE A common perception of classical music is that it is performed in the formal surroundings of a concert hall and usually involves a large symphony orchestra and world-famous soloists and conductors. However, classical music can just as easily be brought to life in the home or out of doors. he professional composer whose works are performed by professional musicians for a paying audience is a relatively recent phenomenon. The idea of attending an event specifically to listen to music – rather than to hear music in the course of a church service or an entertainment at court – would have been very unusual before the 17th century. In medieval times, most sacred music was performed by monks within the Church and secular music was played and sung by wandering minstrels. Just as many early composers were anonymous, so too were most early performers. During the Renaissance and Baroque periods, performers began to emerge from obscurity. Some of the first to achieve fame in northern Europe were organists; during his lifetime, J S Bach may have been better known as an organist than as a composer. Another group of “celebrity” performers to emerge during the
T
Baroque period were opera singers. Some of Handel’s sopranos were notorious for their capricious demands. Once, during a particularly fraught rehearsal, the composer threatened to throw the soprano Francesca Cuzzoni from an upstairs window.
THE CONCERT The word “concert” is probably derived from the Italian concertare (“to arrange”, or “to get together”). In the 17th century, musicians would come together to perform both privately and publicly. An early example was in Lübeck, Germany, where it became fashionable in the 1620s for a performance of secular music to follow Evensong in a public building (such as the town hall). This came to be known as Abendmusik. Concerts were enthusiastically taken up in England at the time of the Civil War, when hardly any music was performed in churches. Musicians responded to public demand by giving
38
C L AS SI CA L M USI C I N P E R F OR M A N C E
Ancient Music (established in 1726) performed music by such composers as Byrd and Purcell, whereas the rival Concerts of Ancient Music (founded in 1776) performed Baroque music, including that of Handel and Corelli. Concert life was less developed in Vienna in the 18th century than in London, and there was no hall specially intended for concerts, so musical events took place in a variety of venues there including palaces, theatres, Masonic lodges, restaurants, and public gardens.
MEDIEVAL MUSICIANS
A group of 14th-century musicians performs on a range of instruments, including drum, pipe, shawm, vielle with a curved bow, and psaltery.
concerts for which listeners paid an admission fee. Many were held in taverns such as London’s Mitre Inn.
A MUSICAL HERITAGE Until well into the 19th century, the composer and performer were often one and the same. The performance of “old” music (music composed by earlier generations) was rare until the 19th century. Until that time, almost all music heard was contemporary, often composed for specific events, whether sacred (as in the case of Bach’s Cantatas) or secular (as in that of Handel’s Music for the Royal Fireworks). It was in England that performers began to take an interest in music of the past: the Academy of
PROFESSIONAL MUSICIANS The music societies formed during the 18th century organized concerts in which amateur musicians could perform under the direction of professionals. The composer Telemann founded such a society in Hamburg in 1713, and another was to be found in Leipzig, directed by the Kantor of the Thomaskirche – the position held by J S Bach at the time
MUSIC FOR THE ROYAL FIREWORKS (1749)
To celebrate the Peace of Aix-la-Chapelle, Handel was commissioned by King George II to write a suite to accompany a magnificent firework display in London
TIMELINE: CLASSICAL MUSIC IN PERFORMANCE 1726 Academy of Ancient Music founded in London
1700
1748 Holywell Room in Oxford opened for concert
1740 w 1715 Forerunner of Three Choirs Festival founded in Gloucester, Hereford and Worcester, England
1781 First Gewandhaus concert takes place in Leipzig
1791 Haydn’s first visit to London for Salomon’s concert series
1780 1764 s Wolfgang and Nannerl Mozart tour Europe and perform for Louis XV
1810 Paganini undertakes first concert tour
1820 1820 Spohr introduces the baton at an orchestra rehearsal
39
CL ASSI C AL M USI C I N P E R F O R M A N CE BAROQUE ORCHESTRA
A chamber orchestra gathers around a harpsichord during rehearsals for an opera in Venice, c.1710.
of his death. The Leipzig society was named the Grosses Konzert in 1743, and by the middle of the 19th century, all its players were professionals. The organization – now the Leipzig Gewandhaus Orchestra – still exists today. Many local music societies (as well as a few performers) began to sell admission to a series of concerts to the public, demanding payment prior to the first of the concerts. This became known as the “subscription concert”. One of the first successful examples was that of J C Bach in London in 1765. During the 18th and 19th centuries, concerts were long and diverse. The Gewandhaus subscription concerts would frequently contain an overture, an opera aria, an instrumental solo and a choral finale in each half, and might last for three or four hours in total. Where vocal music had been at the centre of 18th-century programmes, during the 19th century it became more accepted to perform movements from concertos and symphonies, although concerts solely of instrumental music were still rare. The orchestra had emerged during the Renaissance period as a group of players brought together for important occasions. During the 18th century, 1840 s Liszt uses the term “recital” for a solo concert
CONCERT HALLS
Initially concert halls were limited in size, but London’s Hanover Square Rooms (1775) held in excess of 600 people. The audience was free to move around during the performance and talk, or to sit on sofas around the hall. With the increased projection capabilities of new instruments, concert halls could become larger. In 1826, Berlin’s Singakademie was built for an audience of 1200. During the 19th century, cultural centres competed with each other to build larger, more elaborate halls, such as the Musikvereinsaal in Vienna (1870) and the Royal Albert Hall in London (1871). PALAU DE LA MÚSICA CATALANA CONCERT HALL
This richly decorated auditorium was built in Barcelona in 1908 as a symbol of Catalan pride.
w 2003 Walt Disney Hall opens in Los Angeles
1880s 1940 Foundation of Berlin Tanglewood Philharmonic, Boston Music Center Symphony, and Amsterdam founded by Serge Concertgebouw Orchestras Koussevitsky
1860 1870 Musikvereinsaal opened in Vienna
1900 1877 Phonograph invented by Thomas Edison
1891 s Carnegie Hall opens in New York; Paderewski tours USA for first time
1940
1980 1947 Amadeus Quartet founded
1976 Ensemble intercontemporain founded by Pierre Boulez
40
C L AS SI CA L M USI C I N P E R F OR M A N C E
the modern string family replaced viols in this group and an important member was the keyboard player or “continuo” – a harpsichord, organ, or, later, piano that would play from the bass-line of the score. By the 19th century, the continuo had disappeared and a standard layout had emerged. Violins were grouped into two sections and there were smaller groups of violas, cellos, and basses, while there was normally a pair each of flutes, oboes, clarinets,
bassoons, trumpets, and horns (“double wind”), and timpani. During the 19th century, this group became extended so that piccolos, cor anglais, trombones, tubas, and further percussion were added. The layout of orchestras has changed considerably over the years. Perhaps the most radical alteration in the course of the 20th century was the moving of the second violins next to the first violins and the cellos to the conductor’s right.
ORCHESTRA AT THE TIME OF HAYDN
MODERN SYMPHONY ORCHESTRA
The strings – not just the violins – were divided into two sections, one on either side of the leader, who sat at the piano and directed the orchestra.
Since roughly the time of the Second World War, both the first and second violins have sat on the conductor’s left, facing the cellos and double basses on the right.
THE SYMPHONY ORCHESTRA
The personnel and seating arrangement of the modern orchestra is now effectively standardized around the world. The picture below shows the Bournemouth Symphony Orchestra with its principal conductor, Marin Alsop.
KEY First violins
Second violins
Violas
Cellos
Double basses
Drums
Other percussion
Harp
Piano
Organ
Oboes
Flutes
Clarinets
Bassoons
Horns
Trumpets
Trombones and tubas
CL ASSI C AL M USI C I N P E R F O R M A N CE
41
THE CONDUCTOR
The conductor became a focal point of interest through the efforts of Hector Berlioz in the 1830s. The conductor’s job is about far more than keeping time. In performance, he or she may give cues to the players to indicate their entries, and may need to control the balance between sections. However, much of the work –
on issues such as phrasing, bowing, breathing, or the respective attack and decay of sound – is done before the performance. Some conductors (Leonard Bernstein, Valery Gergiev) have been known for their extrovert use of gestures on stage, while others (Pierre Boulez, Bernard Haitink) are far more restrained. The one thing that all great conductors have in common is a natural sense of authority. THE CONDUCTOR’S ROLE
1
1
2
3
2 2/4 TIME
3/4 TIME
1
2
The conductor is responsible for overall interpretation and encourages the orchestra to perform as a unit.
4
3
4/4 TIME KEEPING TIME
Whatever the time signature, the first beat of each bar is shown by a downward gesture (the downbeat) and the last by an upward gesture (the upbeat).
As orchestras became established, a “canon” or core repertoire emerged – largely works by the Viennese composers (i.e. Mozart and Beethoven) as well as opera music by composers such as Gluck and Cherubini. By the end of the 19th century, concert activity had
divided into solo recitals, chamber music performances, and orchestral performances. The crossover with opera had largely disappeared, which resulted in the shorter programme lengths we have today.
THE SOLO RECITAL Liszt was responsible for introducing the solo recital in the late 1830s. He toured Europe extensively, performing in towns and cities from Scotland to Russia. One of his innovations was that of playing from memory. In the 21st century this has become the norm for soloists, but in Liszt’s time it was considered dangerously radical. At the same time that Liszt was establishing his reputation across Europe, a market was developing for the celebrity performer in the United States. The singer Jenny Lind, for example, drew an audience of over 7,000 at Castle Garden in New York in 1850, proving the commercial potential of America for performers
42
C L AS SI CA L M USI C I N P E R F OR M A N C E
MUSIC FESTIVALS
Festivals date back to about 1715 with the first meeting of the cathedral choirs of Gloucester, Hereford, and Worcester (the Three Choirs Festival). Many great composers have inspired festivals in their memory, notably Handel (1784) and Beethoven (1845). The 20th century saw the establishment of festivals such as the Maggio Musicale Fiorentino (from 1933) and the Lucerne Festival (1938). The composers Benjamin Britten and Sir Peter Maxwell Davies established their own festivals in Aldeburgh and Orkney, respectively. American festivals include those at Aspen, Ravinia, and Tanglewood. TANGLEWOOD FESTIVAL
The Boston Symphony Orchestra has staged its summer festival at Tanglewood since 1940.
and promoters. Pianists such as Thalberg and Anton Rubinstein toured the United States from the mid-19th century onwards, and Paderewski created a sensation with his tours there in the 1890s.
NEW ORCHESTRAS The Berlin Philharmonic Orchestra, founded in 1882, has set what many consider the finest standards in orchestral playing. Brahms’s friend Joseph Joachim was appointed its first conductor and was CLASSICAL MUSIC WITH A NEW FACE
Today’s promoters are always on the lookout for talented, attractive soloists like Vanessa Mae (born 1978).
succeeded by Liszt’s pupil von Bülow in 1887. Prestigious orchestras were established on the other side of the Atlantic by wealthy industrialists: the Philharmonic Symphony Society
CL ASSI C AL M USI C I N P E R F O R M A N CE
of New York (later the New York Philharmonic) in 1842 and the Boston Symphony Orchestra in 1881.
WIDER AUDIENCES In the 19th century, concert series were founded to make music available to people who could not afford to attend subscription concerts. London’s Crystal Palace concerts were a typical venture of this kind. Two free concerts were given daily throughout the 1850s. Military bands also brought music to wider audiences. Under J P Sousa in the 1880s, the Marine Corps Band would give free weekly concerts at the White House and the Capitol in Washington. At the same time there was a great increase in the number of choral societies, especially in industrial regions such as northern England, Wales, and Germany’s Ruhr Valley.
43
the spirituality of their playing, while performers like violinist Jascha Heifetz and pianist Evgeny Kissin are noted for their technical prowess. Others, such as the pianist Alfred Brendel, seem to combine all these qualities with an intellectual integrity. Others still – violinists Maxim Vengerov and Nigel Kennedy, for example – are noted for their panache and conviction. Flamboyant artists who have raised the public profile of their instruments include the flautist James Galway, the percussionist Evelyn Glennie, the trumpeter Håken Hardenberger, and the viola player Yuri Bashmet. Some performers have looked to the east for inspiration; the violinist Yehudi Menuhin worked with sitar player Ravi Shankar, and more recently the cellist Yo-Yo Ma has initiated an East-West collaboration through his Silk Road Ensemble. RECORDING
MODERN PERFORMERS Few 20th- or 21st-century composers have been known as performers, but Richard Strauss, Bernstein, Boulez, and others have combined the roles of conductor and composer. Non-composing performers, however, have influenced the repertoire of their instruments profoundly. The cellist Mstislav Rostropovich worked closely with Prokofiev, Shostakovich, Schnittke, and Britten; the singer Kathy Berberian inspired Berio to compose vocal music; and the pianist David Tudor worked with John Cage and other avant-garde composers. Many performers have chosen to specialize in certain repertoires; Artur Schnabel, for example, was known for his renditions of the Beethoven piano sonatas. Some artists, such as the cellist Pablo Casals, are celebrated for
Recording made music available to all. The first wax recordings, at the end of the 19th century, were dominated by opera arias by singers such as Caruso, as the voice could be reproduced much better than instrumental music. Electric recordings began in 1925, allowing longer excerpts of works to be recorded, and the arrival of LPs in 1948 allowed many works to be presented in their entirety. Stereo was introduced in 1958 and the CD in 1983. Some commentators, such as Canadian pianist Glenn Gould, predicted that live concerts would be superseded by recorded music, but there is now more emphasis on live performance than there has been for half a century. A RECORDING STUDIO
The availability of so many high-quality recordings means that new recordings of standard repertoire cannot be justified by the major record labels.
THE HISTORY OF
C LASSICAL MUSIC
47
EARLY MUSIC
1000 1600 —
“Early Music” refers to the repertoire from historical periods less familiar to classically trained musicians and their audiences than that of the Classical and Romantic eras. This section covers the music of the Middle Ages and the Renaissance – a vast sweep of centuries of musical ideas, developments and performance styles. n terms of architecture, painting, and sculpture, the Renaissance can be said to have begun in 15th-century Florence. The transition between the music of the Middle Ages and the Renaissance is more difficult to identify, because musical styles developed gradually and in different ways across Europe. It is clear, however, that there were differences in the approach to musical composition as practised by the French composer Machaut in the 14th century and the Italian Palestrina in the 16th century. Works by influential composers such as Dufay and Josquin changed musical style considerably in the late 15th and early 16th centuries, so 1450 is a convenient date to separate medieval from Renaissance music. What is usually referred to as Renaissance music may be seen to
I
MINSTREL PLAYING A VIELLE
This illustration is from a 13th-century illuminated manuscript, the Cantigas de Santa Maria, a collection of songs made for Alfonso X of Castile and León.
end at the point where Monteverdi and his contemporaries experimented with the new “Baroque” genres of opera, sonata, and concerto at the beginning of the 17th century, although countries such as England were still in a rich period of “Renaissance” music until perhaps two or three decades later.
CHURCH MUSIC The music that has survived is heavily weighted in favour of the sacred. Plainchant was by far the most common sort of sacred music during this entire period, and was sung in every church, monastery, cathedral, and chapel. It was monophonic music – it had just a single line of melody – and could be sung by one voice or many. Most church musicians would have been expected to commit hundreds of chants to memory as part of their musical training, even after Guido d’Arezzo developed the music stave in the 11th century.
48
EAR LY M USI C
Secular monophonic music was created throughout this period, but only from the 12th century was it considered worthy of preservation in written collections. The most famous secular composers were the troubadours, trobairitz (female troubadours), and trouvères of medieval France, whose music and poetry usually expressed the ideals of courtly love. Little is known about how their music was performed, but it is possible that their songs were accompanied by the vielle, a forerunner of the violin with five strings, one of which could produce a regular drone like that PLAINCHANT
Plainchant was the musical part of the liturgy in the Christian Church. Plainchant was monophonic, a single melodic line set in one of the eight church modes (scales based on a specific combination of intervals). These melodies might be short, regular and simple, or more extensive, elaborate, and complex. The texts used for chants were religious, and in Latin or Greek. Melodies were written down only from the 9th century, and there were regional variations in the chants used. Attempts were made to bring European churches into line so that all performed the same chants in the same way, but none were particularly successful. MANUSCRIPT SCORE
This Flemish score of 1522 is illuminated with a painting of clerics playing music in a garden.
of a hurdy-gurdy or bagpipe. The vielle may thus have provided just a steady drone or more complex accompaniments to a solo singer.
POLYPHONY The rise of polyphonic (literally “many-voiced”) forms of composition from approximately the 12th century took place within the Church, as singers elaborated on the basic plainchant by the addition of other vocal parts on special occasions, such as Christmas or Easter. In the Cathedral of Notre-Dame in Paris, Léonin and Pérotin are credited with having written the first body of two-, three-, and four-part music to be circulated in manuscript form. By the 13th century, a large repertory of polyphony was found in major churches across Europe, and secular forms of music were also being written in more than one part. By the 15th century, polyphonic music was widespread and had become a necessary part of important religious and courtly celebrations. THE MOTET The motet was one of the most popular sacred forms during the later Middle Ages, gradually making way for polyphonic settings of the Ordinary of the Mass (the parts of the Mass that remain the same every day). The motet was developed in the 13th century in northern France. The plainchant was placed into a strict rhythmic pattern, above which between one and three other lines
T I M E L I N E : E A R LY M U S I C 1054 Schism between Eastern Church and Church of Rome
1099 s First Crusade: capture of Jerusalem
1050 w 1030 Guido d’Arezzo describes the stave and uses the fingers and hand as aids to remembering music
1100 c.1125 Rise of troubadours in southern France
1150s Works of Hildegard of Bingen, earliest surviving set of compositions by a named author
c.1200 Rise of German Minnesänger
1150
1200
c.1165–1200 Léonin and Pérotin compose significant body of church music for Notre-Dame, Paris
c.1200 s Cathedral of NotreDame, Paris, completed
E A R LY M USI C
MEDIEVAL NOBLES DANCING IN A GARDEN
This scene illustrates the great French medieval poem of courtly love, Le Roman de la Rose.
were placed; these upper parts were each given a new text, resulting in a complex texture in which many different words sounded together.
49
Wealthy patrons of the 16th century demanded vocal and instrumental music for all sorts of musical combinations. In particular, “families” of instruments that comprised various sizes of one type of instrument (a consort of recorders, viols, or voices) flourished during the Renaissance period, though mixed or “broken” consorts of string, wind and voice were also cultivated. Dances such as the stately pavan and the galliard, a lively dance involving leaps, became enormously popular.
INSTRUMENTAL MUSIC Along with new secular forms of song in the 16th century, such as the madrigal, instrumental music rose to such a status that it was more frequently copied down than it had been in the Middle Ages. The Renaissance saw a rise in the involvement of the merchant classes in the performance of music; the invention of music printing by Petrucci in 1501 meant that music could be sold and distributed more easily, cheaply, and reliably than ever before, though much was still written down in manuscript (literally “handwritten”) form. MONKS SINGING
French composers produced the first complex polyphonic settings of the liturgy. This illumination appears in a 13th-century French psalter.
1338 Start of Hundred Years’ War between England and France w c.1307 Dante starts work on La divina commedia
1250 c.1250 Spanish Cantigas de Santa Maria written
1300 c.1309 Papacy transfers to Avignon in southern France. The vast papal palace dominates the town s
1347 s Black Death reaches Europe
1350 1320 Publication of Ars Nova, musical treatise attributed to Philippe de Vitry
c.1363 Machaut composes Messe de Nostre Dame
50
EAR LY M USI C
Secular vocal music was written in vernacular languages, and very often had an amorous subject. The madrigal rose to prominence in the 16th century and was notable for its use of subtle musical descriptions that matched the text, known as “wordpainting”. Composers delighted in devising ways to set the most expressive poetic phrases to music.
COMPOSERS AND PLAYERS During the Middle Ages and the Renaissance, those who composed music were usually employed to do something else, such as work as a priest. To compose and write down music,
FUNERAL MASS
Monks in Gothic choir stalls sing a funeral mass for the Holy Roman Emperor Maximilian I, who died in 1519.
one had to be musically literate to some degree, especially for the composition of polyphony. People who received an education were usually either employed by the Church, living within a religious foundation such as a monastery or nunnery, or part of the nobility. During the Renaissance, the merchant classes valued an education for their sons and, to some extent, daughters. There were relatively few female composers during this period, although many anonymous pieces may in fact have been written by women, and women certainly performed music by men.
RELIGIOUS DIVISION The Protestant Reformation of the 16th century had inevitable musical consequences, largely because the Protestant reformers destroyed as much Catholic music as possible and replaced it with new, more direct styles, particularly in England. This made extraordinary demands of English composers of the period. Thomas Tallis, for example, wrote music for four different monarchs, THREE YOUNG WOMEN MAKING MUSIC
In this early 16th-century Flemish painting, the young women are performing “Jouissance vous donnerai” (I Will Give You Happiness), a popular song of the time.
T I M E L I N E : E A R LY M U S I C 1436 Organ treatise by Henri Arnaut de Zwolle mentions use of reed stops
1425 c.1430 Emergence of Flemish school of music, represented by Binchois and Dufay
1453 Constantinople falls to Turks: end of Byzantine Empire
1454 Gutenberg develops printing with movable type
1450 1436 s Inauguration of dome of Florence’s cathedral, built by Filippo Brunelleschi. Music for event composed by Dufay
1492 Columbus’s first voyage to America; Spanish expel Moors from Granada
1475
1500 Music printed by Ottaviano Petrucci in Venice
1500 1517 Martin Luther’s 95 Theses; start of Protestant Reformation
51
E A R LY M USI C HISTORICAL PERFORMANCE
Today, few musicians perform Early Music unless they use authentic reproductions of the instruments for which it was written. The quest for authenticity is supported by the exploration of early written and pictorial sources in search of clues as to how instruments were played, indications of pitch, tempo, phrasing, ornamentation, and accompaniment style, and what sort of improvization might be appropriate. “Historically informed” performance gives a vibrant account of the possible sounds produced by early performers. THE DUFAY COLLECTIVE
This British ensemble, seen here playing on harp and two vielles, performs all kinds of medieval and Renaissance music, both instrumental and vocal.
each of whom required music with a different religious emphasis: from the direct, Protestant settings of English texts favoured by Elizabeth I to the elaborate, Latin-texted polyphony composed for her half-sister, Mary. The simplest post-Reformation religious polyphony involved straightforward chanting in harmony, all voices moving together in the same rhythm as one another (homophony). Other polyphonic musical forms were contrapuntal. The idea of a musical texture where voices imitated one another in counterpoint became a 1524 Protestant hymnal by Luther and Johann Walter
1534 Henry VIII declares himself head of the Church of England
1525 1540 Viol players from Venice, Cremona and Milan employed by Henry VIII in England
distinguishing feature of sacred and secular music of the late Middle Ages and Renaissance, and is perhaps most recognizable in the choral music of Palestrina and the instrumental fantasies of English consort music at the end of the period. Although musicians found new ways to compose, using an increasingly subtle palette of rhythmic, harmonic and notational ideas, Early Music cannot be seen as a straightforward evolution from “primitive” plainchant to “sophisticated” polyphony. Fifteenth-century motets were often incredibly complex pieces of artistry, both notationally and in performance; instrumental dances in the 16th century were often delightfully simple.
THE MUSICAL LEGACY In appreciating Early Music, we are limited by our ignorance of how it sounded in its original context and just what the music meant to those who sang, played, or listened to it. On the other hand, the great variety of interpretations available is testament to how much there remains to discover in this seemingly distant repertoire and the myriad ways in which we might enjoy getting to know it better. LUTE
One of the most popular instruments of the Renaissance, the lute was probably introduced to Europe from Moorish Spain.
1551 s Palestrina appointed choirmaster by Pope Julius III
1550 1545 s Council of Trent meets to determine Catholic response to the Reformation
c.1555 Amati family of violinmakers established in Cremona, Italy
1575
1600 1591 William Byrd's My Ladye Nevells Virginal Booke, a compilation of music for the virginals
EAR LY M USI C
52
Hildegard of Bingen b 1098–1179
n German
w 77 Writer, poet, religious leader, diplomat, and composer, Hildegard’s achievements were remarkable – and unique for a woman of her time. Promised to the Church by her noble family, she spent years living in religious contemplation. Through correspondence with popes and emperors, she became a significant political and diplomatic figure and wrote extensively on medicine, science, and theology. Her contemplative and ecstatic music is comprised of single-line settings of religious texts: not plainchant, but specially composed, using frequently repeated and varied short patterns. MILESTONES
1112 Takes the veil at age 15 1136 Abbess of Disibodenberg Monastery c.1147 Establishes religious house near Bingen Hildegard experienced intense visions (probably due to migraine), which she recorded in her books; she became known for her prophecies and miracles.
Léonin (Leoninus)
1150s Lyrical poems and music, Symphonia armonie celestium revelationum, collected 1151
Writes Ordo virtutum, a morality play
Philippe de Vitry
b Died c.1201 n French w Unknown
b 1291–1361 n French
The only written reference to a musician named Léonin was penned more than a century after his death by an anonymous English monk, who wrote that he was “the best composer of organum for the amplification of divine service”. Léonin was a teacher, administrator, and poet who became a canon at the new cathedral of Notre-Dame de Paris. No music by him survives, but he is credited with the creation of the Magnus liber, the “Great Book” of chants used at Notre-Dame in the late 1100s. The book, later edited by Pérotin, laid the foundations for the idea of harmony and written-down composition.
From 1340, Vitry was one of France’s leading intellectual figures – poet, philosopher, singer, composer, author, critic, bishop, and scholar. He travelled widely and was often involved in international relations. His motets – probably settings of his own Latin poems – enjoyed wide circulation and critical success, as did his poetry. The book of his teachings, Ars nova, established innovations such as the use of the minim and other short notes. Vitry may have invented the ballade, though no examples by him survive.
w 30
MILESTONES
1310s Motets enjoy success MILESTONES
1150s Cathedral administrator in Paris 1163 Construction of Notre-Dame begins c.1192 Ordained as a priest c.1200 Compilation of Magnus liber, a book of plainchant
c.1320 Collection of his musical theories, Ars nova, published 1331
Accompanies the Duke of Bourbon to London
1342 1351
Composes motet Petre clemens Created Bishop of Meaux
E A R LY M USI C
53
Pérotin (Perotinus Magnus) b Active c.1200 n French w Unknown Pérotin, the first known composer of MILESTONES music in more than two independent c.1198 Writes quadruple (four-voice) organum parts, is a frustratingly shadowy figure. c.1199 Setting of sacred text Viderunt omnes He is mentioned in late-13th-century c.1200 Working at Notre-Dame; setting documents as the man who edited and of sacred text Sederunt principes improved Léonin’s Magnus liber, the book of music at Notre-Dame. He probably c.1207 Deputy Choirmaster at Notre-Dame worked with the poet Philip the c.1210 Revises Léonin’s Magnus liber Chancellor, whose texts he set (in works such as Beata viscera), and he may have composed in the emerging genre of the motet, but very little is known about him for certain. However, Pérotin was certainly a pioneer: his two four-part settings of Latin texts have some startlingly modern-sounding touches. The composer known as Pérotin may have actually been Petrus, a member of the hierarchy at the cathedral of NotreDame de Paris from about 1207 to 1238.
John Dunstable b 1390–1453 n English w c.52 him – including Mass movements, So great was Dunstable’s international sacred Latin settings, dazzling motets, reputation, both during his lifetime and and English carols – survive, but their for a long time afterwards, that he was attribution and dating is very difficult, credited with many innovations for which other English composers had been as little is certain about Dunstable’s career. However, it responsible. A century after his death, is known that he some writers were even erroneously enjoyed great labelling him the “inventor of financial success, counterpoint”. Nevertheless, owning a series of Dunstable was a leading properties around exponent of the southern England mellifluous new English and in London. style, exploiting the smooth intervals of a MILESTONES third and a sixth, and his c.1422 May have travelled to France influence on continental with the Duke of Bedford composers was enormous. 1436 Large income from property Many vocal works 1438 Working for the Duke of Gloucester possibly written by Dunstable’s epitaph in St Stephen Walbrook Church in London celebrates his skills as both musician and astronomer.
c.1440 Enjoys reputation as the leading English composer of his time c.1449 Possibly purchased Broadfield Manor, Hertfordshire
54
EAR LY M USI C
Guillaume de Machaut b c.1300–1377
n French
w 143
Because he was a priest, it is perhaps surprising that Machaut’s music contains so many songs on the theme of unrequited love. His ill-fated love for a young girl – the noble Péronne – was expressed in his secular music and poetry, including Le voir dit, and his distinctive musical style includes intricate melodies and bold dissonance. However, it is his four-part Mass that has defined his reputation as a significant composer. LIFE AND MUSIC
Guillaume de Machaut’s career was based in the Church, but he also worked for several secular patrons. Remarkably, his entire compositional output has been preserved. He was a great entrepreneur, passing on reliable copies of his music and poetry to noblemen and -women across Europe. Aside from his Mass, Machaut also produced an impressive collection of motets and songs, many of which take the theme of courtly love. The strict poetic structures used by authors of this period – rondeau, virelai, ballade, and lai – are all represented in his work.
MILESTONES
1323
Joins service of Jean de Luxembourg, King of Bohemia
c.1323 Possibly meets theorist and composer Philippe de Vitry 1327
Travels to Lithuania
1330
Recommended for position as canon of Verdun Cathedral
1340 Becomes canon of Reims Cathedral 1359 Reims besieged by the English c.1363 Composes Messe de Nostre Dame c.1363 Compiles a collection of music, personal letters, and poetry in his autobiographical book, Le voir dit
KEY WORKS DE TOUTES FLOURS
LE LAY DE BONNE ESPERANCE
CHORAL
SONG
Machaut was one of the first to compose polyphonic settings of poetry in fixed forms; the song structures that were to dominate music for the next 150 years or more were established in his work. This four-part ballade is one of his finest pieces. The melody is sometimes quite chromatic, and the effect is one that Machaut seems to have enjoyed. In his verse, he compares the admired lady with beautiful flowers.
This lai is one of the pivotal lyrical interludes in Machaut’s Le voir dit, which describes the relationship between the aging poet and his beloved Péronne d’Armentieres. Here he acknowledges his debt to Hope. The 12 verses are monophonic, but they are highly sophisticated examples of this form. Machaut plays with features such as pitch, rhythm, and melody to display a level of musical craftsmanship worthy of the piece’s intricately formed poetry.
In recognition of his service to the King of Bohemia, Machaut was appointed canon of Reims Cathedral.
GUI L L AUM E DE M ACH AUT
55
FOCUS DOUCE DAME JOLIE SONG
“Douce dame jolie” is a deceptively simple, monophonic (one-part) song, with verse that describes an unnamed, unattainable woman to whom the poet pledges to dedicate his life. It is written in the poetic form of the virelai, one of the “formes fixes” (the others being the rondeau and ballade) that had become popular over the preceding century. The first two notes use the same pitch, creating a feeling of insistence, before the melody dips downwards and back up again and the next two lines vary the first musical idea to new poetry. The second section of musical material raises the pitch higher than that at the opening, adding contrast. MESSE DE NOSTRE DAME MASS SETTING
Machaut wrote only one setting of the Mass Ordinary, from which he selected the Kyrie, Gloria, Credo, Sanctus, Agnus Dei, and “Ite missa est” for polyphonic treatment. This music may have been designed for singing at Lady Mass – a Saturday Mass in honour of the Virgin Mary – at the Cathedral of Reims. It may have been performed regularly after its initial composition, as later copies contain some amendments to the music. Machaut’s Mass is important in the history of music because it is the earliest cyclic Mass to have survived with movements that are known to be by the same composer, and may have been the first of its kind. The idea of writing a complete set of polyphonic movements that are musically related to one another did not catch on until half a century later, in the works of Dufay and his early Renaissance contemporaries. The first and last three movements are set in a style usually associated with the isorhythmic motet, which
involves the repetition of a plainchant in long, slow notes in the tenor part, in a strict rhythmic pattern. The central movements use a more direct, chordal manner, all four voices moving more or less together. Several aspects of the ars nova, the musical style typical of Machaut’s period, are detectable. These include the use of “hocket”, where a pair of voices alternates notes of a single melody, causing a disjointed effect. The harmony sounds distinctive because of the frequent use of dissonance, when notes that clash are used to drive the music forward toward the end of a phrase. INFLUENCES
Machaut’s surviving output dwarfs that of any of his French contemporaries, such as the doubtlessly influential Philippe de Vitry, making fair comparison problematic. His music has been used as the source material for contemporary works, such as Olivier Messiaen’s orchestral work Machaut à la manière.
EAR LY M USI C
56
Guillaume Dufay b 1397–1474
n Belgian
w c.200
Guillaume Dufay was a musician whose talents were greatly admired across Europe during his own lifetime. His compositions include examples of nearly every genre available at the time, including some of the finest early cyclic Masses, motets, and secular songs. Though he was a medieval composer, Dufay’s works anticipate the more expressive style and greater harmonic range of the Renaissance. LIFE AND MUSIC Precious little is known about Dufay’s life, and writers continue to speculate about many details of his career. However, it is known that his parents were Marie Du Fayt and an unnamed priest, and his birth was thus illegitimate. In his youth he was known as William Du Fayt, and he went on to become the most acclaimed composer of the 15th century.
MILESTONES
Perhaps moves to Laon, France
1424
c.1426 Moves to Bologna, Italy; composes “Adieu ces bons vins de Lannoys” 1428 1435 1436 1450s
Works in Rome Works at papal chapel in Florence Composes motet Nuper rosarum flores Composes Missa “L’homme armé”
Around 200 of his works have survived, including eight Masses and more than 80 songs. Like many of his contemporaries, Dufay seems to have been aware not only of French compositional styles from the period (such as the works of Machaut) but also of English and Italian music. Dufay’s early years were spent as a chorister at Cambrai Cathedral, France, where he later went on to hold higher positions of authority.
KEY WORKS MISSA “L’HOMME ARMÉ” MASS SETTING
This is probably the earliest surviving Mass based on the famous secular song “L’homme armé” (The Armed Man), and it may have inspired later examples. The cantus firmus appears in the tenor part; singers who knew the original tune would certainly have spotted it, though to modern ears it can seem carefully hidden. ADIEU CES BONS VINS DE LANNOYS SONG
The lyrics of this melancholy rondeau, as well as dating evidence within its manuscript source, help to build a
biographical picture of Dufay’s early career. The title tells a story in itself: “Farewell to the Fine Wines of the Laonnais”. The song was written when Dufay left the town of Laon in France to take up an appointment in Bologna, Italy. NUPER ROSARUM FLORES CHORAL
The first performance of this motet has been chronologically linked with the dedication of Brunelleschi’s dome at the Florentine cathedral of Santa Maria del Fiore in 1436. The piece is written in four parts, but with one of the upper lines dividing to produce a five-part texture at certain moments.
E A R LY M USI C
57
Gilles Binchois b 1400–1460 n Belgian w 120 Gilles de Bin – or simply “Binchois” – was one of the three great composers of the early 1400s, alongside Dufay and John Dunstable. From a middle-class Mons family, Binchois trained as a chorister and organist, served as a soldier, and possibly visited England before joining the court at Burgundy. Unlike Dufay and Dunstable, he is not known as an innovator, but he was a great melodist, and his sacred music, ballades, and rondeaus – which sometimes have an English influence – were clearly important in his lifetime. He held various church posts and retired in the early 1450s on a generous pension. MILESTONES
c.1425 1428 1449 c.1450
Joins Burgundy court Music begins to be copied in Italy Travels to Mons with Dufay “Comme femme”, rondeau, composed
1450s Ockeghem’s Missa “De plus en plus”, a Mass based on a Binchois melody
Gilles Binchois and his contemporary Guillaume Dufay were the great masters of the early Flemish school. There is evidence that the two composers (and their works) were well known to each other.
Johannes Ockeghem b c.1414–1497 n Belgian w 50 Ockeghem appears in 1443 as a fullyFlemish by birth, most of his work was fledged composer of sublime, creative done at the French royal court, where he music. His year of birth is a mystery, was a highly esteemed and well-rewarded though his close friendship with Binchois employee of Charles VII. He held various suggests Ockeghem wasn’t much younger. ecclesiastical posts and even engaged in delicate diplomatic assignments abroad – something for which his likeable, wise, honest, and generous character suited him. Ockeghem was deeply mourned at his death (and long after) by his younger colleagues, such as Josquin Desprez. According to a contemporary, Ockeghem (shown here wearing glasses) was well known as an outstanding singer and master composer of “subtle songs, artful Masses, and harmonious motets”. MILESTONES
1446
Joins court of Charles I, Duke of Bourbon
1450s Composes Missa “L’homme armé”, possibly his first Mass setting 1460
Composes the motet-chanson Déploration on the Death of Binchois
58
EAR LY M USI C
Josquin Desprez b 1440–1521
n Unknown
w c.240
Josquin was celebrated both during and after his lifetime as one of the greatest musicians of the Renaissance period. He contributed to many genres, including motets, Mass settings, and French and Italian chansons. The widespread dissemination of his music was made possible by the invention of music printing at the beginning of the 16th century, and we now know more about Josquin’s music than about his life. LIFE AND MUSIC Josquin Desprez was a composer and singer whose skills were highly prized by the wealthiest patrons in Europe, including the d’Este family in Ferrara. He was the first composer to have had printed volumes of music entirely devoted to his work. Many aspects of Josquin’s biography are poorly documented, especially details of his early life and education. A significant
MILESTONES
1459 c.1475 1480 1484 1495
Becomes a singer at Milan cathedral Working for the King of Anjou May have visited Hungary Working in Milan Working at the Papal Chapel in Rome
1501
Petrucci publishes six chansons attributed to Josquin
1502
First Book of Masses published
1503
Enters the service of Duke Ercole d’Este in Ferarra
problem has been the frequent misattribution of pieces to Josquin that were not composed by him. His musical style displays great melodic invention and a keenness for such techniques as canon, as well as a fondness for popular songs. Probably born in northern Europe, Josquin worked mostly in Italy. The progress of printing increased the influence of his music.
KEY WORKS MASS “PANGE LINGUA” MASS SETTING
This Mass is one of the composer’s most sophisticated and beautiful works. Its cantus firmus – a hymn in the plaintive Phrygian mode – indicates that it was written for performance on the feast of Corpus Christi, celebrated on the Thursday after Trinity Sunday. STABAT MATER DOLOROSA CHORAL
Josquin’s setting of the Crucifixion poem that describes Mary mourning at the foot of the Cross is written in five parts,
though only four carry the text. Perhaps in honour of the composer Gilles Binchois, this motet is based on the tenor line of Comme femme desconfortée (A Woman in Distress). PETITE CAMUSETTE SONG
A playful vocal work, this chanson, which draws on a popular melody, shows a lighter side to Josquin’s musical personality. Hidden in the six-part texture is a more formal device: the ingenious use of a canon performed by the alto and tenor parts.
E A R LY M USI C
59
Jacob Obrecht b 1457–1505
n Dutch
w c.100
Obrecht’s music has been unfairly overshadowed by that of his contemporary Josquin Desprez. However, his talent for composition is evident in his substantial output of high-quality sacred and secular music, lending some weight to the theory that he was able to compose an entire setting of the Mass Ordinary overnight. In a motet written in honour of his father, the composer referred to himself as “Orpheus Jacob”. LIFE AND MUSIC Obrecht spent most of his career working in churches in Bruges, Antwerp, and Bergen op Zoom, though he was eventually encouraged to move to Italy. His writing – full of long sequences and parallel motion – was more traditional than some of his contemporaries’, but was nonetheless adventurous in other ways, particularly in his treatment of cantus firmus (fixed song). Obrecht’s approach to setting texts to music remained contrapuntal, however. His work did not contribute to the new trend that was emerging in Italy during the 16th century – that music should meticulously express the actual meaning of the words. His secular works included inventive canonic pieces for instruments, and he showed his national sentiment by arranging Dutch melodies.
MILESTONES
1460s Studies at University of Louvain 1484 Working at Cambrai Cathedral 1485
Leaves Cambrai to take up a position at Church of St Donatien in Bruges
1487
Visits Ferrara
1488
Composes the motet Mille quingentis in honour of his father, Guillermus.
1494
Working at the Church of Our Lady in Antwerp
1496 1498 c.1500 1501
Working in Bergen op Zoom Working in Bruges Composes Mass “Super Maria zart” Working in Antwerp
1504
Returns to Ferrara to work for the d’Este ducal family
1505
Dies of plague in Ferrara
KEY WORKS MISSA “SUB TUUM PRAESIDIUM” MASS SETTING
The scoring of this Mass is unusual. After opening in only three parts, each new section of music adds another voice, until a seven-part texture is reached in the final portion of the Agnus Dei. SALVE REGINA CHORAL
This setting of the Salve Regina may have been performed both in church and at popular, secular festivities, perhaps with instruments. Despite its modest scoring,
which allows references to the original antiphon to shine through, the texture is surprisingly rich and sonorous. MISSA “SUPER MARIA ZART” MASS SETTING
This four-part Marian Mass setting is something quite special. Lasting over an hour, its massive scale shows Obrecht’s ingenuity when working on a large canvas. It is the longest of his Mass Ordinaries to survive. Most of Obrecht’s professional life was spent in religious employment; 27 of his surviving works are settings of the Mass.
EAR LY M USI C
60
Clément Janequin b c.1485–c.1558 n French w 250 16th century. Trained as a priest, he Though he never held an important held a number of poorly paid church regular music post at a cathedral or court, Janequin’s music enjoyed popular posts, but in 1530 his song to celebrate Francois I’s entry into Bordeaux, success – his chanson “La bataille” was one of the most-performed songs of the “Chantons, sonnons, trompettes”, established his reputation as a composer. Though his music was published widely and known across Europe, Janequin suffered recurring money problems and split with his family over an unpaid loan. MILESTONES
1505
Junior clerk in Bordeaux
c.1515 Composes “La bataille”, a chanson which imitates the noise of battle 1530
The chanson “Chantons, sonnons, trompettes” brings public fame
1530s Most prolific period 1534 Choirmaster at Angers Cathedral 1549 Settles in Paris Janequin’s songs often use short melodic fragments which imitate natural or man-made sounds. “Les cris de Paris” evokes the sound of Parisian street life.
Alexander Agricola
Jacob Arcadelt
b c.1446–1506 n Belgian w 120
b c.1507–1568 n Belgian w c.250
Born Alexander Ackerman, the illegitimate son of a wealthy Dutch businesswoman, Agricola was an internationally popular composer in the 1490s. He worked in courts and churches in Italy, France, and the Low Countries, being in demand enough to name his own salary. Technically, his sacred Masses and motets, secular songs, and instrumental pieces – which show the influence of Ockeghem – are typical of the time, but his music’s intense and restless character was described by some contemporaries as “crazy and strange”.
French by upbringing, Arcadelt – after a tentative start to his career in Italy – became a leading composer of secular works. From the 1530s until Lassus arrived in the 1550s, Arcadelt’s simple, clear French chansons were highly popular. However, it was his 200-odd Italian madrigals, especially the four-part ones, which established his reputation in the 1530s: flexible, graceful, singable music that sensitively illustrated the text. The first of his five books of madrigals went through 58 editions, and was still being published in 1654.
MILESTONES
1470s 1474 1475 1491 1490s 1499 1500
At court of Duke of Milan At court of Lorenzo de’ Medici Working in Cambrai Leaves France for Florence Songs gain international popularity Visits Ghent on mother’s death Starts work for Burgundy court
MILESTONES
1538 1540 1544 1551
First book of madrigals Enters Papal Chapel in Rome Singing master at St Peter’s Basilica Returns to France
1554
Enters service of Charles, Duke of Guise, later Archbishop of Rheims
1560s Six books of chansons published
E A R LY M USI C
61
John Taverner b 1490–1545
n English
w c.70
Taverner was a man of great influence in England in the 16th century, both as a composer and through his work as an associate of Thomas Cromwell – Henry VIII’s chief advisor who presided over the dissolution of the monasteries. It is likely that Taverner empathized with the spirit of the Protestant reforms; one document records his shame at writing “popish ditties” – music that celebrated the Virgin Mary or Christian saints – in his earlier career. LIFE AND MUSIC As well as being a composer, Taverner worked as a singer, organist, and music teacher, and may have been politically active, too. In 1528, an investigation at Cardinal Wolsey’s college, where Taverner was choirmaster, suspected him of circulating Lutheran literature and briefly imprisoned him. If the caricatures found in a copy of one of his works are accurate, his appearance was not as becoming as the beautiful choral works that form the major part of his output, which included motets, Masses, and secular items. He wrote eight Masses in all, and the tune for the “In nomine Domini” section of his Missa “Gloria tibi Trinitas” became one of the
most popular cantus firmus melodies for instrumental music in England, in a genre known as the “In nomine” in honour of Taverner’s vocal original. The opera Taverner by Peter Maxwell Davies depicts a popular account of the composer’s life. MILESTONES
1515
Missa “Gloria tibi Trinitas” composed
1525
Working at Tattershall Collegiate Church, Lincolnshire
1528 Imprisoned for heresy 1530s Works as agent of Thomas Cromwell 1537
Joins the Guild of Corpus Christi in Boston, Lincolnshire
c.1540 Composes Magnificat à 4
KEY WORKS MISSA “GLORIA TIBI TRINITAS” MASS SETTING
The influence of the Missa “Gloria tibi Trinitas”, which dates to the mid-1520s, spread beyond sacred vocal music. At the “In nomine Domini” section of the Benedictus, the alto sings a freely composed melody in long, slow notes. MAGNIFICAT À 4 CHORAL
This Magnificat, for four adult male voices, may be the latest of Taverner’s three settings. The text contains the words of the Virgin Mary at the Annunciation, and the piece may have been performed for the celebration of this feast in Boston, Lincolnshire. Though he spent most of his time in Lincolnshire, Taverner was appointed to instruct the choristers at the newly founded Cardinal College in Oxford in 1528.
62
EAR LY M USI C
Thomas Tallis b c.1505–1585
n English
w 100+
Thomas Tallis’s musical career spanned the reigns of four English monarchs: Henry VIII, Edward VI, Mary (a Catholic) and Elizabeth I (a Protestant). The period saw enormous shifts in religious life and compositional style. Most of Tallis’s output was for the Church, though he did write a handful of secular works. His flexibility as a composer undoubtedly ensured his survival as a leading figure in English music. LIFE AND MUSIC
Tallis trained as a musician in the preReformation Church. However, under a succession of rulers, he was required to write both Catholic and Anglican service music, all of which was of first quality. Brought up near Canterbury, his appointments quickly drew him to London. Tallis was a superb organist, but few of his keyboard pieces have survived. Dating his works is difficult, especially as he occasionally reworked old music for a new purpose. Well known for his florid Latin works, Tallis’s simpler, Anglican music is equally well-crafted and enjoyable to perform.
MILESTONES
1531 1537 1538
Working at Dover Priory Working at St Mary-at-Hill in London Working at Waltham Abbey
1540
Waltham Abbey dissolved by Henry VIII; Tallis moves to Canterbury
1543 1547 1552 1553 1554 1558
Employed by the Chapel Royal Accession of Edward VI Marries Joan Accession of Mary Tudor Composes Mass “Puer natus est nobis” Accession of Elizabeth I
1575
Byrd and Tallis awarded licence to print music; Cantiones sacrae published
KEY WORKS O NATA LUX DE LUMINE
IF YE LOVE ME
CHORAL
CHORAL
Despite its Latin text, the lucid and carefully-paced word setting of O nata lux de lumine suggests it was composed during the reign of Elizabeth I. It appeared in Cantiones sacrae, a joint publication between Thomas Tallis and William Byrd, and the first collection of motets and hymns to be published in England.
Compared with the rich and complex Catholic works of the era, the style of this anthem immediately transports the listener to the heart of the Reformed liturgy of the 1540s. In two sections, the second of which is repeated, the message to keep God’s commandments is communicated through carefully paced phrasing and delicate imitation.
In 1575 Elizabeth I granted Tallis and Byrd a 21-year joint monopoly to print music.
LAMENTATIONS OF JEREMIAH CHORAL
Tallis wrote two settings of this emotive text for Maundy Thursday. The first uses the verses “Aleph” and “Beth”, the second “Gimel”, “Daleth”, and “Heth”. The music is rich, with gentle, overlapping melodies.
T H O M A S TA L L I S
63
FOCUS SPEM IN ALIUM NUNQUAM HABUI MOTET
Spem in alium is perhaps Tallis’s best-known work. Some musicians have sought a numerically significant occasion for its composition, such as the 40th anniversary of the coronation of Elizabeth I, but no theory has been found that is wholly convincing. An earlier 40-part piece by Alessandro Striggio, Ecce beatam lucem, must have been an influence. Tallis uses spatial elements by arranging the voices into eight five-part choirs, and the music can be heard to sweep around the full choir, or work with the sub-choirs singing across to one another. Spem in alium opens with a solo voice, but quickly builds as voices are layered on top of one another until the sound is rich and sonorous. The first voices gradually drop out of the texture at the same time, so the full choir does not sing together until the dramatic moment at bar 40, surely a reference to the number of parts. After this, the sound is passed, seamlessly, in reverse direction from the eighth sub-choir back to the first. The co-ordination of 40 vocal parts, which might originally have been performed by soloists, is a major feat, particularly given the complex interplay of independent voices through much of the music. From bar 80, pairs or groups of choirs call and respond in a powerful and highly effective section, though the musical material is constantly varied. The full choir sings only four times; a dramatic rest in all parts precedes the final full-choir section that ends the work. LAUDATE DOMINUM MOTET
The five-part psalm-motet Laudate dominum was probably composed during the 1560s. Psalm-motets
had been developed by Tallis’s contemporaries, including Christopher Tye and Robert White. The feeling of celebration is created with the opening idea, a rising phrase, in the contratenor for the word laudate (praise), imitated by the remaining voices as they enter one by one. The most important words and ideas are emphasized by repetition, such as the reiteration of the phrase Et veritas Domini manet in aeternum (And the truth of the Lord endures forever), swung between upper and lower voices before performance by the full choir. The idea of the unchanging Christian Church may hint at Tallis’s experiences of working through the troubled period of the Reformation, when many of the old Catholic traditions were erased from the new Anglican liturgy.
64
EAR LY M USI C
Pales “The most frivolous and gallant words are set to exactly the same music as those of the Bible…” HECTOR BERLIOZ ON THE MUSIC OF PALESTRINA
GI OVANNI P I E R LUI GI DA PA L E STR I NA
65
Giovanni Pierluigi da Palestrina
strina b c.1525–1594
n Italian
w 650+
Palestrina’s is perhaps the most familiar name of all late-Renaissance composers and his sacred music is widely regarded as a pinnacle of contrapuntal style, rich and flowing in its sound. Hundreds of his works survive and many of these were published during his lifetime. Although the majority of them were produced for use in religious worship, he also wrote over 100 madrigals, both secular and sacred.
LIFE
Apart from the fact that he was born in the town of Palestrina in Italy, practically nothing is known about Giovanni Pierluigi’s early history. His later career centred mainly on Rome, where he was trained and where he worked for most of his life. As far as is known, Palestrina began his musical life as organist and choirmaster in 1544 in his native city. His reputation grew and he gained his first Roman post in 1550 as a choirmaster at the Cappella Palestrina spent almost all his career working Giulia, a subsidiary of the Sistine Choir. It was soon after and composing for the this that he published his first book of masses. A brief spell Catholic Church in Rome, much of it for at the Sistine Chapel itself in 1555 ended in his dimissal the Vatican. by the new pope, ostensibly for being married. His rejection made Palestrina fall ill, but after recovering, he gained an appointment to the post of Maestro di cappella at the basilica of St John Lateran, although it did not not pay well. From 1561 to 1566 he worked at the more prestigious church of Santa Maria Maggiore, after which he enjoyed, until 1571, the patronage of the wealthy Cardinal Ippolito II d’Este. The remaining years of Palestrina’s musical career were spent back at the Cappella Giulia and his intention to return to his native Palestrina in 1593 was never realized. After members of his close family died in the outbreaks of influenza in the early 1570s, and the death of his MUSICAL OUTPUT first wife, Lucrezia, in 1580, he considered pursuing a celibate way of life, but the MASSES 104 MOTETS 300+ following year he married a fur merchant, OFFERTORIES 68 Virginia Dormoli. This marriage ensured HYMNS 71+ him a steady income and Palestrina helped OTHER SACRED VOCAL 46 MADRIGALS 61 Virginia’s business to flourish. Becoming a Total: 650+ very wealthy man, he was financially able to publish 16 collections of his works.
66
EAR LY M USI C
MUSIC
Given the sacred institutions that employed him, it is hardly surprising that most of Palestrina’s output comprised music for the liturgy. His mastery of counterpoint resulted in subsequent generations using his works as a model for their own. His reputation was heightened by the composer Johann Joseph Fux’s use of his music in his treatise Gradus ad Parnassum (1725) and by 19th-century biographies that praised his music without reservation. Palestrina’s music is characterized by elegant melodic lines in all the vocal parts, by the careful treatment of dissonance, and by a sensitivity to text-setting that foreshadows the seconda prattica of the 17th century. While his music rarely contains overt word-painting, the meaning and accents of the Latin or Italian language are never lost. His most refined writing is to be found in his Masses, which are
MILESTONES
1547 1554 1555
Marries Lucrezia Gori on 12 June Publication of first book of Masses Publication of first book of madrigals
1567
Publication of Masses, including Missa “Papae Marcelli”
1569
Publication of first book of motets for five voices
1581
Marries furrier Virginia Dormoli on 28 February
1588 1589 1591 1593
Lamentations published Publication of hymns Settings for Magnificat published Publication of litanies and offertories
written in a variety of different ways; some were settings of borrowed musical material, while others were entirely freely composed. His madrigals include both secular and sacred songs.
KEY WORKS MISSA “L’HOMME ARMÉ” MASS SETTING
Palestrina wrote two Mass settings based on the melody “L’homme armé”, a popular song that provided the foundation for at least 40 Masses in the 15th and 16th centuries. The five-part setting dates from 1570 and the four-part Mass from 1582.
said that this Mass safeguarded the future of Catholic music, a myth that has proved difficult to dispel. The music’s sense of balance and poise is evident from the opening Kyrie. Traces of the “L’homme armé” melody can be heard in this work. IO SON FERITO, AHI LASSO CHORAL
MISSA “PAPAE MARCELLI” MASS SETTING
This Mass, published in 1567, takes its name from Pope Marcellus II, who held the Papacy for just three weeks in 1555. It used to be Palestrina presents his work to Pope Julius lll on the title page of his Missarum Liber Primus (first book of masses), published in 1554.
This five-part secular madrigal of 1561 (“Alas, I am wounded”) shows Palestrina’s skilful but understated text setting, for example, in the use of long note values to evoke the agony of parting. The scoring is varied throughout this work, which ends with long held notes in the upper and middle parts, while the other parts work the cadence around them.
67
GI OVANNI PI E R LUI GI DA PA L E ST R I NA
FOCUS MISSA BREVIS MASS SETTING
The origin of the name Missa brevis (short Mass) for one of Palestrina’s finest Mass settings is unclear. It was published in 1570. After a contrapuntal Kyrie, the Gloria opens with all four parts in homophony before the parts begin to weave an imitative texture, sometimes working in pairs or trios. The new section at “Qui tollis peccata mundi” brings the parts together in a chordal texture. In the Benedictus, the three voices that open the movement are rejoined by the bass at “Osanna in excelsis”.
MISSA “BENEDICTUS ES” MASS SETTING
The probable model for this six-part Mass is a motet by Josquin Desprez (1520). The Kyrie opens with a rising scalic motive that passes from voice to voice. After the first words of the Gloria are intoned, the choir enters part by part, building a contrapuntal texture. At a new section, “Qui tollis peccata mundi”,
1
Gloria 2
3
4
5
6
Tenors enter Sopranos enter
7
THE LAMENTATIONS OF JEREMIAH, LESSONS 1 TO 3 CHORAL
Palestrina’s settings for three lessons from the Lamentations of Jeremiah were commissioned by Pope Sixtus V in 1587, and were published the following year. They replaced those of Carpentras, which had been sung by the papal choir during Holy Week for over 60 years. The opening of the first lesson of this serene setting for Maundy Thursday is chordal, but quickly moves to an imitative texture. The rhythm of the third lesson, from “Manum suam misit”, is set in perfect complement to the stresses of the Latin text, briefly using a triple metre to achieve this. the movement becomes more reserved and penitential and closes with a relatively simple Amen. The lengthy Credo text ends with a much more elaborate and boldly dissonant “Amen”. In the Sanctus-Benedictus, the highest voice opens with long held notes, while the lower parts move in steady but more active lines. The concluding Agnus Dei is a gentle, lyrical prayer for atonement.
Palestrina uses word-painting for the line “Descendit de caelis”, the voices creating a waterfall of descending scales
Credo introduced by solo tenor Kyrie
The second part of the Agnus Dei divides the upper part, to give a five-part texture.
Credo 8
9
Start of Benedictus
Sanctus-Benedictus
Agnus Dei
10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35 36 37 38 39 40
Start of section “Qui tollis peccata mundi”
Sopranos: “Et resurrexit”
“Pleni sunt caeli”
Countertenors and altos enter
68
EAR LY M USI C
William Byrd b c.1540–1623
n English
w c.500
A Catholic in a Protestant land, William Byrd’s reputation as a composer was such that he avoided the serious consequences of maintaining his faith under English law. Byrd’s religious works show a polished contrapuntal technique, especially in their use of imitation. His verse anthems, motets, consort songs, and instrumental works are deeply expressive. His music rarely shows any influence of his teacher, Thomas Tallis. LIFE AND MUSIC
Byrd is perhaps best known for his survival at the top of the establishment in Protestant England, despite his strong (and barely hidden) Catholic faith. His patrons, who included both wealthy Catholics and the “Virgin Queen”, Elizabeth I, required a wide range of music from him for use in religious services and in the home. Apart from his Anglican music, Byrd composed and published many dangerously Catholic works that must have been performed only in a domestic context. He also produced much secular music, including some of the first notable repertoire for virginals.
MILESTONES
1563
Appointed Master of Choristers and organist at Lincoln Cathedral
1572
Becomes organist at Chapel Royal
1575
Elizabeth I grants Byrd and Tallis patent for publishing printed manuscript paper and music
1575
Byrd and Tallis jointly publish Cantiones, comprising 17 pieces by each composer Publication of Psalmes, sonets and songs
1588 1589
Publication of Cantiones sacrae and Songs of Sundrie Natures
1593
Buys Stondon Place near Stapleford Abbott, Essex, his home for rest of life
1605
Publishes Gradualia, Vol 1 (Vol 2 appears in 1607)
KEY WORKS AVE VERUM CORPUS
MASS FOR FOUR VOICES
SEQUENCE
MASS SETTING
This sequence hymn, written for the feast of Corpus Christi, opens with all four voices in stately, reverential chords. In the second section, the upper part leads with new material, to be answered by the three lower voices, reinforcing the message, before an imitative section in which the mercy of Jesus is begged.
Byrd’s Masses for three and five voices seem to have been based on this fourvoice setting, and all would have been performed in secret Catholic services. The music is expressive, with a marked feeling of intensity, though the words are sung with great clarity.
SUSANNA FAIR
Byrd wrote many madrigals and songs ideal for small social gatherings. Among them is “Ye Sacred Muses”, a touching consort song in honour of his friend and colleague, Thomas Tallis.
SONG
The biblical story of Susanna revolves around the unwanted attention that the young virgin receives from two old men in the village as she is bathing. A popular story in this period, Byrd’s setting is for voice and four viols.
WI L L I A M B Y R D
69
FOCUS GREAT SERVICE LITURGICAL
Byrd was an innovator in form and technique in his liturgical works and contributed greatly to the developing genre of the English Anthem (including the newer “verse” style with organ accompaniment), composing his widely regarded Great Service in this format. The work takes its name from its massive scale; two choirs of five voices perform in different combinations across seven movements: Venite, Te Deum, Benedictus, Kyrie, Creed, Magnificat, and Nunc Dimittis. Most of Byrd’s liturgical repertoire was written during his years at Lincoln, but this music was composed in London, probably sometime during the late 1580s. The earliest manuscript source calls it the “Long Service”. Such is the variety of musical style, vocal scoring, and approach to word-setting in the Great Service, it seems likely that some or all movements existed independently before being conflated into one composite work in the manner of J S Bach’s Mass in B Minor. Unlike Byrd’s three Mass settings in Latin, the Great Service is in English, for use in the Anglican liturgy. During the reign of Edward VI (1547–53), Archbishop Thomas Cranmer’s Lincoln Cathedral Injunctions (1548) had commanded that composers of
Anglican music should seek clarity of textual expression, “a plain and distinct note for every syllable”. “QUI PASSE: FOR MY LADY NEVELL” KEYBOARD
The virginals were much favoured by female musicians of the middle and upper classes throughout Europe. Most of Byrd’s works for the instrument are collected in two books and the one dedicated to Lady Nevell contains this piece. “Qui passe: for my Lady Nevell” is a wonderful transformation of a piece published 34 years earlier by the Venetian composer Filippo Azzaiolo, “Chi passa per questa strada” (“Who Walks Along this Street”). Byrd reworked the melody as a bass line, lacing the music with energetic rhythms and fast scales in both hands. The element of surprise is maintained throughout, through frequent changes between major and minor chords, and contrasting colours and textures. The effect is one of exuberant virtuosity. INFLUENCES
William Byrd’s main achievement was arguably his fusion of Renaissance counterpoint with the expressive elements of English music. Since his “rediscovery” in the 20th century, his works have become great favourites with performers, who consider them the peak of British music of the Renaissance era.
EAR LY M USI C
70
Orlande de Lassus b 1532–1594 n Belgian w 1,600 of 16th-century church choral music In his youth, Lassus travelled throughout Italy (alongside those of Palestrina and Victoria), such as his Mass for double and Sicily in the service choir, Missa Osculetur me, plus hundreds of various aristocrats. of motets, madrigals, chansons, and In the 1560s, when he was comfortably lieder – and even drinking ditties and settled in Bavaria with a wife and comic songs – which reveal a likeable children, he was the most celebrated man of great humour and wit. musician in Europe. Various publishers spread his madrigals, chansons, and Lassus composed many celebrated works for sacred music internationally, and he the musicians of the Bavarian court. Here he received several royal honours. His is captured in miniature playing the spinet. prolific and versatile output includes some of the most beautiful examples MILESTONES
c.1544 1553 1556 1556 1563 1563 1570 1574
In the service of the Viceroy of Sicily Becomes choirmaster in Rome Publication of first book of chansons Enters Bavarian court Promoted to chief Kapellmeister Begins work on Seven Penitential Psalms Rises to the nobility Receives order of the Golden Spur
Giulio Caccini b c1550–1618 n Italian w c.80 Like that of many of his contemporaries, important cultural city of Florence, Caccini’s career was financed by the Giulio Caccini’s career involved the composition, performance, and teaching wealthy Medici family. There, he became a member of the music patron Giovanni of music. Though linked with the significant new genre of opera, his major Bardi’s Camerata, a group of intellectuals interested in Ancient Greek ideals. musical achievement was arguably the collection of accompanied songs Le nuove At a wedding between members of the musiche. He was among the first generation Medici and d’Este families, Caccini was of virtuoso singers who became successful employed to sing, dressed as an angel, as part of an elaborate mechanized composers, and developed the new performance. In his songs, Caccini genre of opera developed the monodic style that was alongside the to become a pillar of the Baroque era. Florentine composer Jacopo MILESTONES Peri. After 1566 Living in Florence moving from Rome to the 1570s Joins Florentine Camerata and develops the recitative Caccini’s opera Eurydice, which tells the story of Orpheus’s journey to the Underworld, was first performed in Florence in 1602.
1586
Performs at wedding of Virginia de’ Medici and Cesare d’Este
1600
First performance of Caccini’s opera Il rapimento di Cefalo
1602
Publication of Le nuove musiche
E A R LY M USI C
Andrea Gabrieli b c.1510–1586
n Italian
Hans Leo Hassler w 400
Though generally thought of as “uncle of the more accomplished Giovanni Gabrieli”, one of his pupils, Andrea Gabrieli helped establish Venice’s school of home-grown composers after domination by incomers from the Netherlands. An organist at St Mark’s, he composed everything from large sacred and theatre works to songs and solo keyboard pieces, with popular success – many being republished decades after his death. Gabrieli’s posthumous Concerti formed a collection of music for Venice’s state functions. MILESTONES
1536 1554 1562 1566
Gains fame as singer at St Mark’s First published madrigal Friendship with Lassus begins Becomes organist at St Mark’s
1578
Receives hardship payment to help maintain sister’s family
1587
71
Concerti published posthumously
b 1562–1612
n German w 50
The Hassler family included a number of accomplished musicians, but the multilingual, cosmopolitan Hans was one of the first Germans to study in Italy, and on his return he helped to establish Italian styles and idioms in the Protestant musical world. In Venice he studied with Giovanni Gabrieli, but spent his working life back in Germany: at Augsburg, his native Nuremberg, and finally Dresden. He was known mainly as an organist and organ designer, but also wrote many beautiful sacred choral works, such as Sacrae cantiones and Sacri concentus. MILESTONES
1586
Becomes organist at Augsburg
1607
Composes 52 Psalms and Christian songs for Lutheran rite
Tomás Luis de Victoria b 1548–1611 n Spanish w 200 Emperor Maximilian II, as choirmaster Victoria started composing in Italy and became the greatest Spanish composer of and organist at a convent in Madrid. Supported by wealthy patrons the Renaissance. His work – all sacred throughout his life, he was music in Latin, including 20 Masses, able to publish his works in 52 motets, and many other liturgical distinguished editions – pieces – shows the subtlety and beauty and some were performed of Palestrina, with whom he may as far away as Mexico. have studied in Rome. After Although working in Italian churches, many works Victoria returned to Spain in are poignant 1587 to serve Empress Maria, and mystical, widow of the Holy Roman their prevailing MILESTONES mood – especially 1560s Serves as a chorister in Ávila in his motets – is 1565 Leaves for Rome to study positive, as he was a for priesthood cheerful man with strong family ties. 1572 Writes first collection of motets 1575 1583 1594
Ordained as a priest Writes first Requiem Mass Attends Palestrina’s funeral
1603
Writes Officium defunctorum for funeral of Empress Maria
Victoria sang as a chorister at the cathedral in his native Ávila, also the birthplace of Saint Teresa.
72
EAR LY M USI C
Giovanni Gabrieli b c.1554–1612
n Italian
w c.250
Giovanni Gabrieli and his uncle, Andrea, were prolific and innovative composers during the late Renaissance period. Giovanni’s polychoral works for voices and instruments, particularly those intended for performance in religious services, make use of a wide variety of acoustic textures and effects. Although much of his output is sacred and vocal, he also wrote many keyboard works and madrigals. LIFE AND MUSIC
Gabrieli was born possibly in Venice, a thriving centre of musical and religious activity. He was brought up maybe by his uncle, before travelling to study with Orlando Lassus in Munich. Aside from his compositional duties, Giovanni was employed as an organist and music teacher, and his published works reflect the diversity of the requirements of his patrons in Venice and northern Europe. His most famous publications,
the Sacrae symphoniae and Symphoniae sacrae, include pieces for between six and 19 separate parts. Gabrieli was renowned for his technical abilities and his keyboard works include both improvisatory toccatas and more formally structured ricercari. MILESTONES
1564 1576 1585 1587
Becomes organist at St Mark’s, Venice Spends time at Bavarian court, Munich Becomes principal organist at St Mark’s Composes O magnum mysterium, motet
1593
Publication of organ intonations on the 12 church modes
1597
Publication of the Sacrae symphoniae
1615
Posthumous publication of the Canzoni et sonate and Symphoniae sacrae Much of the sacred music written for St Mark’s, Venice, in the polychoral style was by Giovanni Gabrieli. As many as five choirs were placed in different galleries around the high altar.
KEY WORKS ANGELUS AD PASTORES MOTET
The Christmas text relating to the angel and shepherds and the Nativity was set by Gabrieli as a 12-part work for two choirs of six voices.
cornets and sackbuts very well, and often an organ is used to provide a basso continuo. It was written in the 12th mode, which was associated with victory and triumph. O CHE FELICE GIORNO
CANZON DUODECIMI TONI
MADRIGAL
CANZONA
This eight-part madrigal was written for performance before a noble patron in 1585, and was later revised as a Christmas motet with the new text Hodie Christus natus est.
The instrumentation of this ten-part instrumental canzona is not specified in the original published score. However, its range and character suit
GI OVA N N I GA B R I E L I
73
FOCUS
Gabrieli’s sonatas and canzonas were written for instruments only, perhaps INSTRUMENTAL for the accompaniment of church Many of Gabrieli’s works would have processions. One may infer from been performed by a rich combination their complex style that the musicians for whom they were written were of instruments, including strings, highly accomplished, whether string, wind, organ, and plucked continuo. wind, brass, or keyboard players. Some The antiphonal effects in the music parts, particularly those for higherwere emphasized by the spatial arrangement of musicians in opposing pitched instruments, are virtuosic. It is likely that even these pieces had a place organ lofts within the church – a in the most important celebrations of divided-choir technique known as the Church calendar. cori spezzati. In the Sonata pian’ e forte, one of three sonatas in the 1597 collection, the instrumental forces are O MAGNUM MYSTERIUM MOTET divided into two choirs of four players each. As the title suggests, the A relatively early motet, O magnum dynamics are clearly marked by the mysterium is one of Gabrieli’s finest composer, a relatively pieces of music. The eight-part choir new practice at that is divided into high and low voices. time. The opening At the opening, the harmony is section consists of long, ambiguous, playing with major sustained homophony, and minor chords, and the shifting but by the end of the between different tonal areas lends piece the writing takes weight to the text, which focuses on on a complex eight-part the miracle of Christ’s birth. The contrapuntal texture. majority of the motet works steadily through the text, the phrases repeated by different combinations of voices. The two choirs sing antiphonally at the words “Beata virgo” (“Blessed virgin”), and the “Alleluia”, which continues the use of cori spezzati, features a lively triple rhythm, apt for the celebration of the Christmas message. The text was set a number times during the Renaissance period, by other composers, including Tomás Luis de Victoria. SONATA PIAN’ E FORTE, FROM SACRAE SYMPHONIAE
INFLUENCES
Gabrieli’s successor at the Basilica of St Mark in Venice was Claudio Monteverdi, whose reputation dwarfed that of his predecessor. However, Gabrieli’s innovative instrumental and choral music proved extremely popular with German composers, and was championed by German musicians writing about music in the 19th century.
EAR LY M USI C
74
Jacopo Peri b 1561–1633 n Italian w 50 As the composer of the first surviving opera – Euridice – Peri’s place in music history is assured. A musician at the Medici court, he gained a reputation as an actor, singer, and dazzling chitarrone player. In collaboration with other Florentine musicians, poets, and philosophers throughout the 1590s, Peri helped devise the idea of opera. The
result was Dafne, for which he set the text and sang Apollo. It was a small-scale affair, performed privately in a room. Euridice followed, first played before an intimate royal audience to celebrate the marriage of Maria de’ Medici and Henri IV of France. Continuing to work for the Medicis, Peri became more in demand as a stage composer, and his songs were published by popular request. A slim, endearing man, he was nicknamed “Zazzerino” – a reference to his attractive, long blond hair. MILESTONES
Peri performed in many of his operas, and his singing received much praise.
1579 1588 1598 1600
Organist in Florence Works at Medici court Dafne, opera, performed at Carnival Euridice, opera, premiered 6 October
1609
Song collection, Le varie musiche, first published
1620s Writes three oratorios and two operas in collaboration with other composers
Jan Pieterszoon Sweelinck b c.1562–1621 n Dutch w 320 None were published in his lifetime, Sweelinck’s life was but they were enthusiastically copied by virtually all spent in pupils. In contrast, his 250 vocal works, Amsterdam. A civil which include chansons, madrigals, and servant, his personal life was well regulated, comfortably rewarded, motets, were all published. and uneventful. He was known across Europe as a teacher, drawing pupils from Sweelinck served as an organist Germany in the 1600s, and his influence at Oude Kerk in Amsterdam for over 40 years, and was renowned on north German organ playing for his brilliant improvisations. culminated in the music of J S Bach. A perfecter of existing forms rather than a pioneer, he wrote around 70 keyboard works, such as fantasias – which led to the development of the fugue – and toccatas. MILESTONES
c.1577 Starts as organist at Oude Kerk 1594
First published work: book of chansons
1597 1606
First psalm settings published Portrait painted by brother Gerrit
1619
Cantiones sacrae, Catholic motets for five-part choir, published
E A R LY M USI C
75
John Dowland b 1563–1626 n English w 220 England’s greatest composer of lute music multi-directional layout, which enabled soloists or and songs spent much of his career on groups around a table to the Continent, so he can have seen little of his family in London. Though he had easily read parts singly or in combination, patronage and enormous publishing was a key to its success at home, and lasting influence abroad, he struggled for appointments in success. Melancholy England. His involvement with scheming features strongly in his work: his bleak English Catholics in Italy didn’t help his prospects, and he seems to have been song “In darkness let me dwell” a prickly, occasionally paranoid man. is remarkably His First Booke of Songs was a bestseller dissonant and and cemented his reputation. Its clever harmonically MILESTONES unstable. 1588
Listed among the major English composers
1594 1597 1598 1604
Leaves England to work in Germany Songs or Ayres published Accepts position at Danish court Lachrimae, consort music, published
1612
Finally employed by the English court as one of the King’s lutenists
Carlo Gesualdo b c.1561–1613 n Italian
Dowland’s bittersweet melodies were greatly admired in his lifetime, and the poet Richard Banfield wrote that his “heavenly touch upon the lute doth ravish human sense”.
Thomas Campion w 150
Prince of Venosa – and murderer? He found his wife, Maria d’Avalos, “in flagrante delicto” with the Duke of Andria – and both were assassinated. His vocal music is notorious for its remarkable dissonance. A gentleman amateur at first, he gained a professional reputation with his later madrigals. Gesualdo’s last years were spent in morbid isolation at his castle, music-making his only pleasure. MILESTONES
1586 1590 1594 1594
Marries Maria d’Avalos Wife and her lover murdered Marries noblewoman Leonora d’Este First book of madrigals published
1595
Retires to Gesualdo Castle, Avellino, outside Naples
1611
Three books of madrigals published
b 1567–1620
n English
w 100
Campion was born into an affluent family in Essex and became a dilettante theorist, poet, and musician. After John Dowland, he was the most prolific of lute-song composers, with over 100 to his name, the lyrics of which are of outstanding literary merit. He attended Cambridge University, studied law at Gray’s Inn and medicine at Caen, but preferred socializing and cultural activities to studying. He wrote masques, poems, and five books of songs – some self-published with friends – and was much in demand to supply both texts and music for entertainments at the royal court of James I. MILESTONES
1586 1588 1601 1605 1613
Studies at Gray’s Inn Works as an actor and singer First Booke of Ayres published Receives degree in medicine, Caen Treatise on Counterpoint published
77
The
BAROQUE ERA
1600 1750 —
The Baroque era saw the genesis of opera, the growth of the orchestra, and a flourishing of instrumental music, especially for the violin and keyboard. Most new fashions originated in Italy and Italian musicians dominated the field, but, by the end of the period, distinctive national styles had evolved. he word “baroque” was originally a pejorative term for a style of architecture and art produced between the end of the 16th and the mid-18th centuries, but by the time music scholars adopted the term it had lost most of its negative connotations. The period was one of great creativity – from Shakespeare and Cervantes in literature to Newton and Galileo in science. Music, too, blossomed. By the 1590s a new musical style had emerged in contrast to the lush polyphony of Palestrina and his contemporaries. Instead of complex intertwining parts, the new style (dubbed seconda prattica or “second practice” to distinguish it from the prima prattica of earlier Renaissance compositions) placed a solo voice or instrument above
T
A YOUNG VIOLINIST
This painting by Dutch Baroque artist Hendrick Terbrugghen (1588–1629) shows a boy playing an early form of violin and singing.
a simple accompaniment consisting of a bass line with the chords lightly filled in above it (the basso continuo, a “continuous bass”). There were usually two instruments playing the continuo – a keyboard, lute, or guitar along with a low-ranged melodic instrument such as a cello, bass viol, or bassoon reinforcing the bass line. The term “monody” (from the Greek meaning “one song”) is used to describe this new combination of solo voice and basso continuo. Monody allowed the performer the freedom to embellish and ornament the melodic line at will, something unthinkable in the older polyphonic style.
THE BIRTH OF OPERA This new style of singing allowed composers to convey the text clearly through a solo voice, while singers could interpret the words more dramatically. It was monody that made musical drama – opera – possible. The invention of opera
78
THE BA RO QUE E R A THE INSTRUMENTS OF THE EARLY BAROQUE
Michael Praetorius, a prolific German composer, published his Syntagma Musicum in 1619. It includes an encyclopedic guide to the instruments of the day.
is credited to a group of Florentine musicians and poets known as the Camerata, particularly the composers Giulio Caccini and Jacopo Peri and the poet Ottavio Rinuccini, who were trying to recreate the singing style of Ancient Greek drama. This new style was first seen in intermedi – short musical dramas performed between the acts of spoken plays – but
in 1598 the three collaborated on Dafne, the first true opera. Two years later, both Peri and Caccini wrote operas on the Orpheus myth, Euridice, but it was Monteverdi’s Orfeo (1607) that is seen as the true benchmark for early opera. The new art form would combine a variety of musical styles – speech-like recitative, moving arias, choral and instrumental interludes – into one large narrative structure. The Catholic Church frowned on the “immoral” plots of some operas and banned their performance during Advent and Lent. The void was filled by another kind of dramatic vocal music: the oratorio. Operas and
TIMELINE: THE BAROQUE ERA 1600 Euridice, early opera by Peri and Rinuccini
1600
1618 Start of 30 Years’ War, which devastates much of central Europe
1620 w 1607 Monteverdi’s opera Orfeo performed in Mantua
1637 First public opera house opens in Venice
1640 w 1644 Birth of violinmaker Antonio Stradivari
1661 s Italian-born Lully appointed superindendent of music to Louis XIV
1660 1649 English Civil War (1642–49) ends with execution of Charles I
79
T H E BA ROQUE E R A
oratorios both employed recitative, arias, duets, and instrumental pieces, but they were unstaged, with no costumes or sets, and naturally tended to be about biblical subjects. Comic opera was a later development, gaining ground in the 1730s. It deveoped from short comic pieces (intermezzi ), such as Pergolesi’s La serva padrona (1738), performed in the intervals between the acts of serious operas.
INSTRUMENTAL MUSIC Opera was not the only musical form to flourish. Major and minor courts across Europe maintained chamber ensembles as a mark of prestige. This created a demand for instrumental sonatas and concertos to entertain the noble patrons and their guests. In the sonata, the violin (which could emulate certain qualities of the singing voice) gained a whole new repertoire and generated an increased interest in its potential. This was also the age of the great violin makers of Cremona: Amati, Stradivari, and Guarneri. The 17th century also saw the birth of the orchestra, driven in large part by the growth in opera, the size of the ensemble growing along with the visual spectacle onstage. Keyboard music (mainly for harpsichord and organ) also flourished, and virtuosi such as Johann Pachelbel and the Couperins attracted much attention in court and church circles. MUSICIANS AT THE COURT OF MODENA, C.1690
This painting by Anton Domenico Gabbiani shows a small chamber ensemble. A number of violinists and a cellist are gathered around the harpsichord player.
w 1703 Vivaldi made violin master at Pietà orphanage, Venice
1680 1689 Purcell’s Dido and Aeneas
THE STAGING OF OPERA
Opera began as a court entertainment, usually for specific private occasions such as a marriage between two noble households. Venice opened a public opera house as early as 1637 and other cities, such as Hamburg (1678), gradually followed. The high ticket prices, however, restricted attendance to the merchant classes and above. Public demand ensured that performances grew more and more spectacular. Large amounts of money were spent on lavish costumes, lighting, and staging, with special effects including airborne chariots, gods descending from the heavens by means of complex systems of ropes and pulleys, and ornate group dances. BAROQUE OPERA SET
The opera Giunio Bruto – the first act of which was by Cesarini, the second by Caldara, and the third by Alessandro Scarlatti – was first performed in 1707.
Although the innovations of the early Baroque came out of Italy, distinctive national styles began to emerge. The Italian style was one of melodic dominance, virtuosity, and a strong sense of metre, while the French style, developed by Lully at the court of Louis XIV, was strongly influenced by dance rhythms. The German style, taken to its greatest heights by J S Bach, was a hybrid of the two, with the addition of a contrapuntal element.
1731 First public concerts given in Boston 1722 Johann Sebastian Bach takes position as cantor in Leipzig
1700 w c.1709 Bartolomeo Cristofori builds first pianoforte
1720 1722 Rameau’s Traité de l’harmonie
1732 Opera house opens at Covent Garden
1742 First performance of Handel’s Messiah in Dublin
1740 w 1750 Death of J S Bach
80
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Monte “The end of all good music is to affect the soul.” CLAUDIO MONTEVERDI
81
CL AUDI O M O N T E V E R DI
Claudio Monteverdi
everdi b 1567–1643
n Italian
w 254
More than any composer, Claudio Monteverdi defined the transition from the Renaissance style to the Baroque. Although his early madrigals reflect the lush chromatic style of the late Renaissance, Monteverdi not only embraced the simplified new style but was also its greatest advocate. His opera L’Orfeo, which explored the musical and dramatic possibilities of the new style, marked the beginning of a new era.
LIFE
Monteverdi began his musical career young, publishing his first book of madrigals at age 15 and his second eight years later. At this time he was making a living performing, eventually securing a position as a lowly court musician for the Duke of Mantua. It was here that he met his wife Claudia Cattaneo, the daughter of a colleague in the string band. Although his time in Mantua was productive, Monteverdi felt undervalued as a composer, and eventually left for his home town of Cremona. A year later, he moved on to the more prestigious position of maestro di cappella at St Mark’s Cathedral in Venice. In addition to his duties there he also continued to take on outside commissions, including several from his old employer, the Duke of Mantua. He often wrote music for the annual Venetian Carnival, most notably the stage work Il combattimento de Tancredi e Clorinda for a commedia troupe in 1624. Monteverdi cultivated his relationships with wealthy patrons and with other composers (Heinrich Schütz visited in 1628–29) and enjoyed a quiet middle age until 1630, when plague and a war in Mantua rocked Venice; subsequently Monteverdi entered the priesthood. His final years were spent revising his earlier works, completing his treatise on seconda pratica, and composing new music. His final book of madrigals was published posthumously in 1651.
A prolific songwriter, Monteverdi is best known for his secular madrigals on the theme of love.
Total: 254
MUSICAL OUTPUT INSTRUMENTAL (1)
1
DRAMATIC (25)
1
SACRED VOCAL (20)
2
SECULAR VOCAL (208)
20 1567
55 1585
40 1595
1605
5
8
4
3
8
3
4
20
33
10
30
1615
1625
7
1635
1643
82
THE BA RO QUE E R A
MUSIC
Monteverdi’s early madrigals may have been firmly in the traditional style, but by 1600 he had already begun to incorporate elements of the new, more austere style into his works, a practice which made him the target of criticism from conservative music critic Giovanni Artusi. Monteverdi responded by including a manifesto on the seconda pratica as a preface to his fifth book of madrigals in 1605. His published madrigals were already known as far as Copenhagen when he wrote his first opera, L’Orfeo, in 1607. A second opera, Arianna, followed the next year, fuelled by his grief over the loss of his wife. Arianna proved even more popular than L’Orfeo, particularly the Lament, which is the only surviving portion of the opera. Following his appointment to St Mark’s in 1613, the focus of Monteverdi’s writing shifted to sacred choral music, although he
MILESTONES
1587
First of nine books of madrigals published
1590
Becomes string player for Duke of Mantua
1599
Marries singer Claudia Cattaneo
1600
Travels to Austria, Hungary, and Italy as part of Duke’s entourage
1607 1608
L’Orfeo; wife Claudia dies Writes Arianna
1610
Composes Mass and Vespers, dedicated to Pope Paul V
1613
Appointed maestro di cappella at St Mark’s in Venice
1624
Writes Il combattimento de Tancredi e Clorinda
continued to write madrigals and dramatic music throughout his life, including Il Ritorno d’Ulisse in Patria (1640) and L’Incoronazione di Poppea (1642) for the new opera in Venice.
KEY WORKS LUCI SERENE E CHIARE CHORAL
d 3:30
p1
c
This is a transitional madrigal, with elements of both the old and new styles. The five-part text setting is clear and uncomplicated; this may be in part to allow instruments to either replace or double vocal parts, as a later arrangement with basso continuo suggests. The poem “Eyes serene and clear / You inflame me” by Ridolfo Arlotti is on the subject of suffering from the pangs of love. SI, CH’IO VORREI MORIRE CHORAL
d 3:00
p1
c
Another five-part madrigal, Si, ch’io vorrei morire hides a much more earthy message. The Cremona Cathedral, where Monteverdi began his musical career as a choirboy.
references to dying in the text are an allusion to a much more pleasant “ending”, as supported by both other portions of the lyrics (“Ah mouth! Ah lips! Ah tongue!”) and the rather unsubtle rising and falling of the music. CRUDA AMARILLI CHORAL
d 2:30
p1
c
From the fifth book of madrigals, this five-part madrigal is more harmonically stable than Luci serene, although elements of the older polyphonic style remain. This madrigal was specifically cited by Artusi as an example of the “Imperfections of Modern Music”. The text (“Cruel Amaryllis”) is taken from Giovanni Guarini’s play Il pastor fido, a popular source for contemporary composers.
83
CL AUDI O M O N T E V E R DI
FOCUS L’ORFEO OPERA
d 118:00
p6
ocv
Though not his first opera, Monteverdi’s L’Orfeo was the first to gain broad acceptance and to popularize the elements of the seconda prattica. Based on the ancient Orpheus myth, the opera presents a variety of styles: “dry” and fully accompanied recitative, florid arias, choruses and instrumental interludes. Also, in keeping with the traditions of Classical Greek drama, he makes use of deus ex machina (“god from a machine”) in the final act. PROLOGUE (16:30) Following the opening fanfare, the spirit of Music appears to introduce the tale. ACT ONE (16:30) Nymphs and shepherds gather to celebrate the wedding of Orpheus and Euridice. They dance and offer up thanks to the gods. ACT TWO (25:20) Orpheus is telling of his joy when a messenger arrives with bad tidings: Euridice has been killed by a snake. The assembled crowd bewail their grief, while Orpheus vows to descend to Hades to win Euridice back. ACT THREE (27:00) Orpheus, guided by the spirit of Hope, arrives in the Underworld. He charms the boatman, Charon, to sleep with his song, and continues onward. ACT FOUR (16:20) Won over by Orpheus’s music, Persephone begs her husband, Pluto, to release Euridice; he agrees, on the condition that Orpheus not look upon her until he has returned to the living world. He sings first of his joy and then of his growing doubts that she is following him. Hearing a noise and fearing attack by the Furies, Orpheus turns, but as he sees Euridice she fades from view. ACT FIVE (16:20) Orpheus returns to Thrace to mourn. His father, Apollo, chastises him and invites him to return to “where true virtue finds its due reward, joy, and tranquillity”. They rise to the heavens on a cloud, singing.
VESPRO DELLA BEATA VERGINE (VESPERS) CHORAL
d 72:00
p 14
ecv
Monteverdi’s Vespers for the Blessed Virgin was written during his service for the Duke of Mantua, although his duties did not include composing sacred music. In fact, the work is dedicated to Pope Paul V and was published in a volume which also included his
Mass in illa tempore as well as several Vespers psalm settings and motets. It is possible that he later used these as “audition pieces” to obtain the position at St Mark’s in Venice. The work contains a mixture of both prima and seconda pratica, and a reworking of an instrumental toccata from L’Orfeo. INFLUENCES
Monteverdi’s writings on the seconda pratica and his madrigals, sacred music, and operas in that style make him the most influential composer of his time. His music also shows a slow movement from modal harmonies to the key-based tonal system we use today. He also played a vital role in the creation of secular music for the general public.
84
THE BA ROQUE E R A
Gregorio Allegri b 1582–1652
n Italian
w c.30
Although Allegri composed and published a steady stream of sacred works throughout his lifetime, he is remembered largely for his Miserere, an elaborate sacred motet sung by the papal choir during Holy Week every year until 1870. The details of the work were a closely guarded secret, although a fourteen-year-old Mozart reputedly reproduced the work from memory after one hearing. LIFE AND MUSIC Allegri’s position as singer and maestro di cappella of the papal choir crowned a career which began as a boy chorister at age nine. He commenced his studies in composition with G M Nanino, the maestro di cappella at Rome’s San Luigi dei Francesi. After appointments at cathedrals in Fermo and Tivoli, Allegri returned to Rome, eventually joining the papal choir. The music that he wrote for the Sistine Chapel, unlike his previous work, was old-fashioned for the time, following in the stile antico (“ancient style”) of Palestrina, but, like that of Palestrina, demonstrating great subtlety and clarity of style. Allegri also published eight books of sacred motets in a more modern style between 1618 and 1639, which were intended for wider usage.
MILESTONES
1607
Active as singer and composer at Fermo and Tivoli cathedrals
1618
Publishes first book of motets; Concertini, libro I published (now lost)
1619
Concertini, libro II published
1628
Appointed maestro di cappella of St Spirito in Sassia, Rome
1629 Joins papal choir in Rome c.1638 Composes Miserere Mei Deus c.1640 Publication of Lamentationes Jeremiae prophetae I, sacred vocal work 1650
Elected maestro di cappella of papal choir; composes Sinfonia a 4
c.1651 Publication of Lamentationes Jeremiae prophetae II, sacred vocal work
KEY WORKS MISERERE MEI DEUS PSALM SETTING
d 12:10
p1
c
Allegri’s famous Miserere and the shroud of secrecy surrounding it contain a larger story. The work itself is relatively simple, alternating between five-part and four-part choir sections separated by plainsong, and would have been performed with one singer on each part. What the Vatican did not wish to have copied were the added embellishments Allegri joined the choir of the Sistine Chapel as composer and singer in 1629, and remained a member until his death.
above the basic chords; whereas with other similar compositions the singers would have added their own ornaments to the written music, often changing them with each performance, the embellishments for the Miserere (including the haunting high C) were also written down and had to be memorized by the choir, who would have been singing in the dark. The text is taken from Psalm 51 and begins “Have mercy upon me, O God”. The psalm setting is traditionally sung as part of the Holy Week services leading up to Easter as a penitential song.
85
TH E BA ROQUE E R A
Thomas Weelkes b 1575–1623
n English
Johann Jacob Froberger b 1616–1667
w 75
After establishing himself as a fine madrigal composer while still a teenager, the future looked bright for Thomas Weelkes. In 1603 he held a lucrative post at Chichester Cathedral, composed fine Church music, had a wealthy wife, and his recent book of madrigals – expressive, rich, and brilliantly constructed – was one of the most important of the English tradition. However, he began to spend more time in the tavern than the church, and his personal life and quality of work went into a long decline. He was eventually dismissed from his post at the cathedral for unruly, drunken behaviour. MILESTONES
1597 1598
First book of madrigals published Organist, Winchester College
1600
Composes madrigals for five and six voices
1617
Loses position at Chichester Cathedral
n German
w 100
Froberger’s keyboard music reflects his life: cosmopolitan and well-travelled, combining Italian, French, and German elements. He was court organist in Vienna, studied with Frescobaldi in Rome, and performed throughout Europe. Froberger was an early pioneer of the keyboard suite, some examples of which have personal programmes, with subtitles such as “Plainte, written in London to dispel melancholy”, written after he had lost all his money to pirates. MILESTONES
1634
Moves to Vienna
1637
Appointed court organist to Emperor Ferdinand III
1649
Publishes set of ricercares; starts three-year tour of Europe
1653
Starts work for Imperial Chapel at Regensburg
1656 1662
Ricercares use new types of tuning Arrives penniless in London
Orlando Gibbons b 1583–1625
n English
Born in Oxford and educated at Cambridge, where he sang with the King’s College choir, Gibbons worked for the Chapel Royal from 1603 until his untimely death. He was recognised as one of the finest organists of his age; as a composer he mastered all the forms and styles of his time, including consort and keyboard music, but is remembered mainly for his fine church pieces and hymn tunes. What survives of the second of his two services, and his many verse MILESTONES
1598 1605 1612 1619 1622
Enters Cambridge University Becomes Gentleman of Chapel Royal First Set of Madrigals and Motetts Chamber musician to James I O Clap Your Hands, 8-part anthem
1623
Organist and chorus master at Westminster Abbey
1625
Dies suddenly from brain haemorrhage
w c.100
anthems such as This is the Record of John, contain outstanding music, full of vitality and deft counterpoint that typifies the Baroque style. Most of his secular songs were written before he was 30, and the beautiful “Silver Swan”, from the First Set of Madrigals and Motetts, has become well-known. So sudden was his death that he never made a will; his widow died before his estate was settled. Along with his contemporary William Byrd, Orlando Gibbons contributed to the first book to be published containing music for the virginal.
86
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Girolamo Frescobaldi b 1583–1643 n Italian w 35 As the child prodigy of harpsichord and organ, he produced an a rich family, the young imaginative body of work covering every Frescobaldi had his keyboard genre of the time, while also musical skills displayed pioneering new techniques, especially in throughout Italy. A virtuoso keyboard his capriccios and toccatas. Frescobaldi’s player, he went on to enjoy prestigious influence was wide and long-lasting. court and church posts in Ferrara, Rome, and Mantua. After turning A virtuoso organist and imaginative improvizer, Frescobaldi spent much of his musical career out some early madrigals, Frescobaldi delighting court and Church with his keyboard skills. focused on keyboard music, becoming the first major composer to face the challenges of developing a musical narrative. An outstanding improviser on MILESTONES
1607 1608
Makes only trip abroad, to Flanders Becomes organist at St Peter’s, Rome
1613
Marries the mother of his illegitimate child Publishes his second Libro di toccate, (Book of Toccatas) for keyboard
1627 1635
Publishes Fiori musicali (Flowers of Music), organ music for Mass
Francesco Cavalli b 1602–1676 n Italian w c.70 Cavalli was a close associate (and possibly pupil) of Monteverdi, on whose death he took over as the leading composer and performer in Venice. Born Francesco Caletto, he was an outstanding singer, and entered St Mark’s choir under Monteverdi, eventually becoming the organist. Early on he composed Church music (much of it lost), but after marrying into money, he turned to stage projects. Public opera
was booming, and he wrote 40 or so with great success, with Equisto, Giasone, Xerxes, and Erismena being staged throughout Italy. In contrast to early academic operas, Cavalli’s were fastpaced and comic, and he developed the contrast between recitative and aria. His box-office appeal declined towards his death, but his reputation remained high. MILESTONES
1616
Joins the choir of St Mark’s, Venice
1639
Stages his first opera, Le nozze di Teti e di Peleo (The Marriage of Teti and Peleo)
1643
Composes Equisto, opera
1662
Stages Ercole amante (Hercules in Love), opera, for Louis XIV in Paris
1665
Made principal organist at St Mark’s
The daily round of religious ritual at St Mark’s inspired much of the drama and vivacity in Cavalli’s music.
T H E BA ROQUE E R A
87
Giacomo Carissimi b 1605–1674 n Italian w c.280 vividly illustrate a religious point. He From the age of 23 until his death 46 years later, Carissimi was maestro di is famous, also, for having practically capella (chapel master) at Sant’ invented the cantata, whose text usually Apollinare, the church of the Jesuit dealt with the pain of unrequited love. Collegio Germanico in Rome, renowned Carissimi was a prolific composer of for its musical tradition. With his simple motets and cantatas, though how prolific but effective style, he established the is hard to pinpoint, as many pieces were features of the Latin oratorio, using destroyed or lost. Though melancholy, music as a kind of musical sermon, to Carissimi was a kind, well-respected man, and he supplemented his MILESTONES income by loaning money on 1628 Becomes maestro di capella at Assisi generous repayment terms. 1630
Appointed maestro di capella at Sant’ Apollinare, Rome
c.1650 Composes Jephtha, oratorio 1654 Teaches Marc-Antoine Charpentier 1659
Funds two college sopranos from his own pocket
The Church of Santa Maria de Apollinare in Rome provided the inspirational setting for the first of Carissimi’s oratorios, stimulating worship through the beauty of music.
Heinrich Schütz b 1585–1672 n German w 500 Spotted by a musician director at the Dresden court, where staying at the family inn, he composed for religious and political the young Schütz was occasions. Although his huge output – encouraged to take mostly sacred – is strongly influenced by up music, and went on to become the Italian styles, his dramatic choral works, leading German composer of his time. inspired by the ideals of Martin Luther, After studying music in Venice, Schütz put German music on the map. Schütz was appointed musical enjoyed a long and fruitful life, despite the early death of his wife and child. At the family house in Weissenfels, Germany, the gifted young Schütz impressed a visiting musician with his precocious vocal and keyboard skills. MILESTONES
1609 1615 1627
Studies under Giovanni Gabrieli Starts work at the Dresden court Stages the first German opera, Dafne
1629
Publishes his first book of Symphoniae sacrae (Sacred Symphonies)
1633
Starts work at the Copenhagen court
1636
Publishes his first Geistliche concerte (concertos for voices and instruments)
88
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Jean-Baptiste Lully b 1632–1687
n French
w 119
Jean-Baptiste Lully began life as the son of an Italian miller, but, after moving to France, his rapid ascension to a prestigious position in Louis XIV’s (the Sun King) court made him the most influential composer in the history of French music. For about a quarter of a century he had almost total control over French musical life, including opera, ballet, and theatrical music, as well as music publishing. LIFE AND MUSIC
Lully entered the French court at the age of 13 as a page and tutor, but soon joined the music establishment there. He became first a composer and then, Superintendent of the King’s Chamber Music with responsibilities including direction of the King’s prestigious string ensemble, the “24 violons du Roi”. Much of his later career was devoted to composing ballets and grand operas for the court. Lully’s death is famous: while conducting by pounding out the beat with a cane, he stabbed his toe; gangrene set in and he died soon after.
MILESTONES
1646
Taken to Paris by Chevalier de Guise as tutor to his niece, Louis XIV’s cousin
1652
Becomes ballet dancer at Louis’ court
1661
Appointed Superintendent of Music; is naturalized as a French citizen
1662
Marries Madeleine Lambert, daughter of composer Michel Lambert
1670 1672
Writes Le bourgeois gentilhomme Establishes Académie Royale de Musique for the performance of opera
1674 1686
Composes Alceste, opera Composes Armide, opera
KEY WORKS LE BOURGEOIS GENTILHOMME COMEDY-BALLET
d 103:00
p5
ocv
This work came out of a renewed interest in Turkish culture in France following a rare visit to the French court by the Turkish envoy. Lully and the playwright Molière had already collaborated on other comedy-ballets – theatrical works that incorporated music and dance into the spoken drama – but it was with this work that they reached the pinnacle of the genre. The work features musical interludes between acts which, in effect, form part of the play itself. The first interlude, for example, consists of the story’s dancing tutor demonstrating ballet steps. (He teaches the “middle-class gentleman” of the title how to behave in society.)
The inclusion of music and dancing tutors in the plot allows for further blending of music, dance, and drama in one work. The style of both text and music is light-hearted and satirical, with frequent tongue-in-cheek musical references to both the Turkish style and other modern musical fashions. Most of Lully’s operas included prologues that glorified the Sun King or the concept of kingship. Supernatural plots gave scope for lavish and ingenious stage effects.
FOCUS
shepherds to put Renaud to sleep. Armide approaches the sleeping Armide was the last of a series of lyric warrior intending to kill him, but instead falls deeply in love. tragedies by Lully and his long-time librettist, Philippe Quinault. They ACT THREE Having won control over had worked together since Lully’s first Renaud through sorcery, Armide opera, Les fêtes de l’Amour et de Bacchus finds herself controlled as well by her in 1672. Quinault retired after Armide, love, which cannot be returned. She which premiered in 1686, although implores the spirit of Hate to cure Lully wrote two more operas before her, but when it attempts to do so she his death the following year. recants and sends Hate away. In spite, Based on an epic poem by Italian Hate condemns her to love eternally. poet, Torquato Tasso, and set during ACT FOUR Renaud’s companions the First Crusade, the story is that of attempt to rescue him, only to be the sorceress Armide who falls in love confounded by Armide’s machinations. with her sworn enemy Renaud. ACT FIVE After a love scene in Armide’s Unusually for the era, the opera centres magical palace, she departs. Renaud’s almost entirely on the title character companions arrive and break her spell and her conflicting emotions. The work over him. Before they can leave she was an immediate success and became returns and, realizing she cannot keep a staple of the French repertoire. Renaud, begs to be taken as a captive The opera opens with a Prologue so that she may stay with him. in which the goddesses Glory and Renaud, bound by Glory and Duty, Wisdom summarize the plot and refuses and leaves. Doomed by Hate’s (obliquely) praise the king. curse, Armide leaves in a flying chariot as demons destroy her castle. ACT ONE Armide has captured some crusaders in Damascus, but is obsessed with Renaud whom she cannot defeat. INFLUENCES Her obsession worsens when Renaud As the sole composer of French opera for 15 years, Lully frees the prisoners. created a national style. His operas and opera-ballets were ACT TWO Renaud assures one of the performed all over Europe, and inspired later composers such as Rameau and Gluck. Publication of his instrumental rescued crusaders that his heart is safe overtures and dance suites led to the development of the from Armide’s spells, but Armide send French suite genre used by Bach and Handel. demons disguised as nymphs and ARMIDE OPERA
d 160:00
p5
ocv
90
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Barbara Strozzi b 1619–1677
n Italian
Giovanni Battista Vitali w8
The adopted, possibly illegitimate, daughter of Giulio Strozzi, the respected Venetian poet, Barbara Strozzi (alias Valle) was a singer much in demand at Venice’s cultural events and meetings who became a composing professional. A student of Francesco Cavalli, she sang in many of his operas. She must also have performed her own compositions, many of which were for solo female voice on themes of love and emotional conflict. Strozzi published eight works, most after her father’s death in 1652, suggesting she had to compose for her livelihood. She never married but had four children. MILESTONES
1637 1644 1651 1654
b 1632–1692
n Italian
w 35
A composer, cellist, and singer, Vitali spent his life working in Italy’s vibrant court, church, and institutional music scene. His relatively modest output includes some innovative instrumental music, and his ideas – such as linking themes and keys across movements, and the use of dance rhythms in all movements – laid the foundations of the Baroque trio sonata for successors such as Arcangelo Corelli and Henry Purcell. A pioneer in music publishing, Vitali also wrote important textbooks on musical composition, such as Artifici musicali, first published in 1689.
Performing at Accademia degli Unisoni, Venice
MILESTONES
Begins composing Cantatas, Ariettas, and Duets, Op. 2 Cantatas, Ariettas, and Duets, Op. 3
1674 1684 1684
Joint maestro di capella at Modena Sonata da chiesa, Op. 9 Promoted to maestro di capella
Dietrich Buxtehude b c.1637–1707 n Danish w 275 He had four daughters, and a condition Buxtehude was effectively director of of employment for his successor was to music for the city of Lübeck, Germany, and such was his reputation that J S Bach marry one; Johann Mattheson, a candidate in 1703, lost interest in walked 300 km to hear him play. Only two major collections of his work (sets of the job when he realised this. ensemble sonatas) were published in his Buxtehude was organist at Lübeck’s lifetime; his music was circulated mainly Marienkirche but also ran concert in manuscript copies. Though he wrote series in the church, at which sacred dramatic works were performed. a wide range of vocal music, including the secular cantata “Alles, was ihr tut” (All That You Do), he is now remembered for his organ works – Lutheran chorales, wide-ranging improvisatory preludes, and the ostinato pieces which inspired Bach. MILESTONES
1668
Becomes organist at Lübeck; marries daughter of predecessor
1678
Introduces sacred dramatic works in Abendmusiken (evening concerts)
1680 1703 1705
Writes set of cantatas Membra Jesu nostri Handel and Mattheson visit J S Bach visits
T H E BA ROQUE E R A
Marc-Antoine Charpentier b 1643–1704
n French
w 548
Unusually for a French composer of his time and talent, Charpentier never achieved a position at Louis XIV’s court. Instead, he produced a wide variety of music for theatre and Church, collaborating with the dramatist Molière and producing several Masses, motets, and sacred dramas, including his “Christmas Oratorio”. Seen as too “Italian” in his lifetime, his unique style is now coming to be fully appreciated. LIFE AND MUSIC Unlike his contemporary Lully, an Italian who came to epitomise French music, Charpentier was a Parisian who went to Italy to study composition, bringing back with him not only the works of Italian composers but also a unique hybrid writing style. He also enjoyed the patronage of Madamoiselle de Guise, a well-connected French noblewoman with a large private musical entourage, while his reputation as a composer of sacred music not only helped him to procure a position at the Jesuit church of Saint-Louis in Paris, followed by SainteChapelle, but also won him commissions for the chapel of the Dauphin.
MILESTONES
1662
Travels to Rome, possibly to study with Giacomo Carissimi
1673
Collaborates with Molière on his final play, Le malade imaginaire
1679
Begins composing for the Dauphin
1683
Misses auditions at the Chapelle Royale due to illness
1680s Director of Music at Saint-Louis 1693
Première of Médée at the Académie Royale de Musique, Paris
1698
Appointed choirmaster of Sainte-Chapelle, Paris
KEY WORKS THE CHRISTMAS ORATORIO FRIGIDAE NOCTIS UMBRA, H414 ORATORIO
d 29:20
p7
ocv
Charpentier wrote four short Christmas oratorios in his lifetime; this one may have been composed for his patron, Madamoiselle de Guise, in the mid1680s. Written for six voices, two violins, and basso continuo, the work comprises seven movements beginning with an introductory prelude for instruments alone. Throughout the oratorio one can hear elements of the older polyphonic style, particularly in the central chorus, reflecting Charpentier’s Italian training. MESSE DE MINUIT POUR NOËL, H9 MASS SETTING
d 29:20
p6
oc
Charpentier’s Midnight Mass for Christmas is quintessentially a work of light to be performed at the darkest hour. Each of the six movements, set to the text of the
Charpentier’s work with the playwright Molière led directly to his long-term involvement with the newlyformed Comédie-Française, which is currently the oldest national theatre company in the world.
traditional Latin liturgy, is based on popular French carol tunes of the period (some of which may still be known to audiences today). The Mass as a whole alternates between upbeat tunes and gentle lilting melodies, reflecting the contemplation of the Christ child.
91
92
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Arcangelo Corelli b 1653–1713
n Italian
w c.82
Corelli, among his contemporaries, was the most famous violinist-composer of the Baroque period, and one of the most influential after Monteverdi. Although not a prolific composer – his entire output consisted of six collections – his instrumental writing was admired for its harmonic refinement and brilliance of style, and was highly influential to many composers, including Bach and Handel. LIFE AND MUSIC
There is still very little is known about Corelli’s background, although he did spend most of his working life in Rome. There he gained the patronage of several prominent aristocratic and royal supporters of the arts, including the exiled Queen of Sweden. He was regularly employed to direct performances of operas, oratorios, and other large works, including those by
Handel. Today, Corelli is primarily known for his 12 Concerti grossi that represented a new form of composition. As a violin virtuoso, he contributed to establishing modern bowing techniques and was one of the earliest performers to use doublestopping and chordal effects on the instrument. As a teacher of the violin his achievements were also outstanding, and his pupils included Francesco Geminiani and Antonio Vivaldi. MILESTONES
1679
Becomes chamber musician to the exiled Queen Christina of Sweden
1681
First set of 12 trio church sonatas, Sonate da chiesa, Op.1, published Appointed music master to Cardinal Pamphili
1687 From 1675 Corelli settled in Rome where he became one of the city’s leading violinists. As a performer, he was admired for the exquisite tone of his playing.
1694 1714
Composes Sonate da camera, Op. 4 12 Concerto grossi, Op. 6, published
KEY WORKS CONCERTO GROSSO, OP. 6, NO. 8 ORCHESTRAL
d 15:00
p6
o
Corelli’s Op. 6 collection, published posthumously as a set of 12, are considered by many to be the epitome of the concerto grosso form. The first eight are set in “sonata da chiesa” or church sonata-style, the last of which has been dubbed the “Christmas Concerto”, largely due to Corelli’s label of “Pastorale” for the final movement, and would have been performed on Christmas Eve.
CONCERTO GROSSO, OP. 6, NO. 10 ORCHESTRAL
d 13:30
p6
o
The remaining four works in the Op. 6 set are in “sonata da camera” or chamber sonata-style. Unlike the more serious sacred works, the chamber sonatas are based on dances – in this instance, an Allemande, a Corrente, and a Minuetto – preceded by a stately Preludio movement. Corelli devoted much of his life to this fine collection, and both J S Bach and Handel drew upon his popular style.
A RCA N GE LO COR E L L I
93
FOCUS
is as important as the melody, and indeed the main melody occasionally CHAMBER d 12:00 p4 es appears in the bass line, while the violin plays arpeggiated chords in Corelli’s sonata known as “La Folia” accompaniment. Occasionally the concludes with a set of 24 variations harmonic structure is also modified. on a simple melodic and harmonic Corelli, virtuoso violinist that he sequence thought to have originated in Spain in the late 15th or early 16th was, incorporates numerous coloratura violin techniques throughout, ranging century. However, this piece did not appear in print until 1672, in a version from florid passagework and by Jean Baptiste Lully (Air des hautbois Les arpeggiation to the messa di voce, a sustained note which swells from soft to folies d’Espagne). Whether popularized by Lully, or simply a well-known tune, loud and then fades slowly away again. In addition to the notated ornaments, “La Folia” proved to be popular: the composer leaves ample room for between 1672 and Corelli’s “Folia” Sonata of 1700, at least 28 other works improvisation on the part of the individual performer; in fact, several used some version of the sequence. editions of the work, published by The basic melody and harmony are elementary, comprising two short, others after the 1700 edition, claim to incorporate ornaments used by Corelli virtually identical phrases. It is this himself in performance. However, it is simplicity, along with the compelling likely that Corelli would have preferred harmonic sequence, that is the likely each performance to show off the source of its popularity, lending itself soloist’s own inspirational flourishes, well to variation and improvisation. rather than slavishly mimic those of The variations themselves range in tempo from adagio to vivace, building the original composer. Many editions of Corelli’s “Folia” Sonata were in speed and intensity through published in his lifetime, including an subsequent variations and then subsiding again. The accompaniment arrangement for recorder and bass. SONATE A VIOLINO E VIOLONE O CIMBALO, OP. 5, NO. 12, “LA FOLIA”
94
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Johann Pachelbel b 1653–1706
n German
w c.346
Pachelbel was one of the dominant figures of late 17th-century European keyboard and chamber music. Although chiefly known today for his Canon in D, he was well-known during his lifetime as both an organist and a prolific composer. His patron, the Duke of Saxe-Eisenach, once described him as a “perfect and rare virtuoso”, while his development of the organ chorale as a form and his myriad Magnificat Fugues for St Sebaldus are particularly noteworthy. LIFE AND MUSIC
Pachelbel’s career is marked by a series of posts as organist at increasingly prestigious places, and by his growing influence as a teacher and composer. When work dried up at one position he moved on to the next, joining the courts at Eisenach and Stuttgart and then moving to Gotha as town organist. He was then invited by his home town, Nuremberg, to return to take up the prestigious post at St Sebaldus, where he remained until his death. Pachelbel’s organ repertoire is particularly extensive, but it is in his cantus firmus organ chorales (which feature an ornamented imitative accompaniment to the main theme) and his later fugues that his influence is greatest.
MILESTONES
1673
Becomes deputy organist of St Stephen’s Cathedral in Vienna
1677
Becomes court organist at Eisenach
1678
Appointed organist at the Protestant Predigerkirche at Erfurt
c.1680 1681 1683 1685 1690
Composes Canon in D Marries Barbara Gabler Wife and infant son die of plague Marries Judith Drommer Joins Württemberg Court at Stuttgart
1692
Flees French invasion; becomes town organist at Gotha
1695
Invited to take up position at St Sebaldus in Nuremberg
1695 1699
Starts writing Magnificat Fugues Writes Hexachordum Apollinis, harpsichord
KEY WORKS CANON IN D CHAMBER
d 04:00
p1
e
In this now famous piece, three violins play the canon (each part entering with the exact same music two bars apart), while a basso continuo plays a ground, a short, simple passage of eight notes repeated over and over again: 54 times in this instance. The canon theme itself is also simple, starting with long, slow notes, then becoming quicker and more ornate as the work progresses. Although
Pachelbel’s music was well-regarded in his lifetime, the little Canon in D remained relatively obscure until recently, gaining its current status as a staple of the classical repertoire only in the early 1970s. It has appeared in arrangements from full orchestra to string quartet, as a solo keyboard work, and in countless other versions including pop remixes. Pachelbel’s Hexachordum Apollinis, six sets of variations for harpsichord, had a title page engraved by composer and organist Nicolaus Schurtz.
FOCUS
Pachelbel used original themes in most of the fugues, although some do The Magnificat plays an important role incorporate the standard plainchant in in the Protestant liturgy of the vespers part or in full. Like his previous fugues based on chorales, these settings are services, and Pachelbel wrote several different settings of the text during his relatively uncomplicated and are closer to preludes than the more serious lifetime. Traditionally the organ was fugues other northern German used in this context either to play composers were producing. Nearly all alternate verses of the chant in some of Pachelbel’s fugues need no use of form, or to play a short prelude as a pedals. Nevertheless, this large body of means of determining the opening short fugues in different keys, styles, pitch for the singers. Pachelbel’s 95 themes, and moods (from lilting and Magnificat Fugues had the latter, more dance-like to bold with fanfare motifs) utilitarian role in the daily services: represents possibly the most impressive to bring the singers in. He therefore produced several short fugues in each collection of organ music until J S Bach’s a generation later. of the church modes, so that the These works also gave Pachelbel an appropriate one could be used opportunity to experiment with equal depending on the vocal music being temperament, a tuning system of sung on a given day, from the primus which he was a proponent. In the tonus (literally “first tone”, based on Baroque period the different tuning C) through every note of the scale: systems in use meant that intervals, particularly thirds and fifths, would Magnificat Primi Toni – 23 fugues sound different in different keys. The Magnificat Secundi Toni – 10 fugues equal-temperament system, in which Magnificat Tertii Toni – 11 fugues all semitones are equal and thus all Magnificat Quarti Toni – 8 fugues keys equal, was gaining acceptance Magnificat Quinti Toni – 12 fugues during Pachelbel’s lifetime, and would Magnificat Sexti Toni – 10 fugues be more dramatically showcased in Magnificat Septimi Toni – 8 fugues Bach’s The Well-Tempered Clavier. Magnificat Octavi Toni –13 fugues MAGNIFICAT FUGUES SOLO ORGAN
d 112:00
p 95
s
96
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Heinrich Ignaz Franz von Biber
Alessandro Stradella
b 1644–1704
b 1644–1682
n Austrian
w 160
In 1670, Biber, a popular violin virtuoso, was sent by his employer in Bohemia to negotiate the purchase of new violins. He never returned. Instead he took a job with the Archbishop of Salzburg. His career flourished and he rose from servant to the nobility, having performed at, and composed for, royal occasions. Biber’s picturesque and virtuosic violin sonatas include many special effects such as unusual tunings. MILESTONES
1669 1674 1677 1682 1690
Writes Sonata representativa Composes the “Rosary” Sonatas Performs for Emperor Leopold Composes for Imperial Jubilee Ennobled by Leopold
1704
Dies in Salzburg; his four surviving children become notable musicians
Marin Marais b 1656–1728
n French
w 309
MILESTONES
1674
Composes Vola, vola, concertogrosso-style serenata
1678
Flees Rome for Genoa
1678
La forza dell’amor paterno (The Power of a Father’s Love), opera
John Blow w 650
A shoemaker’s son, Marais learned the viol so fast that he surpassed his teacher after six months. He soon joined the Paris Opéra orchestra, moving on to a career as a pioneering viol virtuoso – known internationally for his wonderful technique and tone – and as a composer. He wrote four operas but is best known today for his imaginative instrumental music, which ranges from short, simple pieces to virtuoso experiments which use all the keys. From 1709, Marais withdrew from public life. MILESTONES
1679 1686 1706
n Italian
Of noble birth, Stradella was a singer, singing teacher, violinist, and composer. When an unknown assassin killed him in Genoa for reasons still unclear, it was the second attempt on his life. The first had been in 1677, after his reluctant marriage to Agnese, a pupil with whom he had run away. Her former lover had hired the attackers, and it caused an international incident. Through all the intrigue Stradella kept promoting his music, often receiving commissions from nobility. He composed his highly popular works quickly, including 170 cantatas, many operas, and the earliest known concerto-grosso-style work.
Musician at French royal court Composes his first pieces for viol Writes Alcyone, opera
b c.1648–1708
n English
w c.400
Proud and statesmanlike, Blow rose from humble provincial origins to become the foremost musician in England by his mid-20s. He was a major figure in Restoration music and had royal posts created specially for him, including work at St Paul’s Cathedral and Westminster Abbey. His secular works include ceremonial music, and Venus and Adonis, the first English opera. He wrote much religious music, notably over 100 strongly melodic anthems. Of his 12 Anglican services, the one in G major is masterly. MILESTONES
1668 1683
Made organist of Westminster Abbey Writes masque Venus and Adonis
1685
Composes three anthems for the coronation of James II
1695
Writes Ode on the Death of Purcell
T H E BA ROQUE E R A
97
François Couperin b 1668–1733
n French
w 126
François Couperin eclipsed the reputation of his famous composer uncle, Louis, from an early age, first as an organist and then as a composer of works for keyboard. His Pièces de clavecin, miniature character works for harpsichord, were described as “national treasures”. They continue to be staples of the keyboard repertoire today as well as the epitome of French Baroque instrumental music. LIFE AND MUSIC Couperin was the most famous of a very distinguished family of musicians, and became known as “Couperin le Grand”. He was only 11 when he inherited the prestigious organist’s post at St Gervais in Paris on the death of his father, Charles. Church composer Michel-Richard Delalande took the post until Couperin could assume his duties at 18. From then on Couperin’s star continued to rise. He won an appointments to the royal court at 25 and became one of the leading teachers of harpsichord and organ of his generation. He wrote a vast amount of sublime keyboard music, including his 27 famous suites (ordres) of harpsichord music, giving many of them evocative titles. He also produced several chamber
and vocal works, and some key theoretical writings. His L’art de toucher le clavecin (The Art of Playing the Harpsichord), published in 1716, was much admired by Bach, with whom he corresponded. MILESTONES
1690
Obtains a privilège du Roi (printing licence) to publish his organ Masses
1693
Louis XIV appoints him as one of the four court organist-composers
1694 1702
Becomes tutor to king’s children Ennobled as chevalier
1703
Publishes psalm settings for the Chappelle du Roi (Royal Chapel)
1713
Publishes first book of Pièces de clavecin, harpsichord pieces
KEY WORKS VINGT-CINQUIÈME ORDRE SOLO HARPSICHORD
d 17:00
p5
s
This multi-part suite for harpsichord first appeared in print in 1730 in Couperin’s fourth book of the Pièces de Clavecin, his last published work. As with most of Couperin’s harpsichord works, these are character pieces with descriptive (and sometimes enigmatic) titles evoking images and reminiscences. The opening work, La visionaire (The Visionary), describes a religious fanatic, and features the dotted rhythms and ornate elaborations Couperin’s treatise on harpischord-playing technique was extremely influential.
common to French music of the period. (His embellishments are always written exactly into the music, excluding performer improvisation.) La misterieuse (The Mysterious One) is a contrasting piece, more elegant and lilting, while La Monflambert – named after the wife of a local councillor, whom it might describe – is more melancholy in mood. Another shift comes in the fourth piece, La muse victorieuse (The Victorious Muse), with its triumphal flourishes in C major. Couperin finished the Ordre in a darker vein, perhaps because of his own declining health: both the title and the music of Les ombres errantes (Wandering Shades) have a pensive, almost funereal aspect.
98
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Henry Purcell b 1659–1695
n English
w 515
Despite his relatively short life, Henry Purcell remains one of the most important English composers. His facility in writing for all genres and audiences, his popularity at court through the reigns of three different monarchs, and his vast output of court odes, theatrical music, sacred anthems, secular songs and catches, chamber music, and organ voluntaries are clear testament to his prodigious talent. LIFE AND MUSIC
Henry Purcell moved in exalted Church and Court circles from an early age, becoming a chorister in the Chapel Royal at age ten, an (unpaid) member of Charles II’s musical retinue at 14, a court composer at 18, and an organist at Westminster Abbey at 20. Considering this meteoric career, perhaps it is unsurprising that Purcell produced so much music for Church and Court services, including numerous sacred choral works and odes for courtly occasions (including several “welcome songs” for Charles II and James II). Purcell also composed secular songs throughout his lifetime, and wrote dramatic musical works for the stage from 1688 onwards.
MILESTONES 1669
Becomes chorister in the Chapel Royal
1677
Composes elegy What Hope For Us Remains Now He Is Gone? on the death of English composer, Matthew Locke
1679
Takes position as organist of Westminster Abbey
1680
Composes first music for the stage; marries Frances Peters
1683
Keeper of the King’s Instruments; composes first Ode for St Cecilia’s Day
1689
Opera Dido and Aeneas first performed
1691
Composes music for Dryden’s play King Arthur
1692
Composes music for The Fairy Queen, an adaptation of Shakespeare’s play, A Midsummer Night’s Dream.
KEY WORKS THE FAIRY QUEEN SEMI-OPERA
d 130:00
p5
I GAVE HER CAKES ocv
Written for a stage adaptation broadly based on William Shakespeare’s play A Midsummer Night’s Dream, Purcell’s music for The Fairy Queen – with its vast amount of songs, dances, and other incidental music – raises the work from a play to a semi-opera. Dating from the prolific last few years of the composer’s life, this five-act work contains a mixture of songs, masques, ballet, marches, and incidental music interspersed with spoken dialogue. As court composer, Purcell was called upon to write music for royal celebrations, including the coronation of Queen Mary and William of Orange in 1685.
CATCH
d 1:00
p1
c
Purcell produced several secular catches (where the same music is sung by each singer in turn), some of which are quite ribald. This example, on a theme of drinking and flirting, dates from 1701.
FOCUS
Dido’s nemesis, the Sorceress, is introduced, along with her minions, who give voice to their hate. They plot Full opera was uncommon in 17th century England, so it is not surprising to trick Aeneas into leaving Carthage by sending a witch disguised as that Purcell composed only one, Dido Mercury to order him to leave the city and Aeneas, deciding to concentrate instead on incidental music for existing and continue his journey onwards. Aeneas has vowed to stay with Dido theatrical works. With a libretto by but cannot disobey a divine command, Nahum Tate, Dido owes much to the and he is forced to leave. tradition of courtly masques, and in particular John Blow’s Venus and Adonis ACT THREE The witches gloat over their of 1682. The opera consists of three triumph, while Aeneas’s men prepare short acts, each comprising several their ship for departure. Aeneas bids brief arias, recitatives, and dances; the a difficult farewell to Dido, and then whole work requires barely an hour to leaves. After a final broken-hearted perform. The first known performance lament, the well-known “When I am in 1689 was at Josiah Priest’s Chelsea laid in earth”, Dido kills herself. The School for Girls, although it may have opera concludes with a mournful had an earlier premiere at the Royal chorus, “With drooping wings”. Court; regardless, it was not From a structural viewpoint the performed again until 1700, five lament is a fine example of Purcell’s years after the composer’s death. The deft compositional touch; it follows opera’s connection to the girls’ school the Venetian lament tradition – often can be seen in the setting of the work: seen in the work of Monteverdi – of apart from Aeneas and some minor using a simple repeated bass line with roles, the cast is almost entirely female. colourful variations above to great dramatic effect. ACT ONE Following the overture, the action begins with the arrival in Carthage of Prince Aeneas, who is INFLUENCES fleeing the fall of Troy. Dido, Queen Purcell studied composition under John Blow (who he of Carthage, knows that Aeneas is succeeded as organist at Westminster Abbey), Christopher fated to found Rome, but nevertheless Gibbons, and Matthew Locke (who he succeeded as court composer in 1677). Purcell also copied Continental styles; falls for the prince, who in turn falls French dance rhythms are common in his works, and his for her (with the active urging of the trio sonatas are a conscious imitation of the Italian style. chorus and Dido’s companion Belinda). DIDO AND AENEAS OPERA
d 60:00
p3
ocv
ACT TWO
100
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Alessandro Scarlatti b 1660–1725
n Italian
A maestro di cappella at 18, and with six successful operas performed in Rome’s aristocratic circles by 23, Scarlatti’s career had a remarkable start. He moved to Naples and by the 1690s was at the peak of his fame. By 1700 the city rivalled Venice as the leading operatic centre, but Scarlatti was by then running into money problems – partly due to his large family – and, in looking for freelance work, he often ignored his contractual duties. After problematic spells in Rome and Venice, he returned to
w 950
Naples, but, despite his fine reputation, his later, more complex operas achieved only a lukewarm success. Routinely called the founder of Neapolitan opera, it seems his style was mostly pan-Italian; only one of his 110-plus operas, Trionfo dell’onore, is Neapolitan in music and text. He died in poverty, and is remembered as the father of the composer Domenico. MILESTONES
1670s Studies in Rome 1679 Writes Gli equivoci nel sembiante, opera 1680
L’honestà negli amori performed for the Queen of Sweden
1684 1685 1706 1721
Becomes Kapellmeister in Naples. Domenico born Admitted to Arcadian Academy, Rome Composes the St Cecilia Mass
It was at the Teatro Capranica in Rome that Scarlatti produced some of his finest and most expressive operas, including Telemaco (1718), Marco Attilio Regoló (1719), and Griselda (1721).
Alessandro Marcello b 1669–1747 n Italian w c.45 Marcello led a rich and varied life and enjoyed a successful dilettante existence. He was a prominent member of Venetian cultural life, and his main contribution to music was as an academician. He composed occasionally, and his cantatas are more interesting for their lavish publication than their musical qualities. However, his instrumental music shows an accomplished knowledge of national styles and, thanks to his Oboe Concerto – so appealling to J S Bach that he transcribed it – he has a place in composing immortality. As well as composing music for different venues, Marcello also collected valuable keyboard and wind instruments.
MILESTONES
1700
Diplomatic posts in Levant and the Peloponnese
1708 1717 1719
Cantatas published Writes Oboe Concerto Eight books of poetry published
1719
Becomes head of the Accademia degli Animosi, Cremona
101
T H E BA ROQUE E R A
Tomaso Giovanni Albinoni b 1671–1751
n Italian
Due to his privileged background, Albinoni composed freelance and knew more noble patrons than he did musicians. His prolific output includes 55 operas and 59 concertos, in which he was probably the first to use the three-movement form consistently. As the eldest son of a prosperous merchant in Venice, Albinoni didn’t need to compose for a living and cultivated music more for pleasure than for profit.
Jeremiah Clarke b c.1674–1707
n English
MILESTONES
1694
Composes 12 Trio Sonatas, Op. 1
1705
Marries operatic soprano Margherita Raimondi
1715 1722 1741
Oboe Concerto, Op. 7, published Supervizes I veri amici, opera, Munich Writes last work, Artamene, opera
Francesco Geminiani w 60
The “Trumpet Voluntary” familiar from wedding ceremonies, once thought to be by Henry Purcell, in fact came from a harpsichord piece by Clarke, a prominent composer in the generation just after Purcell. Clarke served as organist at the cathedrals of Winchester and St Paul’s, and at the Chapel Royal, and his output includes church music, odes, songs, and theatre music. He committed suicide in 1707, apparently after an unhappy love affair. MILESTONES
1685 1692
w c.300
He mass-produced his music but, thanks to his melodic gifts and individual style, he was as popular in his lifetime as Corelli and Vivaldi, and J S Bach used his Trio Sonatas as teaching material. But his popular fame rests on a piece he didn’t write: “Albinoni’s Adagio” was composed by Remo Giazotto around 1945; only the bass line was Albinoni’s.
Becomes chorister at Chapel Royal Organist at Winchester College
c.1697 Writes Prince of Denmark’s March (“Trumpet Voluntary”) 1699
“Vicar-choral” at St Paul’s Cathedral
1700
Becomes “Gentleman-extraordinary” at the Chapel Royal
1702
Writes “Praise the Lord”, anthem, for Queen Anne’s coronation
b 1687–1762
n Italian
w 80
In the 1710s, the English were highly enamoured of Italian culture and inspired by the virtuosity of Italian violinists like Geminiani, who spent his working life in England. He promoted himself as “Corelli’s pupil” and enjoyed early success with his brilliant and expressive Corelli-like Op. 1 sonatas, and even more with his Op. 3 concerti grossi. Admired mainly as a player, Geminiani performed to nobility rather than the public, and was a prominent figure in London musical circles. MILESTONES
1714 1716 c.1732 1751 1756
Abandons Italy for London Composes Sonatas for Violin, Op. 1 Writes concerti grossi, Opp. 2 and 3 The Art of Playing the Violin published The Enchanted Forest performed, Paris
102
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Viva
“I have heard him boast of composing a concerto faster than a copyist could write it down!” CHARLES DE BROSSE, 1739
103
A N TON I O V I VA L DI
Antonio Vivaldi
aldi b 1678–1741
n Italian
w 811+
Vivaldi was the most celebrated of all the Italian Baroque composers, and probably one of the most prolific. In addition to his more than 500 concertos, he produced several operas, sacred vocal works (including his famous Gloria), and numerous other instrumental works, while his virtuoso violin playing earned him international fame. Like his father, he had fiery red hair, earning him the nickname “the Red Priest”.
LIFE
In many respects Antonio Vivaldi’s life was as flamboyant as his music. The son of a violinist, he worked as a violinist himself while training to be a priest. In 1703 he obtained a post at the Pio Ospedale della Pietà, an institution for abandoned (though highly talented) girls, where he taught and earned his students international fame. He rapidly made a name for himself as a composer as well, and publications of his music were widely praised and emulated. In 1713, the governors of the Ospedale commissioned several sacred works from him, and he began to write operas for the Venetian stage. He travelled a great deal, writing operas for Carnival in Mantua and Rome from 1723 onwards, while in Venice the governors requested two concertos a month from him. Vivaldi soon became associated with singer Anna Giraud, who appeared in many of his operas. In 1737, during a public contracts dispute, the rumours about their relationship and his refusal to say Mass (due to asthma) caught up with him, and he was barred from Ferrara. After some opera performances fared badly, he began to lose public favour, and as a final ignominy he fell ill and died on a trip to Vienna, only to be buried in a paupers’ grave.
One of the most prolific composers of his day, Vivaldi is best known for his poetic work The Four Seasons.
Total: 811+
MUSICAL OUTPUT CONCERTOS (529+)
38
SONATAS (85)
11
38
18
1
452+
6
50
SINFONIAS (19)
19
OPERAS (55)
20
SACRED VOCAL (72)
3
1
SECULAR VOCAL (51)
1
1
1678
1710
16
19 68
6 1720
43 1730
1741
UNDATED
104
THE BA RO QUE E R A
MUSIC
Arcangelo Corelli may have created the model for the Italian concerto but it was Antonio Vivaldi who showed what could be done with it. Vivaldi’s skill as a violinist and orchestrator can be seen in the challenging roles he gives both to the solo instruments and ensembles, and having the talented performers of the Ospedale at hand meant that he could tailor his works to specific virtuosi and combinations of instruments. His vocal works also demonstrate a deft (and prolific) touch: his sacred solo and choral works range from the energetic to the sublime and show many of the same extravagances of his instrumental writing, and his operas were briefly the toast of Rome. Apart from those published during Vivaldi’s lifetime, the vast majority of
his works are undated. Indeed, many have yet to be catalogued, although the current catalogue lists more than 800 works. MILESTONES
1693
Begins studies for the priesthood
1703
Following ordination, takes post teaching violin at the Ospedale della Pietà, an orphanage for girls
1705
Writes 12 Sonatas for Violin, Op. 1
1711
Publishes L’estro armonico, Op. 3, a collection of concerti grossi
1716
Appointed maestro de’ concerti at the Pietà
1718
Appointed music director to the court of Mantua
1725
Le quattro staggioni (The Four Seasons), Op. 8, Nos. 1–4, published
1740
Becomes music director to the court of Charles VI in Vienna
KEY WORKS GLORIA, RV 589 CHORAL
d 60:00
p 12
NULLA IN MUNDO PAX SINCERA ocv
Written for the Ospedale, Vivaldi’s Gloria contains a wealth of Baroque styles and contrasts. The opening choral annunciation is followed by a more contemplative “Et in terra pax” in B minor, which in turn is followed by a lively duet for women’s voices. The work alternates choral sections and solos throughout; after a brief reprise of the opening music, an energetic choral fugue based on an earlier Gloria by Giovanni Maria Ruggieri brings the piece to a rousing conclusion.
CHORAL
d 13:30
p4
ov
The opening Larghetto may sound familiar to many listeners, having appeared in many soundtracks. The motet was written for less dramatic purposes, however; the text is a devotional prayer to Jesus and his peace. In the final Alleluia, the soprano demonstrates the type of florid virtuosity usually reserved for the strings, finishing with a flourish. CONCERTO FOR FLUTE, OP. 10, NO. 3, RV 428, “THE GOLDFINCH” ORCHESTRAL
d 10:00
p3
os
The “Goldfinch” Concerto is well known for its more overt representations of birdsong, the composer making use of an instrument for which he rarely wrote. The simple slow movement, set only for flute and continuo, is particularly fine. The Ospedale della Pietà in Venice, with which Vivaldi was associated for much of his life, is still an orphanage today.
FOCUS “THE FOUR SEASONS”, OP. 8, NOS. 1–4, RV 271 ORCHESTRAL
d 36:00
p 16
es
These four concertos for violin and orchestra are part of a set of 12 published in Amsterdam in 1725 titled Il cimento dell’armonia e dell’inventione, or The Trial of Strength Between Harmony and Invention. Unlike most of Vivaldi’s concertos, these four have a clear programme: each concerto was accompanied by an illustrative sonnet printed in the principal violin’s partbook, each on the theme of the respective season. The author of these poems is unknown, although there is some speculation that Vivaldi himself may have written them. The concertos remained popular long after Vivaldi’s death, particularly in France (where “Spring” was a favourite of the French court), and today they are some of the most recorded and performed works ever. CONCERTO NO . 1 , “ SPRING ” (ALLEGRO – LARGO – ALLEGRO, 7:30) In the Largo of “Spring”, the text tells how “the goatherd sleeps with his trusty dog beside him”; the languorous musical
setting is interrupted only by the “barking” of a solo viola. CONCERTO NO . 2 , “ SUMMER ” (ALLEGRO NON MOLTO – ADAGIO/PRESTO – PRESTO, 9:15) Here the hot sun beats down on the farm labourers but a storm looms, finally breaking in the third movement in a furious hailstorm matched by an equally furious hail of rapid passagework in the orchestra and solo. CONCERTO NO . 3 , “ AUTUMN ” (ALLEGRO – ADAGIO MOLTO – ALLEGRO, 11:15) “Autumn” opens with a clomping peasant dance to celebrate the harvest and concludes with a hunt (complete with “horns, guns, and dogs”) that eventually brings down a wild stag. CONCERTO NO . 4 , “ WINTER ” (ALLEGRO NON MOLTO – LARGO – ALLEGRO, 8:30)
Finally, “Winter” describes first the shivering and chattering of teeth, then the calm moments by the fire, and lastly the fierce joy of sliding on the crackling ice and hearing the whistling of the winter winds. INFLUENCES
The qualities of Vivaldi’s music – concise themes, clarity of form, rhythmic vitality, homophonic texture, balanced phrases, dramatic dialogue between soloist and ensemble – directly influenced many composers including J S Bach, who transcribed several of Vivaldi’s concertos for keyboard.
106
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Georg Philipp Telemann b 1681–1767
n German
w c.3,700
Telemann was one of the most prolific composers of the Baroque period. He gained an international reputation through both the quality of his music – which always reflected the current musical fashion – and the wide dissemination of his works: his innovative German periodical Der getreue Music-Meister provided amateur musicians with instrumental and vocal pieces for domestic music-making. LIFE AND MUSIC
After holding several Church and Court positions in Poland and Germany, Telemann was appointed music director and cantor at Hamburg in 1723, a prestigious post that he held until his death. Today he is chiefly known for his solo and trio sonatas, but his instrumental works include many orchestral suites, concertos, quartets, trios, and compositions for keyboard, and his cantatas and larger Church works number over 1,000. There are also some 50 operas, including his delightful comedy Der geduldige Socrates (The Patient Socrates).
MILESTONES
1701
Enrols as law student at the university in Leipzig; meets Handel
1702
Becomes director of the Leipzig Opera
1704
Appointed director of the New Church in Leipzig
1708
Appointed Konzertmeister in Eisenach; forms friendship with J S Bach
1721
Becomes music director of Hamburg; composes Der geduldige Socrates, opera
1728 1733
Der getreue Music-Meister first published Musique de table published
1755
Composes several sacred oratorios; writes theoretical works
KEY WORKS NOUVEAUX QUATUORS EN SIX SUITES CHAMBER
d 78:00
p 28
e
A collection of six multi-movement chamber works published in 1738 during Telemann’s visit to Paris, this set contains two concertos, two sonatas, and two balletts. While these works reflect the French style, the structure is more Italian. Unlike the
trio sonatas, which were scored for four instruments, these are true quartets for three melody instruments (flute, violin, viola da gamba, or cello) and accompaniment (harpsichord). MUSIQUE DE TABLE CHAMBER
d 270:00
p 68
oes
This set of works, considered by scholars to be Telemann’s magnum opus, was published in three separate anthologies, each containing an orchestral suite, a trio, a quartet, a concerto for several solo instruments, a solo sonata, and a single movement piece the composer titled “Conclusion”. In 1722, Leipzig city council failed to secure Telemann as Cantor of the Thomaskirche; the post was offered to their third choice, J S Bach.
GE O RG P H I L I P P TE L E M A N N
107
FOCUS BOURLESQUE DE QUIXOTTE ORCHESTRAL
d 20:10
p7
o
Telemann popularized the French orchestral suite in Germany, gaining much inspiration from the works of Lully, whom he much admired. There is no standard organization for these multi-movement works, except that they open with the typical overture in the French style: a Grave slow section dominated by dotted rhythms, followed by an Allegro fugal section which leads to a return to the slower opening section. This opening movement is followed by a selection of dance movements, with the only criteria being that they are arranged to contrast with one another. Telemann also modelled the French fashion of giving programmatic titles to the suites. With this suite he provides six programmatic movements (following the French overture) based on Cervantes’s “Knight of the Doleful Countenance” and his servant Sancho Panza. OVERTURE (GRAVE-ALLEGRO-GRAVE, 5:35) The first movement follows the familiar French overture style, as described in more detail above. LE REVEIL DE QUIXOTTE
The Knight’s Awakening characterizes our hero Don Quixote’s slow awakening through the use of long notes, pauses, and simple lyrical minuet rhythm.
(ADAGIO, 2:50)
SON ATTAQUE DES MOULINS
In high relief is Attack on the Windmills with its quick semiquavers and repeated notes representing Don Quixote attacking his imagined enemies.
À VENT (VIVACE, 1:45)
SES SOUPIRS AMOUREUX APRÈS LA PRINCESSE DULCINÉE (ANDANTE, 3:10)
Sighs of Love for the Princess Dulcinea reflects Don Quixote’s love, with the inclusion of sighing motifs and musical suspensions representing his yearning for Dulcinea. SANCHE PANCHE BERNÉ (ALLEGRO, 1:50) This movement is an imaginative musical description of Quixote’s servant Sancho Panza through the inclusion of octave jumps, with ornamented turns, within a strict rhythm. LA GALOPE DE ROSINANTE / CELUI D ’ ÂNE DE SANCHE (ALLEGRO, 2:15) The penultimate movement is a description of Don Quixote’s horse, Rosinante, galloping along in 3/8 time, contrasting with Panza’s donkey, whose stubbornness is reflected by pauses and dotted rhythms. LE COUCHÉ DE QUIXOTTE (ANDANTE, 2:45)
Telemann puts our hero to sleep in this final movement, The Sleep of Quixote, with a simple, lyrical melody – just the opposite of the previous movement, and returning full circle to the beginning of the story.
108
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Jean-Philippe Rameau b 1683–1764
n French
w 76
Jean-Philippe Rameau was not only the most important French composer of the 18th century but also an influential music theorist. His style of operatic writing ended the posthumous reign of Lully, whose model had been followed for half a century. Also a harpsichordist and organist, Rameau wrote many works for the keyboard. His highly ornamented compositions stand out as the epitome of Rococo style. LIFE AND MUSIC
Rameau composed only a few small keyboard and sacred works prior to 1722, but the publication of his treatise on harmony that year marked the beginning of a productive period. His Pièces de clavecin were published in 1724, followed by a new theory book in 1726 and sets of keyboard works and cantatas in 1729. He wrote his first opera, Hippolyte et Aricie, at the age of 50. It drew the interest of Louis XV and Rameau later received several royal commissions as a result. His music is characterized by a musical dynamism that contrasts with the staider styles of Lully – Voltaire once dubbed Rameau “our hero of the semiquavers”.
MILESTONES
1702
Appointed organist of ClermontFerrand Cathedral
1722
Publishes the highly influential Traité de l’harmonie; settles in Paris
1726
Marries Marie-Louise Mangot; publishes Nouveau système de musique théorique
1733 1739 1736 1741
First opera, Hippolyte et Aricie, is produced Premiere of Dardanus, opera Completes Les indes galantes, opera Writes Pièces de clavecin en concert
1745
Comedy-ballet Platée is premiered at Versailles for dauphin’s wedding
1754
Observations sur notre instinct pour musique is published
1764
Is ennobled; dies a few months later
KEY WORKS PIÈCES DE CLAVECIN (1724) KEYBOARD
d 24:00
p9
s
In this, his second set of harpsichord works, Rameau first demonstrated his characteristic florid style, with dramatic runs of scales, and rapid and complex passages that fully exploit the harpsichord keyboard. The influence of Couperin is sometimes evident, but Rameau’s athletic style takes these character pieces to a new level.
named after either images or tableaux (La pantomime, L’indiscrète), or after people such as society figures, students, or composers (La Marais, La Forqueray, and even La Rameau). Although these are ensemble pieces, the harpsichord is very much the featured instrument.
PIÈCES DE CLAVECIN EN CONCERT INSTRUMENTAL
d 60:00
p 16
e
Rameau’s final published collection of instrumental works comprises five suites of largely character pieces
Rameau’s satirical comedy-ballet Platée, featuring a grotesque swamp nymph, was written for the wedding of the dauphin to a reputedly plain Spanish princess.
J E A N - P H I L I P P E R A M E AU
109
FOCUS PROLOGUE (27:30) Diana, goddess of the chaste, pledges to protect Hippolyte and Aricie, daughter of a rival family Despite Rameau’s characteristically forced by Thésée to remain chaste. frenetic compositional style, this, his Phèdre lusts after Hippolyte. first opera (or properly, tragédie en musique) is very much in the French ACT ONE (28:30) Aricie is preparing to tradition: five acts in length, with take her vow of chastity to Diana a divertissement (a dance or other when Hippolyte pledges his love to her. spectacle) in each act, and a plot based Phèdre jealously tries to force Aricie on figures from Classical mythology or to continue her vows, but Diana history. Nonetheless, the style of music offers the young lovers her help. received both enthusiastic praise and ACT TWO (27:30) Thésée journeys to the critical dismissal. Many felt its vigorous Underworld. After a confrontation with passagework was too “Italian” and Pluto, he leaves. The Fates prophesy ornate. This opera may have been the that he will find anguish in his house. first work to which the term “Baroque” ACT THREE (29:30) Hippolyte pledges was applied, though this would have loyalty to Phèdre, which she mistakes been meant as an insult. Ironically, 20 for a profession of love and declares years later, Parisian supporters of hers for him. He rejects her. She seizes Italian opera would accuse Rameau his sword in a suicide attempt, which of not being Italian enough. Thésée, just returned, believes to be The libretto by Abbé Simon-Joseph an attempted rape. He curses his son. Pellegrin is based on Racine’s play ACT FOUR (22:30) Hippolyte and Aricie Phèdre of 1677, with elements of the plan to flee, but a monster summoned tragedies of Euripides and Seneca. It by Thésée’s curse attacks Hippolyte, concerns the incestuous love of Phèdre who disappears, engulfed in flames. (Phaedra) for her stepson Hippolyte Phèdre, full of remorse, kills herself. (Hippolytus). Despite the title, much of ACT FIVE (31:30) Thésée also attempts the action centres on Hippolyte’s father, suicide, but it is revealed that Hippolyte Thésée (Theseus), King of Athens. has been saved by the gods. He and Aricie are reunited in a happy ending.
HIPPOLYTE ET ARICIE OPERA
d 165:00
p5
ocv
110
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Domenico Scarlatti b 1685–1757
n Italian
w c.717
Son of Alessandro Scarlatti, harpsichordist and composer Domenico Scarlatti’s greatest contribution were his singlemovement keyboard sonatas, yet only a small number were published in his lifetime. Although born in the same year as Bach and Handel, Scarlatti’s light, homophonic compositional style is more characteristic of the early Classical period, and also reveals his innovative approach to harmony. LIFE AND MUSIC
Very little is known about Domenico Scarlatti’s life, despite the vast amount that has been written about him. Much of his early life was spent travelling with his father, who managed his career closely. However, Scarlatti soon established his own name as a keyboard virtuoso and composer (one story – possibly apocryphal – tells of a performing competition between Domenico and Handel). His appointment to the household of the exiled Queen of Poland led to more prestigious positions: first at the Vatican, then at the Portuguese court, and finally at the Spanish court in Madrid, where the majority of his keyboard works were written.
MILESTONES
1700
Becomes organist and composer of Capella Reale in Naples
1708
Appointed maestro di cappella to Maria Casimir, exiled Queen of Poland, in Rome
1714
Employed as maestro di cappella at Cappella Giulia at the Vatican
1719
Becomes mestre of the Royal Chapel to King João of Portugal
1728
Composes Festeggio armonico
1729
Marries Maria Catalina Gentili in Rome; joins Spanish court
1738
30 essercizi per gravicembalo published, bringing Scarlatti international recognition
1754
Composes Missa quattuor vocum
KEY WORKS SONATAS IN A MAJOR, K181, K182 SOLO PIANO
p2
s
Scarlatti’s keyboard sonatas have a distinctive style that is immediately recognizable, despite their extremely simple binary form. Despite the similarity of key and tempo (Allegro) and the use of repeated motives throughout, these two pieces are entirely different in character: K.181 is marked by the repetition of strikingly dissonant chords, while K.182 is more nimble and dance-like, with great leaping arpeggios.
SALVE REGINA CHORAL
d 7:00
p6
ecv
The Salve regina, for soprano, strings, and basso continuo, is one of Scarlatti’s earliest works, dating from the early 1700s. He presents a condensed version of the text in six short movements. Written in a variety of styles – from simple fugues to virtuosic displays of vocal dexterity – the effects range from joyous lyricism to mournful chromaticism. Festeggio armonico celebrates the betrothal of Scarlatti’s pupil Maria Barbara to the Spanish crown prince.
FOCUS
each section comprising one to five stanzas of the text. Scarlatti eschews the double-choir writing, which was Scarlatti may be best known for his popular in Rome at the time, in favour 500 or more essercizi, or keyboard of using all ten voices as independent sonatas, but in the years before his forces – often bringing solo parts to appointment to the Spanish court he composed a variety of music, including the fore against the rich contrapuntal textures. The long vocal phrases, 13 operas (now largely forgotten) and imitative passages, use of dissonance several sacred works for the maestro for ornamental effect, and chromatic di cappella positions he held. Of the melodies are in many ways reminiscent latter, his Stabat Mater for ten voices of the Renaissance style of Palestrina and basso continuo stands out as a and the prima pratica, yet there are work of great grandeur, depth of other, more contemporary influences expression, and harmonic colour. evident as well. He achieves moments Composed in Rome for the of strong emotional contrast when Cappella Giulia sometime between chromatic counterpoint gives way to 1713 and 1719, it is thought that this bold choral scales (“Quis est homo, work may have been intended for qui non fleret”), and austere solo private devotions. The subject matter dissonances (“Quis non posset is full of pathos, describing the contristari”). There are operatic anguish of the Virgin Mary at the influences as well, as in the ornate foot of the Cross; the name refers to the first line of the text “Stabat Mater duet on “Inflammatus et accensus” and the upbeat fugal “Amen” which dolorosa” (“There stood the Mother grieving”). The second half of the text concludes the work. Interestingly, it was about the becomes a prayer to the Virgin herself, followed by a brief prayer to Christ in same time, or perhaps a few years later, that Alessandro Scarlatti – also the final stanzas. working in Rome – produced his own The composition is divided into setting of the Stabat Mater text. seven sections in contrasting styles, STABAT MATER CHORAL
d 26:45
p7
ec
112
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Han
“Handel understands effect better than any of us; when he chooses, he strikes like a thunderbolt.” WOLFGANG AMADEUS MOZART
113
GE ORGE F R I DE R I C H A N DE L
George Frideric Handel
ndel b 1685–1759
n German/English
w 487
Handel was the consummate 18th-century artist, traveller, and entrepreneur. In his lifetime he came to represent not only a unique synthesis of German instrumental and Italian operatic writing, but also an entire era of music in England. Although largely known today for his Water Music, Music for the Royal Fireworks and Messiah, it is his dramatic works that were the focus of much of his career, and which made his name.
LIFE
Handel initially began studying law before devoting his full attention to a career in music. After a brief period at university he moved to Hamburg and an orchestral position at the opera house, where he composed his first opera (Almira). From Hamburg he travelled to Italy in 1706, and then to Hanover, where he took the position of Kapellmeister at the Electoral court. The post allowed for extensive travel and so he went to London, where Italian opera was gaining in popularity. His opera Rinaldo was a great success; although he returned briefly to Hanover he received permission to travel again to London on the condition he return within a reasonable time. He never did; instead, in 1714, his employer the Elector of Hanover succeeded to the English throne as George I, and Handel entered the service of the Royal Court. The next decade saw his fortunes rise and fall as he competed with the Italian opera and as opera itself gained and lost the interest of the public. His oratorios and other choral works, however, enjoyed more success. During the last decade of his life he suffered from declining health. He had had two strokes earlier, but in his 60s his sight began to fail irreparably. Nevertheless, he continued to compose, arrange earlier works and supervise productions until his death.
Handel became a British citizen in 1727. He wrote four anthems for the coronation of King George II that year, including “Zadok the Priest”, which has been sung at every British coronation since.
Total: 487
MUSICAL OUTPUT CONCERTOS (57)
3
2
9
29
11
KEYBOARD (64)
1
24
5
31
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (99)
2
3
15
30
18
DRAMATIC (46)
6
6
15
15
4
SACRED (63)
32
10
8
8
5
SECULAR (158)
71
21
16
17
30
1685
1710
1720
1730
3 3
1740
31
3 1750
1759
114
THE BA RO QUE E R A
MUSIC
Handel’s operas owe much to the popular Italian style, with lyrical, virtuosic arias, dynamic string writing, and a simple, sturdy approach to harmonic progression that belies his Germanic roots. Even the most contrapuntal passages in his choral works contain a clarity not found in the works of his contemporary J S Bach. Handel’s versatility enabled him to write for all kinds of occasion. Despite his Lutheran upbringing, he produced a number of sacred works for the Catholic Church during his time in Italy, and likewise during a brief period spent in the service of James Brydges, Duke of Chandos, he composed the “Chandos Anthems” in the English style. Handel’s large-scale choral works are perhaps his most significant legacy. They were his most consistently successful works and enjoyed multiple revivals even in his lifetime.
MILESTONES
1697
Appointed assistant organist at Halle Cathedral
1703
Moves to Hamburg
1706
Travels to Italy; composes operas and first oratorios
1708
In Italy performs with an orchestra led by Arcangelo Corelli
1710
Appointed Kapellmeister to the Elector of Hanover (later George I)
1711 1712 1717
First trip to London Settles in England Water Music suites, HWV348–50
1720
Appointed musical director of Royal Academy of Music
1723
Appointed composer of the Chapel Royal; composes Giulio Cesare, HWV17
1735 1742
Esther, HWV50, first English oratorio Messiah, HWV56, premiered in Dublin
1749
Music for the Royal Fireworks, HWV351, performed in Green Park, London
1751
Suffers from failing sight, which leads to total blindness by 1753
KEY WORKS GIULIO CESARE IN EGITTO, HWV17 OPERA
d 240:00
p3
cvo
Giulio Cesare in Egitto (Julius Caesar in Egypt) premiered on 20 February 1724 at the King’s Theatre in London, at a time at which Handel’s operatic career was at a peak. It starred many of the leading Italian singers of the day, including the soprano Francesca Cuzzoni as Cleopatra and the castrati Senesino and Gaetano Berenstadt as
Caesar and Ptolemy respectively. The libretto, by Nicolo Haym, portrays the various characters as strong, complex individuals, giving Handel a wide emotional range to play with. ORGAN CONCERTOS, OP. 4, NO. 4 IN F, HWV292 ORCHESTRAL
d 14:45
p4
os
Handel was a talented organist, and his organ concertos, originally intended to be performed between the sections of his oratorios, gave him a chance to demonstrate his virtuosity. The Op. 4, No. 4 concerto (1735) was intended for a performance of Athalia. Previous concertos had accompanied Esther, Deborah, and Alexander’s Feast. In this 19th-century engraving, Handel and King George l of England listen to the Water Music from the royal barge on the Thames.
115
GE ORGE F R I DE R I C H A N DE L
FOCUS
early morning, then returned to the barges and to Whitehall to the same music with which they had arrived. These works were mere light entertainment, yet Handel employs his usual deft touch as a composer, presenting a happy juxtaposition of traditional minuets and English country dances. The Water Music also marks the first appearance in an English orchestra of the French horn, an instrument well-suited to outdoor performance.
WATER MUSIC, HWV348–50 d 45:00
INSTRUMENTAL
p3
e
On 17 July 1717, a royal event of unusual splendour took place on the River Thames in London. King George I and a large number of nobles travelled up the Thames from the royal palace at Whitehall to Chelsea on open river barges, serenaded by 50 musicians playing three instrumental suites composed by Handel for the occasion. The guests feasted at Chelsea until the SUITE 2 IN D MAJOR Hornpipe; Triple time; Overture; Allegro: 2 Alla D major; Ternary form 1D major; Quadruple time: Ternary form
Minuet; Lentement; 3D major; Triple time; 4D major; Triple time; Binary form
Transition A
B
A
T
1
Trumpets introduce theme
A
A
2
B
3
A
4
Theme introduced by strings and woodwind Full orchestra
A 5
Strings and oboes alone
MESSIAH, HWV56 ORATORIO
d 142:00
p 16
cvo
In 1741 Handel received an invitation from the Lord Lieutenant of Ireland to help raise money for three major Dublin charities through performances of his music. Although Handel was in poor health at the time, he was determined to compose a new sacred oratorio for the occasion, and turned to Charles Jennens, his librettist for Saul and Israel in Egypt, for an appropriate subject. Jennens responded with a collection of Old and New Testament verses arranged into a three-part “argument” (as the librettist himself descibed it). The result was the best-known and best-loved of all Handel’s oratorios. The text was not without controversy, with newspapers weighing in with debates as to its “blasphemous” nature. The finished product, however,
6
Trumpets and violins
Bourrée; 5D major; Duple;
Ternary form
B
A 7
Woodwind only
A 8
Binary form B
A 9
Oboes and bassoons
A B
A B 10
Tutti
enjoyed a very different reception, earning critical praise first in Dublin and then in London. Handel made several subsequent revisions to the work, including a version created for Thomas Coram’s Foundling Hospital in 1754. Although the work remains a perennial favourite, nowadays most Christmas performances include only the first part plus the Hallelujah Chorus from Part Two.
116
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Ba
“The aim and final end of all music should be none other than the glory of God and the refreshment of the soul.” JOHANN SEBASTIAN BACH
117
JOH A N N SE BA STI A N BACH
Johann Sebastian Bach
ach b 1685–1750
n German
w 972
During his lifetime, Johann Sebastian Bach was known mostly as an organist, and was outshone as a composer by his sons. By the end of the 18th century, however, his musical oeuvre of vocal, choral, keyboard, and instrumental works – both sacred and secular – had been rediscovered by a new and more appreciative audience who admired their unique quality and spirit. Since then his star has not stopped rising.
LIFE
Orphaned at age 10, Bach moved in with his brother, Johann Christoph, who taught him the organ. After studying briefly in Lüneburg, he was appointed organist at the Bonifaciuskirche at Arnstadt, though he proved quarrelsome; first he almost duelled with a student, then he angered the town consistory by overstaying his leave. Bach stayed until 1707, when he moved to Mühlhausen; in short order he married his cousin Maria, fought with his new students, and left for the ducal court in Weimar. The new post paid well and Bach thrived until internal court politics made his position untenable. He left to become Kapellmeister at the Cöthen court in 1717, although the duke had him imprisoned for a month for disloyalty. Bach’s wife died in 1720 and he married singer Anna Wilcke the next year. In 1723 he became Kantor at the Thomasschule in Leipzig, and in 1729 he became Director of the Collegium Musicum at the university. In 1737, critic Johann Scheibe criticised Bach’s music, accusing him of bombast and artificiality, but he continued to compose and perform until failing eyesight made writing difficult. Following two unsuccessful eye operations, his health deteriorated and he died three months later.
A master of counterpoint, J S Bach composed numerous orchestral pieces, plus seminal works for cello and harpsichord.
Total: 972
MUSICAL OUTPUT ORCHESTRAL (29)
13
16
CHAMBER (41)
1
9
8
10
13
ORGAN MUSIC (260)
81
59
30
28
14
48
OTHER KEYBOARD (190)
25
60
59
27
2
17
SACRED VOCAL (416)
7
22
166
24
9
188
5
17
12
2
SACRED SECULAR (36)
1685
1710
1720
1730
1740
1750
UNDATED
118
THE BA RO QUE E R A
MUSIC
Bach was ultimately a pragmatic man, and much of his output relates directly to the demands of his life at the time. His early tutelage on the organ sparked his interest in the works of other north German organ composers, such as Buxtehude and Reincken (both of whom he later met). He continued to develop his organ compositions at Arnstadt and Weimar, also producing cantatas on a regular basis for chapel. In Cöthen, his courtly duties demanded more secular fare, and many of his instrumental works date from this period, including the six “Brandenburg” Concertos, the Clavierbüchlein for his new wife, Anna, and the Orgel-Büchlein. It was as Kantor at Leipzig that Bach held the widest remit for composition. His duties included producing and directing music for civic events and for organizing music for the four main town churches, plus whatever was required for his teaching duties at the Thomasschule. His Leipzig period saw a tremendous outpouring of sacred and secular cantatas and motets for all occasions and church feasts, including five complete cycles of cantatas for the entire church year. In contrast his instrumental writing waned until he took on the directorship of the Collegium Musicum; Bach revised several of his earlier instrumental works for their weekly concerts and produced new music as well, most notably the comic “Coffee Cantata” (until 1741 the Collegium met in Gottfried Zimmermann’s coffeehouse). Works from his final decade include the Goldberg Variations, The Thomasschule in Leipzig, where Bach was kantor from 1723 until 1729. For Bach this was a time of great productivity.
The town of Eisenach, where Bach was born in 1685. The hilltop castle (Wartburg) is where Martin Luther translated the New Testament into German in 1521.
The Art of Fugue, and The Musical Offering (the latter dedicated to Frederick the Great). His sacred writing continued as well; this period saw the composition of the Mass in B minor, the “Christmas” Oratorio, and the St Mark Passion. Bach’s compositional style demonstrates a profound understanding of both harmonic progression and the intricacies of Baroque counterpoint; indeed, he was regarded during his life as the greatest contrapuntalist ever. His early studies in organ and composition gave him a
119
JOH A N N SE BA STI A N BACH
thorough understanding of the fugue and the dense, cerebral north German style. His interest in the Italian concerto and the French overture and dance suites came later, and were synthesized into a cohesive style. Bach was a craftsman in both good and bad senses; his formal and harmonic structures were intricate in detail (Friedrich Nietzsche said that Bach’s music gave him a sense of “the higher order of things”), but he was often accused of being overly formalistic as well, creating complex works at the expense of emotional expression. When the lighter, more “natural” courtly style began to gain wider popularity in the 1730s, Bach’s music fell out of fashion. Ironically it was his composer sons Carl Philipp Emanuel and Johann Christian Bach
Prince Leopold of Anhalt-Cöthen was 23 years old when he hired Bach as his Kapellmeister in 1717.
who came to prominence as the leading representatives of the new style. After Bach’s death, his music remained synonymous with the old style. However, it had its proponents, most notably Baron Gottfried von Swieten, who organized concerts of Bach’s music in Vienna. Beethoven is known to have played the “48”; one cannot hear the choral fugue in his Symphony No. 9 without speculating on Bach’s influence.
MILESTONES
1692
Enters Eisenach’s Lateinschule
1695
Father dies; lives with brother Johann Christoph, who teaches him the organ
1700
Becomes chorister at Lüneburg
1703
Appointed violinist in court orchestra of Duke of Weimar; leaves to become organist at Arnstadt
1723
Appointed Kantor of Thomasschule, Leipzig, after Georg Telemann (the most famous composer of the day) turns down the post; the majority of his cantatas are composed in this period; produces Magnificat
1724
First performance of St John Passion
1729
Becomes Director of Collegium Musicum; first performance of St Matthew Passion
1705
Walks some 215 miles to Lübeck to meet Dietrich Buxtehude
1707
Appointed organist at Mühlhausen; marries his cousin Maria Barbara Bach
1733
Writes a portion of the Mass in B minor
1735
Becomes court organist and chamber musician (later concertmaster) to the Duke of Weimar
Birth of his youngest son Johann Christian Bach (the “London Bach”)
1746
Eyesight begins to fail
1747
Visits son C P E Bach in Potsdam and plays for the king, Frederick the Great; one of the works improvised during this visit becomes A Musical Offering
1708
1714
Son Carl Philipp Emanuel born
1717
Becomes Kapellmeister (director of music) at court of Cöthen; many of his instrumental works are written in this period, including the “Brandeburg” Concertos
1721
Wife dies; marries Anna Wilcke
1723
Prince Leopold of Anhalt-Cöthen dies. Bach’s position as Kapellmeister is terminated.
1749
Finishes Mass in B minor; completes The Art of Fugue
1750
Ill health leads to fatal eye operations
A page from the second fugue of Bach’s WellTempered Clavier
KEY WORKS THE WELL-TEMPERED CLAVIER, BWV 846–893 KEYBOARD
d 255:00
p 96
s
Also known as the 48 Preludes and Fugues, the Well-Tempered Clavier represents a lifetime of work by Bach. The first collection of 24 preludes and fugues dates from 1722, while the second set of 24 was finished some twenty years later. Each prelude is a freely-composed work, exploring a particular musical idea without specified form. Conversely, the fugues follow a stricter set of rules. The juxtaposition of the two adds both effective colour to the performance and a broader challenge to the performer. These may have been intended as technical exercises, but if so they remain complex, elegant pieces, exploring all areas of the keyboard.
The Monteverdi Choir and the English Baroque Soloists sing Bach’s Mass in B minor at London’s Royal Albert Hall, 2004.
MASS IN B MINOR, BWV 232 d 106:00 p 27
MASS SETTING
SIX SUITES FOR SOLO CELLO, BWV 1007–1012 SOLO CELLO
d 140:00
p 36
s
Each of these cello suites has a prelude and five dance movements comprising a wide variety of styles. They are remarkably sophisticated and self-contained works, and form the foundation of the solo cello repertoire. CHRISTMAS ORATORIO, BWV 248 ORATORIO
Bach wrote a series of sonatas which explored the full range and character of the harpsichord.
ocv
The Mass in B minor was an ongoing work; the Sanctus was written in 1724, while the Credo dates from near the end of Bach’s life. The Kyrie and Gloria are taken from a 1733 Mass dedicated to the Dresden court, and the last four movements are parody works, based on other music and added later.
d 150:00
p6
es
The “Christmas” Oratorio is properly a six-part cycle: six sacred cantatas to be performed on the three days of Christmas, New Year’s Day, the Sunday after the New Year and the Feast of the Epiphany. Much of the music is reworked from earlier secular cantatas which were written for the Collegium Musicum in Leipzig.
JOH A N N SE BA STI A N BACH
121
FOCUS ST MATTHEW PASSION, BWV 244 ORATORIO
d 160:00
p 68
ocv
The Lutheran Passion oratorio, a sacred drama popular in Germany, already existed in the 17th century as a mixture of Lutheran chorales, strophic arias, and choruses. By the next century, composers (including Bach) had added the flair of operatic recitative and aria to the genre. Bach wrote three Passions during his career: the St Matthew, the St John, and the St Mark, though of these the latter has largely been lost. The first two, however, remain favourites of the choral repertoire and are frequently performed in concert during the Easter season. The St Matthew Passion, for double chorus, double orchestra, two organs, and soloists, is a grand work first performed on Good Friday 1727. The text is taken from the Gospel According to Matthew, chapters 26 and 27, with added recitative and aria texts by local poet Christian Friedrich Henrici. The narrative structure is thus: the Evangelist narrates the unfolding events as they occur in recitatives, with occasional lines of dialogue sung by soloists. Solos are also used for prayers and commentary on the story, as in the alto solo “Buss und Reu” (“Grief and Sin”). The chorus sometimes take a direct participatory role, presenting dialogue by the crowds in the drama, for example, and sometimes offer detached commentary or prayer, including the interjected chorales. While Bach never wrote an opera, the Passions are very much in the same theatrical vein.
INFLUENCES
Bach passed on a technical mastery of keyboard playing and musical form to his sons, but his music was seen as unfashionable by the end of his life. Later revivals of his music, most notably by Mendelssohn, brought new interest in his compositional style and in Baroque counterpoint in general.
The work opens with a prologue in which the chorus lament the events to come. The narrative proper begins in Bethany with Christ prophesying his own imminent crucifixion. The story then follows the biblical story of Judas’s collusion with the Pharisees, Jesus’s appeals to God, and finally the betrayal and arrest. After each section of narrative a commentary is inserted in the form of a recitative and aria or a chorale. PART TWO (92:00) After another prologue, which bemoans the arrest of Jesus, the second part begins with the interrogation before Caiaphas, Peter’s denial, and the judgment by Pilate. Bach concludes the work with Jesus’s crucifixion, death, and entombment, and a final choral lament. PART ONE (68:00)
122
THE BA RO QUE E R A
MUSICAL OFFERING, BWV 1079 CHAMBER
d 49:00
p 16
e
On Sunday 7 May 1747 (so the story goes) Bach arrived at the royal court in Potsdam and was immediately summoned to the King’s presence. Frederick the Great was an avid musician himself and often played the flute alongside his court musicians (including Bach’s son Carl Philipp Emanuel). Frederick sat at the keyboard and played Bach the “royal theme”; Bach listened and then freely improvised a three-part fugue on the same theme. The next night Bach was invited back, but was challenged to provide a six-part fugue on the same theme – a daunting task. Bach demurred, instead improvising a six-part fugue on another theme, but subsequently wrote out a similar fugue on the King’s theme. He then elaborated a series of other pieces on the same theme, including a full trio sonata for flute, violin, and continuo, had the music bound and inscribed with an extended dedication, and presented it to the delighted monarch.
Canadian pianist Glenn Gould made a critically acclaimed recording of the Goldberg Variations in 1955. A second, equally brilliant recording came in 1981.
GOLDBERG VARIATIONS, BWV 988 KEYBOARD
d 78:00
p 32
s
As the story goes, during a trip to Dresden in 1741, Bach presented Count von Keyserlinck his Aria mit verschiedenen Veränderungen (Aria with Sundry Variations) for use by the resident harpsichordist in the Count’s household, one Johann Gottlieb Goldberg. Goldberg had studied with Bach as well as with Bach’s eldest son, Wilhelm Friedemann (then resident in Dresden). As Goldberg was only 14 in 1741, the story may well be apocryphal; if not, that Bach would present such a difficult work to such THE BRANDENBURG CONCERTOS, BWV 1046–1051 CHAMBER
A string ensemble, featuring violinists Itzhak Perlman and Pinchas Zukerman, perform the sixth of Bach’s “Brandenburg” Concertos. BRANDENBURG CONCERTO NO . 5 IN D MAJOR Allegro; Quadruple time; 1Allegro; Ternary form
B
Alternation between full orchestra playing ritornello and solo instruments
2
p6
es
Quadruple time; B minor. Ternary 2 Affettuoso; form. Entire movement played by soloists only
Harpsichord flourishes
A 1
d 90:00
This set of six varied concertos was dedicated to Margrave Christoph Ludwig of Brandenburg in 1721. The works were shelved in the Margrave’s library and lay there unplayed. CONCERTO NO . 1 (20:00) In the first concerto, Bach borrowed from his earlier “Hunt” Cantata, hence the
3
Lilting dialogue between flute and violin
A 4
Cadenza 5
More harpsichord flourishes
6
7
Harpsichord cadenza
Coda 8
Final ritornello in home key
9
123
JOH A N N SE BA STI A N BACH
a young performer implies either great talent on Goldberg’s part or great optimism on Bach’s. The variations were published as Part IV of Bach’s Clavier-Übung (Keyboard Works) collection the next year. The 30 so-called Goldberg Variations (plus the aria and final reprise) are one of the most complex sets of theme and variations ever written. The “aria”, or main theme, is a sarabande in two sections; the theme, unusually, lies in the bass line. Each of the variations follows the same bass line and harmonic progression in some form, albeit often with additional notes interjected. Bach presents a surprising array of forms: gigue (No. 7), fugue (No. 10), French overture (No. 16), and of course a few flashy showpieces. As an added level of complexity, every third variation is a canon, written
at increasingly broad intervals: in No. 3 the second part enters one bar later at the unison, in No. 6 the second part enters a major second up from the first entry, and so forth to the interval of a ninth in No. 27. The final variation is a quodlibet – a contrapuntal combination of two popular tunes set above the main theme in the bass.
prominent horn part. The last movement comprises a series of dances. CONCERTO NO . 2 (11:15) The opening movement offers in quick succession the same solo phrase played by violin, oboe, recorder, and trumpet. CONCERTO NO . 3 (11:00) The first and last movements are pure Italian-style string ensemble writing, while the second was notated by the composer as just a few unornamented chords.
CONCERTO NO . 4 (13:45)
Here Bach combines a solo violin concerto with a concerto grosso, with the violin vying for attention with two recorders. CONCERTO NO . 5 (19:35) The fifth concerto marks Bach’s first use of the transverse flute. The harpsichord plays a prominent role throughout. CONCERTO NO . 6 (15:00) The final work of the collection features a string ensemble throughout.
Duple time; D major; Ternary 3 Allegro; form. Third moment is a gigue A 10
B 11
Original theme in minor key (flute)
12
A 13
Harpsichord accompanied by flute
14
Main theme heard for last time
A
B 15
Violin starts; soon joined by flute
16
A 17
Harpsichord solo
18
19
Ritornello in home key
124
THE BA RO QUE E R A
Domenico Zipoli
Guiseppe Tartini
b 1688–1726 n Italian w Unknown
b 1692–1770 n Italian w c.350
From 1650 to 1750 the Jesuits recruited leading musicians to work in the South American colonies. Zipoli, who studied music in Rome and joined the Jesuits there, became the most celebrated of them. Decades after his death, his naturally flowing melodies and harmonies were still played in churches and Indian villages in his adoptive Argentina. As well as oratorios and Church music, such as his South American Mass, Zipoli wrote concise and charming keyboard pieces. He died shortly before he was due to receive priest’s orders.
Unusually for his time, Tartini composed almost solely for violin, writing concertos and sonatas – including his famous “Devil’s Trill” Sonata – and resisting invitations to write operas. His early music is influenced by Corelli. Something of a mystic, he theorized about the relations between music and emotions. After gaining international fame as a violin virtuoso (his technique sharpened by three years’ practice while hiding in a monastery), he set up a highly regarded violin school.
MILESTONES
1716
Sonate d’intavolatura, collection of organ and harpsichord pieces
1717
Sails for South America
1724
Graduates from Jesuit college in Córdoba, Argentina
1732
Jesuit documents record the popularity of his music in Indian villages
MILESTONES
1710 1723 c.1727 1734 1754
Marriage disapproved of; flees Padua Performs in Prague for coronation Sets up violin school in Padua Violin Sonatas, Op. 1, published First music treatise published
Giovanni Battista Pergolesi
Louis-Claude Daquin
b 1710–1736
b 1694–1772 n French w Unknown
n Italian
w 30–80
Pergolesi’s early death from tuberculosis, and the huge posthumous popularity of his moving Stabat mater in the late 18th century, raised him to almost mythical status and resulted in many works being falsely attributed to him. He was nonetheless a successful and respected composer in Naples during the rise of Italian comic opera. He wrote regularly for the theatre, his comic works in minor theatres were very popular (Lo frate ’nnamorato, in Neapolitan dialect, contained local folk songs), and he enjoyed royal patronage. MILESTONES
1732 1732 1736
Enters employment at royal chapel Writes Lo frate ’nnamorato, opera Composes Stabat mater
At the age of six, Daquin played before Louis XIV, and at eight conducted his own choral work Beatus Vir. The child prodigy went on to a brilliant career in cultured Parisian society, known as a virtuoso improviser on the harpsichord and organ. Some of his improvisations went into his Nouveau livre de noëls, but his few surviving other published compositions only hint at his skills. Sometimes his music shows echoes of Couperin, but often it is highly original, such as the Trois cadences, which uses a triple trill. His best-known work is the sprightly Le coucou (The Cuckoo) from his 1735 harpsichord book. MILESTONES
1735 1739
Livre de pièces de clavecin published Becomes organist at Chappelle Royale
1755
Made organist at cathedral of NotreDame in Paris
1757
Nouveau livre de noëls published
125
T H E BA ROQUE E R A
Thomas Augustine Arne
Domenico Paradies
b 1710–1778 n English w Unknown
b 1707–1791
The British national anthem and “Rule, Britannia!” ensure Arne’s immortality. He wrote mostly theatre music (operas, masques, and incidental music) and books of songs. His prolific output, much of it now lost, varies in quality. Arne enjoyed huge popularity in London’s theatre land during the 1740s; he was a stage man through and through: his sister was the finest tragic actress in the country and his wife a renowned singer. Arne’s innovations included all-sung comic opera and the first use in England of the clarinet (in Thomas and Sally).
Critical and popular reaction to the operas of Paradies, from Alessandro in Persia staged in Lucca in Italy to Fetonte in London, was lukewarm: Charles Burney, the music historian, described his music as ill-phrased and graceless. Nevertheless, Paradies always found work, such as supplying individual arias to various productions, although he enjoyed more success as a teacher of harpsichord and composition. His fame rests on one progressive, sophisticated set of sonatas conceived for harpsichord, the Sonate de gravicembalo. Mozart’s father admired these pieces, and they achieved rapid fame throughout Europe.
MILESTONES
1740 1745 1760
Alfred, masque, with “Rule, Britannia!” “God Bless our Noble King”, song Writes Thomas and Sally, comic opera
n Italian w Unknown
MILESTONES
1738 1746 1747 1754 1770
Writes Alessandro in Persia, opera Emigrates to London Writes Fetonte, opera Writes 12 Sonate de gravicembalo Returns to Venice
William Boyce
John Stanley
b 1711–1779
b 1712–1786
n English w c.180
A rival of Arne in London’s 18thcentury music theatres Boyce also enjoyed national popularity with his instrumental music, songs, and secular choral works, often written in an italianate, late-Baroque style. A mild, diligent man, his music varies in quality, but his best works, such as Solomon or his 12 Sonatas, show technical accomplishment and a gift for melody. MILESTONES
1736 1742 1747
Appointed composer to Chapel Royal Composes Solomon, serenata Writes 12 Sonatas for Two Violins and Bass
1749 Boyce Festival held in Cambridge 1761 Composes for George III’s coronation 1770s Deafness forces him to give up work
n English
w 50
Blinded at the age of two, Stanley began studying music five years later as a diversion, but progressed so fast that by age 12 he was a church organist and by 17 was Oxford’s youngest music graduate. He was also a fine violinist, and directed concerts in London’s booming subscription scene, as well as Handel’s oratorios. Known today for his organ voluntaries, he also composed fine concertos and cantatas which move forwards from Handel to the newer, lighter “galant” sound. MILESTONES
1742
Composes Six Concertos, Op. 2
1748
First set of organ voluntaries published
1779
Succeeds William Boyce as Master of the King’s Band
127
The
CLASSICAL ERA
1750 1820 —
Between 1750 and 1820, composers such as Haydn, Mozart, and Beethoven developed a new, simpler musical style, whose maxims – clarity, restraint, and balance – mirrored contemporary intellectual and artistic values. Almost every subsequent development in Western art music can be traced back to this period. mong the forerunners of the Classical era were composers such as C P E Bach, Johann Quantz, and Baldassare Galuppi. Their works were a reaction against the complexity of Baroque music – its intricate polyphony, counterpoint, and ornamented melody. Instead, composers aimed for a style where a simple melody was accompanied by harmonic progressions. The Enlightenment, with its focus on rational, human ideals, played a major part in this shift in aesthetic values. So, too, did interest in the simple elegance of Greek and Roman art and architecture, inspired in part by the discovery of the ruins of Pompeii in 1748. Socially and politically, this was a time of great change, with the effects of the Industrial Revolution and colonization creating a larger middle
A
VIENNESE COURT ORCHESTRA, MID-18TH CENTURY
The red-coated orchestra entertains the guests at a banquet in the Hofburg Palace, Vienna. In the Classical era, Vienna became the musical centre of Europe.
class keen to become consumers of the arts. At the same time, the aristocracies of Europe, suffering from the ravages of the Napoleonic Wars, were less able to support musicians, and the old patronage system started to crumble.
PROFESSIONAL MUSICIANS Traditionally, musicians employed by aristocratic courts were numbered among the servants – below the valets. However, as public concerts became more common, they were able to earn money from their performances, and publishing their compositions ensured a further income. Haydn, who was employed by the Esterházy family, was given frequent leave to travel, and towards the end of his life he had transcended his lowly position to become part of the court. Mozart, employed by the Archbishop of Salzburg, was not given the same freedoms and, resenting his servile position, moved to Vienna to become one of the very
128
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
first freelance musicians. However, the music world could not yet support such an ambition, and he suffered considerable financial hardship. When Beethoven moved to Vienna in 1794, he succeeded in gaining the support of wealthy patrons and never had to hold an official appointment.
EVOLVING GENRES As instrumental music became more popular than vocal music for the first time, composers had to develop ways of creating larger musical canvasses that could support more intense listening. The result was the “Sonata Principle” (sometimes known as Sonata Form), a musical structure consisting of three sections. Its use became almost synonymous with the first movements not only of sonatas, but also of symphonies and indeed most instrumental music of the era. It has remained in use until the present day.
THE SONATA PRINCIPLE
Music structured according to the “Sonata Principle” begins with an Exposition, which introduces the musical material and tends to be repeated. Two themes are usually presented, the second in a key a fifth higher than the original (tonic) key. The next section – the Development – alters the themes, frequently fragmenting them and playing them in different keys before leading the music to the third section, the Recapitulation. Here the opening themes are played again, but this time all in the tonic key. This structure allows a large span of music to be built from relatively little material with a minimum of repetition. THE WALDSTEIN SONATA
Beethoven’s Waldstein Sonata, Op. 53, is a brilliant example of the Classical sonata form.
The symphony evolved from the small-scale Baroque sinfonia into an iconic art form. Usually in four movements, the symphony would start with a gripping “sonata allegro” movement, followed by a slow movement. The third movement was usually an elegant minuet, but this evolved into the scherzo, which could be humorous, or express a more ironic, elemental passion. The finale was frequently a rondo, in which repetitions of a catchy, upbeat melody were interspersed with contrasting themes. THE YOUNG MOZART AT THE PIANO
Between 1762 and 1767 the prodigious Mozart and his sister Nannerl toured all the main musical centres of Germany as well as Switzerland, Paris, and London.
TIMELINE: THE CLASSICAL ERA 1753 C P E Bach starts work on The True Art of Keyboard Playing
1750 w 1759 Voltaire’s Candide published
w 1774 Start of reign of Louis XVI. Court life was one of elegant formality, expressed in dances such as the minuet
1762 First performance of Gluck’s Orfeo ed Euridice; Mozart begins touring Europe aged 6
1760 1763 s Ruins of Pompeii identified
1770
1780 1775 Start of the American Revolution
1781 Haydn composes 6 String Quartets, Op. 33
Other genres were also redefined. The three-movement concerto became a vehicle for just one soloist in which the ideals of balance and elegance were matched by instrumental virtuosity, while the sonata developed into a more formal composition for one or two instruments. The rise in domestic music-making created a market for new forms of chamber music, such as the string quartet – invented by Haydn – and the piano trio. The symphony orchestra became a broadly standardized entity, smaller but not very different from the orchestra of today. With the orchestra’s fuller sound, the role of the continuo gradually died out; instead, the first violin directed the orchestra until eventually displaced by a specialist conductor. Orchestras 1786 First performance of Mozart’s The Marriage of Figaro in Vienna
1795 First performance of Haydn’s “London” Symphony, No. 104; Beethoven publishes Op. 1 trios
1790 1789 French Revolution
1791 First performance of The Magic Flute in Vienna; death of Mozart
PERFORMANCE OF HAYDN’S CREATION
This performance of Haydn’s great oratorio was given in the festival hall of Vienna’s Old University in honour of the composer in 1808, the year before his death.
now had a far greater dynamic range. In the 1740s, the crescendos and diminuendos of the Mannheim Court orchestra, under Johann Stamitz, caused a sensation and were soon a staple of all symphonic writing.
THE OPERA In opera, notably in the works of Gluck and Mozart, plots were now chosen for greater dramatic realism and music was written to serve the drama rather than decorate it. Gradually, Italian began to lose its dominance as important works were written in German and French.
1804 s Napoleon made Emperor
1800 1798 Haydn’s Creation first performed in Vienna
1824 First performance of Beethoven’s Symphony No. 9 in Vienna
1810 1803 Beethoven completes the “Eroica” Symphony
1808 First performance of Beethoven’s Symphonies No. 5 and No. 6; Goethe publishes Faust part 1
1820 w 1827 Death of Beethoven
130
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
Christoph von Gluck b 1714–1787
n German
w 93
Although lacking the musical finesse of his rivals, Gluck earned himself a place in music history with the reforms he brought to opera. Espousing a more continuous texture in which music served the poetry and drama of the libretto rather than the singer’s virtuosity, he employed vivid characterization, simple plots, and largescale planning of music to bring universal human themes and emotions to life. LIFE AND MUSIC
Largely self-taught, Gluck became an organist and cellist in Prague before moving to Vienna, and then Milan, where he joined an orchestra and studied composition with Sammartini, a leading symphonist. The success of Gluck’s first opera ensured commissions that took him all over Europe, but he returned to Vienna where he was appointed Kapellmeister of the Opera. He and poet Ranieri Calzabigi drew up a manifesto of operatic reform, eschewing stylized convention in favour of a symbiosis of music and drama. Starting with Orfeo ed Euridice, Gluck’s work permanently changed operatic norms, whilst causing some controversy, particularly in conservative Paris.
MILESTONES
1727 1735 1737 1741
Leaves home to study in Prague Arrives in Vienna; meets Prince Melzi Studies under Sammartini in Milan Debut opera Artasere is an instant success
1745
Presents two operas in London and befriends Handel
1748 1750 1754 1762 1764
Opera Semiramide is staged in Vienna Marries the heiress Marianna Bergin Employed at Vienna Opera Writes opera Orfeo ed Euridice (in Italian) Writes opera La rencontre imprévue
1767
Alceste is premiered; it is later published with a preface on reforming opera
1774
Stages opera Iphigénie en Aulide in Paris; made kapellmeister of Vienna Opera
1779
Suffers a stroke and retires
KEY WORKS LA RENCONTRE IMPRÉVUE OPERA
d 110:00
p3
ocv
Also known as Les pèlerins de la Mecque, this was Gluck’s last work in the opéra comique style, incorporating spoken dialogue. Set in Cairo, it features a “harem escape”, a plot much in vogue in an 18th-century Vienna This fine score is of the Italian version of Orfeo ed Euridice. The 1774 French version includes the famous “Dance of the Blessed Spirits”.
fascinated by Islam and by Turkish music. It was performed extensively in Europe and revived in Vienna in 1780, when it influenced Mozart in his writing of Die Entführung aus dem Serail. IPHIGÉNIE EN TAURIDE OPERA
d 102:00
p4
ocv
Probably Gluck’s finest work, this was written at the same time as Piccini’s opera on the same theme, splitting Paris into Gluckists and Piccinists. Its first performance in 1779 was Gluck’s greatest triumph, and much later it even inspired Berlioz to become a musician. The music is dramatic, expressive, and almost symphonic in its orchestration.
131
CH R I STOP H VON GLUCK
FOCUS ORFEO ED EURIDICE OPERA
d 120:00
p3
ocv
In this, the first of Calzabigi and Gluck’s “reform operas”, their aim was to conjure a “beautiful serenity”. Choosing a simple Greek tragedy in preference to the labyrinthine plots employed in opera seria, and using only three rather than six soloists, they created a work of unprecedented directness. The role of Orpheus was originally written for a castrato, but recast as a high tenor when the opera was extended and rewritten in French as Orphée for Paris in 1774. Later rearranged by Berlioz, it is now usually performed by an alto voice. ACT ONE (36:00) Lamenting Euridice’s death, Orfeo sends away the mourning nymphs and shepherds and decides to bring her back from Hades. Cupid tells him he will succeed if he soothes the Furies with music and avoids looking at her until they are across the River Styx. ACT TWO (44:00) At the gates of Hades Orpheus quells the Furies with his music and enters. In the Elysian Fields beyond, he finds Euridice and, with eyes averted, leads her back. ACT THREE (40:00) Orpheus hurries on as Euridice pleads for reassurance. No longer able to refuse, he turns
and she dies again. Overcome, he sings the aria “Che farò senza Euridice”, vowing to kill himself, but Cupid restores her to life amidst rejoicing. ALCESTE OPERA
d 135:00
p3
ocv
The second of the “reform operas”, Alceste was published with a preface that declared Gluck’s new principles of opera. The opera was altered considerably for Paris, but the original Italian plot is described below. ACT ONE (50:00) King Admetus is dying while his Queen, Alceste, makes sacrifices at the temple. The oracle declares that he will live if someone will take his place. Alceste offers herself. ACT TWO (60:00) In the Grove of Death the orchestra imitates the sounds of the night. Calling upon the Underworld, she insists on her sacrifice providing she can bid her family farewell. Admetus discovers why he has returned to health and vows to die himself instead. ACT THREE (25:00) About to take her farewell, Alceste is seized by the Furies and dies. Admetus issues threats and lamentations, but when he threatens suicide, Apollo restores Alceste to life.
132
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
Carl Philippe Emanuel Bach b 1714–1788
n German
w 875
Possibly the most important composer of his generation, C P E Bach bridged the gap between the Baroque style of his father, J S Bach, and the Classical style of Haydn and Mozart. The main exponent of the empfindsamer Stil, an expressive musical style, he also developed the sonata, and was renowned as a keyboard player whose True Art of Keyboard Playing is the major treatise on 18th-century music. LIFE AND MUSIC
The second son of J S Bach, C P E Bach studied with his father until appointed court harpsichordist to Frederick II of Prussia. Although poorly paid, Bach composed, taught, and performed at the courts of Berlin and Potsdam for some 30 years before leaving to succeed his godfather, Georg Philipp Telemann as Kantor and music director in Hamburg. Opportunity now abounded and Bach became responsible for 200 performances a year at five churches and started to write non-secular vocal music. The bulk of his works are, however, instrumental.
MILESTONES
1731
Studies law at Leipzig university
1738
Becomes harpsichordist to Crown Prince Frederick of Prussia
1744
Marries Johanna Danneman
1749
Writes Trio Sonata in C minor, “Sanguineus and Melancholicus”, WQ161/1
1755
Composes Flute Concerto in G major, WQ169
1757
Writes Symphony in E flat major, WQ179
1768
Appointed Kantor and master of Church music at Hamburg
KEY WORKS SIX PRUSSIAN SONATAS KEYBOARD
d 90:00
p6
s
Bach’s first published works, dedicated to Frederick II, were written not for the harpsichord, but for the much quieter and more sensitive clavichord, which could better express the subtle, but intensely emotional, nuances inherent in the empfindsamer Stil.
Among more than 150 of Bach’s works in this form, each of these sonatas is written in three movements: fast, slow, and very fast. SYMPHONY IN E FLAT MAJOR, WQ179 ORCHESTRAL
d 11:15
p3
o
Among the last of the eight “Berlin” Symphonies, this piece clearly reflects the new Classical style, with its light homophonic (rather than complex polyphonic) effects. The symphony opens with an arresting movement, followed by a particularly sensitive Larghetto, and closes with a jaunty finale, showcasing the horns. An autographed score from C P E Bach’s notebook (1714–1788). Original scores can offer invaluable insights into his intentions and views on performance.
133
TH E CL A SSI CA L E R A
FOCUS MAGNIFICAT IN D MAJOR, WQ215 MASS SETTING
d 45:00
p9
ocv
Bach modelled his first major choral piece on his father’s Magnificat (BWV 243). Although adapting the same key and text, he achieved rather more homophonic and melodious effects. Scored for trumpets, drums, flutes, oboes, horns, and strings, with four vocal soloists, it is one of the few major choral pieces to be written after J S Bach and before Haydn. MAGNIFICAT (3:00) Opening with a full chorus, this spirited movement alternates choral and orchestral parts. QUIA RESPEXIT (6:50) This lyrical soprano solo with string accompaniment encapsulates Bach’s expressive style. QUIA FECIT MIHI MAGNA (4:00) After a strong and direct opening, the tenor solo takes a virtuosic and agile role. ET MISERICORDIA (7:00) With its lovely harmonies and quiet drama, this movement is very forward-looking. FECIT POTENTIAM (4:00) For the first time since the start, the trumpets return to characterize this powerful bass solo. DEPOSUIT POTENTES (7:50) A duet for tenor and alto, this movement is based on that of J S Bach’s Magnificat. SUSCEPIT ISRAEL (5:00) A haunting and slightly Baroque solo for alto.
GLORIA PATRI (3:00) With full orchestra and chorus, musical material from the first movement is repeated. SICUT ERAT (5:00) The glorious closing fugue anticipates Mozart’s Requiem.
FLUTE CONCERTO IN G MAJOR, WQ169 ORCHESTRAL
d 24:00
p3
os
One of five flute concertos adapted from Bach’s keyboard compositions, this piece is perhaps the most virtuosic. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO DI MOLTO, 10:50)
After a vigorous opening with some “sighing” motifs, the flute enters with music of a much gentler nature. SECOND MOVEMENT (LARGO, 8:50) The strings set the scene for a pleading slow movement, while the flute responds with long, rhetorical phrases culminating in a tender cadenza. THIRD MOVEMENT (PRESTO, 5:00) In this elegant finale of some rhythmic verve, the flautist has frequent opportunities to relish the highly virtuosic writing. INFLUENCES
When Carl Czerny went to study with Beethoven, he was immediately required to purchase C P E Bach’s True Art of Keyboard Playing. Perhaps now better known than any of his music, it codified contemporaneous musical style and established technical norms – including fingering – which underpinned most later keyboard playing.
134
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
Johann Adolf Hasse b 1699–1783
n German
In the mid-1700s, Hasse’s operas – staged in highquality productions, and tailored to individual singers – made him famous throughout Europe. His emphasis on beauty rather than complexity paved the way for the Classical style. Fêted by the nobility and royalty of Vienna, Naples, Paris, London, and Berlin, he was also admired by both J S Bach and Mozart. One of Alessandro Scarlatti’s last pupils in Naples, he went on to serve for 30 years as musical director at the Dresden court, where music flourished. Hasse’s vast output, very often composed at speed, includes 63 operas, 90 cantatas, and 80 flute concertos written for Frederick II of Prussia.
w 1,600
MILESTONES
1730
Artaserse, opera, performed in Venice
1730
Marries famous Italian mezzosoprano, Faustino Bordoni Cleofide, opera, performed in Dresden; it impresses J S Bach
1731 1742
Lucio Papiro, opera, staged in Dresden
Hasse staged lavish productions at the Dresden Semperoper, often with the help of the librettist Pietro Metastasio.
Johann Joachim Quantz b 1697–1773
n German
The son of a blacksmith, Quantz started learning music at the age of only 11. After training in Italy, France and England, he switched from the oboe to become one of the first professional flute players in Europe. A star member of the Dresden orchestra, he was spotted by the future Frederick II of Prussia, whom he went on to serve for over 30 years as a hard-worked but richly rewarded flute teacher, maker, composer and performer. Quantz’s
w c.600
massive output, mostly for Frederick, includes 300 flute concertos and 235 flute sonatas, of variable quality, but all craftsmanlike. His book on the flute made him famous throughout Europe. MILESTONES
1718 1719 1727 1739 1741 1752
Appointed court oboist in Dresden Specializes in the flute Adds a second key to the flute Begins making flutes Starts work for Frederick II of Prussia Publishes On Playing the Tranverse Flute
A keen flautist, Frederick II of Prussia performed for his courtiers under the expert guidance of his tutor, Johann Quantz.
TH E CL A SSI CA L E R A
Johann Wenzel Anton Stamitz
Leopold Mozart
b 1717–1757
b 1719–1787
n Czech
w 150
The Classical symphony developed at intensely musical centres, such as the Electoral Court at Mannheim in Germany, where Stamitz served as violinist, composer, and musical director. A star contributor, he brought international fame to the orchestra with its impeccable and dynamic renderings of his symphonies. Although he wrote countless concertos, he is famous for his 58 surviving symphonies, which established the four-movement pattern and the Classical style. Four other members of the Stamitz family, including his sons, Carl and Johann (Anton), became prominent musicians. MILESTONES
1741 1750
Works at the court of Mannheim
1754 1755
Enjoys a season in Paris Publishes Orchestral Trios, Op. 1
Serves as musical director at Mannheim
135
n German w c.550
The father of Wolfgang Amadeus, Leopold was a noted court composer and violin teacher. Despite supporting his gifted son – as teacher, agent, and editor – he found time to pursue his own career. Haughty and hard to please, he was nevertheless a man of wit and wisdom who wrote copious concertos, symphonies, serenades, and church music, but probably not the “Toy” Symphony often credited to him. MILESTONES
1743 1756 1747 1757
Becomes court violinist at Salzburg Publishes popular violin tutor Marries Anna Maria Pertl Becomes court composer at Salzburg
1769
Writes Symphony in G major, G16, “Neue Lambacher” (New Lambach)
1778
Wife dies on tour with Wolfgang
François-Joseph Gossec b 1734–1829
n Belgian
Gossec started his career as a court employee and ended up as the foremost musical representative of the French Revolution. A farmer’s son, he had come to Paris as a protégé of Jean-Philippe Rameau, and worked for both private and court orchestras while composing comic operas, with mixed success. However, he became a key musician in Paris after founding the Concert des Amateurs, an independent orchestra, before directing the renowned MILESTONES
1751 1754
Becomes a chorister at Antwerp Composes Symphony No. 1
1766
Les pêcheurs (The Fishermen), opera, first performed
1770 1773
Founds the Concert des Amateurs Directs the Concert Spirituel
1795
Appointed Professor of Composition at the Paris Conservatoire
w 160
Concerts Spirituels and organizing the École Royale. During the Revolution, he resigned his post at the Opéra and wrote pro-Revolutionary works. Though overshadowed by other composers, he stimulated a revival of instrumental music in dance-dominated France. French rebels stormed the Bastille in Paris in 1789, inspiring Gossec to create dramatic instrumental works celebrating the Revolutionary ideals.
136
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
Hay
“My Prince was always satisfied…and I was in a position to improve, alter, and be as bold as I pleased.” FRANZ JOSEPH HAYDN, ON HIS EMPLOYER, PRINCE NICOLAUS
137
F R A N Z J O SE P H H AY DN
Franz Joseph Haydn
ydn b 1732–1809
n Austrian
w 1,195
Born in the Baroque era, and still alive when Beethoven composed his “Pastoral” Symphony, Haydn was a key figure in the evolution of the Classical style. Writing a vast oeuvre within the protective confines of the Esterházy court, and establishing the standard forms of the symphony, sonata, and string quartet, he emerged as an international musical figure who both influenced Mozart and taught Beethoven.
LIFE
Possessing a fine singing voice, Haydn received elementary music training as a choirboy, but when his voice broke he had to earn a meagre living from performing in ensembles and teaching children. He continued his studies by reading treatises, until the singer Nicola Porpora helped him to hone his compositional skills. He was introduced to a number of influential people, and became Count Morzin’s music director in 1759. On the strength of his Symphony No. 1, Haydn was appointed Vizekapellmeister at the court of one of the richest and most influential Hungarian families, the Esterházys, and by 1766 had taken full responsibility for their music. Composing new instrumental works for the twice-weekly concerts, as well as for festivities, church, and theatre, he developed his skills unmolested by market forces. When Prince Nicolaus died in 1790, Haydn’s music had already been published all over Europe. An invitation from the impresario J P Salomon to present new works in England swiftly followed, and during two extended stays Haydn amassed a fortune, and was awarded a doctorate from Oxford University. He was recalled to the Royal Court in 1795, following the accession of Prince Nicolaus’s grandson, and remained active as a composer in Vienna until 1803.
The music of Haydn is full of bold effects, but also has an intimate lyricism, as can be seen in his greatest work, The Creation.
Total: 1,195
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (108)
2
OTHER ORCHESTRAL (65)
2
42
CHAMBER (707) SOLO INSTRUMENTAL (101)
27
24
13
26
10
11
15
1
105
104
43
206
249
17
31
35
18
OPERA (25)
1
9
11
3
1
CHORAL (88)
4
14
12
1
53
4
2
4
36
49
10
SONG (101)
1732
1749
1760
1770
1780
1790
1800
1809
138
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
MUSIC
Mostly self-taught and largely cut off at court from mainstream music, Haydn later suggested that this very isolation had forced his originality upon him. While his oeuvre includes practically every genre of music, from folk-song arrangements to opera, it is through his innovations in instrumental music that Haydn had the greatest influence. Although frequently referred to as the “father of the symphony”, he did not invent the form, but his 108 works in the genre pioneered its evolution, from a threemovement Baroque overture for fewer than 20 players to the dramatic fourmovement form for as many as 60, which became the Classical period’s finest legacy. Equally influential in the development of the instrumental sonata, he guided its transformation from the lightweight divertimento into a work of far greater gravitas which,
During his two 18-month sojourns in England between 1791 and 1795, Haydn composed 12 symphonies, known collectively as the London Symphonies. They include the “Surprise”, “Drumroll”, and “London”.
modelled on the structure of the concerto, included a substantial slow movement. Haydn’s finest achievement, however, was in the creation of a new medium: the string quartet. Whereas orchestral works had sometimes been performed by four players, and some pieces had been composed for the same combination with the accompaniment of a continuo part, Haydn established a genre in which each instrument was equal and independent.
MILESTONES
1740
Becomes a choirboy at St Stephen’s Cathedral, Vienna
1772
First performance of “Farewell” Symphony, No. 45
1753
Starts to work as accompanist to singer Nicola Porpora
1791
1759
Composes Symphony No. 1
First visit to England, where he remains for 18 months; composes six symphonies including “Surprise” Symphony, No. 94
1760
Marries Maria Keller, but they later separate after an unhappy marriage
1792
Meets and starts teaching Beethoven
1794
Returns to England for a further 18 months; composes “English” Sonata, and is commissioned to write oratorio The Creation
1795
Returns to the court of Esterházy, where he focuses on church music, writing six Masses in the following years
1796
Composes Trumpet Concerto for Anton Weidinger’s new keyed trumpet
1798
First performance of The Creation is given in Vienna and is an immediate success; composes “Nelson” Mass
1761
Becomes Vizekapellmeister at the court of Esterházy
1762 1765
Assumed date for String Quartet No. 1 Composes Cello Concerto No. 1
Hadyn composed many operas for the Italian opera company employed by Prince Nicolaus at his sumptuous pleasure palace at Esterháza.
139
F R A N Z J O SE P H H AY DN
KEY WORKS TRUMPET CONCERTO ORCHESTRAL
d 13:00
p3
os
In this, the first work written for the newly invented keyed trumpet, Haydn took full advantage of the instrument’s ability to play all the notes within its compass by boldly presenting running passages and cantabile melodies in its lower range. Premiered in Vienna in 1800 by the instrument’s inventor, Anton Weidinger, the concerto remains a cornerstone of every trumpet player’s repertoire.
CELLO CONCERTO NO. 1 ORCHESTRAL
d 26:00
p3
os
Rediscovered in 1961, Haydn’s Cello Concerto No. 1 immediately joined its brother, the Cello Concerto No. 2, in the standard repertoire. It shows Baroque tendencies in its reiteration of passages for full orchestra (ritornellos), while its mood is Rococo. On a grand scale throughout, the outer movements demand considerable agility and stamina, while the slow movement was composed to showcase the Esterházy cellist’s beautiful tone.
“ENGLISH” SONATA, HOB.XVI/52 SOLO PIANO
d 13:00
p3
s
Numbering over 50, Haydn’s piano sonatas have a staggering variety and originality. Featuring a rather whimsical first movement, the “English” Sonata (1794) is notable for its use of some of the first notated pedal effects, while the breadth of its Adagio was made possible by the mellow tone and resonating capacity of a new piano by John Broadwood. The amusing Finale takes great pleasure in sending the pianist down numerous wrong turns. Renowned mezzo-soprano Cecilia Bartoli appears in Haydn’s opera L’anima del filosofo at the Royal Opera House, London.
“NELSON” MASS MASS SETTING
d 42:00
p5
ocv
Originally titled Mass in Straitened Times, the subsequent sobriquet was probably coined when Haydn met Lord Nelson in 1800. Lacking woodwind and horns, following their disbandment at court, the work has a unique sound for the period. INFLUENCES
Although he was a musician’s musician, after his death in 1809 Haydn’s music was frequently dismissed as inferior to that of Mozart and a mere precursor to Beethoven’s compositions. However, it has rightly been said that few music innovations in the century following Haydn’s death could not be traced back to his works.
140
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
FOCUS STRING QUARTET NO. 63, “SUNRISE”, OP. 76, NO. 4 d 22:00
CHAMBER
p4
FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO CON SPIRITO 8:00)
The spacious improvisatory violin ascending over a single chord that opens this piece led to comparisons with a sunrise, giving the work its nickname. The later passages have an expansiveness that is almost Romantic. SECOND MOVEMENT (ADAGIO 6:00) A serene meditation with subtle interplay between the instruments, this movement, in the tradition of all the greatest chamber music, removes the listener from all that is mundane.
e
Having decided not to move to England, Haydn returned to Esterhaza in 1795, where his duties were now far lighter, and his international fame made him more of a trophy than a servant. No longer composing sonatas and symphonies, he turned once again to the more private medium of the string quartet, distilling the experiments of a long career into eight final works that demonstrate his total mastery over the genre which he had himself invented.
THIRD MOVEMENT (MENUETTO, ALLEGRO 4:00)
Exuding charm and jovial good humour, the Minuet leads into a folklike Trio, featuring a droning bass over a fragmented minorkey melody. FINALE (ALLEGRO MA NON TROPPO 4:00)
At first deceptively amiable and laconic, even perhaps reminiscent of English folk song, the pace of the finale The string quartet, in which each instrument plays an equal part, was Haydn’s greatest achievement.
SYMPHONY NO. 104 IN D MAJOR “LONDON” ORCHESTRAL
d 26:30
p4
FIRST MOVEMENT (ADAGIO , ALLEGRO, 8:05)
After a solemn introduction in the minor key, the main theme of the Allegro is surprisingly lyrical. This is swiftly usurped by faster, more exuberant music that makes frequent use of trumpets and drums. SECOND MOVEMENT (ANDANTE, 7:45) After the charmingly poised opening melody, the sudden entry of the full orchestra is a real surprise. After this
o
Twelve of Haydn’s later symphonies are known collectively as the “London” Symphonies. This was his final work in the series – and in the genre. Taking advantage of a far larger orchestra than he was used to in Vienna, this work features some of his most majestic music. Adagio – Allegro; Quadruple time/Duple 1time; D major; Sonata form
Duple time; 2 Andante; G major; Ternary form
Development Coda
Second subject played by strings Introduction 1
Overture in French style; Adagio; D minor
Exposition 2
Repeat of Exposition 3
First subject played by violins
4
5
Recapitulation 6
Recapitulation starts in strings with repeated notes
7
First Section 8
Two bars of silence
9
Second section in minor key Second Section
10
11
Full orchestra – tragic theme
12
13
changes drastically towards the end, concluding the quartet with an effervescent flourish. THE CREATION d 99:00
ORATORIO
p3
ocv
After hearing performances of Handel’s oratorios in London, Haydn was inspired to write a similarly largescale biblical work. The Creation was commissioned by Johann Salomon, who presented an English libretto based on the book of Genesis, which Haydn had had translated into German. The piece was an immediate success in both England and Germany, and became Haydn’s most performed work. PART ONE (36:00) The opening representation of chaos is possibly the most extraordinary music of the period. Conjuring timelessness, Haydn juxtaposed seemingly incongruous ideas, allowing harmonies to meander until, with a blaze of glory, the chorus sings, “Let there be light.” The music then introduces each act of the Creation with a disquieting display of drama and passion, the return to gentility is never quite assured.
The Hungarian conductor Antal Dorati has recorded all of Haydn’s symphonies.
THIRD MOVEMENT
FINALE: SPIRITOSO (6:15)
FOURTH MOVEMENT
(MENUETTO – ALLEGRO, 4:15) Far faster than earlier minuets, the third movement with its frequent syncopations, surprises, and the orchestral timbre of the Trio, point firmly in the direction of Beethoven.
Third Section
Coda
Menuetto
15
Full orchestra plays
16
Development
Trio 17
Claimed both as a traditional Croatian folk tune and as a London street seller’s cry, the earthy melody used in the final movement brings Haydn’s career as a symphonist to a joyful end. (spiritoso); 4 Finale Duple time: D major; Sonata form
Menuetto – Allegro; 3Minuet Triple time; D major; and Trio form
14
recitative, followed by one or more lyrical commentaries and concluded by the chorus in a hymn of praise. PART TWO (37:00) Continuing with the “fifth day”, Haydn achieves a remarkable musical depiction of the poetry of Genesis, most particularly of the animals, from the roaring of tigers to the gentle pastorality of cows, and even the “sinuous worm”. PART THREE (26:00) The first humans, Adam and Eve, praise God and the act of Creation before a choral fugue brings the work to a glorious end.
Menuetto 18
Oboe introduces Trio in B flat minor
19
Menuetto repeated as before
Exposition 20
21
Repeat of Exposition 22
Horns and cellos play bassnote “drone”, then violins introduce first subject
23
Return of first subject (violins Coda and oboes) Recapitulation
24
Imitation between strings
25
Imitation in woodwind
26
142
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
Johann Christian Bach b 1735–1782 n German w c.360 and into the concert hall. After enjoying The most versatile and financial success, fame, and respect, his cosmopolitan of J S reputation faded: his concerts lost money, Bach’s composing sons, he was defrauded, and he suffered a “the London Bach” composed operas in Milan before moving long and debilitating chest illness. to England and becoming music master to the royal family. He helped establish Concerts performed at the Hanover Square Rooms in London, featuring the Classical era, partly with music in many fashionable musicians, the new lighter style – especially his were popular in the 18th century. symphonies and piano concertos – and also with the acclaimed public concerts he organized with the celebrated harpsichord player Carl Friedrich Abel, taking musical emphasis away from the church MILESTONES
1760 1762 1763 1764 1768
Becomes cathedral organist in Milan Moves to London Writes variations on God Save the King First Bach–Abel concerts performed Plays first piano solo in public
c.1781 Composes Symphonies for Double Orchestra, Op.18
Johann Albrechtsberger b 1736–1809
n Austrian
w 750
Many, including his friend Mozart, considered Albrechtsberger one of the world’s greatest organists. He was also a prolific composer, writing keyboard pieces, church compositions with fine oratorios, and a range of other works, including a curious Concerto for Jew’s Harp. As a composition teacher, known for his skill in counterpoint, he was in great demand. One of his pupils was Beethoven, whose later fugues reflect Albrechtsberger’s enthusiasm for the form. MILESTONES
Karl Ditters von Dittersdorf b 1739–1799
n Austrian
w c.200
A prolific composer of more than 100 symphonies, 40 concertos, as well as several comic operas, Karl Ditters (ennobled in 1773 with the title “von Dittersdorf ”) mainly wrote accessible, craftsmanlike music in the popular genres of the time, spanning the development of the Viennese Classical style. He held various court appointments and was a virtuoso violinist, gaining considerable celebrity through performing his own concertos. MILESTONES
1764
Writes Mass for Frankfurt coronation of Archduke Joseph
1772
Becomes court organist, Vienna
1786
Doktor und apotheker, opera, performed
1790
Publishes popular textbook: Fundamentals of Composition
1786
Composes twelve symphonies based on Ovid’s Metamorphoses
1793 1794
Kapellmeister at St Stephen’s, Vienna Tutors Beethoven
1795
Sacked by Schaffgotsch, Prince of Breslau; awarded meagre pension
143
TH E CL A SSI CA L E R A
Giovanni Paisiello b 1740–1816
n Italian
Jean Paul Martini w 180
The most popular opera composer of the late 1700s was not Mozart but Paisiello, a Neapolitan whose reputation brought him lucrative posts with Catherine the Great, Napoleon, and the King of Naples. Over 30 of his operas were successes. His light, rhythmic style and melodic turns of phrase, as in his The Barber of Seville (the first opera setting of the story), influenced Mozart’s The Marriage of Figaro and Don Giovanni, as well as Rossini, Bellini, and Donizetti. MILESTONES
b 1741–1816
n French
w 150
Born in Germany, Martini established a successful career as a court musician in France. There he adapted shrewdly to the changing regimes throughout the Revolution, first directing concerts for the Queen, later writing music for Napoleon’s marriage, and finally writing for the restored Royal Chapel. At best a minor innovator, Martini’s melodic operas had mixed success, but L’amoureux de quinze ans, written in 1771, enjoyed considerable popularity, while his highly regarded church music combined old forms with modern theatricality, and his chansons, such as “Plaisir d’amour”, were influential. In 1800 he became professor of composition at the Paris Conservatoire.
1776
Works for Catherine II in St Petersburg
MILESTONES
1782 1789 1802
Writes The Barber of Seville, opera Composes Nina, opera Works for Napoleon in Paris
1783 1793 1814
Writes Le droit du seigneur, opera “Prière pour le Roi”, political song Composes Scene héroïque pour Napoléon
Luigi Boccherini b 1743–1805 n Italian w c.600 After studying in Rome and gaining acclaim as an outstanding cello virtuoso in Italy, Boccherini toured Europe to seek his fortune. Following success in Paris, he was invited to Madrid to be court chamber composer to the Infante Don Luis. There he wrote quintets – for his cello with Don Luis’s existing quartet. Though still popular in Paris, Boccherini – who saw both wives and several of his children die – was dogged by illness and bad luck in his last years, and died in obscurity and poverty in a tiny apartment. MILESTONES
1757
Studies in Rome
1767
Success in Paris; publishes his first chamber music
1770 1771
Starts work for Don Luis Writes String Quintet in E major
1786
Appointed court composer for Friedrich Wilhelm II of Prussia
1800
Lucien Bonaparte becomes patron
“There is perhaps no instrumental music more ingenious, elegant, and pleasing than his quintets”, Charles Burney wrote of Boccherini in 1770.
144
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
Carl Stamitz b 1745–1801
n German
w 250 Europe, spending three years in London, where he worked with J C Bach. After a period at the court of William V, Prince of Orange, and more travelling, he ended up as music director and teacher at Jena University. But there was unhappiness: all his children died in infancy, his debts mounted, and his ambitious plans (even attempts at alchemy) came to nothing.
Son of Johann, head of the renowned Mannheim orchestra, Carl Stamitz was a violinist who became a prolific composer of lyrical, flowing orchestral music. He wrote 50 symphonies, around 25 symphonies concertante, and over 60 concertos. He went to Paris to work as a court composer, performing at the Concerts Spirituels and publishing his music. He then worked around
MILESTONES
1762
Gains position as second violin in Elector of Mannheim’s court orchestra
1770
Moves to Paris; begins concert career as virtuoso of violin and viola d’amore
1778 1780 1790 1795
Holds own benefit concert in London Goes to work in The Hague Goes on working visit to Russia Moves to Jena Born in Mannheim, Carl Stamitz’s first appointment was as a violinist in the court orchestra. His father, its director, had built it up to being the best in Europe.
Domenico Cimarosa b 1749–1801
n Italian
w 110
Shortly after leaving composition classes, Cimarosa burst onto the scene with his comic opera Le stravaganze del conte in Naples. After that, his 60 light, elegant operas, mostly comic, with witty and lively ensembles, were staged all over Europe. He also wrote chamber music in a Mozart-like style. When Napoleon occupied Naples in 1799, Cimarosa – then organist at the royal chapel – wrote a song of praise which was sung at the burning of the royal flag – only to see the king re-take the city and throw him in jail. His reputation saved his head, but he was exiled and died soon after in Venice. MILESTONES
1772 1780 1787
Le stravaganze del conte, opera, premiered L’Italiana in Londra staged at La Scala Visits court at St Petersburg
1792
Il matrimonio segreto, opera, staged while Kapellmeister in Vienna for two years
1793
Returns to Naples; accepts royal post
Cimarosa was probably the most successful Italian opera composer until Rossini. His biggest triumph was Il matrimonio segreto (The Secret Marriage).
145
TH E CL A SSI CA L E R A
Muzio Clementi b 1752–1832
n English
w 178
Largely forgotten today, Clementi was one of the first piano virtuosos. He codified his intimate knowledge of the new instrument in Gradus ad Parnassum, a seminal work of 19th-century piano teaching consisting of 100 piano studies. Also a successful publisher and piano manufacturer, he was much celebrated in his lifetime and was buried in Westminster Cathedral, where his epitaph reads, “The father of the pianoforte”. LIFE AND MUSIC A child prodigy, Clementi was “bought” from his Italian father at the age of 13 and taken to a wealthy household in the southwest of England, where he occupied himself entirely with studying the harpsichord for seven years. Moving to London in 1774, he became England’s pre-eminent keyboard player, but after two European tours and a piano “duel” with Mozart, he retired from the concert stage and concentrated on teaching. Clementi subsequently founded a music-publishing and piano-manufacturing firm, travelling extensively to establish it, and secured the publishing rights to several of Beethoven’s compositions. However, it is for his virtuosic and dramatic piano sonatas, which certainly influenced Beethoven, that he is remembered.
MILESTONES
1752
Born in Rome
1766
Appointed organist in Damaso, Italy, but is brought to England by patron
1779 1781 1787
Publishes Piano Sonatas, Op. 2 Piano contest with Mozart in Vienna Completes Two Symphonies Op. 18
1790
Retires from the concert stage; completes Six Piano Sonatas, Op. 25
1798
Establishes Longman, Clementi & Co.
1802
Begins eight-year tour of Europe on behalf of his firm
1807
Publishing contract with Beethoven
1813
Becomes director of newly founded Philharmonic Society in London
1816 1826
Symphonies performed in Paris Completes Gradus ad Parnassum
KEY WORKS PIANO SONATA IN F SHARP MINOR, OP. 25, NO. 5 PIANO SOLO
d 14:00
p3
s
Amongst the finest of Clementi’s 64 piano sonatas, this dramatic work was certainly written for the concert stage rather than the drawing room. Although pianistically varied, its mood is unusually dark, and with all three movements in the minor mode, this is an intense and brooding work of considerable pathos. Abandoning traditional twomovement sonatas, Clementi initiated three-movement forms.
GRADUS AD PARNASSUM PIANO SOLO
p 100
s
Published in three volumes between 1817 and 1826, this comprehensive collection of didactic pieces, ranging from finger exercises to fugues, studies, sonata movements, and character pieces, was the result of a long lifetime’s experience playing the newly invented piano. Meaning “Steps to Parnassus” (the abode of the Muses), it was highly regarded and widely used throughout the 19th century, and was parodied by Debussy in his Children’s Corner piano suite.
146
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
Antonio Salieri b 1750–1825 n Italian w c.350 When the Viennese court sweetness – enjoyed great success in composer F L Gassmann Italy (the comedies), Paris (the tragedies), and across Europe. His later operas had saw Salieri’s talent in a lukewarm reception and he devoted Venice, he took him to Vienna to complete his training. Once himself to teaching. Salieri’s relationship there Salieri blossomed, proved adept at with Mozart – contrary to myths created making the right friends (such as Emperor by Pushkin’s play Mozart and Salieri (1831) Joseph II), and was a major contributor to and Peter Schaffer’s film Amadeus (1984) – Viennese musical life from 1770 to 1820. was no more than respectful rivalry. Many of his operas – rich, theatrical, and MILESTONES combining German power and Italian 1779 1781 1784
Writes La scuola de’gelosi, comic opera Der Rauchfangkehrer, singspiel, published Composes Les Danaïdes, opera
1788
Writes Axur re d’Ormus, opera, with Lorenzo da Ponte
1788 Hofkapellmeister to Joseph II c.1804 Concentrates on writing sacred music
Salieri wrote his opera Europa riconosciuta (Europa Revealed) for the grand opening of Theatre Alla Scala, Milan, in 1778. It includes several arias of great brilliance.
Luigi Cherubini b 1760–1842
n Italian
w 300
After a modest early career in Italy and London, Cherubini moved to Paris, becoming a dominant figure in the music world as a conductor, publisher, composer, and teacher. His music – especially in his successful Revolution-era operas – could be self-expressive, dramatic, and dark. He adroitly rode changing circumstances, both stylistic (mixing comic and serious styles) and political (he wrote a piece celebrating Louis XVI’s execution, then one praising his memory). After 1816 he wrote almost exclusively religious music.
Beethoven called Cherubini the greatest living composer, but his reputation faded after his death, possibly due to lack of a clear national identity.
MILESTONES
1780 1786
Produces his first opera, Quinto Fabio Arrives in Paris
1791
Composes Lodoïska, opera, and achieves first international success
1797 1815 1822 1836
Medée, opera, published Superintendent of French royal chapel Director of Paris Conservatoire Writes Requiem in D minor
Jean Auguste Dominique Ingres admired the music of Cherubini and, in recognition of his many talents, painted Luigi Cherubini and the Lyric Muse in 1842.
147
TH E CL A SSI CA L E R A
Jan Ladislav Dusssek b 1760–1812 n Czech w c.280 Dussek played before Marie Antoinette in Something of an early Paris, and during the French Revolution Romantic, Dussek was fled to London. Forced to leave England fêted from London to St Petersburg as a touring after a publishing failure, he went on to piano virtuoso and composer. His lead a wild and reckless life, following his accomplished concertos and sonatas sold patron the Prince of Prussia into battle. very well, and in many ways are more In his final years he returned to Paris. harmonically adventurous than Mozart’s, MILESTONES or even Beethoven’s. However, they have 1786 Moves to Paris; meets Marie been surprisingly neglected since his Antoinette and Napoleon death. A piano innovator, he first placed the instrument sideways to improve the 1790 First known performance in London audience’s view, and worked with a 1797 Piano works increase in complexity manufacturer to extend the keyboard. 1800 Flees London for Hamburg 1806
Writes Elégie harmonique sur la mort du Prince Louis Ferdinand de Prusse, sonata
The most well-known of Dussek’s sonatas, Elégie harmonique sur la mort du Prince Louis Ferdinand de Prusse, was inspired by his patron’s death at the battle of Saalfeld in 1806.
Samuel Wesley b 1766–1837
n English
Franz Xaver Süssmayr w c.430
Wesley was a child prodigy who became something of a maverick celebrity in London music circles: he never held court appointments or official posts, but made a haphazard living as a teacher and writer, and as an organist known for his extraordinary improvisations. Most of his output is Latin church music, combining old and new styles. Attacks of depression, as well as a costly divorce, hindered his career. MILESTONES
1774 1799 1802
Composes Ruth, oratorio, aged eight Writes The Death of Abel, oratorio Symphony in B published
1813
Becomes regular organ soloist at Covent Garden, London
1817
Institutionalized after jumping out of a window
b 1766–1803
n Austrian
w 160
Known today as the composer who completed Mozart’s Requiem, Franz Süssmayr – whose limitations are highlighted clearly next to Mozart’s work – was nevertheless a craftsmanlike composer who enjoyed considerable stage success in Vienna. Songs from his popular Magic Flute-like Der Spiegel von Arkadien were sung in cafés and taverns, and circulated in pirate copies. He held various institutional posts and wrote in many national styles – French and Italian comic idioms, Italian opera seria, and popular German forms – and his melodic gifts were at their best in his solos, duets, and trios. He was Kapellmeister of Vienna’s National Theatre from 1794 until his death. MILESTONES
1791 1799 1802
Copyist and pupil of Mozart Solimann II, singspiel, published Writes Il noce di Benevento, ballet
148
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
Moz
“We cannot despair about mankind knowing that Mozart was a man.” ALBERT EINSTEIN
149
WOL F GA N G A M A DE US M O ZA RT
Wolfgang Amadeus Mozart
zart b 1756–1791
n Austrian
w 655
Probably the most prodigious musician ever born, Mozart’s early tours around Europe not only made him famous, but familiarized him with many musical styles that he synthesized in his own cosmopolitan works. Unique in musical history for his accomplishment in all forms and genres and possessed of an astonishing compositional fluency, he was the first important composer to attempt to establish a “freelance” musical career.
LIFE
The son of a gifted musician, Mozart’s first musical experiences were hearing his child-prodigy sister, Nannerl, at her lessons. His own gifts soon surpassed hers and, proud of their accomplishments, their father gave up his career to promote their talents before the astounded royalty and cognoscenti of Europe. Despite extensive tours, Mozart composed and studied continually, but, by 1772, no longer a child-prodigy, he had to settle for the realities of a court appointment, where his social status was between the valets and the cooks. Never happy at the small court of Salzburg and convinced of his own musical superiority, Mozart attempted to obtain other positions, but, failing so to do, left to become one of music’s first “freelance” professionals. Arriving in Vienna in 1781, he married Constanze Weber and started to give concerts, publish music, and receive commissions, particularly for operas. Over the next ten years he wrote over 200 works and consolidated his reputation, but had to give piano lessons, take in boarders, and borrow money to maintain the lifestyle he desired. His death was probably from rheumatic fever. He was buried in a mass grave according to Viennese custom, without mourners, whilst obituary notices unanimously hailed his greatness.
Although his greatest love was opera, Mozart was the most brilliant pianist of his age. He took the piano concerto to new heights of richness and virtuosity.
Total: 655
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (59)
16
30
4
5
4
OTHER ORCHESTRAL (78)
7
9
28
20
14
15
40
33
29
59
14
6
17
35
25
CHAMBER (176) OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (119)
22
OPERAS (23)
3
4
5
2
9
CHORAL (95)
13
19
17
16
30
SONGS (105)
9
4
16
22
54
1756
1765
1770
1775
1780
1785
1791
150
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
MUSIC
includes the tour-deThe range of Mozart’s force coloratura aria of musical output is the Queen of the Night. extraordinary, and it has Mozart also wrote well been said that no a substantial amount other composer has been of solo vocal and choral equally accomplished in music, ranging from the so many different media, short motet Ave Verum but it is his operas that Corpus, a piece of utterly hold the key to his serene beauty, to the essential style. Building dazzlingly spirited on the operatic reforms Exsultate, jubilate for of Gluck, Mozart soprano and orchestra. combined vivid vocal Of his large-scale choral characterization and works, the Missa solemnis supreme melodic gifts and the Requiem (both with an emphasis on Leopold Mozart took his children on orchestral expressivity tour at early ages; in 1762, they played unfinished) show him for the Bavarian elector in Munich in serious, darker mood, and colour to achieve and the imperial family in Vienna. interleaved with sections a far more dramatic of exultation or grandeur. Mozart’s conception than had previously been encountered. The resulting depictions symphonies, concertos, and chamber works show a particular attention to of character, psychology and human interaction evince a subtle complexity instrumental colour. His peers were which blurred the lines between opera frequently amazed by the way he matched experimental combinations seria and opera buffa, particularly in of instruments, such as those in the the three operas written with Italian Quintet for Piano and Winds (oboe, poet, Lorenzo Da Ponte, as librettist: The Marriage of Figaro, Don Giovanni and clarinet, bassoon, and horn) and the Così fan tutte. Mozart also wrote several Kegelstatt Trio (clarinet, viola, piano) operas in German, of which The Magic with subtleties of orchestration, Flute has been the most enduringly popular. It combines joyous tunes Mozart wrote Die Entführung aus dem Serail in German for Leopold II’s Imperial with noble choruses and Court Burgtheater (below) in Vienna.
WOL F GA N G A M A DE US M O ZA RT
particularly in the use of wind instruments, the latter helping to establish the clarinet as a regular in the orchestra. His refinement of the concerto, especially the piano concerto, brought the genre to a new level of sophistication, establishing it as no less important than the symphony, which had far-reaching effects in the 19th century. In 1782, he began a period of concentrated piano concerto writing. The 15 (Nos. 11–25) he produced by the end of 1786 became ever more symphonically rich and pianistically virtuosic. Mozart had written most of his symphonies in his youth, but his last, the “Jupiter”, was the summation of his symphonic development, ending with undiluted orchestral brilliance. Composed in already wellestablished forms, Mozart’s music is seldom regarded as revolutionary, but
151
contemporaneous audiences certainly found some of his work difficult to appreciate, particularly in its startling contrasts, complexity, and sometimes dissonant harmony. Having assimilated the major European musical styles as a boy, his mature work allied a fusion of Italian lyricism, French brilliance and Middle-European compositional processes with a very natural sense of symmetry, which has come to be regarded as the epitome of Classical refinement. Mozart fell in love with Constanze Weber in 1781 and married her in 1782. Of their six children, only two survived.
MILESTONES
1761 1764 1767 1768 1772
Composes Andante, K1a, Allegro, K1b Composes Symphony No. 1, K16 Travels to Vienna and catches smallpox Singspiel Bastien and Bastienne is staged Appointed Konzertmeister at Salzburg
1773
Fails to gain post in Vienna; composes many string quartets, symphonies, and motet Exsultate, Jubilate
1778
“Paris” Symphony performed in Paris; his mother dies there; writes Concerto for Flute and Harp, Piano Sonata, K 310
1779
Becomes court organist; composes Coronation Mass, Sinfonia Concertante
1780
Receives commission from Munich for Idomeneo, opera; rehearses it there
1781
Idomeneo is a success; leaves his post to become freelance musician in Vienna
1782
Marries Constanze Weber; opera Die Entführung aus dem Serail is acclaimed
1784
Gives series of public concerts for which composes Piano Concertos Nos. 14–19
1785
Composes Piano Concerto No. 21
1786
Opera The Marriage of Figaro, produced; composes Piano Concertos Nos. 23–25, Kegelstatt Trio, “Prague” Symphony
1787
Visits Prague twice: Figaro is success; “Prague” Symphony and Don Giovanni premiered, composes Eine kleine Nachtmusik
1788
Severe money problems: starts borrowing; composes his three greatest symphonies (Nos. 39, 40, 41), three piano trios, and “Coronation” Piano Concerto
1789
Travels to Dresden, Leipzig, Potsdam, and Berlin trying to obtain post or commissions; composes Clarinet Quintet
1790
Opera Così fan tutte premiered in Vienna; gives concerts in Germany
1791
Premiere of La Clemenza di Tito in Prague; opera The Magic Flute is success in Vienna; Clarinet Concerto; begins Requiem, which is left incomplete at his death
Mozart became a Freemason in Vienna (above) in 1784. The influence of their ideology is strongly felt in his sensationally successful comic opera The Magic Flute.
152
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
KEY WORKS PIANO SONATA NO. 8, K310 SOLO PIANO
d 16:30
p3
s
Mozart wrote this sonata in Paris at the time of his mother’s death. It is amongst the finest piano works of the early Classical period. One of only three minor-key sonatas in his output, its drama is immediate in the orchestral textures of its opening. A restrained slow movement lulls the listener before the dark pathos of the finale. The Magic Flute tells the beguiling story of the victory of love over adversity and light over darkness, set against the machinations of the Queen of the Night.
SYMPHONY NO. 38, “PRAGUE”, K504 ORCHESTRAL
d 30:00
p3
o
Following the success of The Marriage of Figaro in Prague, Mozart introduced this symphony there in 1787. Unusually formed of only three movements, it opens in a dark, majestic mood, which is immediately dispelled by the arrival of the faster main body of the music. An expressive slow movement balances the lively finale, in which, to the delight of the piece’s first audience, Mozart used a theme borrowed from The Marriage of Figaro. STRING QUARTET NO. 19, “DISSONANT”, K465 CHAMBER
d 30:30
p4
e
This is one of six quartets that Mozart dedicated in 1785 to Haydn, whose recent Op. 33 quartets had brought the Written in Italian, The Marriage of Figaro contains music of great beauty. The Countess’s poignant aria, Porgi amor (Grant me love), is one of Mozart’s greatest.
form to a new level of sophistication. Mozart’s equally finely wrought response seems effortless in its mastery of Haydn’s innovations, but according to the composer was “the fruit of long and laborious endeavour”. This, the last of the set, is named after its surprisingly dissonant introduction, which gives way to work of a graceful charm. CLARINET CONCERTO, K622 ORCHESTRAL
d 28:00
p3
os
Mozart first met Anton Stadler in 1783 and, immediately taken by his virtuosity on the newly invented clarinet, they formed a friendship which inspired the “Kegelstatt” Trio, the Clarinet Quintet, and this lyrical concerto. Mozart capitalized on the clarinet’s mellifluous tone quality, especially in the operatically inspired slow movement. Conducting the Viennese premiere was Mozart’s final public appearance.
FOCUS DON GIOVANNI, K527 OPERA
d 174:00
p5
ocv
Asked to write an opera for Prague after the success of The Marriage of Figaro, Mozart decided on the story of Don Juan. Notable for the vivid musical depiction of characters and emotions, and just as serious in emotion as it is comic in plot, it is still considered to be among the greatest operas ever composed. OVERTURE AND ACT ONE (92:00) After the dramatic, brooding overture, Don Giovanni appears, masked and pursued by Donna Anna, whom he has been seducing. Her father, the Commendatore, insists on a duel, but is killed. She aks her betrothed, Don Ottavio, to swear vengeance. Don Giovanni now tries to seduce another woman, but has to escape when he recognizes her as Donna Elvira, a former mistress. Alone, Leperello lists Don Giovanni’s catalogue of conquests. At wedding preparations in a village, Don Giovanni woos Zerlina, the bride, with the aria “Là ci darem mano”. Elvira, Anna, and Ottavio arrive, thus thwarting this and other seduction plans. ACT TWO (82:00) Exchanging clothes with Leperello, Don Giovanni tries to seduce Elvira’s maid while Leperello entices Elvira away. Zerlina’s fiancé, Masetto, and some peasants appear, all after Don Giovanni’s blood. They, together with the other protagonists, capture Leperello, who has to reveal his identity. Later, Don Giovanni finds him alone in a cemetery. The funerary statue of the Commendatore suddenly starts speaking and the Don flippantly invites it to supper. Meanwhile, Anna sings one of Mozart’s most celebrated arias, “Non mi dir, bell’idol mio”, to Ottavio. Finally, at supper, Elvira begs Giovanni to mend his ways, but he refuses. The statue appears and drags him down to Hell, leaving the others to ponder the moral of the tale.
PIANO CONCERTO NO. 21, K467 ORCHESTRAL
d 25:00
p3
os
This is one of Mozart’s six 1785–86 concertos, probably performed at his subscription concerts in Vienna. With some of the most complex piano writing of the time, even Mozart’s father commented that “the new concerto is astonishingly difficult”. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MAESTOSO, 13:00)
The martial quality inspired by the trumpets and drums at the opening is dispelled by the piano, which leads a rather independent life, even initiating its own musical material. SECOND MOVEMENT (ANDANTE, 6:00)
Silencing the brass and percussion, Mozart mutes the strings to give this lyrical movement its intimate colour. THIRD MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO VIVACE ASSAI, 6:00)
Ending in high spirits, this movement exudes a rustic charm, while requiring extreme virtuosity from the soloist. INFLUENCES
While always noted for its formal beauty and elegance, Mozart’s music was usually dismissed in the century after his death as an historically interesting precursor to Beethoven’s. Only more recently, as an antidote to Romanticism and Modernity, has his name become a byword for musical perfection.
154
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
work is actually an extremely compact sonata-principle movement. SECOND MOVEMENT (ROMANZE, 5:45) This effortlessly poised movement is given a mysterious quality by its darker middle section. THIRD MOVEMENT (MENUETTO, 2:00) The infectious rhythmic lilt of the minuet is here offset by the charmingly elegant Trio that follows it. FOURTH MOVEMENT (RONDO, 3:00) Heard five times in this brief movement, the joyfully appealing principal theme never outstays its welcome.
EINE KLEINE NACHTMUSIK, K525 d 16:30
CHAMBER
p4
o
One of several divertimenti and serenades written for social occasions, A Little Night Music is scored for only strings and may even have been intended as a quintet. Originally in five movements, a second minuet was later removed from the manuscript. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO, 5:45) With its two sharply contrasting themes, the opening of Mozart’s most famous
REQUIEM, K626 MASS SETTING
d 54:20 p 8 o c v
The “grey messenger” who commissioned Mozart’s final work was actually an emissary for Count WalseggStuppach, who wished to perform the Requiem in memory of his wife and required anonymity because he wished to pass the work off as his own. Mozart started it in good spirits, but his health began to fail and he the title. As a tribute to Mozart after his death, Haydn quoted the theme from the slow movement in his Symphony No. 98.
SYMPHONY NO. 41, “JUPITER”, K551 ORCHESTRAL
d 36:50
p4
o
Mozart wrote his last three symphonies without a commission, or any prospect of performance, in the summer of 1788. This, his last, probably received its nickname when Haydn showed it to his British impresario, Salomon, in 1791, and it was subsequently published with
FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO VIVACE, 12:25)
After a brief opening, there is a pause before the themes are repeated, with more subtle touches and varied moods. SECOND MOVEMENT (ANDANTE CANTABILE, 9:35)
The peaceful string theme is interrupted by loud chords and
Allegro vivace; Quadruple 1time; C major; Sonata form Third theme (violins)
Sonata form
Fourth theme introduced by strings
Exposition 1
2time;Andante cantabile; Triple F major;
Repeat of Exposition 2
3
Second theme (flutes and oboes) First theme
4
5
Development 6
Fourth theme in E flat major
7
8
Recapitulation 9
False recapitulation in F major
10
Third theme introduced by oboes and violins
Coda Exposition 11
12
First theme introduced by muted violins
13
Development Re 14
15
Second theme introduced by oboes and bassoons
16
Return of first theme
17
18
155
WOL F GA N G A M A DE US M O ZA RT
became obsessed with the idea that he was writing it for his own death. Death did indeed strike when the work was far from complete. His widow, needing the outstanding half of the fee to support their family, asked Mozart’s assistant, Franz Xaver Süssmayr, to complete it. INTROITUS (5:20) The only section which Mozart had fully scored dispenses with horns, flutes, and oboes in order to give the much darker orchestral sonorities which characterize the work’s solemnity. KYRIE (3:00) Reminiscent of Bach and Handel’s religious music, the Kyrie is an inexorable fugue culminating in a unison chorus. SEQUENZ (20:10) Divided into six sections, the music explores the terror of divine judgement in the gripping “Dies Irae”, reassures as the solo trombone weaves gracefully around the “Tuba Mirum”, and ends in the moving sadness of the “Lacrimosa”. OFFERTORIUM (8:50) The restless “Domine Jesu
When he died, Mozart had the score of the Requiem on his bed and had been explaining his ideas on how to finish it to Süssmayr.
Christe” is balanced by the otherworldly prayer of the “Hostias”. SANCTUS (1:50)
This is a majestic setting, ending with a short fugue on “Hosanna”. Here and in the next two movements, Süssmayr had no sketches by Mozart from which to work. BENEDICTUS (5:20) Reminiscent of operatic quartets, the soloists join in this hymn of praise, which concludes with a fugue for full chorus. AGNUS DEI (9:50) Süssmayr’s reworking of music from the opening Introitus results in a most effective setting for the finale of this piece. The music from the Kyrie section of the requiem mass brings the “Lux Aeterna” to its measured conclusion.
surprising harmonic changes, but, in spite of this, melody prevails throughout the movement.
The“Jupiter” is now recognized as one of Mozart’s greatest symphonies, but it was never played during his lifetime.
FOURTH MOVEMENT (FINALE 9:00)
In one of the most extraordinary symphonic movements ever written, Mozart presents and combines five different themes. In the brilliant, electrifying coda all five are reintroduced and heard together.
THIRD MOVEMENT (MENUETTO–ALLEGRETTO 5:50)
The rather courtly, serious Minuet contrasts with a quirky Trio which, from its very beginning, continually threatens to come to an end.
allegro; Duple time; 4 Molto C major; Sonata form
Menuetto–Allegretto; 3Minuet Triple time; C major; and Trio form
ecapitulation 19
Coda 20
21
Return of third theme
Menuetto 22
23
Trio 24
Violins, joined by horns, trumpets and timpani
25
Menuetto 26
27
Exposition 28
29
Repeat of Exposition 30
Dialogue between flutes, Violins announce bassoons, and horns and fugue subject violins and oboes
31
32
Dev. 33
Recapitulation 34
35
Coda 36
Coda begins with first theme in canon, then combines all the earlier themes
156
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
Beeth “Keep your eye on him; one day he will make the world talk of him.” MOZART, ON HEARING THE 17-YEAR OLD BEETHOVEN
157
LUDWI G VA N B E E T H OV E N
Ludwig van Beethoven
hoven b 1770–1827
n German
w 398
The supreme iconic figure of Western music, Beethoven established the popular concept of the artist, who, separate from society, transcends personal tragedy to achieve his goal and becomes a hero. Calling himself a “Tondichter”, or “poet in sound”, his music mirrored his beliefs in the prevailing spirit of individualism by emphasizing personal expression over traditional form, and thus paved the way for musical Romanticism.
LIFE
Showing early musical talent, Beethoven was given a thorough music grounding by the Bonn court organist, Christian Gottlob Neefe, and was soon acting as his deputy. Aged 17, he left for Vienna to further his studies, but returned within weeks when he discovered his mother was dying. Impressed by his music, Haydn then invited him to study in Vienna. There, Beethoven was soon invited into aristocratic circles, where the beauty and virtuosity of his playing, and his compositional prowess won him many patrons who subsequently became dedicatees of his works. However, by 1802 he realized that his growing deafness would become total and, while staying in the village of Heiligenstadt, wrote a letter detailing his desperate unhappiness. Overcoming the crisis, he returned, determined to “seize Fate by the throat”, and launched himself into an unprecedented period of creativity which bore many of his most famous works. By 1812, his deafness had engendered further depression and isolation and a lapse in creativity, but his final years, in a spirit of resignation, brought forth his most spiritual and exalted music. Suggestions that he died with a fist raised, though appropriate, are possibly apocryphal, but his death was mourned by the whole of Vienna.
Beethoven’s invariably intense music visits all points on the emotional scale, from the bleakest melancholy to the most joyful celebration.
Total: 398
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (9) OTHER ORCHESTRAL (31)
2
8
6
2
1
12
7
2
CHAMBER (92)
4
43
24
13
8
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (101)
7
46
30
7
11
9
9
26
33
35
27
20
3
OPERAS (1)
1
CHORAL (77) SONGS (87)
2 1770
1780
1790
1800
1810
1820
1827
158
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
MUSIC
Beethoven’s compositional battles were hard fought, with certain works spending many years in laboured gestation. Once fully formed, however, the majority of them were instantly successful. The growing middle class enjoyed his music’s immediacy, power, and dramatic virtuosity, while the cultural elite was equally impressed by the thorough absorption and subsequent transcending of 18th-century musical styles. Although Beethoven’s output is usually divided into three periods, a fourth, before his arrival in Vienna, should also be considered, as by then he had already composed a number of vocal and chamber works and a very accomplished set of variations for piano. These early works are all catalogued with “WoO” numbers (Werke ohne Opus – works without opus). His early reputation and fame rested on his phenomenal gifts of improvisation at the keyboard – which some said were even greater than Mozart’s – and it is therefore natural that most of his early compositions are for piano. Beethoven’s usually designated “early” period began after his arrival in Vienna in 1792 at the age of 22. There he assimilated – and then began to transform – the sonata principle from a balanced, arch-like structure to a more dynamic, urgent form, where the recapitulation (the third section after the exposition and the development sections) is In 1808, Beethoven was granted an annuity for life by his pupil and friend, the Habsburg Archduke Rudolf of Austria.
Beethoven preferred the new English piano – his own is shown here – as its heavier build suited his energetic playing better than the lighter Viennese ones.
a culmination rather than a repetition. At first tending towards exploration and elaboration of the initial musical ideas – and preferring four movements to the customary three – Beethoven’s solo piano works were highly successful. But, as his accomplishment grew, his compositions – including the Op. 18 string quartets, three piano concertos, two symphonies, and the Pathétique and “Moonlight” piano sonatas – became more expressive and concentrated. The Pathétique sonata, with its French name meaning “passionate” or “emotional” (given to it by Beethoven himself), is regarded as his first masterpiece. Beethoven’s “middle” period dates from 1803 – the year after he realized the seriousness of his growing deafness and rejected suicide in favour of giving the world, he said, “all the music I felt was within me”.
LUDWI G VA N B E E T H OV E N
159
His decision was of unimaginable change into his “late” period. By significance. From this time, his music 1813 Beethoven was exploring more took on a new, heroic style whose intimate modes of expression, often dimensions, range, and power were emphasizing the lyrical and veiled. a watershed in music history. Its first With an increasing fondness for manifestation was the epic “Eroica” variation and fugue Symphony, a work of colossal energy (such as in the Diabelli and, at 50 minutes, the longest that Variations), and further had thus far been written, revealing experimentation with new developments sonata forms – which of the symphonic resulted in three final form. Beethoven’s piano sonatas of Beethoven tried new “symphonic many cures for deafness. great intellectual and This is one of the hearing ideal” was applied expressive depth – his aids he used late in his life. to all genres and music left the Classical resulted in a torrent of productivity. world of Haydn and Mozart behind From this period come four more and entered the Romantic era. His symphonies, the Violin Concerto, Missa solemnis and Symphony No. 9 Piano Concertos Nos. 4 and 5, and an were also innovative, combining opera, Fidelio. However, his increasing symphonic and choral writing isolation through deafness marked the “from the heart” as never before. MILESTONES
1778 1781 1783 1787 1792
First public performance in Cologne Takes lessons in organ and violin Composes Three Sonatas, WoO 47 Studies briefly in Vienna with Mozart Returns to Vienna to study with Haydn
1795
First public concert in Vienna: performs Piano Concerto No. 1 in B Flat, Op. 19
1799
Publishes Pathétique Piano Sonata
1800
Symphony No. 1 and Septet performed in Vienna; composes Piano Concerto No. 3 Ballet Prometheus is successfully staged; publishes “Moonlight” Piano Sonata
1801 1802
Depressed by failing hearing, writes Heiligenstadt Testament; composes Symphony No. 2 and Kreutzer Violin Sonata
1804
Completes “Eroica” Symphony; composes “Waldstein” Piano Sonata
1805
Opera Fidelio premiered, but withdrawn after three performances owing to Austrian occupation of Vienna
1805
Composes “Appassionata” Piano Sonata
1806
Completes Violin Concerto, Symphony No. 4, Razoumovsky Quartets
1808
Symphonies Nos. 5 and 6, Piano Concerto No. 4, and Choral Fantasy premiered together in four-hour concert
1809 1811 1812
Writes “Emperor” Piano Concerto “Archduke” Trio written Completes Symphonies Nos. 7 and 8
1814
Revised Fidelio produced successfully; his final appearance as pianist in “Archduke” Trio is disastrous owing to his deafness
1816
Granted custody of his nephew, Karl – leads to legal battle with sister-in-law; writes song cycle An die ferne Geliebte 1818
Is sent Broadwood piano from London; “Hammerklavier” Piano Sonata completed
1822
Finishes Piano Sonata No. 32
1823
Completes Mass in D (Missa solemnis) and Diabelli Variations Finishes “Choral” Symphony Writes String Quartet Op. 130
1824 1826
In 1827, Beethoven fell ill with dropsy and pneumonia. He died in March and some 10,000 people attended his funeral.
160
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
KEY WORKS SONATA NO. 9 FOR VIOLIN AND PIANO, “KREUTZER”, OP. 47 DUO
d 35:00
p3
e
Beethoven dedicated this piece to Rudolphe Kreutzer, a famous violinist living in Paris, perhaps because he was considering a visit there even though he had composed it for British violinist George Bridgetower. Avoiding the piano-centred style of his previous works in the genre, here there is a real equality in the virtuosity of the two instruments; indeed, the score bore the subtitle “written in a molto concertante style, as though a concerto”. TRIO NO. 6 FOR PIANO, VIOLIN, AND CELLO, “ARCHDUKE”, OP. 97 CHAMBER
d 39:00
p4
e
Beethoven dedicated more than 20 works to Archduke Rudolph, but, as one of the finest piano trios ever written and with its grand manner, this richly deserves its aristocratic sobriquet. It was the work Beethoven chose for his last public appearance as a pianist in 1814.
d 40:00
p5
than tone-painting”. The symphony was first given in December 1808 at an epic concert which included the premieres of the Symphony No. 5, Piano Concerto No. 4, and Choral Fantasy. PIANO CONCERTO NO. 5, “EMPEROR”, OP. 73
SYMPHONY NO. 6, “PASTORAL”, OP. 68 ORCHESTRAL
Beethoven dedicated his “Eroica” Symphony to Napoleon in admiration of his ideals, but removed the name in disgust when Napoleon made himself emperor.
ORCHESTRAL
o
Although the five country scenes, including a vivid storm, were inspired by Beethoven’s love of nature, he emphasized that this was “more the expression of feeling
d 40:00
p3
os
At the time the most “symphonic” and longest piano concerto ever written, Beethoven’s final work in this genre was nicknamed the “Emperor” by the composer J B Cramer in response to its grandeur. Unusually starting with flourishes for piano, it also broke with tradition by dispensing with an improvised cadenza in favour of an already written one. Too deaf to perform it himself, Beethoven had it premiered by his pupil Carl Czerny. It was instantly hailed as a masterpiece. The Heiligenstadt Testament is the letter Beethoven wrote to his brothers (but never sent) in the village of Heiligenstadt, where he contemplated suicide at his deafness in 1802.
FOCUS VIOLIN CONCERTO, OP. 61 ORCHESTRAL
d 45:15
p3
os
The score for this concerto was finished only two days before the first performance, and was virtually read at sight. Not an immediate success, Beethoven arranged it for piano, but the original became popular after the 13-year-old Joseph Joachim performed it in London with Mendelssohn in 1844. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MA NON TROPPO, 25:45) Beethoven developed Mozart’s concerto style on an unprecedented scale in this movement, unusually giving prominent roles to the timpani and woodwind.
a fortissimo repeat of the opening bars in the major key at the recapitulation.
SECOND MOVEMENT (LARGHETTO, 10:00)
SECOND MOVEMENT (MOLTO VIVACE, 16:00)
Beginning with an ethereal set of variations accompanied by muted strings, the movement ends with a brief cadenza which leads directly into the finale.
Beethoven creates a large-scale movement from very economic and energetic material. After experimenting with timpani as a feature in the Violin and “Emperor” concertos, here he gives them a major role.
THIRD MOVEMENT (RONDO, ALLEGRO, 9:30) A cheerful and traditional ending, with only a brief moment of Beethovian pathos in the minor key, concludes this eloquent work.
SYMPHONY NO. 9, “CHORAL”, OP. 125 ORCHESTRAL
d 69:00 p
4
THIRD MOVEMENT (ADAGIO
This sublime adagio is actually two sets of variations on two alternating themes. Two startling interruptions for the new valved horn come near the end.
MOLTO E CANTABILE, 14:00)
FOURTH MOVEMENT (PRESTO,
ocv
ALLEGRO, 23:00) Fragments Beethoven used several of earlier movements are Possibly the most iconic verses of poet and dramatist heard before instruments, work of Western music, Friedrich Schiller’s 1785 Ode to Joy (An die Freude) in his then voices, settle on the “Choral” still stands “Choral” Symphony. Schiller’s “Ode to Joy” as a colossus against which all subsequent symphonies have celebrating the universal brotherhood of been judged. Having first wanted to set mankind in a hitherto unprecedented choral addition to a symphony. Schiller’s “Ode to Joy” in 1793, Beethoven was eventually commissioned to write the work in 1822 by the INFLUENCES London Philharmonic Society. It was The first composer to establish a freelance career from first performed in Vienna in 1823. the outset, Beethoven’s refusal to be subservient to FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MA NON TROPPO, UN
Opening mysteriously, this settles into a dark and forceful sonata style. Among many surprises is
POCO MAESTOSO, 16:00)
aristocratic patrons marked the change in the role of the musician from servant to autonomous cultural arbiter, and thus created a model of aspiration followed by almost every subsequent Classical musician.
162
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
section. It also includes a number of very surprising chromatic scales.
STRING QUARTET, OP. 130 CHAMBER
d 42:00
p6
e
This work was commissioned by the Russian prince, Nicholas Galitzin. The finale was originally what is now known as Beethoven’s Grosse Fuge, Op. 133, but he replaced it with the shorter present Allegro after the premiere. FIRST MOVEMENT (ADAGIO MA NON TROPPO, ALLEGRO, 14:00) In
this sonata-form movement, Beethoven explores aspects of both the Adagio introduction and the subsequent Allegro, uniting the disparate elements only in the short development and coda sections. SECOND MOVEMENT (PRESTO, 2:00) In this very brief Scherzo the first violin takes the lead in the humorous Trio
THIRD MOVEMENT (ANDANTE CON MOTO MA
Not quite a slow movement, this sunny music is more in the spirit of a divertimento.
NON TROPPO, POCO SCHERZOSO, 6:00)
FOURTH MOVEMENT (ALLA DANZA TEDESCA,
Although lyrical, with its rhythmic lilt and regular pulse, the rustic German origins of this music are never far away.
ALLEGRO ASSAI, 3:00)
FIFTH MOVEMENT (CAVATINA, ADAGIO MOLTO ESPESSIVO, 8:00) A
cavatina is an operatic song in simple style. Certainly the first violin retains the simple, operatic-style melody throughout, but Beethoven’s almost too-intimate expression of feeling is far removed from the world of the stage. Perhaps most extraordinary is the unsettling middle section, marked “beklemmt” (“oppressed”) in the score. SIXTH MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO, 9:00) Having replaced the Grosse Fuge ending, Beethoven did not live to see this, his shorter, but very stark and gripping alternative performed. In his final years, Beethoven concentrated on the intimate medium of the string quartet, redefining its boundaries and creating his most sublime works.
impassioned piece was one of his favourite works in the genre.
PIANO SONATA IN F MINOR, “APPASSIONATA”, OP. 57 PIANO SOLO
d 23:00
p3
s
FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO ASSAI, 9:00)
In this sonata, composed in 1804–05, Beethoven brought piano virtuosity to a new level of complexity, powerfully fusing it with his new, heroic style. Although the subtitle was not his own (it was added by the publisher), Beethoven seems to have approved of it. This violent,
Using the keyboard almost as an orchestra, Beethoven elicited a new kind of musical drama in this movement with its sudden changes in volume, register, and pace. SECOND MOVEMENT (ANDANTE CON MOTO, 6:20)
Starting with a chordal theme, this calm movement develops into a series
Allegro assai; Quadruple 1time: F minor; Sonata form Second theme in A flat major Exposition 1
Development 2
3
Recapitulation 4
Repeat of first theme (fortissimo: very loudly) First theme (pianissimo: very quietly)
con moto; 2major;Andante Duple time; D flat Variation form
Return of second theme in F major
5
Return of first theme in home key
Coda 6
7
8
Theme 9
Chorale-like theme
1st Variation 10
Theme in top part with syncopated bass
11
1
12
163
FIDELIO, OP. 72 OPERA
d 124:00
p2
ocv
For his only opera, Beethoven set the story of an old French libretto, Léonore, ou L’amour conjugal, which reflected his belief in the triumph of free will, liberty, and human goodness. He revised Fidelio, as he renamed it, twice of three variations, each higher and more decorative than the last. Its serenity provides a brief respite from the mood of tragic despair that dominates the rest of the work. It ends with a version of the opening interrupted by a mysterious arpeggio. THIRD MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MA NON TROPPO, 7:40) Unusually, the third movement of the sonata flows directly from the second. The arpeggio gives way to a
over ten years and wrote another three overtures. The first three Leonora overtures are often performed alone. OVERTURE AND ACT ONE (78:00) Jaquino, a prison gatekeeper, wants to marry Marcellina, but she loves Fidelio, who works for the jailer, Rocco, her father. However, Fidelio is really Leonora, a woman in disguise looking for her husband, Florestan. The prison governor is indeed holding him illegally. His decision to murder Florestan to avoid ministerial criticism is overheard by Leonora, who decides to rescue her husband. ACT TWO (46:00) In his cell, Florestan muses on his fate. As Leonora and Rocco enter, he asks for food and she recognizes her husband. The governor then enters to kill Florestan, but she holds him off with a pistol. The minister’s arrival ensures Florestan’s freedom and the townspeople rejoice as the corrupt governor is arrested.
The British pianist John Ogdon (1937–19) gave many highly original and moving interpretations of Beethoven’s piano music.
forceful outburst leading into a relentless finale in which the music is kept reined in, however, until the explosive coda and the abrupt and violent ending.
ma non troppo; Duple 3 Allegro time; F minor: Sonata form
2nd Variation 13
3rd Variation 14
Syncopated theme in top part
Theme 15
Intro Exposition 16
Return of theme in original form
Development 17
18
Imitation between parts
Recapitulation 19
Repeat of Development/Recapitulation Coda 20
21
22
23
Build-up in speed and intensity
164
THE CL A SSI CA L E R A
Johann Nepomuk Hummel b 1778–1837
n Austrian
w c.450
A prodigy who, like Mozart, toured Europe as a boy, Hummel was idolized as a composer and fêted as Europe’s greatest pianist. A warm person whose business acumen helped secure better copyright laws for composers and more financial security for his family, he wrote all types of music (except symphonies, deferring to Beethoven) in a polished late-Classical style. His best-selling folk songs for the Scottish publisher George Thomson show how well he wrote for the market. MILESTONES
1804 1810 1819 1828
Antonín Reicha b 1770–1836
n Czech
w c.260
Though his operas never found success, Reicha’s instrumental works, often exploring aspects of technique, were eventually published and widely performed. His good reputation as an author on music theory led to a professorship at the Paris Conservatoire, and it was as a teacher, rather than as a prolific composer, that he became best known. He befriended Haydn and Beethoven, and both Berlioz and Liszt admired his forward-looking ideas. Reicha’s wind music was popular, and his colourful quintets proved models of the genre.
Becomes Konzertmeister at the court of Prince Nikolaus Esterházy
MILESTONES
Mathilde von Guise, opera, staged Kapellmeister at Weimar court Piano tutor sells out in days
1794 1803 1818
Teaches music in Hamburg Composes 36 Fugues Professor at the Paris Conservatoire
John Field b 1782–1837 n Irish w 70 while also pioneering the nocturne, of By the age of 18, Field was an established piano which he wrote 16. Field’s name spread across Europe, and as a teacher he virtuoso on the London was influential. By the 1830s, however, concert scene. When he his music had fallen out of fashion. visited St Petersburg with his teacher, After an outrageous, Byronesque Muzio Clementi, he was so at home in lifestyle of excess – quite unlike his the artistic and aristocratic milieu that serene music and delicate performing he remained in Russia. There, he style – his health rapidly declined. developed a distinctive style of piano playing (Chopinesque, but pre-Chopin), MILESTONES
1792 1793 1803 1811 1812 1822 1832
First public performance in Dublin Field’s family sets up home in London Visits St Petersburg, Russia Composes Piano Concertos Nos. 1-3 Writes Nocturnes Nos. 1-3 Settles in Moscow Visits London
The moonlit Thames, shrouded in mist, conveys the serene mood of Field’s atmospheric nocturnes.
165
TH E CL A SSI CA L E R A
Louis Spohr b 1784–1859
n German
w 208
One of the most celebrated musicians of his time, Spohr’s instrumental compositions were favourably compared with those of Beethoven – and admired both by his peers – such as Mendelssohn, Schumann, and Chopin, and by the later Romantics Brahms and Tchaikovsky. A virtuoso violinist considered second only to Paganini, he also achieved great success as a teacher, his Violin Tutor being widely read. LIFE AND MUSIC From a musical family, Spohr started his career as a court chamber musician at Brunswick before touring throughout Germany as a virtuoso violinist. Appointed Konzertmeister at Gotha, he began to compose, and also became one of the first conductors to use a baton. After further touring with his harpist wife and public success with two operas, he finally settled in Kassel, where, as Kapellmeister, he wrote more operas and symphonies for orchestra,
presented works by Bach and Wagner, and taught violinists from all over Europe. Heavily influenced by Mozart, his music combines Classical forms with early Romantic modes of expression. MILESTONES
1799
Embarks on first concert tour to Hamburg; joins the Brunswick court
1805 1806 1813 1816 1822 1826 1836 1840
Becomes Konzertmeister at Gotha Marries harpist Dorette Scheidler Directs Theatre an der Wien Writes Violin Concerto No. 8 Appointed Kapellmeister at Kassel Composes Six Songs, Op. 72 Marries pianist Marianne Pfeiffer Composes Symphony No. 6
Spohr, a consummate performer and natural showman, delighted his friends and family at his lively musical gatherings with his virtuoso technique and Romantic panache.
KEY WORKS SYMPHONY NO. 6 IN G MAJOR, “HISTORIC”, OP. 116 ORCHESTRAL
d 26:00
p4
o
Wishing to satirize grand opera, Spohr wrote each of the first three movements of this symphony as a pastiche of earlier musical styles and periods (1720, 1780, and 1810) whilst parodying the music of his contemporaries in the finale. SIX SONGS, OP. 72 SONG CYCLE
d 14:00
p6
sv
As a teacher, Spohr advocated a vocal approach to playing the violin, and he clearly loved writing songs, turning out
more than 90. In the six songs here, Spohr sets a variety of Romantic poetry and an “exotic” Persian love sonnet with great passion and broad lyricism. VIOLIN CONCERTO IN A MINOR, OP. 47 ORCHESTRAL
d 17:50
p1
os
Of his 15 concertos and numerous solo works for the instrument, this is one of Spohr’s few violin works still heard today. Written for performance in Italy, in the form of a vocal scene, its use of several operatic formulae in one instrumental movement made it an instant success.
167
The
ROMANTIC ERA
1810 1920 —
The Romantic movement emerged at the end of the 18th century in art and literature, and somewhat later in music. The Romantics rejected the confines of Classical convention; for them, originality was of paramount importance. They celebrated the emotional and the instinctive, and looked towards nature for inspiration. eethoven cast a long shadow over the 19th century. The emotional power of his music made him the chief precursor of what we now label Romanticism. His lifetime coincided with a watershed in history: the French Revolution of 1789 had been the most visible expression of the rights of the individual in the 18th century. Despite the oppressive regimes of the post-Napoleonic period, the Romantic cult of the individual flourished, along with an increasing awareness of the rights of nations to govern themselves and take pride in their own culture. In this climate of self-expression, women came nowhere near to winning equal rights, but a few were able to become composers and publish their works – Clara Schumann and Fanny Mendelssohn being the most celebrated examples.
B
SCHUBERT AT THE PIANO
The suffering so poignantly expressed in Schubert’s greatest songs contrasts with the image of the cheerful evenings he apparently spent playing for his friends.
Some music of the Romantic period was characterized by the virtuoso performer – for example, Liszt. A parallel trend was for intimate music intended for the salon – such as the shorter works, or “miniatures”, of Chopin and Schumann. There lies a conflict here between the public character of many of the great Romantic solo and orchestral works and the solitude of such works as Schubert’s song cycle Winterreise.
PAST AND FUTURE The Romantic era was one of extremes, with composers not only looking back to the past but also abandoning classical conventions and experimenting with new and daring harmonic language and form. This progressive style is especially evident in Berlioz’s Symphonie fantastique, with its extraordinary narrative of desire and destruction, or in Liszt’s Sonata in B minor of 1852, with its snake-like one-movement form, or in the strange
168
harmonies of the same composer’s quasiimpressionistic late piano pieces, such as Nuages gris. The Romantic period can claim to have “rediscovered” music from the past. When in 1829 Mendelssohn organised a performance of J S Bach’s St Matthew Passion, he unlocked a great treasure trove of music which was revived in the next few decades. Not only did this alert musicians and audiences to the significance of Bach’s own music, but it also encouraged musicians to perform music of the past and composers such as Brahms to use its materials and forms.
BERLIOZ CONDUCTING
The Romantics were often mocked for their style and excesses, in the case of Berlioz (pictured here in an 1846 cartoon) the vast orchestras required to perform his works.
themes, from the songs of Schubert to 20th-century works such as Richard Strauss’s “Alpine” Symphony and Vaughan Williams’ “Sea” Symphony. With constant theorizing about the direction music should take, it is not surprising that the Romantic era was one of bitter disputes. One of the
CONNECTIONS Whereas musicians of earlier periods had tended to concentrate on their craft alone, the Romantics blurred the lines between disciplines: Berlioz and Schumann both published criticism as well as music; Weber wrote a novel; Liszt wrote essays on a wide range of interests; and Wagner wrote his own libretti as well as the music for his operas. Romantic composers therefore frequently referred to ideas beyond music itself – for example, landscape and nature became important THE SPIRIT OF ROMANTICISM
This painting of a solitary wanderer by Caspar David Friedrich (c.1818) embodies the mood evoked by many early Romantic composers.
TIMELINE: THE ROMANTIC ERA w 1827 Schubert composes great song cycle Winterreise in year before his death
1830 1824 Death of Byron at Missolonghi during Greek War of Independence
1832 Chopin gives first Paris concert
1834 Schumann founds the review Neue Zeitschrift für Musik
1840 1839 Berlioz’s dramatic symphony Romeo and Juliet
1840 s Marriage of Schumann to Clara Wieck
1853 Schumann champions music of the young Brahms
1850 1848 Revolutions across Europe 1840s s Liszt tours the length and breadth of Europe to wild adulation
1860
169
TH E RO M A N T I C E R A
most celebrated feuds was that between the followers of Brahms and those of Wagner. Brahms was seen by his partisans as a traditionalist, while Liszt and Wagner were believed by their supporters to represent the musical future. In fact, Brahms’s musical language was at times highly adventurous, just as Wagner often looked to the past (most clearly in the music of Die Meistersinger von Nürnberg).
MUSIC IN THE HOME If there is one instrument that symbolizes the Romantic period, it is the piano. Most Romantic composers composed not only concert music for the instrument but also music intended for amateur use. A measure of the political and social changes of the time was that far more homes now owned a piano. There was a consequent demand for music that could be played in the home, and many orchestral and operatic works were arranged for the piano. A LIVING LEGACY Music from the Romantic era has remained perennially popular with listeners. It continues to be enjoyed for its richness of melodic and harmonic invention, its poignancy and grandeur, as well as its extra-musical associations. Many late-20th-century composers have adopted certain characteristics of Romantic style – for example, in his score for the film Star Wars, the composer John Williams 1867 s Johann Strauss the Younger first performs “Blue Danube” Waltz
1868 Brahms’s German Requiem
LITERATURE AND ROMANTIC MUSIC
Literature substantially influenced music during the Romantic period, from Berlioz’s use of Byron in Harold in Italy to Schubert’s settings of the poets Heine and Goethe to Schumann’s references to novels by Jean Paul and E T A Hoffman in his piano works. Hoffmann’s strange stories also inspired Offenbach’s The Tales of Hoffmann and Tchaikovsky’s Nutcracker Suite, and he voiced the feelings of many Romantics when he asserted that “Music is the most Romantic of all the arts – in fact, it might be said to be the sole purely Romantic one.” HERO OF THE AGE
The English poet Byron inspired the Romantic movement across Europe.
used music in a Romantic symphonic style to represent the future. The American composer John Adams could likewise be called a neoRomantic with regard to his great orchestral works, such as Harmonielehre. Romanticism survives in our time.
JOHANN STRAUSS THE YOUNGER
The lighter side of Romanticism was to be found in salons across Europe. Here Strauss provides the musical entertainment at an evening party in Vienna.
1893 s Tchaikovsky completes Symphony No. 6, the “Pathétique”; dies soon after in St Petersburg
1889 First performance of Mahler’s Symphony No. 1 in Budapest
1870
1880
1874 First French Impressionist exhibition in Paris
1877 u Phonograph invented by Edison
1890 1890 Richard Strauss’s symphonic poem Death and Transfiguration
1900 1911 Death of Mahler; his Das Lied von der Erde performed posthumously
170
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Niccolò Paganini b 1782–1840
n Italian
w c.250
Paganini’s total mastery of the violin, demonic charisma, and personal mystique created the benchmark for the Romantic virtuoso. Most of his well-crafted and imaginative music, including a large body of chamber works, is now seldom heard. However he influenced a generation of composers – including Liszt, Chopin, and Schumann – to use instrumental virtuosity as an essential expressive element in their music. LIFE AND MUSIC
Paganini’s talent was rigorously nurtured by his father, who forced him to practise obsessively, depriving him of food and water when he faltered. Thus acquiring an extraordinary facility, it was surprisingly not until 1809, after a long period as a court musician, that he became a travelling virtuoso. Even after a triumphant debut in Milan, he continued to tour Italy sporadically, launching his career as an international artist only at the age of 46 – mesmerizing audiences across Europe, and amassing great wealth. His spectacular music showcased an undreamed-of virtuosity, giving rise to rumours that his playing relied on diabolical intervention.
MILESTONES
1794
Gives first public performance
1795
Goes to Parma to study violin and composition
1796 1801 1805 1809
Returns to Genoa to practise Leads an orchestra in Lucca Believed to have completed 24 Caprices Leaves Lucca to become a “free artist”
1813
Debut at La Scala, including Le Streghe; gives 11 more concerts in Milan
1817 1820 1828 1829 1831 1833 1834
Composes Violin Concerto No.1 Six Sonatas for Violin and Guitar, Op. 3 Gives 14 concerts in Vienna Tours throughout Germany Numerous concerts in Paris and UK Promotes Berlioz’s Harold in Italy Settles in Parma; health deteriorates
KEY WORKS VIOLIN CONCERTO NO. 1 ORCHESTRAL
d 36:00
p3
os
Believed to have been written in 1817, this extremely popular work was premiered in 1819, and was always a show-stopper for Paganini. Opening with a theatrically expectant orchestral introduction rather reminiscent of the Italian operas of Rossini, the violin entry is virtuosic, but ultimately vocally inspired, and frequently lyrical. The tragic and operatic slow movement reminds us that Paganini was equally renowned for his ability to move as to dazzle, which he does with high chords, brilliant runs, and “ricochet bowing” in the finale.
SIX SONATAS FOR VIOLIN AND GUITAR, OP. 3 CHAMBER
p6
e
Paganini’s substantial output of chamber music frequently includes the guitar – upon which he was an accomplished performer – although in these six sonatas the guitar part is relatively simple, tending to accompany the more extrovert violin. Each work opens with a tender or passionate slow section before embarking on a spirited conclusion, often including a set of variations. Paganini dedicated these romantic sonatas to his first love, Eleanora Quilici.
171
N I CO LO PAGA N I N I
FOCUS 24 CAPRICES SOLO VIOLIN
p 24
LE STREGHE s
ORCHESTRAL
d 9:30
p1
os
Although Paganini had probably After four years as a travelling composed his caprices by 1805, he virtuoso, Paganini finally felt prepared guarded their secrets closely, publishing to make his debut at La Scala in them only in 1820, when he Milan. At the ballet, he heard the provocatively dedicated them “to the melody of Süssmayr’s Le streghe (The artists”, knowing that few, if any, of Witches) and decided to capitalize on his contemporaries its immense popularity would be able to by writing a set of play them. Each is variations. After a a mini-masterpiece, majestic orchestral exploring a different introduction, the violin aspect of violin enters, teasing the technique, and audience with a together they provide simple, gracious an almost complete melody which is not compendium of the expected theme. the instrument’s Only after a repeat possibilities. Requiring of this section does a hand that is both the actual witches’ Paganini amazed audiences in London with his extraordinary violin techniques large and flexible to tune begin, but again and his showman’s ability to astonish. encompass their performed quite technical difficulties, few performers unassumingly, raising expectation have played them complete, but their even further before the first variation, influence goes well beyond the violin; where the fireworks finally begin. Liszt and Schumann were inspired The listener is then subjected to to write piano transcriptions of some a rollercoaster ride demonstrating of them, and the theme of the final Paganini’s astounding techniques. caprice has been used for famous Audiences were incredulous on works by composers as diverse as hearing the work and rumours soon Brahms, Rachmaninov, Lutoslawski, spread that its composer was in league and Andrew Lloyd Webber. with the devil.
172
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Carl Czerny b 1791–1857
n German
A pupil of Beethoven and teacher of Liszt, Czerny is known to modern pianists for his technical exercises; though he wrote hundreds of works in all genres, few are played today. He was renowned as a performer of Beethoven’s piano works (and knew them all by heart), but, put off by the prospect of long concert tours and unwilling to play to the gallery, he didn’t pursue a career
w c.1,800
MILESTONES
1800 1801 1805 1821 1836
First public performance in Vienna Taught piano by Beethoven Cancels concert tour Teaches the young Liszt Retires from teaching
1839
Writes Complete Theoretical and Practical Pianoforte School, piano exercises
as a virtuoso. He concentrated instead on teaching – which he did for 12 hours a day for more than 20 years – and composing, with great financial success. Thanks to Czerny, modern scholars know a great deal about performance practice of the early 19th century. An only child who never married, Czerny devoted most of his time to teaching. His book of piano lessons is still in widespread use today.
Saverio Mercadante b 1795–1870
n Italian
Franz Adolf Berwald w c.350
Mercadante, born an illegitimate child, rose from poverty to be an opera composer of international fame by the 1830s, with successes in Italy, Spain, and Vienna. As director of the Naples Conservatory from 1840 he promoted the Neapolitan school of composition, and later turned towards writing instrumental music. He learned from other’s successes (Meyerbeer’s in Paris, for example) and his own mistakes, and rode turbulent changes in musical styles and international politics to enjoy great popularity and eventually financial comfort in his lifetime, only to slip into obscurity after his death. MILESTONES
b 1796–1868
n Swedish
w 80
The startling originality and modernsounding harmonies of Berwald’s music met with little enthusiasm in his lifetime; he had more success running a pioneering orthopaedic institute. Marriage, and small triumphs in Vienna, inspired him again, but back in Sweden he ended up running a glassworks. His music – bold, cheerful, and generous, like the man – has since established him as Sweden’s first major composer. MILESTONES
1812
Violinist in court orchestra
1835
Abandons composing for orthopaedics
1813
Composes Flute Concerto No. 2
1833
Becomes maestro di cappella at Novara Cathedral
1845 1855
Symphony No. 3 (unperformed) Piano Concerto (unperformed)
1837 1862
Il giuramento, opera, performed Becomes totally blind
1862
Estrella de Soria, opera, finally performed
TH E RO M A N T I C E R A
173
Carl Loewe b 1796–1869
n German
After studying theology and philology at Halle University, Loewe settled in the town of Stettin, Germany, in 1820. He established a reputation as a song composer and fine baritone singer and travelled widely, performing in England, Scandinavia, France, and Germany. Loewe’s music was fairly conservative, though his MILESTONES
1824
Balladen, song collection, published
1834
First performance of Die drei Wünsche, opera
1837 1847 1864 1866
Tours Germany Performs at court in London Falls into a coma for six weeks
w c.200
accompaniments could be adventurous, and he frequently set music to folk myths, supernatural tales, and historical themes. He wrote operas, but with little success, and though reasonably popular in Germany after his death, he is now overshadowed by other composers – Loewe’s setting of Goethe’s ballad “Erlkönig”, for example, was one of his early successes, but Schubert’s more cohesive setting of the same text is far more often heard today.
Asked to resign posts at Stettin due to health concerns
Loewe made Stettin in Germany his home town for more than 45 years, and he served there as professor, music director, and organist.
Fanny Mendelssohn b 1805–1847
n German
Fanny Mendelssohn was born into a liberal, talented, and cultured Jewish family, but her father, while encouraging her private musical activities, strongly discouraged publication or public performance. So she played the piano in a flourishing private salon in Berlin, for which she wrote her lyrical, traditional, and wellcrafted pieces. She is also known to have played then-unfashionable composers
w c.500
such as J S Bach and Handel. Though she was a significant influence on her brother Felix, contributing musically to his oratorio St Paul, he still overshadows her; only two dozen of her pieces were published, and reviving her music is difficult as most of her manuscripts are in private collections. Her premature death from a stroke devastated Felix, who never really recovered. MILESTONES
1829
Marries Prussian court painter Wilhelm Hensel
1838
Only public concert: her brother Felix’s Piano Concerto No. 1
1840
Das Jahr, piano pieces, composed
1842
Mother dies; takes over the direction of the Mendelssohn family home
1846
Composes Piano Trio, Op. 11 Fanny Mendelssohn’s piano cycle Das Jahr is a musical journal of an idyllic year spent travelling through Italy in 1839.
174
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Schu “Schubert’s life was one of inner, spiritual thought, and was seldom expressed in words but almost entirely in music.” FRANZ ECKEL, SCHUBERT’S FRIEND FROM CHILDHOOD
175
F R A N Z SCH UB E RT
Franz Schubert
ubert b 1797–1828
n Austrian
w 1,009
One of music’s greatest melodists, Schubert’s tragically short life is constantly belied by his optimistic music. Achieving compositional maturity by the age of 17, his vast output evinces astounding fluency allied to an extraordinarily rich and varied musical imagination. The epitaph on his tombstone reads, “The art of music here entombed a rich possession, but even fairer hopes. Franz Schubert lies here.”
LIFE
Born into a musical family, Schubert showed a precocious talent for the violin and piano. By the age of ten he was studying harmony and the following year became a chorister at the Court Chapel in Vienna, where he studied composition with Salieri, who had also taught Beethoven. Leaving in 1813, he was already an accomplished composer, having written numerous works, including a symphony, and even started an opera, but following his father’s wishes he became a school teacher. Schubert continued to compose, however, and eventually he felt confident enough to give up school teaching, although he did become music teacher to the Esterházy family, who had formerly employed Haydn. Still not well known in Vienna, Schubert was in considerable financial difficulty, and when he caught syphilis in 1822 his unhappy situation threw him into despair. However, his creativity continued undiminished and by 1825 he was published and becoming known in Vienna – even the dying Beethoven requested a meeting. He gave his only public concert in 1828, but by the end of the year his health had deteriorated markedly, and he died on 19 November. His estate was valued at 63 gulden, while his unpaid bills amounted to nearly 1,000 gulden.
Many of Schubert’s songs and solo works were first performed by the composer at evening parties hosted by his cultured and influential friends.
Total: 1,009
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (9)
1
5
CONCERTOS (1)
2
1
1
PIANO MUSIC (147)
21
42
52
32
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (77)
36
25
7
9
OPERA (10)
1
4
4
1
CHORAL (185)
41
81
28
35
SONGS (580)
50
372
81
77
1797
1810
1815
1820
1825
1828
176
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
MUSIC
context. His huge output includes Whether to place Schubert’s music sacred and choral works, orchestral within the context of the Classical music including overtures and nine or Romantic period has always been symphonies, over 70 chamber music a topic of contention. Certainly works, and works for piano including subjective in its emotions, his work is 21 sonatas and some far more dependent 60 works for piano on the hedonism of duet. However, he melody for its own was first known for sake than that of his songs. Schubert Haydn, Mozart, or was the central figure Beethoven, and is in the creation of the more adventurous. German art-song, or Sacrificing the Lied. Frequently Classical tenets of balance in favour Known for his love of the vine, Schubert enjoyed combining the very visiting the village of Grinzing near Vienna to greatest poetry with of spontaneous sample the heuriger, the first wines of autumn. accompaniments imagination, his made possible by advances in piano music, however, invariably displays Classical forms and, with the exception design, his imagination was able to of the songs, is almost entirely missing capture in music both the essential any external allusion or descriptive title. mood and the detail of the narrative. While formerly considered Romantic, Furthermore, by setting narrative poetry cycles, he developed the genre perhaps influenced by the changing fortunes in his personal life, more recent to create the song cycle. It is therefore rather surprising that his many works commentators have placed his work for the stage are still almost unknown. alongside Beethoven’s in historical MILESTONES 1815
Accepted as chorister at the Court Chapel, where he becomes a pupil of Antonio Salieri
Becomes a schoolmaster; composes Symphonies No. 2 and No. 3, and the song “Erlkönig”, D328, which in his lifetime becomes his best-known work
1816
1813
Completes Symphony No. 1, D82; starts work on an opera; commences teacher-training
Completes Symphony No. 5, D485, and more than 100 songs, including “Der Wanderer”, D493
1818
1814
“Gretchen am Spinnrade”, D118
Gives up school teaching and becomes music teacher to the Esterházy family
1819
Spends summer in Steyr; commissioned to write the “Trout” Quintet, D667
1822
Contracts syphilis; writes the “Unfinished” Symphony, No. 8, D759, and the “Wanderer” Fantasy, D760
1823
Admitted to Vienna hospital; composes song cycle Die Schöne Mullerin, D795
1827
Torch-bearer at Beethoven’s funeral; composes first part of Winterreise, D911
1828
Public concert receives no press due to the arrival in Vienna of Paganini; completes “Great” Symphony No. 9, D944 and Winterreise, D911
1802
Studies violin with his schoolmaster father and piano with his brother
1808
The evening concerts where Schubert and his Bohemian friends performed their new music have since become known as “Schubertiads”.
KEY WORKS SYMPHONY NO. 9, THE “GREAT”, D944 ORCHESTRAL
d 62:00
p4
o
Visiting Schubert’s brother in 1828, Schumann discovered this symphony, and sent it to Mendelssohn, who premiered it the following year. Nicknamed the “Great” for its size (Schumann wrote of its “heavenly length”), its Classical form and proportions encompass a Romantic lyricism and richness of harmonic and orchestral colour that bridge the gap between Beethoven and Bruckner. “WANDERER” FANTASY, D760 SOLO PIANO
d 20:15
p1
s
The most outwardly virtuosic of Schubert’s piano works, this onemovement fantasy consists of four distinct but dovetailed sections. Drawing on the theme of his own song “Der Wanderer”, the outer sections explore its rhythm, while the melody inspires a series of variations in the second movement. PIANO SONATA NO. 21, D960 SOLO PIANO
d 42:30
p4
The German baritone Dietrich Fischer-Dieskau (1925–) is a pre-eminent Lieder singer, and has performed and recorded both of Schubert’s major song cycles.
optimistic journey which belies the fact that Schubert was to die only two months after its completion. STRING QUARTET NO. 14, “DEATH AND THE MAIDEN”, D810 CHAMBER
d 35:30
p4
e
Schubert’s earlier macabre song – where Death appears to a maiden disguised as her lover – gave this quartet both its title and the theme for its second movement. Written after the composer became aware of his ruined health, this sombre drama mirrors Schubert’s despair. DIE SCHÖNE MULLERIN, D795 SONG CYCLE
d 62:00
p 20
sv
Setting words by Wilhelm Müller, this song cycle tells the story of an apprentice miller who falls in love and, racked with infatuation and jealousy, drowns himself. The graphic depiction of his emotions is reflected by the flowing mill stream, which sings him a lullaby at the end of the work.
s
Seldom performed in the 19th century, Schubert’s last sonata has become an iconic work to post-war pianists. Its grand and spacious structure, leading the listener from resignation through contemplation to affirmation, is an
INFLUENCES
At his death, little of Schubert’s music had been published, except for a number of songs and some mature works. Its slow dissemination in the 19th century limited its influence, as harmonic turns – surprisingly advanced for the 1820s – appeared commonplace at their first hearing 40 years later.
178
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
FOCUS PIANO QUINTET, “DIE FORELLE” (“THE TROUT”), D667 CHAMBER
d 42:20
p5
e
Schubert’s early masterpiece adds a double bass, rather than the more usual second violin, to the piano-quartet ensemble. With its unquestioned joy and natural simplicity, this piece has an irresistible appeal. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO VIVACE, 13:20)
With the double bass providing a sonorous foundation, the piano doesn’t need to provide a bass line here, and so is frequently used as a purely melodic instrument. SECOND MOVEMENT (ANDANTE, 7:00) A gentle dialogue between instruments which, threatening to come to an end in mid-movement, is immediately repeated in its entirety in a different key. THIRD MOVEMENT (SCHERZO: PRESTO, 4:00)
Brisk and vigorous, with a number of humorous silences as well as sudden
changes of dynamic and register, the Scherzo third movement is tempered by a wistful Trio section. FOURTH MOVEMENT (ANDANTINO, 8:30)
The “extra” movement which gives the work its name is a set of variations on Schubert’s 1817 song “Die Forelle”. In increasingly inventive variations, each instrument gets the melody in turn, and the movement ends with a fully collaborative reprise of the opening. FIFTH MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO GIUSTO, 9:30)
Surprising juxtapositions of elegance and rustic vitality, and the odd false ending, gives the work a mercurial if slightly unsatisfying conclusion. WINTERREISE, D911 SONG CYCLE
d 73:00
p 24
sv
Winterreise was written as Beethoven lay dying in Vienna. After he had been given nearly 60 of Schubert’s songs to look over, Beethoven insisted on meeting the young composer. They met one week before his death, and Schubert subsequently became a torchbearer at the great composer’s funeral.
SYMPHONY NO. 8 IN B MINOR, “UNFINISHED”, D759 ORCHESTRAL
The Vienna Philharmonic Orchestra has recorded many of Schubert’s works. Recommended recordings include Symphonies No. 3 and No. 8. Here Joseph Krips conducts the “Unfinished” in 1969.
d 24:30
moderato; Triple time; 1BAllegro minor; Sonata form
Exposition 1
o
Return of first theme
Dramatic diminished chords
Second, lyrical theme announced by cellos
p2
The “Unfinished” Symphony, written in 1822, was not heard until the manuscript was rediscovered and performed in 1865. Sketches exist for a third movement, quashing theories that Schubert thought the work complete. It is actually the most complete of a number of unfinished
Development 2
3
Introductory theme by cellos and double basses, followed by first theme played by oboes and clarinets
4
5
6
Return of introductory theme
7
Recapitulation 8
9
Introductory theme played by trombones
10
11
Return of second theme
12
As with Die Schöne Mullerin, this song cycle is set to poetry by Wilhelm Müller, this time his Posthumous Papers of a Travelling Horn Player, where a traveller journeys out of town, dwelling on memories of an unfaithful lover. Poetically, the songs explore the psychological journey as much as the actual one, charting the loneliness of the protagonist through desolate winter scenery. Musically, the hypnotic rhythms of the sparse accompaniments form a desolate background to the subdued melancholy of the vocals. Schubert’s genius lay in providing infinite variety within this unity of mood – 24 vivid shades of grey. Winterreise drew ambivalent responses at first. Schubert’s friends recalled that “We were quite dumbfounded by the sombre mood of the songs. Schubert replied merely with the words ‘I like these songs more than any, and they will come to please you too’; he was right, and we were soon thrilled by the impact of these melancholy songs.” marked by passages of gentle lyricism interrupted by fierce outbursts.
symphonies by the composer. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MODERATO, 14:00)
It has been suggested that the dark turmoil of this movement mirrors Schubert’s state of mind when he found out that he had contracted syphilis. Unlike the “Wanderer” Fantasy of the same period, this is introverted music, with each of the principal themes being introduced as quietly as possible. The movement is con moto; Triple 2 Andante time; E major; Ternary form
Coda 13
A 14
16
Horns and bassoons announce first theme, answered by strings
The music of the second movement repeatedly tends towards agitation. Until the last few moments of the ethereal coda, it never quite recaptures the serenity of the opening. Even the beautiful clarinet melody is usurped by its syncopated string accompaniment.
10:30)
Second theme, played by solo oboe in major key
B 15
SECOND MOVEMENT (ANDANTE CON MOTO,
Silvery violin melody links statements of first theme
A 17
18
Second theme in C sharp minor, played by solo clarinet with string accompaniment
19
Coda
B 20
Return of first theme, played by horns
21
22
Second theme, in A minor, played by solo oboe
23
24
Return to E major for last return of opening theme
180
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Ber
“Every composer knows the anguish and despair occasioned by forgetting ideas which one has no time to write down.” HECTOR BERLIOZ
181
H E CTOR B E R L I OZ
Hector Berlioz
lioz b 1803–1869
n French
w 124
Little appreciated in France during his lifetime, Berlioz’s music and life embodied Romantic ideals perhaps more than any other composer, apart from Liszt. His startlingly original imagination, grandiose conceptions, and extraordinary skill in orchestration brought a new pictorialism to music. The first major composer who was not an instrumental performer, Berlioz became one of the first modern conductors, as well as a perceptive critic.
LIFE
Expected to become a doctor like his father, Berlioz received only a rudimentary early music training and, lacking a piano, had to study harmony in secret from treatises. In Paris, his medical studies succumbed to frequent visits to the Opéra and private musical study and, against his parents’ wishes, he enrolled at the Conservatoire. There he heard Beethoven’s symphonies and read Goethe’s Faust, but his most formative experience was attending performances of Shakespeare, where his passion for the Bard was eclipsed only by his obsession for the leading lady, Harriet Smithson. Her initial rejection inspired the Symphonie fantastique, but they were later married for nine disastrous years. Winning the Conservatoire’s highest award, the Prix de Rome, did little to increase acceptance of his music, and in spite of a generous gift from Paganini, Berlioz turned to music journalism to support himself, where his erudite but acerbic wit did little to endear him to his peers. A third career beckoned when, unhappy with performances of his works, he started to conduct them himself, and then found himself in demand as an international conductor. For the following 20 years he toured extensively, and wrote some of his most important operatic and choral works.
Berlioz’s final years saw the publication of his fascinating memoirs. On his deathbed he whispered, “At last, they will now play my music.”
Total: 124
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (4)
3
1
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (20)
2
2
14
1
1
OPERAS (5)
1
1
1
1
1
CHORAL (42)
11 19
11 15
11 17
7 1
2 1
SONGS (53)
1803
1818
1830
1840
1850
1860
1869
182
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
MUSIC
Unaccomplished as an instrumentalist, Berlioz instead made the orchestra his instrument. Eschewing the popularity of chamber and solo works, he expressed his intense personality in dramatic and often epic orchestral, operatic, and choral forms. His works blurred formal boundaries by frequently incorporating programmatic elements, as in the operatic choral symphony Romeo and Juliet and the symphonic concerto Harold in Italy. More revolutionary still was his use of orchestration. Not afraid to employ huge forces and newly-invented instruments, and to redistribute players around the hall, even off-stage, he was able to paint both subtler and more blazing colours than Berlioz first saw Harriet Smithson in 1827 when she played Ophelia in Hamlet by Shakespeare. He finally met her in 1832. They married in 1833.
MILESTONES
1821
Enters medical school in Paris; makes first visits to the Opéra
1824
Gives up medicine; composes Messe solonnelle (lost in 1835, found in 1991)
1826 1827
Enrols at Paris Conservatoire Sees Harriet Smithson in Hamlet
1828
Hears Beethoven’s symphonies and reads Goethe’s Faust
1830 1834 1837 1841 1842 1849 1858
Symphonie fantastique wins Prix de Rome Composes Harold in Italy, viola concerto Writes Grande messe des morts Les Nuits d’été, vocal work, composed Begins first of many international tours Composes Te Deum Writes The Trojans, opera
had previously been imagined. His melodies fall naturally, avoiding the regular beat and stylized ornamentation of Italianate music, while his harmony encompasses surprising dissonances for dramatic ends. As he wrote in his memoirs, “The ruling characteristics of my music are passionate expression, intense ardour, rhythmical animation, and unexpected turns”.
KEY WORKS THE TROJANS OPERA
d 240:00
p5
ocv
listener in the drama of the text. Commissioned by the government for performance in the church of Les Invalides in Paris, Berlioz later said, “If I were threatened with the destruction of all my works but one, I would beg mercy for the Grande messe des morts.”
Berlioz based his magnum opus, Les Troyens, on Virgil’s Aeneid, completing both libretto and music in two years. The first two acts depict the story of the Trojan Horse, and the remainder, Dido and Aeneas in Carthage. He finished the work in 1858 and it was LES NUITS D’ÉTÉ, OP. 7 first performed in 1863 as two separate VOCAL d 31:00 p 6 o v operas, as is often the case nowadays. Originally composed for single voice and piano, Berlioz orchestrated these settings of poems by Théophile Gautier GRANDE MESSE DES MORTS (REQUIEM), OP. 5 in 1856 for multiple soloists. Varying MASS SETTING d 76:00 p 10 o c v from the joyful “Villanelle” to the despairing “L’île inconnue”, the light Berlioz’s forceful and vivid setting of the Requiem, with its massive orchestra but exquisitely coloured orchestration paved the way for similar works by including 12 horns, 16 timpani, and Richard Strauss and Mahler. four brass ensembles, immerses the
183
H E CTOR B E R L I OZ
FOCUS SYMPHONIE FANTASTIQUE, OP. 14 ORCHESTRAL
d 56:00
p5
o
Inspired by Beethoven, Berlioz decided to become a symphonist himself. This work became a Romantic autobiography about his obsession with Harriet Smithson, who is musically portrayed by an idée fixe. His concert notes described a young musician of great sensibility and imagination, in despair because of hopeless love. Opium plunges him into a heavy sleep accompanied by weird visions. DREAMS AND PASSIONS (16:00) Ranging from calm and melancholy to passion and despair, the artist recalls the time before love, then its delirious effect, and religious consolation. A BALL (6:00) A brilliant and sumptuous waltz halts dramatically as the beloved’s theme is heard once again. SCENE IN THE COUNTRY (17:00) Off-stage players depict far-off shepherds piping. The melancholy artist almost achieves tranquillity, but the beloved is recalled and distant thunder sounds. MARCH TO THE SCAFFOLD (7:00) To rasping brass and winds, the artist is condemned to death for his beloved’s murder. We hear her plaintive theme, the blade drops and crowds cheer. DREAM OF A SABBATH NIGHT (10:00) Grotesquely
parodied, the
beloved joins the devilish orgy while the ancient plainchant “Dies Irae” is intoned, surrounded by tolling bells. TE DEUM, OP. 22 CHORAL
d 47:00
p6
oscv
Written to be heard in church, Berlioz described this piece as being not only the ceremonial hymn of thanksgiving usual in a Te Deum, but also an offering of prayers whose humility and melancholy contrast with the majesty of the hymns. His placing of the orchestra and chorus (including a large children’s choir) at the opposite end of the church to the organ was essential to the musical effect. Berlioz also re-ordered the traditional text to control the overall tension of the work. As well as the six choral movements, there are two instrumental movements – originally designed for ceremonial purposes – which are not always included in modern performances. INFLUENCES
Apart from the Symphonie fantastique, Berlioz’s works were seldom heard until the 1880s, when they were revived in France as an antidote to Wagner. Only after the 1950s did his music become widely disseminated, although logistical difficulties still prevent regular performances of some of his works.
184
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Johann Strauss Sr b 1804–1849
n Austrian
w 251
Founder of the “Strauss Waltz Dynasty”, Johann Strauss Sr helped to take the waltz – then a traditional Austrian folk dance – out of the village tavern and into Europe’s finest ballrooms. He was famous for the rhythmic verve of his music and the finesse of his conducting, but his music has been eclipsed by the more memorable melodic gifts of his sons. He is now principally known for the stirring Radetzky March. LIFE AND MUSIC
Of humble origins, Strauss learnt to play the violin in his teens whilst apprenticed to a bookbinder, spending the evenings performing traditional dances in local taverns. Following the lead of Carl Maria von Weber’s 1819 piano piece Invitation to the Dance, he expanded the Viennese waltz into a chain of dances framed by an introduction and coda, and was soon presenting these works with his own orchestra. A six-year contract to play at the prestigious Sperl dance hall consolidated his fame, and he was soon in demand at ballrooms across Europe. In addition to some 150 waltzes, he composed a number of other fashionable dances.
MILESTONES
1819
Joins Joseph Lanner’s small band
1824
Becomes conductor of Lanner’s second orchestra, attempts first waltzes
1825
Marries Maria Anna Streim; forms own orchestra; Johann Strauss Jr born
1829 1837 1838
Takes up residency at the Sperl Composes Cachucha Galop Plays for Queen Victoria of England
1842
Writes Beliebte Annen Polka, Op. 137; Maria Anna sues for divorce
1843
Composes Loreley Rheinklänge, Op. 154, and Kunstlerball Tanze, Op. 150
1846
Appointed first ever Royal and Imperial Hofballmusikdirektor
1848 1849
Composes Radetzky March Dies of scarlet fever, aged 45
KEY WORKS BELIEBTE ANNEN POLKA, OP. 137 DANCE
d 1:50
p1
o
Brought to Vienna from Bohemia in 1839, the lively polka was the newest dance craze. Strauss wrote the Beloved Anna Polka for his wife, a few months before she sued for divorce.
LORELEY RHEINKLÄNGE, OP. 154 DANCE
d 5:40
p1
o
The Echoes of the Rhine Lorelei was one of Strauss’s most popular waltzes, and was performed to great acclaim in1844 by his son Johann Strauss Jr, who went on to steal his father’s crown. KUNSTLERBALL TANZE, OP. 150 DANCE
d 6:20
p1
o
This archetypal waltz was performed at the 1843 Artists’ Ball. Following a grand introduction, five linked waltzes are then briefly recalled in a coda. The fruitful partnership between Strauss (violinist on left) and Joseph Lanner (violinist on right) began with a small band of Viennese musicians in 1819.
185
J OH A N N STR AUSS SR
FOCUS RADETZKY MARCH, OP. 228 DANCE
d 3:00
p1
o
On 31 August 1848, to celebrate the Austrian army’s victory over an Italian revolutionary uprising at Custozza, an open-air victory festival was held in Vienna. The concert was dedicated to the 82-year-old Commander-in-Chief of the Imperial Austrian army, Count Radetzky von Radetz, and a special march had been commissioned from Strauss to celebrate the occasion. On the afternoon of the victory concert the piece had still not been composed. However, with the help of his colleague Philipp Farbach Sr, an eminent flautist who frequently assisted the composer with his orchestration, the Radetzky March was completed in around two hours and played to great acclaim that very evening. The march quickly became a Habsburg anthem, ensuring frequent performances and eventually bestowing immortality on a composer whose other works posterity has judged ephemeral. The march actually incorporates two popular Viennese melodies which would have been very familiar to its first audiences. The outer, martial sections include a common streetsong, while the more gentle trio section features one of the previous season’s most popular dance melodies.
CACHUCHA GALOP, OP. 97 DANCE
d 2:00
p1
o
In 1837, the Austrian ballerina Fanny Elssler performed “the cachucha” – a Spanish dance then very popular in Paris – for the audience of the Viennese Court Opera. After three performances of this “lascivious” dance, Vienna caught “cachucha fever”. Strauss was quick to realize the financial potential of the situation and promptly wrote this hair-raising galop to take advantage of the craze. An inscription by the composer Adolf Müller on the original manuscript shows the work had an even faster genesis than the Radetzky March: “This galop was composed by Johann Strauss one hour before the start of the ball, copied by the copyist, performed without rehearsal, received extraordinary applause, and was repeated three times.” The main section of the galop and the coda feature a castanet accompaniment to original melodies from the cachucha dance, while the central trio section is original Strauss. INFLUENCES
Apart from fathering a musical dynasty, Johann Strauss’s refinement of the waltz paved the way for composers such as Chopin, Brahms, and Ravel, who brought the dance into the concert hall. Strauss’s best-known piece, the Radetzky March, is still featured in the annual telecast of the New Year’s Day concert from Vienna.
186
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Mende “A Romantic who felt at ease within the mould of Classicism.” CELLIST AND CONDUCTOR PABLO CASALS
187
F E L I X M E N DE L SSO H N
Felix Mendelssohn
elssohn b 1809–1847
n German
w 321
One of the most naturally gifted and accomplished musicians in the history of music, Mendelssohn preserved Classical ideals of harmony and form. As such he was admired by conservative music lovers for his charm, craftsmanship, and picturesque imagination, particularly in staid Victorian drawing rooms, but his music was eclipsed as soon as the public fully embraced the ideals of Romanticism.
LIFE
Born into a wealthy, cultured family, Mendelssohn had the finest private education available. His musical training was so thorough that it included the hiring of orchestras to try out his compositions. Felix showed talents not only as a violinist, pianist, organist, composer, and conductor, but also in fine art and poetry, and in his teens he became a protégé of Goethe. One of the first musicians to be fully aware of musical history, at the age of 20 he conducted the second-ever performance of Bach’s St Matthew Passion, leading to the 19th-century Bach revival. As he later recalled, “It was a Jew who restored this great Christian work to the people” (the Mendelssohns had actually converted to Christianity in 1816). There followed three years of travel and concert-giving. His love of all things British drew him back for ten lengthy visits to England and Scotland. He returned to conducting posts in Düsseldorf and then Leipzig, where he conducted the Gewandhaus orchestra. Here he established the now universal concept of programming both historical and modern works. Following the death of his sister Fanny, also a gifted pianist and composer, Mendelssohn suffered a series of strokes, and died at the age of 38.
Until his sister Fanny’s death, Mendelssohn’s life was relatively free of torment, struggle, or frustration, a fact which is mirrored in his sunny, cheerful music.
Total: 321
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (8)
5
1
CONCERTOS (18)
14
PIANO MUSIC (82)
27
13
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (62)
13
11
1
1
6
17
17
2
5
8
10
15
2
2
OPERA (7)
5
2
CHORAL (89)
21
10
12
13
19
14
SONGS (55)
12
3
11
12
11
6
1809
1820
1825
1830
1835
1840
1845
1847
188
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
MUSIC
Mendelssohn’s style does not fit easily with other Romantic music, and it has been suggested that he could be called Neo-Classical. He drew on the fugal technique of Bach, the textures and clarity of Mozart, and the orchestration of Beethoven. By his mid-teens, his style, as evinced by the A Midsummer Night’s Dream overture, had crystallized. Unlike his radical contemporaries, Mendelssohn used well-established forms, adapting them to his needs, but retaining their underlying principles. Neither sensuous nor flamboyant, his natural melodic gifts were always coupled with the very highest levels of craftsmanship. Where his music is specifically Romantic is in its use of extra-musical stimuli. Literary, artistic, and geographical inspiration drew forth the best from his picturesque imagination, and descriptive, rather than psychological, imagery informs much of his finest work.
MILESTONES
1818 1821
First public performance First visit to Goethe
1823
Grandmother gives him a score of J S Bach’s St Matthew Passion
1825
Octet, Op. 20, is published
1826
Overture to A Midsummer Night’s Dream, Op. 21; attends Hegel’s course on aesthetics
1829
Conducts St Matthew Passion, first visit to England and Scotland
1832
First volume of Lieder Ohne Worte (Songs Without Words), Op. 19
1835 1837
Director of Leipzig Gewandhaus Marries Cécile Jeanrenaud
1839
Conducts first performance of Schubert’s “Great” Symphony No. 9
1841
Conducts first performance of Schumann’s Symphony No. 1
1842
Variations Sérieuses, Op. 54; premiere of the “Scottish” Symphony
1844 1846
Violin Concerto, Op. 64, is published First performance of Elijah, Op. 70
KEY WORKS LIEDER OHNE WORTE PIANO SOLO
p 48
s
The elegant Lieder ohne Worte, or Songs Without Words, were the province of the drawing-room before the concert hall. Played by almost every amateur, they greatly enhanced Mendelssohn’s popularity in England. VARIATIONS SÉRIEUSES, OP. 54 PIANO SOLO
d 11:00
p1
s
Composed for an album of works by various composers, including Chopin, the proceeds of which were to go towards erecting a monument to Beethoven at Bonn in Germany, Mendelssohn’s Variations Sérieuses is certainly the most substantial of the offerings.
Without doubt his finest piano work, the yearning theme can be heard in almost every one of the 17 variations, offset by the great variety of moods, textures and harmonies. “SCOTTISH” SYMPHONY, OP. 56 ORCHESTRAL
d 38:30
p4
o
The last of Mendelssohn’s symphonies, the “Scottish” Symphony was written 13 years after his first visit to Scotland in 1829, which also inspired his Hebrides Overture (also known as “Fingal’s Cave”). The theme of the Scherzo is akin to Scottish folk melodies; further Highland allusions are subjective. Mendelssohn’s Wedding March was first officially used at the wedding of the Princess Royal of Great Britain in 1858.
F E L I X M E N DE L SSO H N
189
FOCUS VIOLIN CONCERTO, OP. 64 ORCHESTRAL
d 25.00
p3
os
A MIDSUMMER NIGHT’S DREAM, OP. 21, 61
INCIDENTAL MUSIC d 35:00 p 9 o This famous and popular concerto in E minor was the last of Mendelssohn’s This suite is Mendelssohn’s most orchestral works, and the last of his popular work. The overture and three violin concertos. The composer incidental music come from opposite was too ill to conduct his friend ends of Mendelssohn’s life, but use Ferdinand David at the premiere, and much of the same musical material. was replaced by the Danish composer OVERTURE (ALLEGRO DI MOTO, 12:00) Originally Niels Gade. The work was innovative written at the age of 17 for piano duet, in a number of Mendelssohn INFLUENCES ways, and the orchestrated this Numerous musicians over the past two centuries have piece’s three precocious answer been admirers of the work of Mendelssohn, but few, if any, can be said to have been influenced by it. However, movements are to the magic of Mendelssohn’s part in the great 19th-century Bach revival played without Shakespeare’s turned a cult into a popular movement whose effect on subsequent generations is impossible to overestimate. interruption. play the following year for a public FIRST MOVEMENT performance. Opening with chords to (ALLEGRO MOLTO APPASSIONATO, 11:00) Flying in depict the procession of Oberon and the face of convention, Mendelssohn Titania, we are swiftly immersed in allowed the violin to present the memorable opening theme before the the scurrying fairy world. A touching melody describes the lovers, while a orchestra. This move influenced the rustic dance for the “mechanicals” is majority of composers who followed interrupted by frequent donkey brays. him. He also moved the cadenza forward from the end of the INCIDENTAL MUSIC (23:00) Commissioned movement, presumably to allow the by the King of Prussia in 1842, four tension to subside before the seamless of the eight pieces were conceived as entry of the second movement entr’actes (music between acts), most accompanied by the bassoon. famously the fleeting fairy Scherzo. Also set are two songs, “You Spotted SECOND MOVEMENT (ANDANTE, 8:00) A Snakes” and “Through This House simple “song without words” with a more agitated central section, this slow Give Glimmering Light…” for soprano, mezzo, and chorus. Finally, movement gives the soloist nothing the ubiquitous Wedding March first to hide behind but his own tone, saw the light of day here. intonation, and musical imagination.
THIRD MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO NON TROPPO, 6:00)
Opening with its own fanfare, here all our Mendelssohnian expectations of gossamer-light fantasy are fulfilled with effervescent virtuosity.
190
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Cho
“After playing Chopin, I feel as if I had been weeping over sins that I had never committed, and mourning over tragedies that were not my own.” OSCAR WILDE, 1891
191
F R É DÉ R I C CH O P I N
Frédéric Chopin
opin b 1810–1849
n Polish
w 219
Exiled by revolution, abandoned by his mistress, dying of consumption, but always elegantly dressed, the frail image of Chopin fulfils all the stereotypes of the Romantic artist. The first poet of the piano, his music was immediately popular and has always transcended the vagaries of fashion. A national hero, his music announced the liberation of his native Poland and still accompanies international statesmen to their graves.
LIFE
Exiled from Poland by the Russian capture of Warsaw in 1831, Chopin made his home and his name in the piano capital of the world – Paris. There his reputation was based as much on the finesse and poetry of his playing as on his extraordinary keyboard facility. An inveterate snob with exquisite manners, Chopin was soon the toast of aristocratic circles. Preferring private performances in the salons of Parisian nobility to the strain and artistic compromises of courting the general public, he also developed a very lucrative career teaching ladies of aristocratic birth. Fastidious about his dress, he was something of a dandy, noting to a friend “You think I am making a fortune? Carriages and white gloves cost more, and without them one would not be in good taste”. In 1836 Liszt introduced him to George Sand, the novelist who had outraged Paris with her cigar-smoking and trouser-wearing. A nine-year relationship followed, during which Chopin wrote the majority of his most important works, starting with the Preludes, completed during the couple’s stay in Majorca. However, his health began to wane, and following the couple’s separation in 1847, it deteriorated rapidly and he wrote almost no more music. Following an extended visit to England and Scotland in 1848, he died the following year in Paris. 3,000 people attended his funeral.
Chopin’s exquisitely crafted piano music is highly regarded for its lyricism, purity, and delicate charm.
Total: 219
MUSICAL OUTPUT CONCERTOS (6)
4
2
PIANO MUSIC (194)
3
3
36
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (5)
1
3
1
SONGS (14)
2 1810
1815
1820
1825
1830
54
49
31
18
4
4
2
2
1835
1840
1845
1849
192
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
MUSIC
All of Chopin’s music includes a piano, and most of it is for that instrument alone. His works seem to have sprung fully formed onto the page. Notation was simply the last stage of a process of improvization at the keyboard, and it was not unusual for a work to evolve further after publication. His early music was written for his own concerts, and is fairly typical of the virtuoso material of the day, but after giving up the concert platform he found his unique voice, and every single work is a masterpiece. A simple, melodic style was refined and extended in numerous miniatures written primarily for his pupils, while virtuosity was sublimated into lofty drama in the more complex, large-scale concert works. Chopin was particularly drawn to dance forms – the waltz is evident in many works – but it was with the mazurka and the polonaise that he was able to assert his true, Polish identity.
MILESTONES
1818
Gives first concert
1826
Becomes a student at Warsaw Conservatory
1829
Two concerts in Vienna; Variations, Op. 2, favourably reviewed by Robert Schumann
1830
First performance of Piano Concerto No. 2, Op. 21
1831
Arrives in Paris, meets Liszt
1832
First Paris concert, meets Mendelssohn and Berlioz
1835
Meets Robert Schumann, composes Andante Spianato
1836
Becomes engaged to Maria Wodzinska; meets George Sand
1837
Engagement broken; visits London; Etudes, Op. 25, published
1838 1839 1846 1847 1848
Goes to Majorca with George Sand Preludes, Op. 28, completed Composes Barcarolle, Op. 60 Separates from Sand Last concert in Paris, tours Britain
KEY WORKS SONATA IN B FLAT MINOR, “FUNERAL MARCH”, OP. 35 SOLO PIANO
d 24:10
p4
s
Immediately plunging the listener into a maelstrom of desperation, even the more lyrical second theme exudes a hopeless pathos. The repeat is sometimes omitted by performers, rather shortening the passionate first movement. With its driving rhythms and chaste trio, the second movement is a very Beethovian scherzo. The third movement contains the most famous funeral march ever written. The focal point of this sonata, it predates the rest of the work by two years. The enigmatic fourth movement, with its stream of eerie, unharmonized
notes, inspired Anton Rubinstein to imagine “night winds sweeping over churchyard graves”. PRELUDES, OP. 28 SOLO PIANO
d 35:00
p 24
s
There is a breathtaking variety in these 24 pieces, perhaps the most forward-looking of all Chopin’s music. Exploring every key, they are full of harmonic surprises and enigmatic melodies. Among the many later composers inspired by the Preludes were Debussy and Rachmaninov. Chopin completed the Preludes in this cell in an abandoned monastery in Majorca in January, 1839.
FOCUS BARCAROLLE, OP. 60 d 8:40
SOLO PIANO
p1
s
Originally named after the barcarole sung by Venetian gondoliers, the barcarolle was probably first popularized as a musical form outside its native city by travellers returning from the Grand Tour. Beloved by Romantic audiences for its gentle evocations of love, it was soon appropriated by composers for solo and operatic vocal works, perhaps most famously in Offenbach’s The Tales of Hoffmann. The form also became associated with the piano, as Mendelssohn, Liszt, and Fauré penned a number of fine examples, but none is more celebrated than Chopin’s. His last major work, it was premiered by the composer at his last recital in Paris in 1848. Although it was written not long before his final estrangement from George Sand, it shows no signs of melancholy. Featuring an almost continuous lilting
rhythm, the bass conjures the ebb and flow of the water, while the rich harmony supplies the scene’s shimmering, shifting colours. Two long alternating melodies evoke the vocal origins of the genre, evolving from beautiful simplicity to sublime radiance. Foreshadowing the music of Alexander Scriabin over 40 years later, the complex harmonies of the coda create one of the most extraordinary moments in the piano repertoire.
PIANO CONCERTO NO. 2 IN F MINOR, OP. 21 ORCHESTRAL
d 26:15
p3
SECOND MOVEMENT (LARGHETTO, 8:00)
Inspired by his feelings for Constantia Gladkowska, Chopin wrote that the slow movement “belonged” to her. With its distinctive harmony, poetic lyricism, and ornate decoration it stands in sharp relief to other concertos of the period.
os
Chopin wrote his piano concertos to launch the virtuoso career that he later found so distasteful. FIRST MOVEMENT (MAESTOSO, 11:00) After the first performance in 1830, Chopin wrote: “The first Allegro of my concerto, which relatively few could grasp, called forth applause, but it seems to me that people felt they had to show interest and pretend to be connoisseurs”. Maestoso: 1F minor; Quadruple time; Sonata form
1
Virtuosic yet always elegant, the finale pays tribute to the mazurka of Polish folk music. The horn call that ushers in the exciting coda was a great surprise to early audiences.
Development Recapitulation A 2
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
10
11
First theme played by piano First theme played by violins
Allegro vivace; 3F minor; Triple time; Ternary form
Quadruple 2BinaryLarghetto; time; A flat major; form
Piano introduces second theme
Exposition
THIRD MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO VIVACE, 7:15)
First theme in a major key
B 12
13
14
15
A 16
17
Impassioned new theme Movement’s main theme
A 18
19
B 20
21
A 22
Piano introduces mazurka theme
23
24
Coda 25
26
Horn call
194
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Schum “I am affected by everything that goes on in the world… and then I long to express my feelings in music.” ROBERT SCHUMANN
195
RO B E RT SCH UM A N N
Robert Schumann
mann b 1810–1856
n German
w 268
Schumann’s deep and sensitive musicianship makes little attempt to play to the gallery, instead drawing the listener into the composer’s remote and enigmatic inner world. Perhaps the most elusive composer of the Romantic period, his music is at turns fanciful, introspective, and bombastic. Daringly original, and frequently impractical, he captured, as no other did, the innocent spirit of early German Romantic literature.
LIFE
Obsessed equally by music and literature as a boy, though receiving no thorough education in either, Schumann was persuaded by his mother to become a lawyer. Whilst studying in Leipzig he heard Paganini play, and decided instead to become a musician. Enrolling with a local piano teacher, Friedrich Wieck, whose 11-year-old daughter, Clara, was already a piano prodigy, he gave up his law studies and moved into Wieck’s home. When he injured his hand, allegedly in an attempt to strengthen his fingers, but probably as a result of a cure he was taking for syphilis, he gave up hope of a concert career and devoted himself to composition. In 1834, as editor of a new music journal, the Neue Zeitschrift für Musik, he brought the music of the young Chopin and Brahms to popular attention. In spite of their age gap, Clara and Robert fell in love, exchanging their first kiss in 1835. Her father banned the liaison, but they took him to court, and were eventually married in 1840. They started a large family (seven children survived), but Schumann, in whose family mental illness ran, started to suffer badly from depression. In 1854 he attempted suicide by throwing himself into the River Rhine. Rescued, he entered an asylum where he died.
By turns whimsical, fantastic, and grotesque, Schumann’s music is the apotheosis of Romanticism, rich in literary allusions.
Total: 268
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (6)
1
CONCERTOS (6)
2
2
1
1
2
1
2
PIANO MUSIC (90)
3
32
30
6
11
8
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (40)
2
2
2
6
11
17
OPERA (2) CHORAL (38)
2
SONGS (86)
13 1810
1820
1825
1 1830
1835
1840
1
1
3
19
14
35
14
23
1845
1850
1856
196
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
MUSIC
Between 1830 and 1840 Schumann published several piano masterpieces. Happiest when capturing moods and ideas in the white heat of inspiration, he showed a love of miniatures, and grouping several together around a common musical or conceptual theme, he created the Romantic piano suite. He was less accomplished in the structuring of large-scale movements. Of his more expansive piano works, only the Fantasy in C makes a lasting impression. Following in the footsteps of Schubert, he then focused on the art song, completing 19 song cycles in one year alone. Chamber music, largely ignored by his contemporaries, was his next target. It drew forth some of his finest mature work, including three string quartets and works for piano and strings. He also penned four symphonies, which are among the most impassioned symphonic music of their time.
MILESTONES
1828 1830
Enters Leipzig University Hears Paganini; gives up law for music
1831
Abegg Variations, Op. 1, and Papillons, Op. 2, published
1832
Injures hand
1834
First edition of the music journal Neue Zeitschrift für Musik
1835
Completes Carnaval, Op. 9
1836
Is forced to break off all relations with Clara
1838
Composes Kinderszenen, Op. 15, and Kreisleriana, Op. 16
1839
Discovers Schubert’s “Great” Symphony No. 9
1840
Marries Clara; composes songs
1842
Completes three string quartets, the Piano Quintet, Op. 44, and the Piano Quintet, Op. 47
1844
Suffers from depression and a nervous breakdown; moves to Dresden
1853 1854
Meets Brahms Attempts suicide; enters asylum
KEY WORKS SYMPHONY NO. 3, “RHENISCH”, OP. 97 ORCHESTRAL
d 32:30
p5
CARNAVAL, OP. 9 SOLO PIANO
o
In 1850 Schumann moved to the Rhineland and wrote this symphony as a tribute to its beauty. The work is unusually structured, and there is an extra, slow movement, powerfully inspired by the grandeur of a ceremony Schumann witnessed at Cologne Cathedral.
d 24:00
p 21
s
One of Schumann’s most popular works, this suite suggests a ball, with fleeting movements describing the real and imaginary people in Schumann’s life, as well as characters from the commedia dell’arte, such as Pierrot and Harlequin. It is richly diverse, even though many movements are based on the same four-note theme. PIANO QUINTET, OP. 44 CHAMBER
Schumann’s workroom in Zwickau, where he lived until leaving for Leipzig to study law. While at school he read Schiller, Goethe, Byron, and Jean Paul Richter.
d 31:00
p4
e
In 1842 Schumann took Liszt’s advice and wrote a series of chamber works, a genre then unfashionable, ending with the Piano Quintet. It was the first important work for this medium, and blended a demanding piano part with quasi-orchestral string writing. It paved the way for the piano quintets of Brahms, Franck, and Dvorˇák.
FOCUS FANTASY IN C, OP. 17 SOLO PIANO
d 30:00
p3
s
Dedicated to Liszt, the superlative 1838 Fantasy in C was originally Schumann’s tribute to Beethoven. At a time when he was forbidden to see his beloved Clara, the lines by the poet Friedrich von Schiller that preface the work were certainly intended for her eyes: “Through all the sounds of Earth’s mingled dream, lies one quiet note for the secret listener.” RUINS (DURCHAUS PHANTASTISCH UND LEIDENSCHAFTLICH VORZUTRAGEN, 12:00)
This impassioned and kaleidoscopic outpouring finds little peace even in the earthbound central interlude. Only at the end do we achieve tranquillity, when Schumann quotes a song from Beethoven’s An die ferne Geliebte. It is no coincidence that its opening words are “Take then these songs, my love.” TRIUMPHAL ARCH (MÄSSIG, 7:00) An overwhelmingly extrovert march whose infectious drive is produced by an almost constant stream of asymmetric rhythms even in the graceful middle section. In the maniacally exuberant leaps of the final pages, joy is unconfined. “It makes me hot and cold all over,” Clara wrote. WREATH OF STARS (LANGSAM GETRAGEN, 11:00)
A calm, slow movement unusually ends the piece. Schumann’s mercurial nature manifests itself in a vast musical landscape suggesting both serene peace and utter despair. INFLUENCES
Schumann’s most important music was too subtle and quirky to gain much popularity in his own lifetime, and he met with very little success as a conductor and teacher. It was mainly through performances by his widow, and by friends such as Joseph Joachim and Brahms, that his music eventually entered the musical canon.
DICHTERLIEBE, OP. 48 SONG CYCLE
d 28:00
p 16
sv
For Schumann it was a small step from writing cycles of piano music such as Carnaval, where moods are swiftly captured, to distilling the essence of a poem in a song. Until 1840 he claimed that song was an inferior medium to instrumental music and ignored it, but once he had started, before the year was out he had written more than 150 individual songs. The song cycle Dichterliebe (A Poet’s Love) explores the journey from the joy of new love, through failure, to renunciation. The setting of Heinrich Heine’s frequently bitter words is quietly compelling yet heart-rending in its lyrical pathos. Equally striking is his use of the piano; no longer an “accompanist”, it is an equal partner, which sets the scene and then adds to and comments upon the narrative. In the majority of the songs, Schumann adds a piano postlude, in which he sums up the mood, most poignantly at the end of the cycle, where he reflects on all that has passed. It is astounding that Schumann completed this entire masterpiece in only nine days.
198
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Lis
“My mind and fingers have worked like two damned ones. Unless I go mad, you will find an artist in me.” THE 21-YEAR-OLD LISZT IN A LETTER TO A FRIEND, 1832
199
F R A N Z L I SZT
Franz Liszt
szt b 1811–1886
n Hungarian
w 749
Liszt can truly be said to have been the central figure of the Romantic movement. As a young man he set Europe on fire with his astonishing pianistic gifts. He slowly gained recognition as a composer, developing the potential of the piano and the role of the pianist. As famous for his life as for his music, he worked tirelessly to promote the work of his colleagues, and to teach subsequent generations of pianists and composers.
LIFE
By the age of 12, Liszt had already performed throughout Europe, but ill health and religious contemplation during his late teens saw him withdraw from public life. Only after hearing Paganini did he return to the piano, dazzling listeners with the unprecedented complexity of his music. Fame and fortune followed, but in 1835 he shocked Paris by eloping with the already married Countess Marie d’Agoult. Living in Switzerland and Italy they had three children, while Liszt concentrated on composition. Returning to the platform in 1838, he established the prototype of the modern concert pianist by performing from memory and giving the first solo recitals (indeed inventing the term). For eight years he toured extensively, but by 1847 he longed to settle and marry his new lover, Princess Carolyne SayneWittgenstein. He became Kapellmeister at the court of Weimar, where until 1861 he wrote or revised most of his important works and taught the next generation of great pianists. However, when the Vatican stopped the annulment of the Princess’s previous marriage, and following the deaths of two of his children, Liszt again sought solace in the Church. He became an abbé, but continued to compose, teach, and perform without income until his death.
Liszt was one of the first in a long line of composer/musicians to gain celebrity as much for their stagecraft as for their music.
Total: 749
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (14)
9
5
CONCERTOS (9)
1
2
6
PIANO MUSIC (418)
15
93
93
70
63
84
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (82)
1
3
12
22
19
25
OPERA (1)
1 23
20
31
19
13
40
26
20
19
12
CHORAL (106) SONGS (119)
2 1811
1824
1835
1845
1855
1865
1875
1866
200
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
MUSIC
As a young virtuoso writing piano music to astound the public, Liszt’s early works were showpieces that took piano technique to new heights of difficulty. Liszt incorporated virtuosity as an essential dramatic element of his music. However, his knowledge of the piano’s evolving capabilities bore fruit in his transcriptions of operatic and symphonic music. Particularly in the symphonies of Beethoven and Berlioz, he found ways to transform the piano into a substitute orchestra. Following his retirement from concert life, he studied composition intensively. He became a true composer, whose harmonic language influenced Ravel and Wagner. This period produced his
most important works, not only piano pieces, but also two symphonies and 12 symphonic poems, a genre he invented. In his final years, Liszt’s experiments foreshadowed the music of the 20th century in its unstable harmonies and sparse textures. MILESTONES
1821
Studies with Beethoven’s pupil, Carl Czerny
1822 1831
First public concert in Vienna Hears Paganini play
1833
Transcribes Berlioz’s Symphonie fantastique
1835
Elopes with Countess Marie d’Agoult
1839
Returns to concert platform, travelling extensively for eight years
1847
Meets Princess Carolyne Sayn-Wittgenstein; retires to Weimar
1853 1857
Composes Sonata in B Minor, S178 Premiere of Faust-Symphonie, S108
1861
Moves to Rome, composes Mephisto Waltz No. 1, S110/514
1865
Takes minor orders of the Catholic Church, becoming an abbé
Long after retiring from public performance, Liszt would treat listeners to private recitals at his house in Weimar – now a museum devoted to the composer.
KEY WORKS FAUST-SYMPHONIE, S108 ORCHESTRAL
d 71:00
p3
ocv
Liszt wrote this work in 1854, having been introduced to Goethe’s play Faust by Berlioz in 1830. The three movements depict the main characters: Faust, Gretchen, and Mephistopheles. The work ends with the addition of a tenor soloist and male chorus, for a setting of Goethe’s “Chorus Mysticus”. TRANSCENDENTAL ÉTUDES, S139 PIANO SOLO
p 12
s
Exploring the possibility of orchestral sounds at the piano, this monumental cycle opened new doors, requiring pianists to use not just their fingers,
but also their arms, shoulders, and backs to master the necessary combination of speed and power. SONATA IN B MINOR, S178 SOLO PIANO
d 27:00
p1
s
Hearing the Sonata in B minor for the first time, Wagner wrote to Liszt “The Sonata is beautiful beyond compare; great, loveable, deep, and noble, just as you are.” The work’s single movement encompasses the diverse movements of earlier sonatas. It is built on five themes, which are transformed and combined during the drama, in a way foreshadowing Wagner’s technique of Leitmotif. It remains a monolithic work of the piano repertoire.
201
F R A N Z L I SZT
FOCUS PIANO CONCERTO NO. 1, S124 ORCHESTRAL
d 18:20
p4
os
Once one of the most popular works in the piano repertoire, Liszt’s Piano Concerto No. 1 belongs to the unabashed virtuoso pianist. Now heard infrequently, suffering in part from its brevity, it was premiered in 1855 with Berlioz conducting and Liszt himself at the piano. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MAESTOSO, 5:15)
Pianist and orchestra vie for attention with abrupt musical interjections in this kaleidoscopic movement. SECOND MOVEMENT (QUASI ADAGIO, 4:30)
Simply the greatest nocturne Chopin never wrote. After presenting the exquisite melody, the piano destroys the mood, only to melt away as an accompaniment for the woodwinds. THIRD MOVEMENT (ALLEGRETTO VIVACE, 4:20)
Liszt’s novel use of the triangle in this Scherzo drew much derision. The soloist’s role gradually changes from one of restrained virtuosity to that of unchallenged protagonist. FOURTH MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MARZIALE ANIMATO, 4:15) In a controlled series of gear changes, themes are brought back as pulses are inexorably raised.
MEPHISTO WALTZ NO. 1, S110/514 ORCHESTRAL/SOLO PIANO
d 10:00
p1
o/s
Written first for orchestra and then arranged for piano, the programme for this work comes from Austrian poet Nikolaus Lenau’s Faust, which differs from Goethe’s play. In Lenau’s version, Faust and Mephistopheles arrive at a tavern where, seeing a black-eyed beauty, Faust is overcome with reticence. Bored with the rustic music, Mephistopheles plays a diabolical waltz on the violin which inspires Faust and his inamorata to dance, and disappear into the woods… A spectacular and daring concert piece, the devilish outer sections are tempered by a seductive core, where the score explains that “they sink into the ocean of their own lust”. INFLUENCES
Whilst Liszt’s codification of the possibilities of the piano influenced nearly every piano composer who followed him, only a few of his less important works were heard with any regularity after his death. Only in the 1960s was his music reassessed and given its rightful place in the musical pantheon.
202
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Michael William Balfe
Adolf von Henselt
b 1808–1870
b 1814–1889
n Irish
w c.300
A fine operatic baritone who impressed Rossini, Balfe found overnight success as a ballad opera composer in London with The Siege of Rochelle in 1835. His lasting fame as a composer rests on The Bohemian Girl, a huge box-office hit in London, and the only British opera of the 19th century to win an international reputation. In the 1850s Balfe toured Europe and was fêted by Johann Strauss and, after further success in London, enjoyed a comfortable retirement at his country estate. MILESTONES
1825
Sings at La Scala in Milan, Italy
1827
Appears as Figaro in Rossini’s The Barber of Seville in Paris
1843
Opera Le puits d’amour succeeds in Paris; The Bohemian Girl performed
n German w 65
Henselt made a rapid reputation as a composer of piano works; his studies, which were published regularly for more than 50 years across Europe, stretched technique on the instrument to new possibilities. He also found international fame as a Romantic-style virtuoso, and was a friend of the Schumanns and Liszt. Henselt was, however, a reluctant performer, and instead became a highly respected music editor and teacher in Russia. MILESTONES
1837
Piano works – 24 Studies, Op. 2 and Op. 5 – published
1838
Start of career in St Petersburg, where he teaches the royal family
1839 1847 1854
Composes Two Nocturnes, Op. 6 Piano Concerto, Op. 16, published Ballade, Op. 31, composed for piano
Charles Valentin Alkan b 1813–1888
n French
Born Charles Henri Valentin Morhange, one of six Jewish children who all went on to become musicians, Alkan was a child prodigy, having his first compositions for piano published at age 14. During his youth he was a close friend of Chopin and Liszt, but over time he became reclusive and
w c.100
often disappeared for long spells. His concert appearances before 1873 were few, and although they established him as a virtuoso pianist, he preferred not to play his own compositions. His music is original, brilliant, and often hugely demanding – his Op. 39 includes a full “symphony” and “concerto”, but scored for unaccompanied piano. MILESTONES
1819 1838 1847
Enrolled in Paris Conservatoire Le Chemin de Fer, Op. 2, for piano 25 Preludes, Op. 31, published
1857
Compiles 12 Études in all the Minor Keys, Op. 39
1860s Disappears from public life 1873 Reappears to give concerts
Enrolled in the Paris Conservatoire at age six, Alkan won many prizes for his piano playing there, one of the most prestigious being the Conservatoire first prize for piano, which he won at age 11.
203
TH E RO M A N T I C E R A
Henry Litolff b 1818–1891
n French
Charles François Gounod w 160
Primarily a performer and conductor, Litolff composed throughout his career. His four surviving piano concertos, No. 4 being the most popular, are grand and sweeping. His solo piano music – highly colourful, improvisatory, and ostentatious – reflected his life. Born in London to a French prisoner of war, from the age of 17 he toured Europe as a concert pianist. In 1851 he gave up performing and settled in Brunswick, Germany, where he bought a music publishing firm. He was soon travelling again, finally moving to Paris, where he spent the rest of his life. MILESTONES
1849 1852 1858
Became citizen of Brunswick Piano Concerto No. 4 published Finally settles in Paris
n Belgian
w 80
Vieuxtemps was an eminent violin virtuoso and composer from an early age. He was adulated from America to Russia, and went on to write many brilliant chamber violin pieces and seven violin concertos. With up-to-date Romantic symphonic frameworks, these pieces filled a gap between the elegant, but old-fashioned, Classical works and the flashy showpieces of Paganini, and enjoyed great popularity in his lifetime. MILESTONES
1828 1833 1834 1840 1846 1861 1871
n French
w c.500
With his use of elegant harmonies and graceful melodies – such as in his enormously successful opera Faust – Gounod was a huge influence on Massenet, Bizet, and Saint-Saëns. A devout Catholic, he wrote 21 Masses, over 100 songs, and 12 operas. In the 1870s he sat out the Franco-Prussian War in England, where he began a relationship with a married woman, Georgina Weldon. Tiring of the public scandal which ensued, Gounod eventually returned to Paris alone. MILESTONES
1852 1858 1867
Conducts Orphéon Choral Society Composes Faust, opera Roméo et Juliette, opera, performed
1886
Mors et vita, oratorio, performed for Queen Victoria in London
Joachim Raff
Henry Vieuxtemps b 1820–1881
b 1818–1893
First performs in Paris Tours Germany and Austria Meets Paganini in London Composes Violin Concerto No. 1 Works for the Tsar in Russia Violin Concerto No. 5 composed Professor at Brussels Conservatory
b 1822–1882
n Swiss
w c.250
Raff ’s career was set in motion in the 1840s with support from Mendelssohn and Liszt (who often helped him out of financial difficulties). Following an appointment at the Weimar court, he independently produced much of his enormous output, which is extremely diverse. In the 1860s and 1870s, he was highly regarded as both a composer and a teacher – but accusations of quantity rather than quality, and arguments with employers, clouded his last years, and his reputation has since waned. MILESTONES
1851 1856 1864 1871 1878
Composes König Alfred, opera Locates to Wiesbaden from Weimar Symphony No. 1 Symphony No. 3, “Im Walde” Director of Frankfurt Conservatory
204
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Clara Josephine Schumann b 1819–1896
n German
w c.45
One of the great pianists of the 19th century, Clara Schumann (née Wieck) was among the first artists to present challenging programmes, of the highest musical quality, from memory. Both her husband, Robert, and close friend Brahms sought her music advice throughout their lives. Some of her own works were also highly regarded in her lifetime, but she believed that “a woman must not desire to compose”. LIFE AND MUSIC Under her father’s tuition, Clara Wieck became a great pianist, championing the music of Chopin, Schumann, and Brahms. She received widespread praise for her technique and bold repertoire, and for her thoughtful interpretations and pianistic singing tone, but marriage to Schumann, against her father’s wishes, and numerous pregnancies curtailed her career. After Schumann’s death she resumed touring and teaching, and also edited his music. Originally composing showpieces for her own concerts, her attitude to composition became increasingly ambivalent, and she wrote nothing after 1854. Clara’s best work shows imagination and craftsmanship, but lacks melodic individuality. Her intimate friendship with Brahms is generally believed to have been platonic.
MILESTONES
1828
First public performance in Leipzig; meets Robert Schumann
1835
Composes Piano Concerto, Op. 7
1838
Appointed Kammervirtuosin to the Austrian court
1839 1840 1844 1846 1853 1854
Writes 3 Romances, Op. 11 Marries Robert Schumann Tours Russia Piano Trio, Op. 17 published Writes Songs from Jucunde, Op. 23 Husband enters mental asylum
1856
Husband, Robert Schumann, dies; first of 16 concert tours to England
1878
Appointed head of piano faculty, Hoch Conservatory, Frankfurt
1891
Last public performance
KEY WORKS PIANO TRIO, OP. 17 CHAMBER
d 29:00
p4
SONGS FROM JUCUNDE, OP. 23 e
Although she regularly played chamber music, this was Clara’s first attempt at composing in the genre, and became her most frequently performed work. The instrumental writing encompasses a broad range of moods, from the rhythmically whimsical scherzo to the controlled tension of the Finale’s fugato, which elicited the praise of Mendelssohn. When Robert Schumann first heard Clara’s charming Romances he wrote, “I can hear that we are destined to be man and wife. You complete me as a composer.”
POEM SETTINGS
d 15:00
p6
sv
Set to simple texts by the little-known Austrian poet Hermann Rollet, these vivid settings are probably Clara’s finest work; the six songs, including “Geheimes Flüstern hier und dort” (“Secret Whisperings”), explore popular Romantic themes, such as love, melancholy, and mystery. Enjoying quite distinct roles, the piano and vocal lines frequently surprise the listener with quirky melodic and harmonic twists seldom heard in her output.
205
TH E RO M A N T I C E R A
César Auguste Franck b 1822–1890
n Belgian
w 97
Franck’s rejection of the frivolous and spectacular music of his contemporaries, in favour of symphonic and instrumental forms of high seriousness, strongly influenced successive generations of French composers. A late developer compositionally, his finest works – notable for their rich Wagner-inspired harmonies, innovative structures, and noble lyricism – were all written in his final years. LIFE AND MUSIC Franck toured Belgium as a pianist at the age of 11, but in maturity concentrated on composition. He later attracted considerable fame as an organist, and was subsequently appointed professor of the organ at the Paris Conservatoire, where his lofty music ideals inspired a group of young composers, including d’Indy and Dukas. A deeply religious man, he composed numerous sacred works, but his true legacy lies in the orchestral, keyboard, and When Eugene Ysaÿe first performed Franck’s Violin Sonata in Brussels, the room was so dark he had to play from memory.
MILESTONES
1837
Enrols at the Paris Conservatoire
1846
First performance of a large-scale work, biblical oratorio Ruth
1848
Marries actress Félicité Desmousseaux
1861
Appointed organist at SainteClothilde Church, Paris
1862
First important work, 6 Pièces, organ
1880
First performance of Piano Quintet, and Les Béatitudes, oratorio
1884 1885 1886
Prelude, Chorale, and Fugue published Writes Variations symphoniques Composes Violin Sonata in A major
chamber works written in the last years of his life. Harmonically rich, but based on traditional forms, these include some of the greatest French music of the Romantic period.
KEY WORKS PRELUDE, CHORALE, AND FUGUE SOLO PIANO
d 18:40
p3
s
Franck’s organ-loft is never far away from this noble work. The improvisatory Prelude leads directly into a chaste Chorale, where the octave bass line imitates the organ’s pedals. From this emerges the implacable Fugue, which climaxes with the return of the theme from the Chorale, before ending joyfully in the major key. VIOLIN SONATA DUO
d 27:00
p4
e
Written as a wedding gift for Franck’s countryman, the violinist Eugene Ysaÿe, this is one of the most popular
Romantic violin sonatas. Arranged over four very different movements, Franck uses his own innovation, known as cyclic form, to unify the whole by bringing back the transformed opening theme in subsequent movements. VARIATIONS SYMPHONIQUES ORCHESTRAL
d 15:40
p1
os
Often regarded as Franck’s masterpiece, this set of six variations and a Finale form one of the most beautiful and compact piano concertos in the repertoire. Ranging from melancholy lyricism to glittering elegance, the solo part is sufficiently restrained to allow the piano and orchestra to be fully equal partners.
206
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Bruc “Bruckner! He is my man!” RICHARD WAGNER
207
A N TON B RUCK N E R
Anton Bruckner
ckner b 1824–1896
n Austrian
w 36
Anton Bruckner was an important figure in the development of the symphony. Although a Romantic composer, he made use of, and expanded, Classical structures such as sonata form in his symphonies, and he was particularly influenced by the work of Wagner. Bruckner was also an organist, and in addition to the composition of nine symphonies, he produced a number of instrumental and sacred choral works.
LIFE
Born in Ansfelden, Austria, in 1824, Bruckner was largely self-taught as a composer. He was very dedicated and also worked as an organist, often practising for 12 hours a day. His first job as an organist was at St Florian’s Monastery near Ansfelden in 1851, and he later went on to Linz Cathedral, where he worked from 1856 to 1868. He was a very religious man and his first surviving work is the Requiem Mass, written in 1849. Bruckner was from a peasant background and he had a strong provincial accent that was looked down upon in cosmopolitan Vienna. He was also a rather solitary figure and was reluctant to explain or discuss his music with others. However, his musical outlook was very modern for its time, and he took on many of the harmonic innovations of Wagner, a move that was held against him by many critics loyal to the more conservative figure of Brahms. His three Mass settings and Symphony No. 1 were all written during his tenure at Linz, and in 1868 he became court organist and a teacher at the Vienna Conservatory. He went on to write eight more symphonies, in addition to a number of other sacred works and substantial pieces for organ, piano, and choir. His Symphony No. 9 was left incomplete on his death in 1896.
A devout Catholic born in rural Austria, Bruckner produced works that were at once solemn and transcendent.
Total: 36
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (10)
2
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (2)
2
4
CHAMBER (2)
4
2
KEYBOARD (6)
1
2
2
CHORAL (16)
2
2
6
1824
1840
1850
1860
1 2 1870
4 1880
1896
208
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
MUSIC
Bruckner’s music in many ways bridges the stylistic gap between early and late Romantic music, paving the way for major later figures such as Mahler and Sibelius. In his symphonies he relied on many Classical structures (including sonata form) and Baroque techniques, but he expanded the length and harmonic range of themes and the extent of their development. Bruckner’s music is particularly unusual for the long durations of its sections and movements, although this allowed him to achieve a great subtlety in form, with many sections containing a number of related subsections. This, together with an often gradual rate of change, lends the music its famous transcendent or “otherworldly” quality. Bruckner’s international reputation has grown enormously in recent decades and his works are particular favourites of many conductors and orchestras.
MILESTONES
1837
Sent to St Florian’s Monastery near Ansfelden; becomes choir boy
1849 1851 1856
Requiem Mass Organist at St Florian’s Monastery Organist at Linz Cathedral, Austria
1861
Makes first concert appearance as composer at Linz
1864
Composes Mass No. 1 in D minor
1865
Hears Tristan und Isolde in Munich; becomes devoted Wagnerian
1866 1866 1867
Mass No. 2 in E minor Writes Symphony No. 1 Mass No. 3 in F minor
1868
Becomes court organist and teacher at the Vienna Conservatory
1873
Symphony No. 3 first performed in Vienna
1887
Composes Symphony No. 8
1891
Receives honorary doctorate from the University of Vienna
1896
Dies while working on Symphony No. 9
KEY WORKS MASS NO. 1 IN D MINOR MASS SETTING
d 43:50
p6
oc
This Mass has quite symphonic proportions and the accompanying orchestra has a prominence reminiscent of Mozart and Haydn. Another principle that Bruckner took from the Classical era is that of cyclic form, and here themes from earlier movements are used in the Agnus
Bruckner studied at the Augustinian Abbey Church of St Florian, Austria, as a boy and he went on to become organist there in 1851.
Dei, the final movement. Inspired by Wagner’s Tannhäuser, this work represents Bruckner’s first piece as a fully mature composer. SYMPHONY NO. 3 ORCHESTRAL
d 1:00:00
p4
o
This work is often known as Bruckner’s “Wagner” Symphony. The earliest version (of 1873) contained a number of quotations of Wagner’s music and many remained in the published score of 1890. Two extra-musical ideas also appear in this piece. The first is the slow, dance-like theme in the Adagio that was written as an elegy for Bruckner’s mother. The other concerns his view of the opposing factors of life. The humourous Polka and solemn Chorale recall an evening that he spent in Vienna when he heard dance music issuing from the house where the architect Schmidt lay in his coffin.
FOCUS SYMPHONY NO. 9 ORCHESTRAL
d 60:30
p3
o
This piece, Bruckner’s last, has a quality of isolation and intense spirituality that is not present in his other works. The chromaticism and dissonance are further heightened by the lack of an affirmative ending (the work is unfinished), which contributes to its dark and foreboding quality. FIRST MOVEMENT (FEIERLICH, MISTERIOSO, 23:30)
Literally meaning “ceremonious” or “dignified”, the verbal direction of “Feierlich” captures the essence of the grand unfolding of this largescale movement. It has an unusual ending, being in neither a major nor a minor key. SECOND MOVEMENT (SCHERZO: BEWEGT, LEBHAFT; TRIO: SCHNELL, 10:15) The Scherzo reasserts the original key of D minor, but it has an unsettled, menacing quality. Its insistent, driving rhythm contrasts with sudden areas of light diversion. The Trio retains some of the mood of the Scherzo but has an additional sinister quality to it. THIRD MOVEMENT (ADAGIO: LANGSAM, FEIERLICH, 26:45) Echoing Wagner and anticipating Mahler, this movement’s opening theme has a searching quality, finally settling in the movement’s key of E major, by way of unrelated keys such as D major. This expansive opening echoes the wide span of the first movement. TE DEUM CHORAL
d 23:15
p5
oscv
This work of 1884 shares many qualities with Bruckner’s Masses of the 1860s and was one of his favourite pieces. The Latin title is taken from the first line of the text “Te Deum laudamus” (“We praise thee, o God”). The work is scored for the forces of solo soprano, contralto, tenor, and bass, a four-part choir, orchestra, and optional organ.
The opening ostinato theme provides a driving motion also found in the Mass in F minor and the Symphony No. 9. TE ERGO (3:00) This movement begins with a lyrical tenor solo, contrasting with the dynamic first movement. AETERNA FAC (1:30) Scored for the full chorus, without soloists, this section (“Aeterna fac cum sanctis tuis in gloria numerai”, or “Make us to be numbered with Thy saints in glory everlasting”) re-establishes the opening drama. SALVUM FAC (7:00) Here the composer once again establishes a calm, slow movement, accompanied by very sparing use of the orchestra, before launching into a forceful development section that uses the original motive from the beginning. IN TE , DOMINE (5:15) This final movement opens with the four soloists together before the grand entrance of the chorus, which by way of a very inventive canonic section reminiscent of Mozart leads the work to its triumphal conclusion. TE DEUM LAUDAMUS (6:30)
INFLUENCES
Bruckner’s historical position is of great importance. Incorporating the thematic developments of Liszt and the harmonic boldness of Wagner with the Classical principles of Haydn and Mozart, he laid the groundwork for many later figures. Schoenberg’s early style owes a lot to Bruckner via his teacher, Mahler.
210
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Brah
“Without craftsmanship, inspiration is a mere reed shaken in the wind.” JOHANNES BRAHMS
211
JOHANNES BRAHMS
Johannes Brahms
hms b 1833–1897
n German
w 135
Brahms is a towering figure in 19th-century music, perhaps the last great composer in the Classical tradition. Once regarded as the unfashionable antithesis of Wagner and Liszt, his music has proven itself to be not only powerfully affecting, but also an important influence on the development of 20th-century music. A sometimes difficult, uncompromising man, he composed masterpieces in all genres except opera.
LIFE
Born to a poor family in Hamburg, Brahms showed early promise as a musician. From around the age of 13, however, he made extra income for the family by playing in bars and houses of ill repute. Attempting to make a career as a pianist, in 1853 Brahms toured with the violinist Eduard Reményi and during the trip he made three of the most important acquaintances of his life: the violinist Joseph Joachim, the composer Robert Schumann, and the latter’s wife, Clara, herself a renowned pianist. Schumann was so impressed with Brahms’s compositions that he wrote a glowing article proclaiming him to be Beethoven’s heir. This gave Brahms’s career an immediate boost, but heaped expectation upon him. When Schumann suffered a breakdown the following year, Brahms went to Düsseldorf to help Clara and her family. He fell deeply in love with her, and the nature of their relationship after Schumann died has been a source of great speculation. They were undoubtedly intimate friends, and Brahms entrusted Clara with the first reading of many of his greatest works. Brahms was famously abrasive and often made tactless remarks; however, this hid a sensitive and thoughtful character who could be very generous with his time (and money), and inspired great loyalty from his friends.
Though the music of Brahms was rooted in the Classicism of past masters, its expressive and gigantic nature was Romantic at its core.
Total: 135
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (4) CONCERTOS (4)
1
2
2
2
1
CHAMBER (17)
4
5
4
4
PIANO MUSIC (24)
10
4
6
4
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (15)
2
2
5
6
CHORAL (39)
17
6
9
7
SONGS (32)
5
9
9
9
1833
1853
1863
1873
1883
1897
212
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
MUSIC
Brahms is often considered to be the last great composer in the Germanic Classical tradition, which stretches back through Beethoven, Mozart, and Haydn to Bach. At a time when the trend in composition was towards programmatic music, Brahms pointedly refused to see himself as a “modern” composer. Instead, he stuck to the Classical forms used by the masters and often spoke of the pressure he felt composing in their shadow. This dichotomy between Brahms’s Classicism and the “progressive” music of Wagner, Liszt, and Bruckner has (for better or worse) become a key theme in 19th-century music history. But, as Schoenberg first showed in a now infamous essay titled “Brahms the progressive”, Brahms’s music was nonetheless extremely innovative. The key to his innovation is the so-called “developing variation”, the constant reworking of small fragments of musical material as a composition progresses. This is epitomized in late
The influence of violinist Joseph Joachim led Brahms to include Hungarian folk rhythms in some of his work. Joachim also introduced Brahms to the Schumanns.
works such as the Clarinet Quintet, in which virtually every note can be seen as deriving from the opening bar. This style of writing paved the way for music in which every aspect of a composition arises from the same thematic cell. For all this, it is the sound of Brahms’ music that has assured its place in history. Rarely rhetorical, it is frequently described as “autumnal” – passionate and romantic, yet controlled, refined, and infused with melancholy
MILESTONES
Brahms spent his adolescence in and around the docks of Hamburg, where he made money in taverns and brothels performing piano tricks for the locals.
1845 1853
Studies piano with Otto Cossel and theory with Edward Marxsen Concert tour with Reményi; meets Joachim and the Schumanns; Robert Schumann writes a glowing review
1854
Schumann institutionalized; Brahms moves to Düsseldorf to help Clara
1857
Composes Piano Concerto No.1, Op. 15
1863 1867 1868
Director of the Vienna Singakademie Composes Ein Deutches Requiem, Op. 45 Settles permanently in Vienna
1872
Conductor of the Vienna Gesellschaftskonzerte
1876 1877 1878 1881 1883 1885 1887
Premiere of Symphony No. 1, Op. 68 Symphony No. 2, Op. 78 Violin Concerto, Op. 77 Piano Concerto No. 2, Op. 83 Symphony No. 3, Op. 90 Symphony No. 4, Op. 98
1889
Awarded freedom of the city of Hamburg
1890
String Quintet, Op. 111, which he vows will be his final work
1891
Hears clarinettist Richard Mühlfeld and writes Clarinet Quintet Op. 115 and Clarinet Trio Op. 114.
1896
Clara Schumann dies; composes Vier Ernste Gesange, Op. 121
Writes Double Concerto for Violin and Cello, Op. 102
213
JOHANNES BRAHMS
KEY WORKS SYMPHONY NO. 1, OP. 68 ORCHESTRAL
d 50:00
p4
o
Brahms had often spoken of hearing the “footsteps” of Beethoven behind him, and this self-imposed expectation is perhaps the reason it took him so long to write his first symphony (he began the work in 1862, but did not complete it until 1876). Immediately dubbed “Beethoven’s Tenth”, its lineage is plain to hear, but it is an epic and individual work. VARIATIONS ON A THEME BY HANDEL, OP. 24 SOLO PIANO
d 27:00
p 27
s
Like Beethoven before him, Brahms was attracted to the variation form and wrote several sets of variations on themes from other composers. The “Handel Variations”, based on an air from one of Handel’s keyboard suites, are perhaps his most appealing.
INFLUENCES
In one sense, Brahms was the last “Classical” composer, even in his own time viewed by some as an anachronism. Composers such as Dvorˇák and Reger were directly influenced by his music, although his indirect influence on the development of 20th-century music, through the advocacy of Schoenberg, is perhaps more significant.
VIOLIN CONCERTO, OP. 77 ORCHESTRAL
d 38:00
p3
os
Brahms wrote this concerto for his great friend Joseph Joachim. It is a large-scale work, ferociously difficult for the violin soloist. SYMPHONY NO. 4, OP. 98 ORCHESTRAL
d 42:00
p4
o
Perhaps lacking the melodic appeal of his earlier symphonies, this work has a rugged charm that epitomizes Brahms’s own character. A critic once described hearing the first movement as akin to “being beaten by two very clever men”. VIER ERNSTE GESANGE, OP. 121
PIANO QUARTET NO. 1, OP. 25 CHAMBER
d 40:00
p4
e
Brahms appeared as pianist in the premiere of his first piano quartet, the first time he had presented himself as such to a Viennese audience. A stormy, passionate, and youthful work, it displays typical Brahmsian hallmarks, particularly in the way that material is derived from the opening 4-note figure.
SONG
d 20:00
p4
sv
Brahms’s contribution to the Lieder tradition is often overlooked, if only because his legacy is so significant elsewhere. In fact Brahms wrote a great many songs, of which the Four Serious Songs, composed as a response to the death of Clara Schumann, are perhaps his most affecting. Many of the piano works of Brahms, from the solo pieces to the concertos, have been performed or recorded by the young Russian pianist Evgeny Kissin.
214
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
FOCUS
be a lively sonata-form movement based on a scurrying figure introduced by the violins.
CLARINET QUINTET, OP. 115 d 36:00
CHAMBER
p4
e
On completing the String Quintet No. 2 in 1890, Brahms resolved to retire from composition. However, inspired by the playing of clarinettist Richard Mühlfeld the following year, he wrote both the Clarinet Trio and the Clarinet Quintet. The Quintet has come to be seen as his very finest chamber work. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO, 12:00) All the melodic material in this sonata-form movement stems from the opening theme, presented by the two violins. SECOND MOVEMENT (ADAGIO, 12:00) The Adagio begins with a peaceful clarinet melody. The central section is a remarkable imitation of Hungarian folk music, with wild arpeggios.
FOURTH MOVEMENT (CON MOTO, 8:00)
After the dark and unsettled theme is explored in five variations, the opening phrase from the first movement makes a dramatic and unexpected return, giving a sense of finality. SYMPHONY NO. 3, OP. 90 ORCHESTRAL
d 33:00
p4
o
(ANDANTINO – PRESTO NON ASSAI,
The most compact of his symphonies, and perhaps the most immediately accessible, in Brahms’s lifetime the popularity of his Symphony No. 3 was such that the composer took to describing it as “unfortunately over-famous”.
MA CON SENTIMENTO, 4:00) The third movement begins as an intermezzo, but quickly reveals itself to
Although Brahms was seen as old-fashioned by admirers of Wagner and Liszt, he was highly regarded by many of his peers.
THIRD MOVEMENT
Lutheran Bible, avoiding reference to Christianity and – notably – omitting the Last Judgement entirely. Although a believer, he was not overtly religious, and later said that he would have liked to replace the word “German” with “Human” in the title. This has led some writers to suggest that the real motivation for the work was an expression of his pain at the deaths of his mother and of Robert Schumann.
EIN DEUTCHES REQUIEM, OP. 45 BIBLICAL SETTING
d 70:00
p7
ocv
A German Requiem, first performed in its complete form in 1868, made Brahms’s reputation in Vienna, and remains one of his most consistently popular works. Rather than use the standard Requiem texts, Brahms chose his own passages from the PART SIX AND SEVEN ”Denn wir haben hie keine bleibende Statt” 6Quadruple (“For here have we no continuing city”). Andante; time; C minor: Quasi-fugal form First Section 1
Second section (Vivace) starts with choir and full orchestra
Second Section 2
3
4
5
Sopranos enter Third Section
6
Timpani roll followed by baritone solo Timpani announce Choir accompanied by basses baritone solo and cellos, playing pizzicato
7
8
First Se 9
10
11
Third section (Allegro) is a fugue. Altos begin, accompanied by clarinets and followed by sopranos, basses, and finally tenors
12
13
FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO CON BRIO,
THIRD MOVEMENT (POCO ALLEGRETTO, 6:00)
As is so common with Brahms, the key to the whole movement is in the first few bars. The majestic first theme has been seen by some critics as a direct reference to Schumann’s Symphony No. 3. SECOND MOVEMENT (ANDANTE, 8:00) The simple folk-like theme of the second movement spoke to Clara Schumann of “worshippers kneeling about their little forest shrine”. 10:00)
A German Requiem contains some of the composer’s most haunting and poignant music. The fourth part, “Wie schön sind deine Wohnungen” (“How Lovely are thy Dwellings Fair”) is the emotional core of the work, with the remaining six parts forming a huge arch structure around it. The final part, ”Selig sind die Toten” (“Blessed are the Dead”). 7Feierlich; Quadruple time; F major: Ternary form
ection
One of Brahms’s most beautiful creations, the heart-wrenching theme appears first on cello before returning after the sombre Trio section, now on the French horn. FOURTH MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO, 9:00) The Finale begins in brooding fashion before more animated development leads eventually to a quiet, satisfying close, replete with ghostly hints of the first movement’s opening theme.
Brahms chose his own text for Ein Deutches Requiem, which was scribbled on a page of manuscript.
“Selig sind die Toten” (“Blessed are the Dead”), recalls material from the first to give a sense of closure. By making use of choral fugues (in the second and sixth parts), Brahms deliberately evokes the spirit of Bach’s sacred choral works.
Change of key (A major)
Return to original key; tenor solo
Second Section 14
15
Basses enter
16
17
Orchestral interlude
Orchestral interlude
Third Section 18
19
Altos and basses sing on a monotone
20
21
Sopranos and altos accompanied by upper woodwind
22
23
Alto solo followed by tenors
24
25
Imitation between vocal parts
26
216
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Tchaik “I am Russian in the completest possible sense of that word.” TCHAIKOVSKY IN A LETTER TO MME VON MECK, 1878
217
PYOT R I LY I CH TCH A I KOV SK Y
Pyotr Ilyich Tchaikovsky
kovsky b 1840–1893
n Russian
w 159
Tchaikovsky’s intensely emotional music combines many influences in an individual style: Russian folk song with Western European technique; nationalism with a deeply personal agenda; the bombastic with the haunting and beautiful. The effects of the composer’s homosexuality on his music and the mystery surrounding his death still cause speculation and controversy, but his music remains perennially popular.
LIFE
A sensitive and highly strung boy, Tchaikovsky was born into a large middleclass family in provincial Russia. After law school in St Petersburg, he became a civil servant, studying music privately but showing only average ability. However, he left his job to concentrate on music at St Petersburg Conservatory, and during five years under Anton Rubinstein his technique progressed rapidly. He moved to Moscow to teach and enjoyed celebrity in artistic and homosexual circles. At the age of 37 he entered into a platonic marriage of convenience with an infatuated student, Antonina Milyukova, but the effects that this had on his emotional state and his ability to compose were so destructive that they separated after two months. For the next 14 years Tchaikovsky corresponded with Nadezhda von Meck, a wealthy widow and lover of his music, who became his financial supporter (though by mutual agreement they intentionally never met). Nevertheless, by his early 50s Tchaikovsky was ill, depressed, and facing his own mortality. The official version of his death was that he absent-mindedly drank unboiled water and died of cholera, while a recent theory suggests he poisoned himself on pain of exposure for a homosexual scandal, but neither idea is very convincing.
Though a master of many forms of musical composition, Tchaikovsky is perhaps best known for his romantic ballets.
Total: 159
MUSICAL OUTPUT ORCHESTRAL (47)
8
15
12
CHAMBER (7)
1
3
2
PIANO MUSIC (31)
5
12
6
2
DRAMATIC (25)
1
11
4
4
5
VOCAL (49)
7
14
11
8
9
1840
1850
1860
1870
7
5 1
1880
6
1890
1893
218
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
MUSIC
years after his separation. However, Critics were divided by Tchaikovsky’s this idea is all too easy to overplay. early work (his Violin Concerto and The influence of Schumann and Piano Concerto No. 1 received very unfavourable reviews), but it was clear Beethoven, as well as Glinka, can from the beginning that he could write be heard in Tchaikovsky’s orchestral music, and there is “masterpieces” often a strong sense (such as his of a psychological Symphony No. 6 programme in and The Queen of which motto Spades). Some of themes undergo his music seems to transformation reflect his life: in (as in the last three Eugene Onegin, the symphonies); he fifth of his ten also made extensive operas, the “Letter use of folk tunes scene” has Tatyana Still displaying his piano and various personal effects, this is the house in Klin, near Moscow, (especially in his declaring her love Symphony No. 2, to Onegin by letter, where Tchaikovsky spent the final year of his life. the “Little Russian”). His Violin just as Antonina did to Tchaikovsky Concerto and the first of his three (though Onegin declines). Following concertos for piano are familiar on, the despair at Fate in his Symphony No. 4 is a commentary on showpieces that stretch the performer his state of mind during the disastrous to the limit, while his three ballets – Swan Lake, The Sleeping Beauty, and marriage that resulted, whereas his freewheeling orchestral suites evoke his Nutcracker – show off his trademark lusciously-scored melodies. sense of freedom during the travelling MILESTONES
1865
Appointed professor of harmony at new Moscow Conservatory
1866
Symphony No. 1, Op. 13, composed
1869
Voyevoda, Op. 3, opera, produced; Fatum, Op. 77, for orchestra, performed; begins Romeo and Juliet overture
1873
Symphony No. 2, Op. 17, performed in Moscow to great success
1874
The Oprichnik, opera, produced; String Quartet No. 2, Op. 22, and Piano Concerto No. 1, Op. 35, composed
1875
Piano Concerto No. 1, Op. 23, premiered in Boston, US; Symphony No. 3, Op. 29, premiered in Moscow
1876
Begins correspondence with Nadezhda von Meck
1877
Swan Lake produced; begins Symphony No. 4 and Eugene Onegin; starts eight years of international travel
1878
Violin Concerto, Op. 35, composed; Symphony No. 4 and Eugene Onegin, Op. 24, completed
1880
1812 Overture, Op. 49, written
1881
Violin Concerto, Op. 35, premiered in Vienna, to terrible reviews
1890
The Sleeping Beauty produced in St Petersburg; The Queen of Spades, Op. 68, composed, premiered triumphantly; Souvenir de Florence, Op. 70, composed
1892
The ballet Nutcracker, Op. 71, produced
The Bolshoy Zal (Great Hall) in the Moscow Conservatory, where Tchaikovsky was made Professor of Harmony in 1865.
KEY WORKS 1812 OVERTURE, OP. 49 ORCHESTRAL
d 16:00
p1
o
The “Solemn Overture” was composed in 1880 for the consecration of Moscow’s Cathedral of Christ the Saviour, built in thanks for the Russian victory over Napoleon in 1812. VIOLIN CONCERTO, OP. 35 ORCHESTRAL
d 35:00
p3
PIANO CONCERTO NO. 1, OP. 23 d 35:00
p3
NUTCRACKER, OP. 71 BALLET
d 102:00
p2
o
Tchaikovsky acknowledged that Nutcracker was twee compared to The Sleeping Beauty, but his setting of Hoffman’s fairy tale has proved better box office, thanks to effects such as the Sugar Plum Fairy’s celesta.
os
Denounced as “unviolinistic” by early players and “stinking music” by critics, this noble, virtuosic showpiece injects Russian passion into the “Euro-style” concerto with hugely successful results.
ORCHESTRAL
Rudolf Nureyev made his debut in the West performing The Sleeping Beauty. Written in 1889, it was Tchaikovsky’s first successful ballet.
THE QUEEN OF SPADES, OP. 68 OPERA
d 170:00
p3
ovc
Tragedy is literally on the cards in this rich, dense masterpiece, which hints at Mozart, Bizet, Orthodox music, Russian folksong, French song, and more, yet remains a cohesive, powerful whole.
os
Ukrainian folk themes, French song, a grand opening tune that promptly disappears, occasionally inexpert piano writing – it seemed an unsuccessful mix to potential performers, but proved another winner after its triumphant premiere.
SYMPHONY NO. 6, OP. 74 ORCHESTRAL
d 45:00
p4
o
Tchaikovsky’s dark, despairing farewell – possibly an attempt to confront his demons – was prophetically named “Pathétique” by his brother Modest. The second movement’s love “waltz” has an undanceable five beats.
SOUVENIR DE FLORENCE, OP. 70 CHAMBER
d 35:00
p4
e
The unusual scoring – two violins, two violas, two cellos – gave Tchaikovsky problems, but he ended up producing a lyrical and warm masterpiece. Despite the title (recalling his Italian holidays), the work is richly Russian in character.
INFLUENCES
Tchaikovsky greatly encouraged the young Rachmaninov, but his heartfelt style soon became old-fashioned outside Russia as composers looked for a more radical language. However, his popularity with audiences has remained consistent: many of his works are cornerstones of the Romantic repertoire, constantly performed and recorded.
FOCUS
Themes (including pre-Revolutionary Russia, town versus country, social convention, and death of inspiration) abound in this enduring opera, which in many ways is “about” Tatiana, the only character who grows, rather than the superficial, irredeemable Onegin. ACT ONE (65:00) Russia, c.1820. Eugene Onegin, having inherited his uncle’s country estate outside St Petersburg,
EUGENE ONEGIN, OP. 24 OPERA
d 140:00
p3
ocv
Completed in 1878, and based on a verse novel by Pushkin, this story of a bored, Byronic young aristocrat’s desultory and damaging love affairs constantly reminds us that “real life is not like a novel”; yet its “Letter Scene” eerily reflects the composer’s own personal struggles at the time.
reminiscent of decisive moments in Bizet’s Carmen. The composer’s comment on the recurrence of the fanfare was: “All life is an unbroken alternation of hard reality and swiftly passing dreams of happiness.”
SYMPHONY NO. 4 IN F MINOR, OP. 36 d 46:00
ORCHESTRAL
p4
o
Begun in 1877 before his marriage and finished the following year after his separation, the symphony is an emotional diary in music. SECOND MOVEMENT (ANDANTINO, 12:00) FIRST MOVEMENT (ANDANTE, 18:00) An A lament for oboe becomes a warmly ominous brass fanfare, denoting fate, nostalgic string theme, which passes is followed by a string theme through noble desperation to a quietly resigned conclusion. FIRST MOVEMENT sostenuto; Triple time; F minor; Sonata form 1Introduction: AndanteModerato con anima (in movimento di valse) Introduction
Third subject introduced by violins in B major
Exposition 1
Bloodcurdling opening fanfare (horns and bassoons)
2
3
First subject introduced by strings
4
Change of mood and modulation to major key
5
6
Lilting, balletic second subject introduced by solo clarinet
7
Return of introduction theme
8
221
PYOT R I LY I CH TCH A I KOV SK Y
is introduced by his poet friend Lensky to the Larin sisters: the flighty Olga, and the brooding, novel-reading Tatiana. Tatiana declares her love for Onegin by letter, but he brushes her off. ACT TWO (40:00) Onegin, provoking his hot-headed friend takes Lensky’s beloved Olga to a ball. A duel inevitably results, in which Onegin kills Lensky. ACT THREE (35:00) Onegin falls in love with Tatiana, who is now married to his cousin Prince Gremin. She still loves him but stays with her husband, suspecting that her attraction is now only as a challenge. SWAN LAKE, OP. 20 BALLET
d 140:00
p4
o
After its unsuccessful Moscow premiere in 1877, Swan Lake was revised in 1895, two years after Tchaikovsky’s death. That version, with choreography by Petipa and
Ivanov, to a tighter libretto by Tchaikovsky’s brother Modest (complete with happier ending), is the basis of the ballet we know today. ACT ONE (50:00) At the royal palace, Prince Siegfried celebrates his comingof-age. Various dances entertain the party to now-familiar themes, and a flight of swans appears, marked by the main oboe melody of the ballet. ACT TWO (30:00) At a moonlit lakeside, Siegfried and friends are hunting swans, denoted by the oboe melody. However, one swan – Odette – tells him she is a woman, turned into a swan by the evil magician Rotbart. ACT THREE (45:00) At the royal castle, Siegfried has to choose a wife at a ball, entertained by various dances. He thinks he sees Odette there, but she is actually Odile, Rotbart’s daughter. Siegfried dances with her and nominates her as his bride, spelling doom for Odette. ACT FOUR (15:00) Back at the lake, Odette is about to die – but Siegfried battles with Rotbart, breaks the spell and is reunited with her, as the swan theme triumphantly reappears.
This cartoon by Franklin McMahon shows Sir Georg Solti conducting Tchaikovsky’s Symphony No. 4 with the Chicago Symphony Orchestra.
FOURTH MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO CON FUOCO,
A hectic, clattering theme is contrasted with variations on a Russian children’s song about hopeful brides (“In the field a little birch tree stood”), evidently a reference to Antonina. The work ends in boisterous determination.
10:00)
After the lament of the second movement recedes, the sprightly scherzo features pizzicato strings alternating with blocks of jaunty woodwind and brass in a good-natured jumble.
THIRD MOVEMENT (SCHERZO, 6:00)
Return of second subject, introduced by bassoon Development 9
Multi-sectional coda includes repeated echoes of opening fanfare
Recapitulation 10
11
12
Return of first subject
Coda 13
14
Return of second subject
15
16
Return of introduction theme
17
222
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Mah
“The symphony must be like the world. It must embrace everything.” GUSTAV MAHLER, 1907
223
GUSTAV M A H L E R
Gustav Mahler
hler b 1860–1911
n Austrian
w 18
Known chiefly as a conductor in his short lifetime, (he directed the Vienna Opera for ten years), Mahler composed in his spare time. His largescale songs with orchestra and nine epic, intense, emotionally exhausting symphonies (plus beginnings of a tenth) are among the most recorded and performed of the repertoire. He is now seen as a link between the 19th-century Austro-German tradition and 20th-century Modernism.
LIFE
Mahler was born to a large Germanspeaking Jewish family in Bohemia, factors which made him feel a lifelong outsider. His father was a rough but successful man in the liquor trade. Mahler’s musical talent showed early: he gave local recitals at ten and, at 15, he entered the Vienna Conservatory, soon winning prizes for piano and composition. Gradually he developed an international reputation as a conductor as he progressed – despite quarrels with authority en route – through Kassel, Prague, Leipzig, Budapest, and Hamburg, before spending ten years at the Vienna Opera and finally four in New York. An innovator in opera presentation, especially in Wagner, he was a demanding conductor, disliked by some musicians and respected by others. He suffered institutional antiSemitism, despite converting nominally to Catholicism in Vienna. At 41, he met 22-year-old Alma Schindler and married her four months later, ordering her to give up her composing ambitions to raise the two daughters she soon produced. However, one died aged six. That year, Mahler was diagnosed as having a serious heart condition, drastically curtailing his beloved walking, swimming, and cycling. Alma’s affair in 1910 with the the architect Walter Gropius (whom she eventually married) destroyed Mahler, who was now enjoying recognition as a composer. Six months later he contracted a serious blood infection from which he died.
Successful in his career because of his driving ambition, Mahler exacted the highest standards of music-making in both himself and others.
Total: 18
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (10)
1
CANTATAS (1)
2
5
2
1
SONGS (7)
1 1860
2 1880
1 1888
2 1897
1 1907
1911
224
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
MUSIC
Apart from lost student chamber works, Mahler’s output is virtually all symphony and song; though an outstanding opera conductor, he completed none of the three he started. His style is late Romantic, but he expanded the orchestra both in sound and size (his Symphony No. 8 requires 1,000 participants). However, what marks out a Mahler symphony is more theatrical: the feeling of many voices at work and a sequence of events. There is often an atmosphere of tension and fin-de-siècle angst contrasted with love and joy; Mahler consulted with Freud, and a strong psychoanalytical – some say selfpitying – aspect runs through much of his music. Sarcasm, parody, and irony abound in Mahler’s mix of the sublime and the ridiculous, which may explain the popularity of his symphonies in the “knowing” era of the late 20th century.
MILESTONES
1875
Enters Vienna Conservatory
1880
First conducting experience; completes cantata Das klagende Lied
1884
Starts Symphony No. 1
1888
Music director, Budapest opera; starts Symphony No. 2
1891 1897
Starts conducting at Hamburg Starts at Vienna Hofoper
1901
Begins Symphony No. 5; meets Alma Schindler
1902
Marries Alma; finishes Symphony No. 5
1905
Song cycle Kindertotenlieder first performed
1906
Begins Symphony No. 8, the “Symphony of a Thousand”
1907
Daughter Maria dies; takes post at Metropolitan Opera, New York
1909
Completes song-symphony Das Lied von der Erde
1910
Finishes Symphony No. 9; learns of Alma’s affair
KEY WORKS SYMPHONY NO. 8 ORCHESTRAL
d 75:00
p2
SYMPHONY NO. 9 ovc
The “Symphony of a Thousand” (1,030 performers were needed to play in its 1910 premiere) is a tribute to enlightenment and divine love, orchestrated for eight solo singers, massive choir, and large orchestra. The first part is a setting of Latin religious texts; the second is set to the conclusion of Goethe’s drama Faust.
ORCHESTRAL
d 70:00
p3
oes
Like Beethoven and Bruckner, Mahler died jinxed on nine numbered symphonies; his last – in many ways an extension of Das Lied von der Erde – was finished in 1910 and not performed until after he died. KINDERTOTENLIEDER SONG CYCLE
d 25:00
p5
o
Grimly prophetic of the death of Mahler’s own daughter, Songs for Dead Children – possibly his finest song cycle – is a setting for baritone voice of poems by Friedrich Rückert, who lost two children, and is contemplative rather than dramatic. Mahler was conductor at the Vienna Opera from 1897 to 1907, a significant achievement considering this appointment’s reputation as a stressful and demanding position.
GUSTAV M A H L E R
225
FOCUS SYMPHONY NO. 5 ORCHESTRAL
d 80:00
p5
o
Mahler met Alma while composing this symphony. Its five movements progress from tragedy to triumph. FIRST MOVEMENT (TRAUERMARSCH, 22:00) A funeral march, introduced by a baleful fanfare, is punctuated by two trios. SECOND MOVEMENT (STÜRMISCH BEWEGT, 14:00)
Marked “with utmost vehemence”, this is a musical battleground which ends in inconclusive mystery. THIRD MOVEMENT (SCHERZO, 18:00) Mahler wrote of “dancing stars” in this generally cheerful movement, with some poignant central passages of pizzicato strings and twilight mood. FOURTH MOVEMENT (ADAGIETTO, 10:00) The Adagietto is Mahler’s most popular work – often played as a stand-alone piece. As with much of his symphonic writing, it is related to his earlier songs. Mahler apparently sent the score of the Adagietto to Alma as a musical love letter.
beautiful, it is possibly Mahler’s greatest piece. It was premiered six months after his death. DAS TRINKLIED VOM JAMMER DER ERDE (8:00) A powerful lament (“dark is life, dark is death”), challengingly high for the tenor, that seeks solace in wine. DER EINSAME IM HERBST (10:00) Autumnal and despairing, the score is marked “ragging and weary”, with small-scale and muted sounds. VON DER JUGEND (3:00) A polished and miniature celebration of youth, with stylized “Chineseness”. VON DER SCHÖNHEIT (8:00) A delicate and poised portrayal of girls gathering flowers, longing for passing horsemen. DER TRUNKENE IM FRÜHLING (5:00) “The Drunken Man in Spring” is woken from his post-binge sleep to find a bird announcing the new season. DER ABSCHIED (31:00) “The Farewell” takes us from chilly funereal gloom to the world waking up again, as it always does, in renewal and ecstasy.
FIFTH MOVEMENT (RONDO-FINALE, 16:00)
The Adagietto theme is powered up in a brilliant finale that combines academic prowess with good spirits and zest for life. DAS LIED VON DER ERDE SONG-SYMPHONY
d 75:00
p6
ov
The Song of the Earth is a symphony-like work based on translations of ancient Chinese poems and set for two solo singers and orchestra. Filled with sadness and longing yet ultimately uplifting, simple yet profound, and achingly
INFLUENCES
Mahler’s works fell into obscurity after his death, partly because of opposition in Hitler’s Germany to Jewish musicians, but became very popular in the last third of the 20th century. The dramatic and multi-layered nature of his symphonies can also be found in those of Dmitri Shostakovich.
226
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
Stra
“There is no such thing as Abstract music; there is good music and bad music. If it is good, it means something.” RICHARD STRAUSS
227
R I CH A R D ST R AUSS
Richard Strauss
auss b 1864–1949
n German
w 189
Richard Strauss began his career composing songs and symphonic poems, and ended it as the greatest opera composer of his day. His career, which rarely escaped controversy, spanned the last days of the Austrian Empire and the whole of Hitler’s Nazi Germany, in which the composer allowed himself to become embroiled. His masterpieces are his orchestral tone poems, his songs, and his great operas.
LIFE
Richard Strauss was born in Munich, the son of a horn-player in the court orchestra. He began composing at six, and studied music privately, but did not attend a conservatory. He became assistant to Hans von Bülow in Meiningen, then travelled to Italy and later worked in Munich at the Opera. He married a general’s daughter, the soprano Pauline de Ahna, who inspired many of his songs, which they performed together. His early operas, Guntram and Feuersnot (Fire Emergency) were not as successful as his tone poems, and Salome and Elektra caused an international scandal. The latter brought him together with the poet Hugo von Hofmannsthal: the two were to collaborate on five further operas. In 1908, the successful Strauss built himself a large villa at Garmisch in Germany. He conducted widely and also held a post as conductor of the Berlin Royal Opera, resigning from this in 1918 to become joint director of the Vienna Opera the next year. When the Nazi party came to power in 1933 Strauss was appointed president of the Reichsmusikkammer, though he lost the post two years later because of his collaboration with the Jewish librettist Stefan Zweig. Strauss spent much of World War II in Vienna, then returned to Garmisch, where he died in 1949.
The early tone poems of Strauss, such as Also Sprach Zarathustra, are works on a grand scale, full of flamboyant, dramatic gestures.
Total: 189
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (4)
2
CONCERTOS (10)
1
4
OTHER ORCHESTRAL (38)
10
8
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (34)
12
17
2 2 6
3
3
1
4
2
2
1
1
1
8
5
3
BALLETS (4)
28 1864
1870
17 1880
2
3
1
OPERAS (17) VOCAL (82)
3
3
13 1890
1900
1910
1920
4 5
3 1
4 1930
4 1940
1949
228
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
MUSIC
Strauss’s early career as an orchestral conductor gave him enormous knowledge of the potential of the post-Wagnerian symphony orchestra, and he expanded this still further, using unusual timbres and combinations of instruments for the vivid and original characterizations of his great tone poems. The success of Don Juan established his reputation, and he built on it with Till Eulenspiegel, Also Sprach Zarathustra, Don Quixote, and Ein Heldenleben. His earliest attempts at opera were not successful, but Salome (and the scandal it caused with its New Testament subject and its libretto based on Oscar Wilde’s play) gave him a new reputation as an opera composer. Elektra pushed the boundaries of operatic music, and many reacted against its dissonances and the huge, blatant waltz tune of its Finale. Waltzes, too, run all through his next work, Der Rosenkavalier, in homage to his namesake and to the city of Vienna, where it is set. His later collaborations with Hugo
The villa in Garmisch-Partenkirchen, Germany, where Strauss spent the final years of his life. He moved here after several years of exile in Switzerland.
von Hofmannsthal brought about philosophical works such as Die Frau ohne Schatten. After Hofmannsthal’s death, Strauss turned to Stefan Zweig and other librettists for his final operas, written first in the shadow of World War II, and then during the war itself. Strauss mourned the bombed-out theatres of Europe in Metamorphosen, but a chance meeting with an American soldier inspired one of his greatest instrumental works, the Oboe Concerto. The Four Last Songs were his last musical testament.
MILESTONES
1875
Studies theory with Meyer
1881
Symphony No. 1 and String Quartet No. 1 performed in Munich
1884
Symphony No. 2 performed in New York
1885
Becomes assistant conductor to Hans von Bülow in Meiningen
1887
Aus Italien performed in Munich
1889
Becomes third conductor at Weimar Opera
1890s Series of tone poems establishes his reputation as a composer; Also Sprach Zarathustra, Op. 30
Soprano Pauline de Ahna, Strauss’s wife, as Elsa in Wagner’s opera Lohengrin.
1919
Die Frau ohne Schatten, Op. 65, produced in Vienna
1933
Nazi government appoints him director of the Reichsmusikkammer
1935
Removed from post due to his collaboration with Jewish librettist Stefan Zweig
1894 1898
Marries soprano Pauline de Ahna Conductor of Berlin Opera
1904
Visits US and performs Symphonia Domestica, Op. 53
1905 1909
Writes Salome, Op. 54 Elektra, Op. 58, produced
1938
Operas Friedenstag, Op. 81, and Daphne, Op. 82, produced
1910
Writes Der Rosenkavalier, Op. 59, with von Hofmannsthal
1943
Writes Metamorphosen, a “poem for 23 strings”
1912
Ariadne auf Naxos, Op. 60, performed
1947
Visits London and conducts own works
229
R I CH A R D ST R AUSS
KEY WORKS ALSO SPRACH ZARATHUSTRA, OP. 30 TONE POEM
d 35:00
p1
o
Strauss based this piece, Thus Spoke Zoroaster, on Friedrich Nietzsche’s philosophical prose poem of the same title. Zarathustra (Zoroaster) is Nietzsche’s ideal thinker, a leader of humanity. Strauss wrote the piece between 1895 and 1896, and conducted its first performance in Frankfurt. The film 2001: A Space Odyssey brought its majestic opening bars to many new listeners.
play. This six-hour show was not a success, but some years later Strauss and Hofmannsthal rewrote the piece, adding a Prologue in which Molière’s comedy is hinted at and the situation is set up. Ariadne, lamenting the loss of Theseus on Naxos, is interrupted by Zerbinetta and her troupe of clowns, who try to cheer her up, before Bacchus arrives to take Ariadne with him to everlasting bliss. Costume designs for Elektra, the opera which brought Strauss together with his librettist, the poet Hugo von Hofmannsthal.
SALOME, OP. 54 ARIADNE AUF NAXOS, OP. 60
OPERA
d 105:00
p1
ov
Strauss’s Salome is a setting of Hedwig Lachmann’s German translation of Strauss collaborated with Hugo von Oscar Wilde’s play. The opera was Hofmannsthal on a reworking of Molière’s comedy Le bourgeois gentilhomme, first performed in Dresden in 1905, to be performed with an operatic and and was a great success throughout Europe. It tells the biblical story of vaudeville entertainment after the how Herodias’s daughter Salome persuaded King Herod to give her the head of Jokanaan, John the Baptist. OPERA
d 120:00
p2
ov
The acclaimed African-American soprano Leontyne Price made her debut as Ariadne at the San Francisco Opera in October 1977.
INFLUENCES
Strauss outlived his age of late Romanticism, and though he had taken on much of what had been discovered by Stravinsky and other avant-garde composers, his late work still remains tonal and late-19th century in its harmonic language. Only now is it becoming clear how much influence his work has had on post-War composers.
230
THE ROM A N T I C E R A
FOCUS FOUR LAST SONGS SONG
d 24:00
p4
ov
Strauss wrote his Vier letzte Lieder (Four Last Songs) in 1948, and although they were not his last songs, they were among his last major compositions. The first three poems are by Hermann Hesse, and the last is by Joseph von Eichendorff. All four poems have an atmosphere of elegy, as the composer bids farewell to the world. Hesse himself is said to have been surprised by the project, and when he first heard the songs he claimed that they were “virtuoso, refined, full of wellcrafted beauty, but lacking in core, merely an end in themselves” – though he admitted to having heard them only on the radio. BEIM SCHLAFENGEHEN (4:00) In the first song, “On Retiring to Rest”, the poet, wearied by the day, is asking to be taken in by the starry night like a tired child. His hands and mind cease from working, and his five senses drift
off into slumber. The soul hovers around the body, living on “in night’s magic circle”. FRÜHLING (5:00) In “Spring”, the poet dreams of springtime, with its trees, blue skies, and birdsong, then sees it unfold in all its beauty. SEPTEMBER (6:00) At the other end of the year, the garden is in mourning, and summer comes to its end. The leaves fall as summer closes its eyes to rest. IM ABENDROT (9:00) This, the most moving of the four songs, sets words by Eichendorff ’s “In the Evening Glow”. Now it is clear that Strauss is once again addressing his wife, Pauline, as they go hand in hand into the twilight, the larks still singing overhead as they go. DER ROSENKAVALIER, OP. 59 OPERA
d 195:00
p3
ocv
Strauss and his librettist Hugo von Hofmannsthal invented Der Rosenkavalier (The Knight of the Rose) as a fantasy of 18th-century Vienna at the time of the Empress Maria Theresa.
EIN HELDENLEBEN, OP. 40 ORCHESTRAL
Strauss always had a close relationship with the Vienna Philharmonic Orchestra, seen here playing in the hall of the Musikverein. PARTS ONE AND SIX ”The Hero”. 1Quadruple Lebhaft bewegt (at a lively pace); time; E flat major; Ternary form
1
2
Second theme in a new key Low strings and horns announce Hero’s theme
p6
o
”The Hero’s Retirement from the World and 6slow);Fulfilment”. Mässig langsam (moderately Quadruple time; E flat major
Reprise of Hero’s theme
3
d 51:00
The title of this tone poem translates as A Hero’s Life and the hero is Strauss himself, portrayed as a man of high ideals, surrounded by enemies. PART ONE : THE HERO (5:00) The first subject, the Hero’s theme, makes it clear from the start that he is a noble character, a lively, confident individual, but not without a gentle side.
4
Clarinets announce new falling motive (representing Hero’s critics)
5
6
7
Cor anglais recalls the Hero’s theme in slow tempo Trombones, bass trombones, and tubas
8
8
ACT ONE (75:00)
The heroine, the Marschallin – also called Marie Therese – is having an affair with young Octavian while her husband is away hunting. Her cousin, Baron Ochs von Lerchenau, interrupts their dalliance with a demand that she should provide a Knight of the Rose to present a silver rose to his fiancée, Sophie. ACT TWO (60:00) Octavian is chosen for the task and delivers the rose to Sophie, who immediately falls in love with him, and vice versa. When Sophie then refuses to marry Baron
Ochs, Sophie’s snobbish father, von Faninal, tries to placate him, while Octavian fights the Baron and plots to have him disgraced. ACT THREE (60:00) Octavian, dressed as Mariandl, seduces Baron Ochs in a tavern of ill repute. They are interrupted, and the Marschallin and Sophie come to break up the fracas. The Marschallin recognizes the depths of Sophie’s feelings for Octavian, and gracefully gives up her lover to the younger woman.
PART TWO : THE HERO ’ S ADVERSARIES (4:00)
PART FIVE : THE HERO ’ S WORKS OF
The Hero’s enemies (Strauss’s critics) are portrayed as dull and petty-minded. They are contrasted with the Hero and his lofty, high-minded ambitions. PART THREE : THE HERO ’ S COMPANION (14:00) This is a portrait of Strauss’s loving but capricious wife, Pauline. PART FOUR : THE HERO ’ S DEEDS OF WAR (8:00) The Hero does battle to overcome his rivals in art and love.
PEACE (7:00) In this section, Strauss quotes from a number of his own earlier musical works. PART SIX : THE HERO ’ S RETIREMENT
Violins play theme in E major
9
10
Horns take over broken chord from cor anglais
FROM THE WORLD AND FULFILMENT (13:00) The Hero retires from the world of action (something Strauss never did) and spends his time in contemplation. In the conclusion, his life-force asserts itself once more.
Violin solo: “The Beloved”
11
Dramatic diminished chord with timpani roll
12
The last part of Ein Heldenleben acts as a coda to the whole work
13
Horns and strings
14
15
The Hero recalls his past triumphs in one final surge of orchestral colour
233
ROMANTIC OPERA
1810 1920 —
The 19th century provided the most popular of all operas – Verdi’s La traviata, Rigoletto, and Aïda, Wagner’s Ring Cycle, Bizet’s Carmen, and Puccini’s La bohème. The popularity of these works is based on their universal themes, the huge emotions they generate, and the mastery of their writing for voice and orchestra. he years between the death of Mozart in 1791 and the arrival of Rossini on the scene two decades later were comparatively barren for opera. Europe was too preoccupied with the Napoleonic Wars to have money to spare for this extravagant art form. 1813, when Rossini had his first great successes, was also the year in which two of the greatest Romantic opera composers, Verdi and Wagner, were born. Each revolutionized opera and polarized its enthusiasts into what even today can be – though should not be – two opposing camps. Romantic opera covers over a century of composition. Up until World War I, Europe enjoyed a long period of relative peace, during which the revolutions of 1848 were a significant political upheaval. These
T
BALLET SCENE FROM ROBERT LE DIABLE BY DEGAS
Giacomo Meyerbeer was the most successful exponent of French grand opéra. What his works lacked in musical inspiration they made up for in spectacle.
involved Wagner directly (he was exiled for his participation in the Saxony riots) and several other composers indirectly.
INTERNATIONAL APPEAL The other revolution to affect the century was the industrial one. By mid-century, railways criss-crossed Europe and steamships plied the Atlantic, allowing composers, singers, and conductors to embark on the international careers that all now accept as the norm. Verdi travelled to Russia, Dvorˇák to the USA, Tchaikovsky to England (to pick up a doctorate), and Puccini to his eventual death in a Brussels hospital. The soprano Adelina Patti, greatest of bel canto singers, retired to a castle in south Wales; the tenor Enrico Caruso made his greatest name in New York; and the Russian bass Chaliapin sang to audiences in Paris and London. In a century of nationalism, opera was a truly international art form.
for his last and possibly greatest opera, whereas Wagner drew on the great medieval German epics Tristan und Isolde, the Nibelungenlied, and Parzifal.
SET FOR VERDI’S OTELLO
Verdi drew on Shakespeare’s plays for three of his operas: Macbeth (1847), Otello (1887), and his one comic masterpiece, Falstaff (1893).
Opera often springs from literary origins. Plays, epics, novels, and histories have always inspired librettists and composers, and 19thcentury Romantic opera took its inspiration from a particular set of writers. Shakespeare’s plays, Sir Walter Scott’s novels, Goethe’s Faust, and Schiller’s historical tragedies all became sources for opera librettos. Another great source of Romantic inspiration were the legends and poems of medieval Europe. Rossini took the old Swiss tale of William Tell
POWERFUL EMOTIONS In Italy, Rossini’s use of Romantic plots, often melodramatic and improbable, inspired his two immediate successors, Donizetti and Bellini, who took Romanticism still further. Donizetti drew on Sir Walter Scott for Lucia di Lammermoor, while Bellini told tales of Druid priestesses in Norma and of sleepwalking girls in La sonnambula. In each of these operas the central figure is that great Romantic icon, the damsel in distress.
TIMELINE: ROMANTIC OPERA w 1813 Rossini’s Tancredi and L’italiana in Algeri, his first great successes
1810 1813 Verdi and Wagner born
1829 Rossini’s William Tell
1825 1815 Battle of Waterloo; Congress of Vienna
1821 s Weber’s Der Freischütz
1835 Donizetti’s Lucia di Lammermoor, based on Walter Scott’s novel
1840
1851 Verdi’s Rigoletto, based on Victor Hugo’s play Le Roi s’amuse
1855 1858 Present Covent Garden Theatre opens in London
1848 Revolutions in Paris, Vienna, and other European capitals
235
ROM A N T I C OP E R A
Lucia in her bloodstained nightgown and Norma in her priestess’s robes are among the most hauntingly dramatic heroines in all theatre, spoken or sung. Verdi made further revolutions in the writing of opera. His earliest works told stirring tales of nationalism and heroism (Macbeth, Ernani, Nabucco), while in his middle period, in works such as Rigoletto, he examined the relationship between parent and child, portraying vulnerable heroines with uncomprehending, overbearing fathers. Verdi’s successors, Mascagni, Leoncavallo, and Puccini, added the new element of “verismo” or realism to their operas, telling stories in music that were none the less Romantic for being drawn from everyday life.
OPERA BEYOND ITALY The great Russian composers, from Glinka to Tchaikovsky, all produced operas, usually on Russian themes. In France, Parisian grand opéra employed huge stage sets, vast orchestras and choruses, and prodigious solo voices, with Meyerbeer the dominant composer. Offenbach wrote in the rival form of opéra comique, concluding his career with a masterpiece of Romantic opera, The Tales of Hoffmann. Other French works that have lasted well include Bizet’s Carmen, Gounod’s Faust, and Massenet’s Cendrillon. In Germany the first great Romantic opera was Weber’s Der Freischütz, based on a folk tale set in the forests of Bohemia. Weber had learned much from his studies of Beethoven, and brought a new richness of
w 1871 Verdi’s Aida premiered in Cairo
1870 1864 Ludwig II of Bavaria becomes Wagner’s patron
1876 Wagner’s Ring Cycle performed at Bayreuth Festspielhaus
SCORE OF LA BOHÈME
Puccini’s account of the death of Mimi in Bohemian Paris remains one of the most popular of all Romantic operas.
orchestration to his score. Der Freischütz inspired Wagner, who decided that the German world needed its own form of music drama, and proceeded to invent it, writing both words and music. Richard Strauss followed the unfollowable Wagner, producing Romantic works until well into the 20th century. He was the last of the great Romantic composers. BEL CANTO
The great vocal tradition of 19th-century Italian opera was bel canto, which simply means “beautiful singing”. The three great bel canto composers were Rossini, Bellini, and Donizetti, and their works have been criticized by some for putting ornamented melodic line and florid coloratura embellishments before the job of telling a story. Two of the finest early exponents were Giulia Grisi (1811–69) and Giuditta Pasta (1797–1865). Later stars included Jenny Lind (1820–87) and Adelina Patti (1843–1919), who left a number of recordings, but these were made when she was past her vocal best. JENNY LIND
The Swedish-born soprano won acclaim for the naturalness of her performances.
w 1900 Puccini’s Tosca opens in Rome
1885 1875 Bizet’s Carmen savaged by Parisian critics; Bizet dies three months after first performance
1905 Franz Lehár’s The Merry Widow 1911 Richard Strauss’s Der Rosenkavalier
1900 1883 Wagner dies in Venice; Metropolitan Opera House, New York, opens with Gounod’s Faust
1901 s Verdi dies in Milan; quarter of a million people follow his funeral cortège
1915
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
236
Carl Maria von Weber b 1786–1826
n German
w 306
Carl Maria von Weber was a composer, conductor, and pianist whose opera Der Freischütz marked the beginning of German Romantic opera. The huge success of Der Freischütz liberated German opera from the Italian influences that had bound it until then, and showed how a nationalist style of opera could be founded on folk tunes and folk tales. Weber was admired by Beethoven and influenced his disciple, Wagner. LIFE AND MUSIC
Carl Maria von Weber was the son of a town musician who set up his own opera company, with which the young Weber spent much of his childhood on tour. He studied with Abbé Vogler, an eminent teacher and music director at several German Electors’ courts, and worked under Joseph Haydn’s brother Michael. At 17 Weber took up the post
of Kapellmeister at the theatre in Breslau (Bratislava). Eventually appointed Kapellmeister in Dresden, Weber spent his life touring ceaselessly as a conductor to promote his own and other composers’ music. He died in London at only 39, a few weeks after the premiere of his final opera, Oberon, succumbing to the tuberculosis that had undermined his health for years. Apart from his operas, he is noted for his brilliant clarinet works. MILESTONES
Weber’s Der Freischütz is the ultimate distillation of German Romanticism in opera. It portrays the struggle of good and evil and evokes the beauty of nature.
1804 1807 1811 1813 1817 1821 1823 1826
Appointed Kapellmeister at Breslau Composes his two symphonies Composes his two clarinet concertos Appointed director of Prague Opera Made court Kapellmeister, Dresden Der Freischütz a huge success in Berlin Completes Euryanthe, opera Completes Oberon, opera
KEY WORKS OBERON OPERA
d 170:00
p3
ocv
Oberon, Weber’s last opera, is a setting of an English libretto by James Robinson Planché and it was first performed in London in 1826 at Covent Garden. Weber overcame the difficulties of Planché’s unpromising, convoluted text about the elf-king Oberon, the Caliph of Baghdad, his daughter Rieza, and Charlemagne, and wrote an opera that contains some of his best music, especially the inspired overture.
CLARINET CONCERTO NO. 1 IN F MINOR ORCHESTRAL
d 25:00
p3
os
Weber wrote beautifully for the clarinet in Der Freischütz, but his knowledge and love of the instrument is shown in his two clarinet concertos and one concertino of 1811. The First Concerto has long been a favourite with concertgoers and clarinettists alike, and illustrates Debussy’s remark that Weber achieved his sound by “scrutinizing the soul of each instrument”.
ROM A N T I C OP E R A
237
FOCUS DER FREISCHÜTZ OPERA
d 150:00
p3
ocv
Weber set Der Freischütz (The Freeshooter or The Marksman) to a libretto by Johann Friedrich Kind based on a set of ghost stories. The overture opposes C major with C minor, setting up the world of goodness and light (major) against that of evil and darkness (minor). Hunting-horn calls are heard alongside Weber’s favourite low clarinet, setting the atmosphere of Bohemian forest life and the black magic of the Wolf ’s Glen. The evocation of the glen is a superb example of tonal scene-painting. ACT ONE (50:00) The opera is set in Bohemia in the 17th century. The forester Max wants to win Agathe’s hand in a shooting match. Caspar, in league with the devil Samiel, persuades Max to accept his help in casting a magic bullet to ensure success. ACT TWO (55:00) Agathe is full of dread about the shooting match. Max and Caspar go to the Wolf ’s Glen, summon up Samiel and cast seven bullets – but the last is dedicated to the devil. ACT THREE (45:00) Agathe is shocked by a gift of a funeral wreath instead of her wedding wreath. Max, down to his last magic bullet, shoots at a dove, but hits Caspar, who falls dying. Max confesses his involvement with Samiel, is pardoned, and marries Agathe. EURYANTHE OPERA
d 165:00
p3
ocv
Weber’s “grand heroic-romantic opera in three acts” was commissioned by the Kärtnertortheater in Vienna as a result of the success of Der Freischütz. With one of the most ludicrously implausible plots in all opera (which is quite an achievement), it has not been performed as often as deserved by its superb music – a continuous flow without spoken word.
The scene is 12th-century France. Lysiart has made a bet with Adolar that he can make his beloved Euryanthe unfaithful. Eglantine, also in love with Adolar, tells her rival Euryanthe to tell the tale of Adolar’s murdered sister, Emma. Euryanthe welcomes Lysiart to the castle. ACT TWO (45:00) Eglantine and Lysiart steal a poisoned ring from Emma’s tomb and use it to prove that Euryanthe loves Lysiart, not Adolar, who loses his bet and forfeits his lands. ACT THREE (60:00) Adolar takes Euryanthe to a mountain gorge, intending to kill her. He cannot bring himself to do so, and leaves her to die of exposure. King Louis VI and his huntsmen rescue her and bring her back to the castle, where Adolar learns of Lysiart’s deception. Lysiart stabs Eglantine to death and is then led to the dungeons; Adolar and Euryanthe are reunited and marry. ACT ONE (60:00)
238
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
Ferdinand Hérold b 1791–1833 n French w c.160 style that he gained renown. His La After lessons from his jeunesse de Henry V was a success in father, a pianist and Naples, where he served as pianist to composer, Hérold Queen Caroline. A year after returning attended the Paris to Paris in 1816, he produced his opera Conservatoire, performed his piano Les rosières, the first of many resounding works in public, and won the Prix de Rome in 1812. But it was as a composer successes, punctuated by failures, mainly of masterful comic operas in the French down to poor librettos. His ballets are also innovative in using new music, The roguish pirate Zampa is flung to his death by rather than old melodies. Shortly before the avenging spirits of his former bride, Alicia, in the the premiere of his last (and hugely final scene of Hérold’s enormously popular Zampa. successful) opera, Le pré aux clercs, he died prematurely from chronic tuberculosis. MILESTONES
1812 1813 1817 1826
Wins the Prix de Rome Teaches royal princesses in Naples Les rosières, opera, premiered Marie, opera, staged
1827
Marries Adele Elise Rollet; becomes choirmaster at the Paris Opéra
1828 1831
La fille mal gardée, ballet, premiered Zampa, opera, staged in Paris
Jules Massenet b 1842–1912
n French
Massenet’s early career followed the regulation path for a French composer in the 19th century. After studies with Ambroise Thomas at the Paris Conservatoire, he won the Prix de Rome, then spent three years in Italy before returning home to break into the Paris opera scene in 1866. Success came gradually as Massenet honed his technical skills. Although he staged his first opera in 1867, a decade In the bleak finale to Massenet’s blockbuster, Werther, Charlotte despairs at the suicide of her true love, Werther.
w c.450
passed before he achieved his first real success with Le roi de Lahore. Lasting fame came in 1884 with Manon, an international hit that established him as France’s leading opera composer. Now in control of his career, he continued producing successful, internationally staged operas, such as Werther, without needing to update his deft style. As a teacher at the Paris Conservatoire, he was admired for his meticulous, but kind, easy-going nature, apparently preferring family life to parties. MILESTONES
1863 1866 1877
Wins the Prix de Rome Returns to Rome and marries Le Roi de Lahore, opera, first success
1878
Becomes professor of composition at Paris Conservatoire
1884 1885 1892
Manon, opera, a huge success Writes Le Cid, opera, after Corneille Werther, opera, after Goethe, staged
239
ROM A N T I C OP E R A
Giacomo Meyerbeer b 1791–1864
n German
w c.285
A German composer who settled in France, Meyerbeer developed and dominated French Grand Opéra, the new epic and historic style that would influence the Romantics, from Verdi to Wagner. Although massively extravagant in scale, effects, casts, and costs, Meyerbeer’s lavish melodramas are now being revived and recorded, graphically illustrating their spectacular and fashionable appeal in his day. LIFE AND MUSIC Born Jakob Liebmann Beer to a Jewish family in Berlin, Giacomo Meyerbeer Italianized his first name, and added “Meyer” to his second on receiving a legacy from a relative. A child prodigy on the piano, he performed in public from the age of seven. Nurturing a passion to compose, he turned out some disastrous oratorios until, inspired by Gioachino Rossini’s operas in Italy, he produced Il crociato in Egitto, an instant hit in both Venice and Paris, where he settled. After a fallow patch during a spate of family tragedies in the 1820s, Meyerbeer experimented with the new style of Grand Opéra – epic in scale, drama, and effects – which he effectively invented with Robert le Diable. This and a run of similar box-office hits established him as a master of the genre.
MILESTONES
1810
Studies counterpoint with Abbé Vogler at Darmstadt in Germany
1815
Visits Italy to study vocal writing
1817
Produces his first Italian opera, Romilda e Costanza, in Padua
1826 1831 1836 1837 1842
Il crociato in Egitto, opera, staged Robert le Diable, opera, a huge hit Les Huguenots, opera, premiered Starts composing L’Africaine, opera
1849 1854
Le prophète, opera, premiered L’étoile du nord, opera, staged
1862
Represents German music at London’s Great Exhibition
1865
Posthumous premiere of L’Africaine
Becomes Generalmusikdirektor (music director) in Berlin
KEY WORKS ROBERT LE DIABLE OPERA
d 240:00
p5
LES HUGUENOTS cv
Famous for its scandalous chorus of dancing nuns, its evocative orchestration, and brilliant writing for voice, Robert le Diable was the first product of a fruitful collaboration between Meyerbeer and the librettist Eugène Scribe. It tells the tale of the 13th-century Duke Robert of Normandy, whose love for Isabella saves his soul from the diabolic machinations of his demon father, Bertram. Le prophète, one of Meyerbeer’s most dramatic and bombastic operas, is famous for its stunning light effects and explosive finale.
OPERA
d 240:00
p5
cv
Meyerbeer’s moving opera explores the intense religious conflict that erupted in massacre on St Bartholomew’s Day in 1572, when the Protestant minority of Huguenots were ruthlessly slaughtered by the Catholic majority. The historic drama is intensified by the fated love between a Protestant and Catholic, Raoul and Valentine, both doomed to die in the futile bloodbath. Tuneful, luscious, and inventive, it is probably Meyerbeer’s finest opera for voices, displaying his melodic talents.
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
240
Gioachino Rossini b 1792–1868
n Italian
w c. 240
Born a few months after Mozart’s death, Rossini was the greatest opera composer of the 1810s through to the 1830s, when he took a premature retirement from opera composition. His comic operas bubble with invention and fun, while his serious operas have great melodic beauty and superb writing for both voice and orchestra. An annual festival at his birthplace, Pesaro, celebrates his work. LIFE AND MUSIC
Rossini was the son of Pesaro’s town horn player and his wife, a singer. He entered Bologna Conservatory in 1806 and, by 1813, when he was 21, he had written ten operas, which had all been staged in northern Italy. In that year, he wrote Tancredi, his first important opera seria. He was the first composer to write opera without recitative, so creating an uninterrupted flow of music. He went on to write for theatres in Milan, Venice, Rome, and Naples, and in 1824 moved to Paris where he wrote five further operas, culminating in William Tell. Then Rossini stopped
writing operas and composed only very occasionally for his remaining 38 years. His operatic Stabat mater dates from 1842 after a 12-year composing gap. MILESTONES
1813
Operas Tancredi and L’italiana in Algeri produced in Venice
1814
Engaged as music director for the two opera houses in Naples
1822 1823
Marries Isabella Colbran, soprano Composes Semiramide, opera
1824
Made director of Théâtre Italien in Paris
1829
Writes Guillaume Tell, his last opera
KEY WORKS TANCREDI OPERA
d 165:00
LA CENERENTOLA p2
ocv
Tancredi is based on Voltaire’s play of the same name and on an episode in Tarquino Tasso’s epic poem of 1581, Jerusalem Liberated. In Syracuse during the Crusades, Tancredi returns from exile to find that his beloved Amenaida is about to marry Orbazzano. Amenaida’s letter to Tancredi is intercepted, and she is accused of colluding with the Saracens. Tancredi fights to defend her name and then defeats the Saracens. Tancredi is a mezzo-soprano role and Tancredi has some of Rossini’s finest writing for this voice. A brilliant comic opera, Rossini’s La Cenerentola, seen here in performance in London, also has some genuinely emotional scenes.
OPERA
d 150:00
p2
ocv
Rossini’s take on the Cinderella story is full of satire and wit. Cenerentola, rejected by her stepfather and stepsisters, is protected by Alidoro, a philosopher, and falls in love with Prince Ramiro, who arrives disguised as his valet Dandini. Dandini, disguised as the Prince, wins over the family. The real Prince can then marry his beloved.
FOCUS IL BARBIERE DI SIVIGLIA OPERA
d 165:00
p2
ocv
GUILLAUME TELL OPERA
d 225:00
p4
ocv
Rossini set Cesare Sterbini’s libretto, The overture to William Tell is perhaps based on the first of Beaumarchais’s Rossini’s most famous work. Based on Figaro plays Le barbier de Séville (The Schiller’s play about the Swiss patriot, Barber of Seville) in 1816 and wrote the Wilhelm Tell, Rossini’s opera was his music, it is said, in 13 days. The play first – and last – work in the style of had been set to music before, and the French Grand Opéra with its grandiose supporters of the most popular setting, sets, huge choruses, and ballets, bound by Paisiello, caused a riot at the first together by Swiss alphorn melodies. night of Rossini’s rival version in Rome. ACT ONE (60:00) Tell helps to rescue a fugitive from the Austrian army of ACT ONE (90:00) Count Almaviva, occupation. Arnold, in love with the disguised as the student Lindoro, has Habsburg princess, Mathilde, his heart set on Rosina, Dr Bartolo’s promises to join Tell’s resistance army. ward. The doctor wants to marry her and keeps her under lock and key, but ACT TWO (60:00) Mathilde declares her Almaviva enlists love to Arnold. INFLUENCES Figaro, barber He learns that Rossini directly influenced Donizetti, Bellini, Verdi, and factotum, to the Austrians Meyerbeer, Offenbach, and Sullivan, and indirectly influenced film scores and musicals well into the 20th insinuate himself have murdered century. His ornate vocal lines defined bel canto throughout into the house. his father. his lifetime and his comic genius was never eclipsed. His serious operas are now making a comeback. Bartolo has heard ACT THREE (60:00) a rumour from Mathilde and Rosina’s music teacher, Don Basilio, Arnold part. The Austrian governor, about certain plots, but is not smart Gesler (bass), forces Tell to shoot an enough to stop Almaviva entering first apple from his son Jemmy’s head. Tell as a regimental horse doctor, and then sings his great aria “Sois immobile”, as a music teacher for Rosina. and successfully fires the arrow, but he is imprisoned and sentenced to death. ACT TWO (75:00) After many confusions and revelations, Figaro smuggles a ACT FOUR (45:00) Tell escapes and kills notary into the house and, before Gesler with an arrow. Arnold and his Dr Bartolo can do anything about it, army capture Gesler’s stronghold and Almaviva and Rosina are married. restore Switzerland to freedom.
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
242
Gaetano Donizetti b 1797–1848
n Italian
w c.550
In a life of extraordinary productivity, Gaetano Donizetti wrote 65 operas, a dozen of which are still an important part of the operatic repertory. Like his near-contemporary Bellini, Donizetti wrote bel canto operas that celebrated the beauty of the human voice in long, expressive melodies and vivid, elaborate coloratura ornamentation. He was equally successful with tragedy and comedy. LIFE AND MUSIC
Donizetti was born into a poor family in Bergamo and studied with the great teachers Simon Mayr and Padre Mattei. He often produced four operas a year, writing in the widest variety of styles, though most of his works are based on historic or fictional figures. He made his name in Rome with Zoraida di Granata, and the success of Anna Bolena in Milan allowed him to concentrate on tragic opera, though he continued to write comedies. After working in Paris and Vienna, in 1844 he began to show symptoms of paralysis and insanity, brought on by syphilis, and returned to Bergamo, where he was nursed by his nephew and friends, dying there in 1848.
MILESTONES
1806 1815 1818 1822
Begins studies with Mayr in Bergamo Studies with Padre Mattei in Bologna Enrico di Borgogna produced in Venice Zoraida di Granata successful in Rome
1830
Anna Bolena commissioned by La Scala opera house; first international success
1832 1834 1835 1840s
Composes L’elisir d’amore Composes Maria Stuarda Composes Lucia di Lammermoor Composes for the Paris Opera
1840
La fille du régiment and La favourite written for Paris
1843
Composes Don Pasquale
1844
Begins to suffer symptoms of syphilitic paralysis and insanity
1846
Enters a sanatorium in Ivry
KEY WORKS MARIA STUARDA OPERA
d 150:00
p3
DON PASQUALE ocv
OPERA
d 120:00
p3
ocv
Based on Friedrich von Schiller’s tragic Written for the four great bel canto play Maria Stuart, Donizetti’s opera is singers of the Théâtreset in England in 1567. Elizabeth has Italien, this late opera buffa imprisoned Mary, Queen of Scots, tells the tangled tale of but is jealous of Mary’s love Don Pasquale’s intrigue for her own favourite, the to disinherit his rebellious Earl of Leicester. nephew Ernesto while Leicester persuades Dr Malatesta schemes Elizabeth to meet Mary, to marry Ernesto to who begs for mercy. the widow Norina. Elizabeth rejects her plea, and Mary turns on Elizabeth. The celebrated buffo bass singer Signor Lablache played the Elizabeth signs Mary’s death quack Doctor Dulcamara in a warrant and makes Leicester 19th-century production of Donizetti’s opera L’elisir d’amore. witness her execution.
GA E TA N O DO N I ZE T T I
243
FOCUS
It is still one of Donizetti’s most popular operas, and is regularly performed at This opera is Donizetti’s masterpiece. opera houses all over the world. It is based on The Bride of Lammermoor, ACT ONE (70:00) Nemorino is in love with a novel by Sir Walter Scott. Donizetti the prosperous Adina, but vies for her used extraordinary orchestral effects attention with the gallant Sergeant (including a glass harmonica in the Belcore, a recruiting officer stationed original scoring of Lucia’s mad scene, in their village. Doctor Dulcamara later replaced by a flute), but the opera offers Nemorino a love potion that will is most remarkable for his scoring for make him irresistible, but it is in fact coloratura soprano in Lucia’s scenes nothing more than red wine. and arias. After years of neglect, the ACT TWO (55:00) Tipsy and emboldened, opera has returned to the repertoire in Nemorino tries to court Adina, but is the last 50 years and is now as popular rebuffed. However, she has noticed his as it was when it was first composed. kind-heartedness, and sheds a tear that prompts his beautiful aria, “Una furtiva ACT ONE (45:00) Scotland, the late 16th century. Lucia Ashton is in love with the lagrima”, notorious among tenors for family’s enemy, Edgardo Ravenswood. its high register and quiet opening Edgardo returns her love and, despite phrase. As Adina comes to realize that she has loved Nemorino all along, the Lucia’s fear of her brother Enrico’s quack doctor mistakenly believes that wrath, the couple exchange rings. his potion actually works. ACT TWO (40:00) Enrico forges a letter which persuades Lucia of Edgardo’s unfaithfulness; in her distress, Lucia INFLUENCES agrees to marry Arturo Bucklaw, an Verdi learned much from Donizetti, and Puccini was also ally of her brother. to benefit from the example of Donizetti's gift for melodic invention and the use of unusual instruments (such as the ACT THREE (50:00) Driven mad by her glass harmonica in Lucia di Lammermoor) to characterize grief at losing Edgardo, Lucia scenes. Berlioz, too, admired Donizetti, in spite of the fact that his works monopolized opera in Paris for a decade. murders Arturo and appears in a bloodstained nightgown in one of the most famous mad scenes in all opera. The music, evoking Lucia’s wandering mind, returns to themes from earlier in the opera, highlighting her former happiness. Lucia kills herself, and Edgardo, heartbroken at the news, stabs himself to death. LUCIA DI LAMMERMOOR OPERA
d 135:00
p3
ocv
L’ELISIR D’AMORE OPERA
d 125:00
p2
ocv
Ranking alongside the comedies of Rossini, The Elixir of Love is one of the most enduring comic creations of the bel canto era. Felice Romani wrote the libretto, based on a text by Eugene Scribe, itself based on Silvio Malaperta’s play Il filtro (The Philtre). L’elisir d’amore was first performed at the Teatro Canobbiana, Milan, in 1832.
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
244
Vincenzo Bellini b 1801–1835
n Italian
w c.60
Vincenzo Bellini, with Rossini and Donizetti, was one of the three great composers of Italian bel canto opera. In his short life he wrote ten operas, many of which have remained in the repertoire. His reputation rests on the long-breathed, beautifully lyrical lines he gave to his singers, as well as on the great vocal agility his music demanded. His masterpiece, Norma, contains the supreme bel canto aria in the repertoire. LIFE AND MUSIC
Bellini was born in Catania, Sicily, and educated in Naples at the San Sebastiano Conservatory, where he studied under Zingarelli. His first opera, Adelson e Salvini, was given in concert in 1825. He was immediately commissioned to write an opera for the prestigious San Carlo opera house in Naples, and soon after won another commission – Il pirata – for the even greater La Scala in Milan. Bellini followed this success (in Paris as well as in Italy) with I Capuleti e i Montecchi, in which Romeo’s part is written for female mezzo voice. La sonnambula, Norma, and I puritani followed, by which time Bellini had moved to Paris. He died there, tragically young.
MILESTONES
1820s Studies in Naples; meets Donizetti 1825
First opera, Adelson e Salvini, performed in concert
1826
Writes opera Bianca e Gernando (title changed to Bianca e Fernando in 1828)
1827
Opera Il pirata produced at La Scala, Milan; subsequent production in Paris makes him internationally famous
1830
Opera I Capuleti e i Montecchi is staged in Venice
1831
Writes operas La sonnambula and Norma for Milan with huge success
1833
Writes opera Beatrice da Tenda; goes to Paris; meets Rossini who advises him to write for Théâtre Italien there
1835
I puritani premiered in Paris
KEY WORKS I CAPULETI E I MONTECCHI OPERA
d 135:00
p2
ocv
The plot of The Capulets and the Montagues came not from Shakespeare, but from his source, a novel by Matteo Bandello. Bellini’s libretto was by Felice Romani, who wrote seven in all for him. This opera displays several aspects of Bellini’s style: dancelike rhythms in triple time, solo instrumental Maria Callas’s performances in the title role of Norma were a career highlight, showing her at her best, both as a singer and as an actress.
introductions to arias, and instrumental passages in parallel thirds. LA SONNAMBULA OPERA
d 180:00
p2
ocv
La sonnambula (The Sleepwalker) tells the story of Amina, who, accused of having an affair, is proved innocent when the villagers witness her walking in her sleep. The aria “Ah! non credea mirarti” in the sleepwalking scene is one of Bellini’s most beautiful long-phrased melodies.
FOCUS NORMA OPERA
d 160:00
I PURITANI p2
ocv
The most famous aria in Norma is the priestess heroine’s great invocation to the moon, “Casta Diva” (“Chaste Goddess”). Long believed impossible to perform as Bellini intended, it was revived by soprano Joan Sutherland, who did much to rediscover the great bel canto roles of Bellini and Donizetti. The opera, to a libretto by Romani, was based on a tragedy of 1831 by French playwright Alexandre Soumet. ACT ONE (90:00) The setting is Gaul under Roman occupation. Norma, daughter of Oroveso, high priest of the Druids, wants to avoid the war her father desires against the Romans because she is in love with the Roman proconsul, Pollione. She already has two children by him. However, he is having an affair with her best friend, Adalgisa (also her acolyte), who confesses this to Norma. ACT TWO (70:00) Adalgisa wants Pollione to go back to Norma. He refuses and is sentenced to death, but Norma offers herself, instead, as a sacrifice to her tribe and gives up her children. She mounts her own funeral pyre, where she is joined by a repentant Pollione. The role of Norma is one of the most demanding in the whole soprano repertoire, but it is now frequently performed and Norma is acknowledged as one the greatest bel canto operas.
OPERA
d 140:00
p3
ocv
Bellini’s last opera, I puritani (The Puritans) is based, at some distance, on Sir Walter Scott’s novel Old Mortality. It is set during the English Civil War. ACT ONE (70:00) In Cromwellian Plymouth, King Charles I’s widow, Enrichetta, is being held in a fortress, whose Puritan governor, Gualtiero, has promised his daughter Elvira in marriage to Riccardo. But Elvira is in love with a Royalist, Arturo. A plan to allow Enrichetta to escape leads Elvira to believe that she has a rival, and she goes mad. ACT TWO (40:00) Arturo, having played a pivotal part in the royal escape plan, is put under sentence of death if he returns to the Royalist ranks. ACT THREE (30:00) A Puritan victory leads to a general amnesty. When Arturo is released, Elvira regains her sanity and is reunited with her lover. Giulia Grisi, a great bel canto soprano, first created the role of Elvira. Bellini took his cue from the military theme and setting to fill the opera with marches and martial music, in addition to some of his sweetest melodic invention for Elvira herself. I puritani was first performed in Paris in January 1835 at the Théâtre-Italien, only a few months before Bellini’s tragically early death.
246
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
Ver
“Verdi…has bursts of marvellous passion. His passion is brutal, it is true, but it is better to be impassioned in this way than not at all.” GEORGES BIZET IN A LETTER, 1859
247
GI USE P P E V E R DI
Giuseppe Verdi
rdi b 1813–1901
n Italian
w 42
Verdi composed opera throughout his long life, developing his art from the influences of Rossini, Bellini, and Donizetti, through his use of French Grand Opéra forms in operas written for Paris and, eventually, to the creation of his great Shakespearian masterpieces, Otello and Falstaff, in which he began to use some of Wagner’s innovations in operatic form. Throughout, his originality and fecundity remained unparalleled.
LIFE
Giuseppe Verdi was born in the village of Le Roncole, Busseto, near Parma, in 1813, the same year as Richard Wagner. His father was an innkeeper, his first music teacher was the church organist, and his first patron was a local grocer who was prepared to pay for him to study at the Milan Conservatory. Unable to enter the Conservatory because of his inadequate piano technique, he studied privately for two years, then returned to Busseto and married his patron’s daughter. His first opera, Rocester, has been lost, but his next, Oberto, was performed at La Scala, Milan. Verdi lost his wife and his two children within two years of each other and, grief-stricken, was about to give up composing when he was commissioned to write Nabucco. The opera’s theme of national independence inspired him, and its great chorus, “Hebrew Slaves”, became an anthem for the Italian Risorgimento movement for unification. After years of composing an opera a year, he achieved financial independence by the late 1840s, bought a farm, and settled down with the singer Giuseppina Strepponi, whom he eventually married. Verdi was elected to the first Italian parliament after independence was declared in 1860. He wrote operas for St Petersburg, Paris, and Cairo, and then waited 16 years before another composer, Boito, provided him with librettos for his two final operas, Otello and Falstaff.
The operas of Verdi were generally based on historical or literary figures and settings; his love stories invariably ended in tragedy.
Total: 42
MUSICAL OUTPUT OPERA (28)
1
14
VOCAL (11)
1
INSTRUMENTAL (3)
1813
1830
1840
8
2
1
1
1
1
2
1
2
4
1
1
1
1850
1860
1870
1880
1890
1901
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
248
MUSIC
Verdi’s early operas, like Macbeth, Ernani, and Nabucco, took themes of national independence and used choruses as the “voice of the people”, making powerful political statements. His soloists were given highly taxing roles, such as Lady Macbeth, Elvira, and Abigaille, which heightened the dramatic effect of arias and ensembles. In his middle years, Verdi’s dramatic skills developed and his orchestration grew increasingly subtle. Rigoletto and La traviata took realistic plots and set them with great lyrical beauty and emotional depth. In his old age, after Aïda, Verdi returned to his beloved Shakespeare for his last two operas, in which his vocal writing, especially in Otello, shows power and expression beyond anything he had written before.
MILESTONES
1839 1842 1847 1849 1851 1852 1853 1858
Oberto produced at La Scala, Milan First great success, Nabucco Macbeth Buys a farm at Sant’ Agata Rigoletto premiered in Venice Il trovatore La traviata Un ballo in maschera
1860
Elected deputy in the first Italian parliament
1869
Soprano Giuseppina Strepponi becomes his second wife
1871
Aïda performed in Cairo
1874
Composes Requiem in memory of the writer Alessandro Manzoni
1884
Arrigo Boito persuades him to resume writing operas
1887 1892
Otello performed at La Scala, Milan Composes Falstaff
KEY WORKS MACBETH OPERA
d 150:00
p4
ocv
Verdi’s librettist Piave took some liberties with Shakespeare’s tragedy (the three witches become an entire female chorus), but Verdi’s opera tells the story in a skilful, moving way. Lady Macbeth’s sleepwalking scene is one of Verdi’s finest, with its spectral orchestration for high strings and its high-lying vocal line that disappears to a mere thread of voice. It was Maria Callas who helped to rediscover the role and brought Macbeth back into the permanent repertoire.
Romanian soprano Angela Gheorghiu and French/Italian tenor Roberto Alagna sing a duet in a performance of Verdi’s La traviata at London’s Covent Garden.
of consumption, Violetta does as he asks, only to be reconciled with her lover and die in his arms.
LA TRAVIATA OPERA
d 120:00
p3
ocv
Verdi courted the disapproval of the Venetian censors when he chose to set Alexandre Dumas’s play La dame aux camélias. The story is of the courtesan Violetta and her love for Alfredo, which is thwarted by Alfredo’s father, Germont, who tells Violetta to leave his son for the sake of his sister. Dying
REQUIEM MASS SETTING
d 140:00
p 15
ocv
Verdi wrote his Requiem in 1874 in memory of the great Italian novelist Manzoni. The setting of the Latin Mass for the dead includes many highly operatic effects (like the trombone in “Tuba mirum”). The fiery “Dies irae” is one of his most dramatic choruses.
249
GI USE P P E V E R DI
FOCUS ACT TWO (30:00) Rigoletto comes looking for Gilda, but when he finds her, she has already been disgraced. ACT THREE (35:00) Rigoletto pays the assassin Sparafucile to murder the Duke, but Sparafucile’s sister, Maddalena, who is in love with the Duke, persuades him to kill someone else instead. Gilda substitutes herself for the Duke, and is fatally wounded. Rigoletto takes a sack that he believes to contain the Duke’s body and finds, instead, his dying daughter.
RIGOLETTO d 120:00
OPERA
p3
ocv
Verdi based Rigoletto on Victor Hugo’s play Le roi s’amuse. ACT ONE (55:00) Rigoletto, the hunchbacked jester to the libertine Duke of Mantua, has a daughter, Gilda, whom he does not want to fall into the Duke’s hands, but the Duke has been courting her in secret, disguised as a student. The Duke’s men kidnap Gilda and take her to the palace. ACT THREE Duke sings “La donna è mobile”, while flirting with Maddalena, observed by Gilda and Rigoletto
1
2
3
4
Recitative. Gilda confesses she loves the Duke
5
6
7
8
9
Gilda is stabbed by Sparafucile
Recitative. Rigoletto orders Gilda home. Thunder is heard in distance
10
11
12
Dukes sings of love for Maddalena; Gilda sobs Quartet
13
14
15
16
17
Trio. Sparafucile tells Maddalena Duke is to be killed
18
19
20
21
Storm, then clock strikes
22
23
24
25
Duke heard singing offstage. Rigoletto realizes wrong person has been killed
26
27
28
29
30
31
Final duet between Rigoletto and dying Gilda. She sings “Vi ho ingannato”
general Radamès, who is sent to lead the Egyptian army against Ethiopia. When Rigoletto was performed in Cairo ACT TWO (40:00) Amneris forces Aïda to to celebrate the opening of the Suez admit that she loves Radamès, who Canal, the Khedive of Egypt was so returns victorious and is given impressed that he commissioned Aïda to Amneris as his bride. be staged in his newly completed opera ACT THREE (35:00) Amonasro, Aïda’s house. The opera was given its first father, has been captured. He convinces performance on 24 December 1871. Aïda to find out from Radames the plan of his next campaign. ACT ONE (40:00) Aïda is an Ethiopian slave to Amneris, ACT FOUR (35:00) Ramphis discovers daughter of Ramphis, this betrayal. Radames is condemned the Pharaoh. She is to be walled up alive in a tomb, in love with the where Aïda joins him. Egyptian They die together. AÏDA OPERA
d 150:00
p4
ocv
250
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
Wag
“If one has not heard Wagner at Bayreuth, one has heard nothing!” GABRIEL FAURÉ IN A LETTER, 1884
251
R I CH A R D WAGN E R
Richard Wagner
gner b 1813–1883
n German
w 43
Richard Wagner reinvented opera as music drama. His aim was to create a “Gesamtkunstwerk”, a unified work of art combining poetry, drama, music, song, and painting. In writing the music dramas of his maturity, he wrote both text and music, and superintended staging and performance as his own director and conductor. He built the Festspielhaus in Bayreuth as a fitting home for his Ring cycle and his last great work, Parsifal.
LIFE
Wagner was born in Leipzig, and was educated in Dresden and at the Thomasschule, Leipzig, studying literature as intensively as he studied music. He was appointed choral conductor at Würzburg in 1833, and then took conducting posts at Lauchstädt and Magdeburg. He married an actress, Minna Planer, but their marriage was strained by Wagner’s extravagance and infidelities. After working in Riga, he went to Paris, living from hand to mouth, then returned to Dresden where he was appointed court opera conductor. In Dresden he studied German epic poetry, gaining the subjects for the rest of his life’s work. His participation in the Dresden uprising of 1849 led to his exile. In Switzerland he wrote several essays, including the important Opera and Drama and the anti-Semitic tract Jewishness in Music. Wagner visited London and Paris, and continued to travel until permitted to return to Saxony in 1862. The turning point in his fortunes came when King Ludwig II of Bavaria invited him to Munich and became his patron, allowing Wagner to stage Tristan und Isolde, conducted by Hans von Bülow. Wagner fell in love with von Bülow’s wife, Cosima, and fathered two children with her before Minna’s death allowed them to marry. In Bayreuth, Wagner built a house and a theatre, the Festspielhaus, where he staged the Ring cycle. He completed his final opera, Parsifal, in 1882, and died in Venice in 1883.
One of the most influential composers of all time, Wagner changed the course of both opera and Classical music in general.
Total: 43
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (1)
1
OTHER ORCHESTRAL (15)
6
2
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (14)
6
2
OPERAS (13)
3 1813
1830
3 3
3 1840
3 1850
4
3 1 1860
2 1870
1 1880
1883
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
252
MUSIC
derived all its materials from a simple Wagner inherited an art of German chord or opening phrase. At the same opera that had been developed by time, Wagner experimented with Mozart, Beethoven, and Weber. He transformed it into his own definition modulation and the key system, discovering ways of moving seamlessly of music drama, a unified work that to the remotest of keys with enormous combined poetry and music, the two emotional effect. Wagner’s mastery of being conceived together. Wagner’s the orchestra (he invented the art of the early operas, up to Rienzi, were modern conductor, invented new influenced by the trends of the instruments such as the Wagner day, especially French Grand tuba, and discovered new Opéra. From The Flying timbres and combinations of Dutchman onwards, through instrumental sound) reached the Lohengrin and Tannhäuser, height of its development Wagner found his own in Tristan und Isolde. His unique musical language. understanding of the Central to his new voice allowed him to style of composition write roles of huge was the idea of the The eccentric King Ludwig II of length and complexity Leitmotiv, or leading Bavaria (1845–86) was Wagner’s patron; he paid for the construction that were still singable, motive, a musical theme of the Bayreuth Opera House. and which were able linked to a specific to penetrate the heaviest of orchestral character, symbol, or concept that textures. With Parsifal, Wagner recurred throughout the work. By brought the art of his music drama the time he completed the Ring cycle, to a point which, at the time, seemed this had become a system of melody, likely to remain unsurpassable. harmony, and counterpoint that MILESTONES
Der fliegende Holländer produced in Dresden
1854 1856 1857 1859
Completes Das Rheingold Completes Die Walküre Completes first part of Siegfried Completes Tristan und Isolde
1845
Tannhäuser produced in Dresden
1863
1849
Participates in revolution in Dresden; flees to Weimar, then Zurich
Falls in love with Cosima, Liszt’s daughter and Hans von Bülow’s wife
1864
King Ludwig II of Bavaria, Wagner’s passionate admirer, pays his debts and subsidizes his subsequent career
1865
Tristan und Isolde produced in Munich, conducted by Hans von Bülow
1866
Wife Minna dies
1867
Completes Die Meistersinger von Nürnberg
1871 1872
Completes second part of Siegfried Building of Bayreuth Festspielhaus begins
1874
Builds villa, Wahnfried, in Bayreuth; completes Götterdämmerung
1876
Bayreuth theatre opens; Ring cycle first performed
1882
Parsifal performed at Bayreuth
1841 1842
Completes Der fliegende Holländer Opera Rienzi produced in Dresden
1843
Wagner’s left-wing ideals led to his implication in the fighting of the Dresden Rebellion of 1849. A warrant was issued for his arrest, but he escaped to Zurich.
253
R I CH A R D WAGN E R
KEY WORKS DER FLIEGENDE HOLLÄNDER OPERA
d 135:00
p3
ocv
The Flying Dutchman was Wagner’s first attempt at reinventing opera. It has no distinct arias, and everything that happens, whether on the stage or in the pit, is there to enhance the drama. The Flying Dutchman himself is a man doomed to sail the seas alone until he finds the love of a true woman, which will save his soul. TANNHÄUSER OPERA
d 180:00
p3
ocv
Based on a poem by Ludwig Tieck, Tannhäuser received its first, not very successful, performance at Dresden in 1845. Its hero, Tannhäuser, returns to Germany from the realms of the goddess Venus and competes in a song contest for the hand of Elisabeth, his old love. Singing of the joys of the flesh rather than the spirit, Tannhäuser is banished. The pair are eventually reunited in death. LOHENGRIN OPERA
d 210:00
p3
ocv
Based on a German epic poem, and first performed in Weimar in 1850, Lohengrin tells of the rivalry between Telramund and Lohengrin over the succession to the dukedom of Brabant and the love of Elsa. Lohengrin’s
Wagner’s custom-built opera house the Festspielhaus in Bayreuth, Germany, has been used to host the Wagner Festival annually since its completion in 1876.
famous swan (on which he arrives to meet Elsa) turns out to be Gottfried, the missing heir to the dukedom. PARSIFAL OPERA
d 250:00
p3
ocv
As usual, Wagner wrote his own libretto for Parsifal, based on the epic poem by Wolfram von Eschenbach. Set in Arthurian times, it tells the story of the Grail knights. Their wounded king can only be cured by a “pure fool, wise through compassion”. Parsifal arrives, and proves to be both a fool and pure. He fights the evil Klingsor, restores the holy spear to the Grail castle, and leads the rite of the Holy Grail. The operas of Wagner work best on a massive scale, such as in this production of Parsifal, which, as is not unusual, makes use of massive sets and a large cast.
INFLUENCES
Wagner’s influence on subsequent composers was incalculable. His innovations transformed the harmonic language of the 19th century and helped bring about the abandonment of the system of tonality. Poets and novelists from Verlaine and T S Eliot to Thomas Mann and Marcel Proust referred directly to his inspiration.
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
254
FOCUS DER RING DES NIBELUNGEN d 885:00
OPERA CYCLE
p4
ocv
In its full form Der Ring des Nibelungen, Wagner’s most ambitious masterpiece, is actually a complete opera festival in itself, taking place over three days and a preliminary evening. DAS RHEINGOLD (1 ACT, 150:00) The dwarf Alberich steals the Rhinemaidens’ gold to make a magic ring. The giants, Fafner and Fasolt, agree to exchange Freia – the goddess whose golden apples keep the gods young – for the
gold Alberich has gained through the power of the Ring. They then demand the Ring in addition to the gold. Fafner kills Fasolt, taking the Ring. DIE WALKÜRE (3 ACTS, 225:00) The two mortal children of the god Wotan, Siegmund and Sieglinde, fall in love. Sieglinde’s husband kills Siegmund, although Brünnhilde the Valkyrie tries to protect him. Sieglinde is pregnant with Siegfried, the saviour of the gods. To punish Brünnhilde for trying to save Siegmund, Wotan puts her to sleep on a rock ringed with flames. SIEGFRIED (3 ACTS, 255:00) Siegfried, the son of Siegmund and Sieglinde, succeeds in forging his father’s shattered sword. He goes to Fafner’s lair (the giant is now a dragon), and, killing Fafner, gains the Ring. Finding Brünnhilde on her rock, he wakes her with a kiss. GÖTTERDÄMMERUNG (PROLOGUE AND 3 ACTS,
Siegfried, in love with Brünnhilde, gives her the Ring, but his enemies Günther and Hagen give him a drugged potion. He brings Brünnhilde, with the Ring, from her rock. Hagen
255:00)
Fritz Lang’s silent film of 1922–24 Die Nibelungen is split into two parts: Siegfried and Kriemhild’s Revenge, which deal with the last two parts of the epic story.
TRISTAN UND ISOLDE OPERA
d 255:00
p3
ocv
Wagner’s epic music drama of love and death, written in 1857–59, was first performed in Munich in 1865. ACT ONE King Marke’s henchman Tristan is returning to Cornwall with the Irish princess Isolde, Marke’s betrothed. Isolde’s first husband died at Tristan’s hand, and although she nursed the wounded
Tristan, she now hates him for what he did. She orders her servant Brangäne to prepare a poison, but Brangäne substitutes a love potion. Each drink it, expecting death, but instead fall in love. ACT TWO While Marke is away on a night-time hunt, arranged by the treacherous Melot, who is also in love with Isolde, the lovers meet for an extended tryst. Tristan and Isolde
PRELUDE AND LIEBESTOD ( FROM ACT THREE )
1Prelude
Cellos and basses play last phrase
First section (yearning) 1
Cello states first theme (love motive), which is answered by woodwind
Second section (passionate) 2
Entry of cellos with second theme
3
4
Oboes and clarinets enter
5
Entry of third theme in strings
6
Third section (dying away) 7
Climax, then music begins to slow down
8
9
255
DIE MEISTERSINGER VON NÜRNBERG d 255:00
OPERA
kills Siegfried and Günther as he fights for the Ring. Brünnhilde builds a pyre for Siegfried, and burns herself and Valhalla. The Rhine overflows and the Rhinemaidens drown Hagen and take back the Ring. express their passion in powerful, erotically charged music, but daylight comes, the hunting party returns, and Tristan is mortally wounded by Melot. ACT THREE The dying Tristan, who has been taken back to Kareol, his castle in Brittany, by the faithful Kurwenal, waits for Isolde to come to him. She comes, followed by King
2 Liebestod from Act III First Section 10
11
Marke, but Tristan dies in her arms. As she sings the “Liebestod”, an astonishing Wagnerian tour de force, in which eternal love is consummated by death, Isolde is transfigured, then dies herself. Isolde’s last words: “unbewusst, höchste Lust” (“unconscious, supreme bliss”)
Second Section 13
Horns enter Isolde, accompanied first by bass clarinet
Change of key
ocv
When Wagner decided to write a comedy in 1861, he turned away from the high drama of the Ring cycle to focus on the small tale of a competition organized by the Meistersingers, societies of singers who guarded the integrity of the German song tradition. ACT ONE (85:00) In 16th-century Nuremberg, the knight Walther von Stolzing is in love with Eva, Pogner’s daughter. Pogner will give her in marriage to whoever wins the singing contest of the Meistersingers’ guild. ACT TWO (85:00) Walther does not know the rules of the contest, but the (real-life) cobbler and poet Hans Sachs coaches him, and helps him to fend off the town clerk Beckmesser, who also wants to marry Eva. ACT THREE (85:00) Walther, singing a song composed by Hans Sachs, wins the contest and gains Eva’s hand in marriage; he is then enrolled as a full member of the Meistersinger’s guild.
Wagner’s music makes it clear from the start that the doomed love of Tristan and Isolde can lead to no other end but death.
Isolde sings “yearning” motive from Prelude
12
p3
Third Section 14
First clarinet plays new counter-theme
15
16
Coda 17
Gradual build-up
18
Climax
19
Burst of emotion in final chords as Isolde is transfixed and dies
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
256
Léo Delibes b 1836–1891
n French
w c.70
French composer and organist Léo Delibes achieved considerable fame as a composer of enormously successful operettas, operas, and ballets. His best-known work, the ballet Coppélia, was one of the first to use “national” dances, such as the Hungarian csárdás. Lakmé, written in the popular orientalizing style fashionable in Paris, includes the beautiful “Flower Duet” for two sopranos. LIFE AND MUSIC
Léo Delibes arrived in Paris from the provincial town of Saint-Germain-duVal at the age of 12, after his father had died. While still a boy, he sang in the choir at La Madeleine and in the Opéra chorus. He studied organ and composition at the Paris Conservatoire and, at 17, became organist at Saint Pierre de Chaillot at the same time as working as an accompanist at the Théâtre Lyrique, where he began composing operettas. In 1865 he became chorus master at the Paris Opéra, and was eventually appointed professor of composition at the Paris Conservatoire. His last opera, Kassya, was unfinished at his death, and was completed by Massenet.
MILESTONES
1848
Begins to study organ and composition at the Paris Conservatoire; taught by Adolphe Adam, theatre composer
1853 1855 1865
Accompanist at Théâtre Lyrique Writes Deux sous de charbon, operetta Deputy chorus master at Paris Opéra
1866
Enjoys success with Le source, ballet, co-written with Louis Minkus
1870 1873 1876 1880
Premiere of Coppélia, ballet Composes Le roi l’a dit, opera First performance of Sylvia, ballet Writes Jean de Nivelle, opera
1882
Composes Le roi s’amuse, suite of six dances: incidental music for play by Victor Hugo
1883
Lakmé, opera, first performed in Paris
KEY WORKS LES FILLES DE CADIX CHANSON
d 05:00
p1
sv
Delibes’s most popular song sets words by Alfred de Musset. It has been recorded by many of the world’s greatest sopranos. Delibes uses the popular Spanish style in setting this song about girls and boys returning from seeing the bullfight and dancing the bolero. Coppelia was the last ballet to be performed at the Paris Opéra before the Franco-Prussian War forced it to close.
SYLVIA BALLET
d 90:00
p3
o
First performed in 1876, to a libretto by Barbier and de Reinach, and with choreography by Mérante, Sylvia – the story of a nymph of Diana – is a ballet on a pastoral theme. Its dances include “Fauns and Dryads”, an Ethiopian dance, a bacchanal, and the march and cortege of Bacchus.
L É O DE L I B E S
257
FOCUS LAKMÉ OPERA
d 155:00
p3
ocv
Lakmé’s libretto was based on a novel by Pierre Loti. Set in 19thcentury India, it describes the hatred of the Brahmin priests for the British soldiers who suppressed their religion. The elegance of Delibes’s melodies, and the exoticism of the opera’s setting, have made Lakmé a lasting favourite with singers and audiences alike. The role of Lakmé, with its coloratura display of the soprano voice, has drawn many great sopranos to interpret it. The “Flower Duet” in Act One, between Lakmé and her servant Mallika, is one of the most popular of all duets for soprano and mezzo. ACT ONE (50:00) Two army officers, Gérald and Fréderic, are in a sacred Brahmin grove where they see Lakmé, the daughter of the Brahmin Nilakantha, and Gérald falls in love with her. Nilakantha swears vengeance on the trespassers. ACT TWO (60:00) Nilakantha makes Lakmé sing the “Bell Song”, to lure Gérald into his sight. Lakmé warns Gérald that her father wants to kill him, but he risks venturing into a procession, where he is wounded. ACT THREE (45:00) Lakmé nurses Gérald, but Fréderic calls his comrade to return to his post. When Lakmé realizes Gérald is going to leave her, she takes poison and dies.
Dr Coppélius has made a mechanical doll, Coppélia, and passes her off as his daughter. Franz and Swanilda are engaged, but Swanilda thinks that Franz is captivated by Coppélia when he picks up a book the doll has dropped. When Swanilda finds Coppelius’s door key, she leads her friends inside to talk to Coppélia. Franz also goes into the house to return Coppélia’s book. COPPÉLIA BALLET d 90:00 p2 o ACT TWO (45:00) Swanilda and her friends find Coppélia, and are shocked to The German fantasy writer E T A discover that she is only a doll. Hoffmann wrote many stories that inspired operas and ballets. Coppélia, a There are other dolls in the house, ballet with a libretto by Nuittier, is one and they play with them until of these. Premiered at the Paris Opéra Coppélius chases them away – all except Swanilda. Coppélius drugs in 1870, it was one of the first ballets Franz and attempts to transfer his to include national dances. Delibes visited Hungary and returned with the life-force to the doll, but Swanilda, famous csárdás, the Hungarian national disguised as Coppélia, jumps up and runs off to marry Franz. dance, which he wrote into the score. ACT ONE (45:00)
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
258
Georges Bizet b 1838–1875
n French
w c.120
A precocious but short-lived talent, Bizet devoted the best part of his brief but creative life to opera, for which he wrote his greatest music. Although acclaimed at his death as a concert composer, it was for his avant-garde opera Carmen that he is now remembered. With Carmen, he changed the course of French opera, setting a style in lifelike drama and sensual music that reached its peak decades later. LIFE AND MUSIC
The son of a singing teacher, Bizet was a child prodigy who read music at four, played the piano at six, entered the Paris Conservatoire at nine, and composed an accomplished symphony at 17. Although he produced some passable Italianate operas in the 1950s, real success did not come until 1863 with his sensual and melodic Les pêcheurs de perles. A fallow patch followed before Bizet turned out a string of instrumental successes, such as Jeux d’enfants, and started work on a new opera, Carmen. But, shocked by its raw realism, the first critics reacted coolly, disappointing Bizet, who died before it became a box-office hit.
MILESTONES
1847
Studies at the Paris Conservatoire under Jacques Halévy
1855 1856
Writes Symphony in C major Befriends Charles Gounod
1857
Wins the Grand Prix de Rome; Le docteur miracle, operetta, staged
1858 1860 1863 1867 1869 1871
Studies in Rome Returns to Paris Les pêcheurs de perles, opera, premiered La jolie fille de Perth, opera, staged Marries Halévy’s daughter, Geneviève Djamileh, one-act opera, premiered
1872
Commissioned to write l’Arlésienne, incidental music, staged at Vaudeville
1875
Carmen, opera, premiered in Paris
KEY WORKS L’ARLÉSIENNE, SUITE NO. 1 ORCHESTRAL
d 17:00
p4
o
Bizet’s enchanting orchestral suite, based on the incidental music that he wrote for Alphonse Daudet’s play L’Arlésienne (The Girl from Arles), proved to be even more popular than the play. The virgin priestess Leila in Les pêcheurs de perles captures the hearts of two friends who vie for her hand.
SYMPHONY IN C MAJOR ORCHESTRAL
d 35:00
p4
o
Bizet’s first and possibly finest orchestral score, produced while still in his teens, was based on Charles Gounod’s Symphony in D. Although unoriginal, it is a fresh and delightful piece with beautiful melodies; but it could not be enjoyed until 1935, as the score disappeared for 80 years. JEUX D’ENFANTS SUITE, OP. 22 DUO
d 30:00
p 12
e
A brilliant pianist, Bizet wrote this charming suite, based on children’s games, for piano duet, from which he later orchestrated five movements as the Petite suite d’orchestre in 1872.
259
GE ORGE S B I ZE T
FOCUS LES PÊCHEURS DE PERLES OPERA
d 100:00
p3
ocv
Bizet’s first operatic hit, achieved in his 20s, never enjoyed Carmen’s success, but still attracts audiences. Although written to an appalling libretto, its charm lies in its melodic music, sensual undertones, and exotic atmosphere, evoked by lively rhythms and spicy harmonies. The appealing vocal score, inspired by Bizet’s mentor, Charles Gounod, also helps to enthrall listeners, with such sweet, memorable songs as “Au fond du temple saint”. ACT ONE (45:00) A fishing crew choose Zurga as their chief. He and his friend, Nadir, recall the time when they fell for the same woman, Leila, but avoided conflict by letting her go. ACT TWO (30:00) Leila, now a priestess, arrives by boat to bless the fishermen. Nadir recognizes her as the woman he once loved, and reveals his passion. Learning of their love, the high priest Nourabad condemns them to death. ACT THREE (25:00) Leila is led to her death, but Zurga relents and torches the camp, letting the lovers escape.
CARMEN OPERA
d 160:00
p4
ocv
Bizet’s Carmen, the first realistic opera, shocked the first audiences with its lifelike characters, sensual passions, and graphic on-stage murder. Set to a libretto by Henri Meilhac and Ludovic Halévy, the plot was inspired by Prosper Merimée’s short novel about a passionate Spanish gypsy. ACT ONE (60:00) Soldiers arrest Carmen for assaulting a fellow worker at the cigarette factory in Seville. She escapes by seducing Don José, one of the guards, who is then imprisoned. ACT TWO (40:00) At Lillas Pastia’s bar, Carmen attracts the bullfighter Escamillo. When Don José is released, she persuades him to desert the army and join a band of smugglers. ACT THREE (40:00) Don José, Carmen, and the smugglers march through the night. Carmen foretells her own death. Escamillo follows, fights Don José, and just escapes with his life. ACT FOUR (20:00) In Seville, Carmen goes to the bullfight to watch her new lover, but Don José confronts and kills her.
260
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
Pucc
“I shall feel [the story] as an Italian, with desperate passion.” GIACOMO PUCCINI
261
GI ACO M O P UCCI N I
Giacomo Puccini
cini b 1858–1924
n Italian
w 38
Giacomo Puccini was the last in the great line of Italian composers of Romantic opera. With Turandot, his unfinished masterpiece, the tradition can be said to have ended, although in it Puccini had already begun to explore much of the new musical language of the 20th century. His most popular operas, La bohème, Madama Butterfly, and Tosca, demonstrate his gift for capturing an audience’s attention with pure dramatic intensity.
LIFE
Puccini was born in Lucca, Tuscany, into the fifth generation of a family of church musicians. His father died when Puccini was only five, but the position of organist at the church of San Martino was kept open for him until he was old enough to step into his father’s shoes. However, a performance of Verdi’s Aïda, which he saw in Pisa in 1876, convinced him that his true vocation was opera. He took up the position of church organist at the age of 19, but in 1880 went to study at the Milan Conservatory. When the publisher Sonzogno launched a competition for a one-act opera, Puccini entered Le Villi, which failed to win. Sonzogno’s rival, Giulio Ricordi, commissioned another opera from Puccini, Edgar, and after its failure another, more successful: Manon Lescaut. From that point on, Puccini devoted his life to writing opera, with country pursuits such as shooting and fishing as his recreations. In 1891, he bought a beautiful estate on a lake near Lucca. He was by then living with a married woman, Elvira Bonturi, whom he was unable to marry until the death of her husband. The relationship seems to have been a tempestuous one. In 1909, a servant killed herself after Elvira accused her of having an affair with Puccini. During the writing of his last opera, Turandot, Puccini fell ill with throat cancer, and died while undergoing medical treatment in Brussels, leaving his masterpiece incomplete.
The operas of Puccini are based on passionate stories of love, revenge, and betrayal.
Total: 38
MUSICAL OUTPUT ORCHESTRAL (4)
1
2
1
INSTRUMENTAL (7)
5
OPERA (12)
2
2
10
2
VOCAL (15)
3 1858
1870
1880
2
1890
3
1900
4
1910
1
1920
1924
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
262
MUSIC
Puccini’s genius for melodic invention, his love for the pairing of soprano and tenor voices, and his gift for picking theatrically effective plots established him as the most popular of all opera composers. His Romantic lyricism is in the tradition of 19th-century Italian opera, but he took up 20th-century ideas of bitonalism and dissonance from Stravinsky and others. Throughout his career, his taste for the exotic led him to incorporate music from the widest of sources, from the Roman matins bells in Tosca to the Japanese melodies in Madama Butterfly (supplied by a friend) and the Wild West tunes of La fanciulla del West. In Turandot he went even further, using pentatonic and whole-tone scales to evoke a mythical China, and adding tuned percussion to an already rich orchestral palette.
MILESTONES
1880
Enters Milan Conservatory
1884
One-act opera Le Villi performed in Milan
1889
Second opera, Edgar, is a failure
1893
Third opera, Manon Lescaut, enjoys great success in Turin
1896
La bohème produced at Teatro Regio, Turin
1900
Tosca premiered at Teatro Costanzi, Rome
1904
Premiere of first version of Madama Butterfly
1906
Definitive version of Madama Butterfly
1910
La fanciulla del West premiered at Metropolitan Opera, New York
1917 1918
La rondine performed in Monte Carlo Il trittico (three one-act operas)
1920
Starts work on Turandot, but work is left unfinished on his death in 1924
KEY WORKS TURANDOT OPERA
d 120:00
p3
ocv
Turandot was Puccini’s last opera. He fell ill while composing the last act, and died without completing it. In ancient China, Princess Turandot has declared that she will marry the prince who can answer her three riddles. Anyone who fails will be beheaded. Prince Calaf declares that he wants to face the test. He answers correctly, but she refuses to marry him. He proposes that she should guess his name by morning; if she does, she can behead him. Turandot orders her servants to torture the name from Calaf ’s servant, Liù, who is in love Luciano Pavarotti enjoyed huge success in the 1990s with Calaf’s aria “Nessun Dorma” from Turandot.
with her master. Liù dies, and Turandot learns from her example what it means to love. TOSCA OPERA
d 140:00
p3
ocv
Victorien Sardou wrote the melodrama Tosca as a vehicle for the great actress Sarah Bernhardt. Puccini turned it into a spectacular opera, its title role a magnificent vehicle for singers like Maria Callas. Its three acts are set in Rome, in the Church of Sant’Andrea della Valle, where the painter Cavaradossi helps the fugitive Angelotti; the Palazzo Farnese where the villainous Scarpia has his torture chamber; and the Castel Sant’ Angelo, where Tosca flings herself from the parapet.
FOCUS
for Pinkerton his vows mean nothing. ACT TWO (50:00) Pinkerton has sailed back to the USA, and Butterfly, who has had a son by him, awaits his return. When her servant Suzuki suggests Pinkerton may never come back, Butterfly sings the aria “Un bel di” (“One fine day”). She sees his ship entering Nagasaki bay. Butterfly, her son, and Suzuki wait all night for Pinkerton’s arrival. ACT THREE (30:00) The American consul tells Suzuki that Pinkerton has remarried. Pinkerton and his wife come to collect the child. On realizing the truth, Butterfly kills herself.
MADAMA BUTTERFLY d 140:00
OPERA
p3
ocv
Puccini saw David Belasco’s play about a Nagasaki geisha and her American naval officer lover, Madame Butterfly, and decided to turn it into an opera. Belasco’s play was based on a short story by John Luther Long, which was itself based on an incident witnessed by his sister, Jennie Correll, a US missionary working in Nagasaki. ACT ONE (60:00) Pinkerton, an American naval officer, arranges to marry Madame Butterfly, a Nagasaki geisha. The marriage is attended by her family, the bride is deeply in love, but
Marcello joins up with a former girlfriend, Musetta, a singer, who Puccini and his librettists, Illica and tricks her current lover, the elderly Alcindoro, into paying the bill. Giacosa, based La bohème on Henry Murger’s Scènes de la vie de Bohème. ACT THREE (30:00) Rodolfo is jealous of Mimì’s infidelities, and at the same ACT ONE (40:00) Rodolfo the poet, Marcello the painter, and two other time feels they cannot continue Bohemian friends share a Paris garret. living together in poverty, because It is Christmas Eve. They burn pages she is dying of consumption. from Rodolfo’s manuscript to keep ACT FOUR (30:00) The dying Mimì warm. Mimì, a neighbour, knocks at returns to the garret. The friends the door. Rodolfo falls in love with her. go off to buy her what comforts they can. They return to find Mimì ACT TWO (20:00) The four friends and dying in Rodolfo’s arms. Mimì are at the Café Momus. LA BOHÈME d 120:00
OPERA
p4
ocv
ACT ONE Short introduction
1
2
3
Ensemble
4
5
6
7
8
9
Manuscript is Enter landord. Friends thrown on fire mock his infidelities to avoid paying rent
10
11
12
Rodolfo’s aria
Recitative
Quartet
13
14
15
Mimì enters, explaining her candle has blown out on draughty stairs
16
17
18
19
20
21
Rodolfo and Mimì’s duet
Mimi’s aria
22
Rodolfo sings “Che gelida manina” (“This tiny hand is frozen”)
23
24
25
26
27
Mimì sings “Sì, mi chiamano Mimì”
28
29
30
31
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
264
Otto Nicolai b 1810–1849
n German w 235 him an overnight sensation) and Vienna (where he eventually settled after fleeing a broken engagement in Italy). He gained respect as an innovative conductor at Vienna’s Philharmonic Concerts and as a craftsmanlike, if eclectic, opera composer clearly influenced by Bellini, Weber, and others. But he found a distinctive voice in his enduring comic masterpiece The Merry Wives of Windsor, a new style of opera, in German, which was premiered to a quiet reception two months before his premature death.
Surviving a traumatic childhood, during which he supported himself as an itinerant pianist, Nicolai studied in Berlin and made valuable contacts. His early career alternated between Italy (where his Italian-style operas Enrico II and Il templario made
MILESTONES
Nicolai produced his comic opera The Merry Wives of Windsor in 1849 at the Berlin Opera, two years after becoming the chief conductor there.
1834 1840
Becomes an organist in Rome Writes Il templario (The Templar), opera
1841
Appointed principal conductor of Hofoper, Vienna’s opera house
1842
Appointed conductor of the Philharmonic Concerts in Vienna
1849
Premieres Die lustigen Weiber von Windsor (The Merry Wives of Windsor), operetta
Louis James Alfred Lefébure-Wély b 1817–1869
n French
w c.200
An extraordinary organist whose virtuosity with the pedals inspired César Franck and Charles Alkan, LefébureWély is primarily remembered as an organ composer, though he also wrote symphonies, piano pieces, and stage and chamber works. He succeeded his father as church organist at 15 and, after studies at
the Paris Conservatoire, held the major posts of organist at La Madeleine, and then St Sulpice. Always in demand as a harmonium recitalist in France and abroad, and for concerts inaugurating new organs, his popularity helped to establish wide appreciation of the French Romantic organ, especially the fabulous instruments built by Cavaillé-Coll. MILESTONES
1831
Succeeds father as organist at St Roch
1835
Wins first prize for organ at Paris Conservatoire
1847 1850
Appointed organist at La Madeleine Awarded the Légion d’Honneur
1861
Composes opera Les recruteurs and L’office catholique, Op.148, organ music
Lefébure-Wély built himself a successful career as the official organist at three of the most important churches in Paris, including that of Saint-Rochs, hown here in 1840, which was his first appointment.
265
ROM A N T I C OP E R A
Jacques Offenbach b 1819–1880
n French
w c.100
Jacques Offenbach created the French operetta. Many of his works have never left the repertory, with La belle Hélène and Orphée aux enfers (Orpheus in the Underworld) among the most popular ever written. But he also wrote one masterpiece of grand opera, The Tales of Hoffmann, left unfinished at his death. Set in Germany and Venice, it includes a gondola scene with the famous Barcarolle. LIFE AND MUSIC Offenbach was born near Cologne in Germany, the son of the cantor at the city’s synagogue. He studied in Paris, becoming a brilliant cellist and playing in the Opéra-Comique orchestra. In 1853 he began writing operettas. He then became theatre manager of the Théâtre Comte, which he renamed the Bouffes Parisiens. His light-hearted musical style, inventive in its melodies and enhanced by his choice of witty librettists as his collaborators, epitomized the style of the French Second Empire, while at the same time satirizing its excesses. He wrote more than 90 operettas, but also worked for many years on his grand opera, Les contes d’Hoffmann (The Tales of Hoffmann). He died before finishing it, but it was completed and orchestrated from Offenbach’s sketches by Ernest Guiraud.
MILESTONES
1833
Begins studies at Paris Conservatoire
1849
Appointed conductor at Théâtre Français in Paris
1853 1858 1855
Begins composing operettas Orphée aux enfers, operetta, premiered Takes over Théâtre Compte
1864
Premieres of Der Rheinnixen, opera, in Vienna; La belle Hélène, operetta, Paris
1866 1867 1868 1869 1876 1880
Writes La vie parisienne, operetta Writes Robinson Crusoé, operetta Writes La Périchole, operetta Writes Princesse de Trébizonde, operetta
1881
Les contes d’Hoffmann, opera, begun in 1877, given first performance
Moves to US; returns to Paris 1878 Dies in Paris
KEY WORKS ORPHÉE AUX ENFERS OPERETTA
d 165:00
p2
ocv
This is a send-up of Greek mythology and a satire of French Second Empire society and its pretensions. Though openly caricatured in it, Napoleon III praised Offenbach for the piece. In the plot, Orpheus and Eurydice have each started affairs. Eurydice’s new boyfriend, Pluto, takes her down to the Underworld, but Public Opinion forces Orpheus to get her back. The operetta ends with the Galope infernal, Offenbach’s famous Cancan.
LES CONTES D’HOFFMANN OPERETTA
d 240:00
p5
ocv
Although Offenbach’s last and greatest work is essentially quite dark and has much rich melody, it also offers moments of humour. Based on three tales by E T A Hoffmann, its prologue, three acts, and epilogue follow Hoffmann’s love affairs with Olympia, Antonia, and Giulietta. The Giulietta act, set in Venice, begins with the celebrated Barcarolle. Offenbach’s Cancan is the most famous rendition of an Algerian dance popularized in the 1830s.
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
266
Johann Strauss Jr b 1825–1899
n Austrian
w c.250
Johann Strauss Jr, Vienna’s “Waltz King”, was the son of Johann Strauss Sr, who had taught the Viennese to waltz to the tunes of his famous band. His father forbade the younger Strauss to follow his profession, but Johann started his own orchestra and rivalled his father’s success. When Offenbach’s operettas were a hit in Vienna, Strauss followed his example and wrote for the opera house. LIFE AND MUSIC
Johann Strauss Jr studied the violin against his father’s wishes, and soon gained a reputation as a fine violinist, conductor, and composer. Throughout his career his output was prolific; he composed 15 operettas as well as popular polkas and waltzes, such as The Blue Danube. Strauss’s superb operetta Die Fledermaus premiered in 1874, and within a year had been performed all over the world. Admired by Brahms and Liszt, he was considered to be the master of light music and became the most famous of the Strauss family.
MILESTONES
1844
Forms his own orchestra
1855
Directs summer concerts in St Petersburg
1863
Conducts Austrian court balls
1867
Visits Paris and London, writes The Blue Danube
1868 1871 1874 1883 1885 1888
Writes Tales from the Vienna Woods First operetta produced in Vienna Die Fledermaus first performed Composes Eine Nacht in Venedig, operetta The Gypsy Baron, operetta, performed Writes the Emperor Waltz
KEY WORKS TALES FROM THE VIENNA WOODS WALTZ
d 13:00
p1
o
Geschichten aus dem Wienerwald, written a year after The Blue Danube, was one of the most celebrated waltzes of the 19th century. Strauss’s waltzes epitomized the essence of Viennese high society during the twilight years of the Austro-Hungarian Empire.
THE BLUE DANUBE WALTZ
d 8:00
p1
o
The full title of Strauss’s most famous waltz is An der schönen blauen Donau (On the beautiful blue Danube). Written as a concert waltz in 1867, he later included it in his operetta Indigo and the Forty Thieves. Brahms admired the waltz’s elegance and vivacity so much that he wished he had written it himself. Strauss’s waltzes became so fashionable that they soon spread from the ballrooms of Vienna to the rest of Europe, and The Blue Danube is still one of the most frequently performed works in the Classical repertoire. Although Strauss wrote such wonderful dance music, he always maintained he was unable to dance himself.
J O H A N N STR AUSS J R
267
FOCUS DIE FLEDERMAUS OPERETTA
d 130:00
p3
ocv
The story of Die Fledermaus begins with a practical joke that took place three years before the opening scene. After a costume ball, Dr Falke is left by his friend Eisenstein to walk home through the city, drunk and alone, in his bat costume. Johann Strauss Jr wrote his three-act Komische Operette Die Fledermaus to a libretto by Carl Haffner and Richard Genée, who based their text on a French farce, Le réveillon, by Henri Meilhac and Ludovic Halévy. It was Strauss’s third operetta, following Indigo und die vierzig Räuber and Carneval in Rom. Composed in a mere six weeks, it was first performed at the Theater an der Wien, Vienna, on 5 April 1874. Strauss was said to have composed this enjoyable comic operetta to take the minds of the Viennese off the Black Monday stock-market crash of 1873. The work soon entered the international repertory, and by the 1890s was treated as an opera and was produced in the world’s major houses. In 1894, an especially celebrated production was staged at Vienna’s Hofoper with the composer conducting. ACT ONE (50:00) Falke invites Eisenstein, who is on his way to prison, to a ball at Prince Orlovsky’s. ACT TWO (50:00) At the ball, Eisenstein flirts first with his disguised housemaid, Adele, and then with his wife, Rosalinde (also in disguise, and herself having an affair with Alfred). ACT THREE (30:00) When they all meet up in the prison the misunderstandings are resolved – it was all the fault of Orlovsky’s champagne. DER ZIGEUNERBARON OPERETTA
d 120:00
p3
ocv
Written ten years after Die Fledermaus, The Gypsy Baron is Johann Strauss’s other enduringly successful operetta.
It was written to a libretto by Ignatz Schitzer, and was first performed on 24 October 1885 in Vienna. ACT ONE (40:00) In Banat, Hungary, in the 18th century, Baron Sándor Barinkay finds that his estates have been settled by gypsies. Zsupán, a wealthy pig-farmer, thinks Sándor would make an ideal son-in-law. However his daughter, Arsena, has her heart set on Ottokar, the son of her governess Mirabella. ACT TWO (45:00) The gypsy Sáffi wins Sándor’s love, and is revealed to be a wealthy princess descended from the last Pasha of Hungary. ACT THREE (35:00) Sándor’s fortunes are restored. Arsena marries Ottokar, and they are blessed by the Baron. They all live happily ever after.
INFLUENCES
The influence of Johann Strauss Jr is heard every time a waltz is played or an operetta performed. Lehár was his principal follower, but Brahms and Richard Strauss also admired his work. The musical tradition that migrated from Vienna to Broadway is still going strong: you can draw a line from Strauss that leads to Bernstein and Sondheim.
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
268
Franz von Suppé b 1819–1895
n Austrian
Von Suppé drily insisted that his successful style came about by accident, when his poor knowledge of German misled him into setting a yodelling song sentimentally in the style of Donizetti. Nevertheless, his first theatre score in 1841 triumphed. During spells as Kapellmeister at the Theater an der Wien and the Carltheater, he
w c.200
conducted many historic performances of opera and wrote a succession of stage scores. He went on to become the first master of Viennese operetta – Das Pensionat was his first success, and Boccaccio was the work he considered his best. His light, fluent, and flexible music is most familiar now in overtures to operettas such as Light Cavalry. MILESTONES
1819 1834 1835 1841 1846 1860 1866
Born in Spalato (now Split, Croatia) Writes first comic opera, Der Apfel Moves to Vienna Score to the play Jung lustig triumphs Poet and Peasant, incidental music Composes Das Pensionat, operetta Writes Light Cavalry, operetta
Von Suppé studied in Vienna with Ignaz Xaver von Seyfried, and conducted at various Viennese and provincial theatres, including the Leopoldstadt, from 1841 until his death.
Sir Edward German b 1862–1936
n English
Edward Jones’s promise as a gifted student of composition at the Royal Academy was amply fulfilled. Music for productions of Shakespeare at the Globe Theatre, where he was musical director, established his reputation, and he was soon besieged by commissions for concert works. He wrote operettas in the “Old English” style, such as Merrie England, though the appeal of Gilbert-and-Sullivan-esque music was diminishing. His elegant, warm, and
w c.200
romantic music – cosmopolitan yet always English – enjoyed both popularity and high regard (Elgar was an admirer). A meticulous conductor, German was also in demand to direct his own music.
MILESTONES
1885
Te Deum wins a prize at the Royal Academy of Music, London
1888
Becomes music director of the Globe Theatre, London
1902 1904 1907 1928
Merrie England, operetta, performed Writes Welsh Rhapsody, symphonic suite Composes Tom Jones, operetta Knighted for his services to music
Edward German’s Tom Jones, based on Henry Fielding’s novel, was a great success in 1907, although some were offended by the bawdiness of Tom’s story.
269
ROM A N T I C OP E R A
Sir Arthur Sullivan b 1842–1900
n English
w c.300
Sir Arthur Sullivan, together with W S Gilbert, invented the Savoy Opera, and their names became inseparable. Gilbert and Sullivan’s operettas parodied operatic convention and ridiculed the pomposities of British officialdom (even in the guise of Japanese in The Mikado). But Sullivan longed for recognition as a serious composer, and wrote many instrumental, choral, and operatic works. LIFE AND MUSIC Arthur Sullivan was the son of an Irish bandmaster and an Italian mother. An enthusiastic chorister at the Chapel Royal, he published his first composition at the age of 13. After studying in London at the Royal Academy of Music, and then at the Leipzig Conservatory, he wrote cantatas and symphonies before writing his first comic operetta, Cox and Box. In 1871, Sullivan met the playwright, W S Gilbert, and began a collaboration that lasted until the pair famously quarrelled about a new carpet at the Savoy Theatre in 1889, only reuniting to write two final operettas. In the meantime, Sullivan had written his one opera, Ivanhoe, which he hoped would establish his reputation. This, however, rests firmly with the comic operettas he wrote with Gilbert.
MILESTONES
1854
Chorister at the Chapel Royal
1856
Studies at the Royal Academy of Music, London
1862
Establishes reputation with incidental music for The Tempest
1866
Writes Cox and Box, operetta
1876
Trial by Jury, first successful collaboration with Gilbert
1878 1879
Composes HMS Pinafore, operetta The Pirates of Penzance produced
1881
Richard D’Oyly Carte opens at the Savoy Theatre
1883 1884 1889 1890
Receives a knighthood First performance of The Mikado Writes The Gondoliers Writes Ivanhoe, his only opera
KEY WORKS HMS PINAFORE OPERETTA
d 105:00
THE MIKADO p2
ocv
Filled with sea-shanties and nautical airs, HMS Pinafore is a satire on the British class system and its embodiment in the Royal Navy. Sullivan rose to the challenge of Gilbert’s intricate metres and pattersongs with a lively, bustling score, setting the story of The Lass that Loved a Sailor. The Mikado, first produced in 1885, ran at the Savoy Theatre for 672 performances.
OPERETTA
d 135:00
p2
ocv
Gilbert and Sullivan were at their most imaginative in The Mikado – their longest-running show. Although making fun of British bureaucracy, the operetta is set in the mythical Japanese town of Titipu, where the strolling minstrel Nanki-Poo (the Mikado’s son) is courting Yum-Yum, the ward of the Lord High Executioner. The wit of Sullivan’s music is demonstrated by his ability to incorporate a genuine Japanese tune, an English madrigal, and a Bach fugue in his score.
ROMA N TI C OP E R A
270
Engelbert Humperdinck b 1854–1921
n German
w c.230
Engelbert Humperdinck emerged from the shadow of Wagner, his mentor and friend, to invent a new style of German opera, based on fairy tales. Humperdinck assisted Wagner on Parsifal, and learned a great deal from him about orchestration and vocal writing, but he discovered his own original voice in his use of simple children’s songs, especially in his masterpiece Hänsel und Gretel. LIFE AND MUSIC Engelbert Humperdinck was born in Siegburg in 1854 and studied architecture in Cologne before being encouraged to change his discipline to composition, piano, and cello. He continued his studies in Munich, winning prizes with his early compositions, including the Mendelssohn Prize, which took him to Naples. There he befriended Wagner, who brought him to Bayreuth as his assistant. Humperdinck contributed a small section to Parsifal, but this was later rejected. His sister then encouraged him to write Hänsel und Gretel as an entertainment for his children. This and Königskinder (Royal Children) established his reputation as an opera composer.
MILESTONES
1876
Wins Mozart Scholarship, allowing him to study in Munich
1879
Writes Humoreske for orchestra
1880
Wins Mendelssohn Prize for Die Wallfahrt nach Kevlaar, choral work; meets Wagner in Naples.
1881
Wins Meyerbeer Prize of 7,600 marks. Goes to work for Wagner in Bayreuth
1893
Opera Hänsel und Gretel premiered
1897
Retires from teaching to devote himself to full-time composition
1910
Opera Königskinder (Royal Children) premiered in New York
KEY WORKS HÄNSEL UND GRETEL OPERETTA
d 105:00
p3
ocv
Humperdinck had been inhibited by his close association with Wagner from writing an opera until his sister, Adelhaid Witte, suggested that he set the Grimm brothers’ fairy tale Hansel and Gretel as a musical entertainment for her children. First he set songs, then a Singspiel with spoken dialogue, and finally in 1893 he produced the full operatic score of his first and most famous opera. It is also the one most clearly influenced by the music of Wagner, as heard in its complex orchestration and repeating musical themes. However, consistent with the composer’s choice of traditional fairy tale as his subject matter, there is also fun and lightness, with passages inspired by folk dance and folk song, as well as musical originality. The story is well known: Hansel and Gretel, alone at home, play
Humperdinck’s Hänsel und Gretel was premiered in Weimar by Richard Strauss, who called it “original, new, and authentically German”. German audiences, such as this one in Berlin in 1895, took it to their hearts.
games. Their mother returns, scolds them, and sends them to pick strawberries in the forest. They get lost and fall asleep. They wake to find a gingerbread cottage. Its owner, a witch, tries to fatten Hansel for dinner, but Gretel bundles her into the oven and frees the gingerbread children.
271
ROM A N T I C OP E R A
Franz Lehár b 1870–1948
n Hungarian
w c.260
Franz Lehár was for 20th-century Viennese operetta what Johann Strauss Jr had been for the 19th century. Lehár made his name as a composer of waltzes, then began writing operettas for the two leading Viennese theatres. Die lustige Witwe (The Merry Widow) made his fame in Europe and the US, as well as his fortune, and he went on to write many more operettas, operas, and film scores. LIFE AND MUSIC Franz Lehár was the son of a military bandmaster and studied at the Prague Conservatory. He then led army bands, while starting his career as a composer with an unsuccessful grand opera, Kukusˇka. His waltz Gold and Silver was popular enough to allow him to leave band life and compose more for the stage. In 1902 he had two operetta premieres in Vienna, followed by his greatest success, The Merry Widow. His operetta career
then flourished, but declined during World War I. Working with the tenor Richard Tauber, he found new success with Frasquita and Paganini, culminating in The Land of Smiles. Under the Nazis, he was forced to retire (his wife was Jewish), but his work was still performed. MILESTONES
1890
Conducts army bands for 12 years
1902
Writes concert waltz Gold and Silver; Wiener Frauen, operetta, is a success
1905
Has enormous, immediate success with operetta The Merry Widow
1920 1929 1934
Begins writing for Richard Tauber Writes operetta The Land of Smiles Writes a full-scale opera, Giuditta
The Merry Widow was so successful that it spawned a craze for “Merry Widow” corsets, hats, and cocktails. Lehár’s income enabled him to buy this elegant villa in Bad Ischl in 1912.
KEY WORKS DIE LUSTIGE WITWE OPERETTA
d 150:00
p3
DAS LAND DES LÄCHELNS ocv
The libretto for this still crowd-pulling operetta was adapted from The Embassy Attaché, a play by Henri Meilhac. Lehár used a larger orchestra than was until then usual for operettas. The music is a heady mix of Balkan folk dance, Parisian cabaret, and Viennese waltz. The operetta tells the story of a young “merry widow”, Hanna, whose banker husband left her a fortune. To stop her marrying a foreigner, Count Danilo is sent by the Pontevedrian Ambassador to woo her. He does so. Her money thus stays in Pontevedro, rescuing her from bankruptcy.
OPERETTA
d 135:00
p3
ocv
The Land of Smiles is most famous for its aria “Dein ist mein ganzes Herz” (“You are my Heart’s Delight”). The operetta tells how Viennese Lisa has to renounce her love for a Chinese prince because she cannot accustom herself to the smiling façade of the Chinese. Lehár made his name as a composer of Viennese waltzes before finding success with operettas.
273
NATIONAL SCHOOLS
1830 1950 —
During the 19th and early 20th centuries, as modern nation states emerged, music for many composers became a means of asserting their national identity. Other composers included in this section were not actively nationalists, but their music nevertheless reflects their countries or regions of origin. uch of the music of the Baroque and Classical periods has a style that cannot easily be pinned down to a single country; styles and forms were international. In the 19th century, however, musicians began to define themselves in terms of their nationalities as well as the styles or genres in which they worked. European politics in the 19th century was dominated by nationalist movements. These were of two main kinds. There were peoples united by a common language, such as the Italians and Germans, whose aim was to form a single nation state, while other peoples – for example, the Hungarians, Czechs, and Irish – were subject to foreign rule and sought autonomy or independence. Music, along with language and literature, became a means of expressing their aspirations.
M
SPANISH GYPSY DANCERS (1898)
This painting by Ricardo Canals y Llambi expresses the fascination felt all over Europe in the late 19th century for vital folk traditions in music and dance.
The most clear-cut example of musical nationalism, however, did not emerge in a country ruled by an oppressive empire. Russia was itself great empire, but historically had been made to feel culturally inferior to Western Europe. European music had been imported into Russia by and for the aristocracy; the only truly Russian music was that of the folk tradition.
RUSSIAN NATIONALISM The catalyst for change in Russia was Mikhail Glinka. His opera A Life for the Tsar was similar to Rossini in style, but recalled the Russian folk melodies he had heard in his childhood. The so-called “group of five”, who emerged in the middle of the 19th century, took Russian nationalism much further. Balakirev composed a symphonic poem Russia and Borodin wrote In Central Asia. A third member of the group, Mussorgsky, was not a formally trained musician; unfamiliar with Western harmonic progressions,
274
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S
THE SPIRIT OF THE CZECH LANDS
Smetana was inspired both by Czech history and his country’s landscapes, as in this piece, “From Bohemia’s Forests and Meadows”, part of Má Vlast (My Country).
he composed music that made full use of Russian folk harmonies. Later Russian composers, such as Rimsky-Korsakov, also made use of folk melodies and influenced future generations of composers, including Glazunov and Stravinsky.
THE HABSBURG EMPIRE Czech nationalist composers were less virulently anti-Western than their Russian counterparts. Their aim was to affirm their cultural difference from
the Austrian Habsburg Empire, which had ruled Bohemia and Moravia for centuries, suppressing Czech language and culture. Smetana, Dvorˇák, and Janácˇek all contributed to the development of their country’s national musical style. Má Vlast, Smetana’s cycle of symphonic poems, is not only a portrait of the Czech landscape, but also an evocation of Czech culture and history. The section Tábor and Blaník includes a Czech Hussite chorale, “Those who are Warriors of God”. Hungary’s situation differed from that of Czechoslovakia as its folk music had been represented (or misrepresented) by Romantic
T I M E L I N E : N AT I O N A L S C H O O L S 1848 s Marx and Engels publish The Communist Manifesto
1836 Glinka’s patriotic opera A Life for the Tsar
1845 w 1848 Revolutions in Italy, across the Habsburg Empire, and in Paris
1861 Unification of most of Italy; emancipation of serfs in Russia
1865
1855 1860s Balakirev and other members of the “Five” strive to create Russian style of music
1861–65 s American Civil War
1874 Mussorgsky’s Boris Godunov performed in St Petersburg
1876 Ibsen’s Peer Gynt performed with Grieg’s incidental music
1875 1870 Franco-Prussian War; unification of Germany under Kaiser Wilhelm I
275
FRIDAY NIGHT AT THE HOUSE OF MITROFAN BELYAEV
Belyaev was a rich timber merchant who founded a Russian music publishing house in 1885. Among his guests pictured here are Rimsky-Korsakov and Lyadov.
composers, such as Liszt, Brahms, and Joachim. It was only in the 20th century that Bartók and Kodály began to collect Hungarian folk music more systematically and make use of it in a more authentic way.
FURTHER AFIELD Political and cultural links between Germany and Scandinavian countries took some time to loosen; Denmark’s Niels Gade, for example, spent much time studying and subsequently conducting in Leipzig. It was left to Nordraak and Grieg (who also studied in Leipzig) to create a distinctive Norwegian art music. Grieg’s Peer Gynt Suite was written as incidental music for Ibsen’s play about the eponymous adventurer. In Finland, the music of Sibelius has nationalist tendencies only in that it quotes Finnish folk music. In North America, most art music of the 19th century ignored folk material, although MacDowell’s Indian Suite uses American Indian
melodies. Charles Ives was a more distinctively American composer, and his quotations of music from his own environment provide a highly evocative if individual picture of his childhood in New England. Later on Aaron Copland would create a highly recognizable American music, partly by appropriating rustic styles such as the “hoedown” in Appalachian Spring. A revival of folk music in Spain coincided with that in Britain in the early 20th century. Composers such as Granados and Albéniz in Spain and Vaughan Williams in England used the folk music of their respective countries in similar nostalgic ways. FOLK MELODIES
Just as languages and dialects differ from each other, so folk melodies have distinctive and often immediately recognizable characteristics. Different cultures tend to use different kinds of intervals in their melodies, which give them a particular flavour. In the case of the Jewish Klezmer music of Central and Eastern Europe, for example, this is a particularly exotic flavour. The use of rhythm in folk music also differs greatly from one culture to another, just as it does in spoken language. NORWEGIAN FOLK DANCING
In the late 19th century, musicians, painters, and social historians across Europe were enthusiastic recorders of vanishing regional folk traditions.
SET OF GLINKA’S A LIFE FOR THE TSAR
The plot of Glinka’s groundbreaking opera revolved around the election of the first Romanov tsar in 1613 and included a lively depiction of Russian peasant life.
1883 Opening of Czech National Theatre with performance of Smetana’s Libusˇe
1890 First of Danish composer Nielsen’s six symphonies
1885 1878 Slavonic Dances make Dvorˇák’s reputation
w 1919 Treaty of Versailles; Hungary, Czechoslovakia, Poland, and Finland gain independence
1895 1888 s RimskyKorsakov’s Sheherazade
1905 1900 Sibelius’s tone poem Finlandia 1917 Russian Revolution
1915 w 1919 Pianist Paderewski becomes first prime minister of modern Poland
276
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – RUSSI A N
Mikhail Glinka b 1804–1857
n Russian
w c.195
Glinka is widely regarded as the father of Russian music and produced the first successful Russian national opera. Rejecting traditional German forms and harmony in favour of music developed from folk-like melodies, his works display rhythmic exuberance, quasi-oriental chromaticism, and vivid clarity of orchestral textures, which epitomize a Russian sound that inspired successive generations of composers. LIFE AND MUSIC
From a wealthy family, Glinka only dabbled in music until his late 20s, when he established himself as a pianist in Milan. Subsequent musical studies in Berlin were cut short by the death of his father, and he returned home to start work on his opera A Life for the Tsar. Its success established him as Russia’s pre-eminent composer. However, his next opera, Ruslan and Lyudmilla, was less well received, although musically more important. Travels to Paris and Madrid – including a meeting with Berlioz, who conducted his music – inspired him to write the orchestral showpieces which now eclipse his many fine vocal and instrumental works.
MILESTONES
1824
Appointed under-secretary at Ministry of Communications until 1828
1830
Arrives in Milan; meets Mendelssohn, Bellini, and Donizetti
1833
Studies in Berlin for five months
1834
Returns to Russia; starts work on A Life for the Tsar, first successful Russian opera
1835
Marries Mariya Petrovna Ivanova; she remarries bigamously six years later
1836
First performance of A Life for the Tsar
1837
Appointed Kapellmeister of the Imperial Chapel
1844
First production of opera Ruslan and Lyudmilla arouses admiration of Liszt
1848
Composes Kamarinskaya, orchestral work
KEY WORKS OVERTURE TO RUSLAN AND LYUDMILLA ORCHESTRAL
d 4:50
p1
o
This arresting overture to Glinka’s most important work vividly sets the scene for Pushkin’s fantastical fairy tale. Written during rehearsals for the first performance of the opera, its infectious rhythmic vitality has kept it in the repertoire even though the opera itself is seldom heard outside Russia. VALSE FANTASIE ORCHESTRAL
d 9:30
p1
o
Performed at Glinka’s memorial concert, the Valse Fantasie started life in 1839 as a piano piece. The composer later created a sumptuous orchestration
of this chain of waltzes, establishing a model for later Russian composers. The Valse Fantasie certainly influenced symphonic waltzes in the ballets of Tchaikovsky and Prokofiev. CAPRICCIO BRILLANTE ORCHESTRAL
d 9:45
p1
o
After a slow, fanfare-like introduction, Glinka’s effective Capriccio turns into an orchestral showpiece based on a traditional Spanish melody, also found in Liszt’s Rapsodie Espagnol of the same year. The only product of Glinka’s sojourn in Madrid, its extensive use of castanets amply justifies its alternative title, the “First Spanish Rhapsody”.
M I K H A I L GL I N K A
277
FOCUS
Sobinin and his band are camped at night in the freezing A celebration of nationalist fervour, this forest, whilst Vanya warns the Tsar. In the morning the Poles realize they opera was originally titled Ivor Susanin have been tricked and after its tragic hero, but beat Susanin to death. was renamed in honour of Tsar Nicholas I, to whom it EPILOGUE (20:40) The Russian was dedicated. When staged people celebrate in Moscow in Soviet times, the title whilst Susanin’s family reverted and the libretto mourns. The opera ends was altered to expunge with a hymn to the Tsar. references to the Tsar. A LIFE FOR THE TSAR OPERA
d 209:00
p5
ACT FOUR (48:00)
ocv
OVERTURE AND ACT ONE
KAMARINSKAYA
ORCHESTRAL d 7:30 p1 o In a Russian village Ivan Susanin’s daughter is Inspired by meeting Berlioz, about to marry Sobinin, Glinka started writing Glinka’s Kamarinskaya was who has returned from orchestral works with a the first important Russian work to have been based fighting the Poles and nationalist character. The entirely on folk music. allays fears of a conquest last of these, Kamarinskaya, of Moscow. Susanin approves the proved highly influential – Tchaikovsky wedding only when he hears that a believed that the Russian symphonic new Romanov Tsar has been crowned. school was “all in Kamarinskaya, just as the whole oak is in the acorn”. Based ACT TWO (29:20) A messenger interrupts entirely on two Russian melodies, the celebrations at the Polish court to tell the King that the Russians are fighting work begins, after a brief introduction, back under their newly crowned Tsar, with a slow, traditional bridal-song repeated three times with different whom the Poles decide to capture. accompaniments. A lively dance tune ACT THREE (63:40) During the wedding (kamarinskaya) follows on the violin, Polish soldiers arrive and demand to know the Tsar’s hiding place. Susanin and is repeated 13 times in increasingly leads them in the wrong direction and complex orchestral combinations. Then the music slows to reintroduce his stepson, Vanya, rides to warn the Tsar. Sobinin and a group of peasants the bridal song, but the kamarinskaya soon returns for 21 more variations. follow Susanin to attempt his rescue.
(48:00)
278
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – RUSSI A N
Alexander Borodin b 1833–1887
n Russian
w 21+
One of the “mighty handful”of Russian nationalists, Borodin was perhaps the most overtly Romantic, turning out highly charged music, full of choral and orchestral colour. Essentially a “Sunday composer”, with a full-time career as a chemist, he left a small but polished oeuvre. His Symphony No. 2 displays a peerless mastery of technique, while Prince Igor remains a landmark of Russian opera. LIFE AND MUSIC Born in St Petersburg, Borodin was the illegitimate son of a Georgian prince who registered the child under the name of a servant. Although Borodin excelled from childhood in both science and music, he chose a career in chemistry. While practising as a professor and researcher at the Academy of MedicoSurgery in St Petersburg, he composed in his spare time. Although he admired Schumann, it was his compatriot Mily Balakirev – with whom he studied in 1863 – who had the most dramatic influence on his style. Of the “mighty handful”, Borodin was perhaps most able to assimilate Russian folk style with the European symphonic tradition. Due to professional commitments, his output was small but accomplished, including symphonies, songs, and chamber music.
MILESTONES
1850
Enters the Academy of MedicoSurgery in St Petersburg
1856
Qualifies in medicine Specializes in chemistry in Germany Joins the “mighty handful”
1859 1861 1863
Studies composition with Balakirev; marries Ekatarina Protopopova
1869
Symphony No. 1 premiered unsuccessfully
1872
Lectures at the School of Medicine for Women, St Petersburg
1876
Writes Symphony No. 2 in B minor
1880
In the Steppes of Central Asia, tone poem, staged
1890
Prince Igor, opera, premiered posthumously at St Petersburg
KEY WORKS PRINCE IGOR OPERA
d 240:00
p5
ocv
Eighteen years in composition, and only completed posthumously by RimskyKorsakov and Glazunov, Prince Igor is Borodin’s best-known work. Set in 12thcentury Russia, it depicts the imprisonment of a Russian prince by an invading Tartar tribe, the Polovetsians. A notable feature is Borodin’s unusual handling of the chorus, which functions almost as a separate character in the Prince Igor, imbued with Russian character, displays Borodin’s flair for orchestral colour and exotic motifs.
drama. The thrilling Polovetsian dances that conclude the second act are often performed on their own in concert. SYMPHONY NO. 2 ORCHESTRAL
d 26:00
p4
o
As Borodin worked concurrently on Prince Igor and his Symphony No. 2, the two share many musical parallels. This powerful, mature, and concise piece, full of Borodin’s rhythmic drive and exuberance, is perhaps the best example of Russian nationalist music allied to Classical principles of form.
279
NATI O NA L SCH OO L S – RUSSI A N
Mily Alexeyevich Balakirev b 1837–1910
n Russian
w c.50
The driving force behind the Russian nationalist “school” of music, Balakirev formed, guided, and inspired the “mighty handful”, a circle committed to the nationalist cause. His own career was punctuated by periods of inactivity, but he produced some striking works in an unmistakably Russian idiom. A complex, irascible character, he could inspire lasting loyalty in friends and pupils, but also made many enemies. LIFE AND MUSIC After receiving early musical training from his mother, Balakirev was spotted by the wealthy music patron Alexander Ulibishev, who sent him to St Petersburg to meet Mikhail Glinka. Enthusiastic about musical nationalism, Balakirev gathered a circle of kindred spirits, known as the “mighty handful”, including Cui, Mussorgsky, Borodin, and RimskyKorsakov. A difficult and single-minded idealist, he brooked no
opposition and antagonized many. Overwrought and overworked, he suffered a nervous breakdown in 1871, withdrew from public life, and turned to mysticism, before emerging again in 1883 when he was appointed to the Imperial Chapel. MILESTONES
1847 1855 1861 1862 1869 1871 1872 1882 1883 1908
Studies music in Moscow Moves to St Petersburg Writes incidental music for King Lear Founds the Free School of Music Islamey, fantasy, composed Suffers breakdown; turns to mysticism Works for the Warsaw railway Tamara, symphonic poem, staged Director of the Imperial Chapel Writes Symphony No. 2 in D minor
The concerted force of the “mighty handful” changed the course of Russian music, creating a distinctive Russian style that successfully merged Classical forms with Russian folk idioms.
KEY WORKS TAMARA TONE POEM
ISLAMEY d 20:00
p1
o
Regarded as Balakirev’s greatest work, Tamara is based on a poem by Mikhail Lermontov that relates the story of an alluring siren who entices a traveller into her lair with her seductive song. After a night of passion, all is silent in the morning as the traveller’s corpse swirls past in the tide of the river. Although Balakirev is not overtly descriptive, the plot can be discerned in the music. A quiet timpani roll evokes the fairy-tale atmosphere, while Tamara’s voice is heard in the sinuous woodwind figure.
SOLO PIANO
d 9:00
p1
s
Balakirev originally conceived Islamey as a study for his tone poem Tamara, but although the two are similar, Islamey has no dark undercurrents. Rather, it is an exuberant showpiece, good-humoured and entertaining, yet immaculately crafted. Typical of Balakirev’s Russian style, it combines classical virtuosity with exotic modes, chromatic harmonies and oriental motifs. Russian Tartar folk style emerges in the opening obsessive ostinato figure, inspired by a Caucasian dance which gave the work its name.
280
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – RUSSI A N
Modest Mussorgsky b 1839–1881
n Russian
w c.50
A mercurial and brilliantly talented composer, Mussorgsky was also an incurable alcoholic who led a disordered and prematurely shortened life. As a member of Balakirev’s circle, he strove to compose music that resonated with the Russian people. However, many of his works were left unfinished, or were completed by well-meaning friends in a manner that may not reflect the composer’s true intentions. LIFE AND MUSIC
Despite being a prodigy at the piano, Mussorgsky initially joined the army, but resigned his commission in 1858 for a life of “meaningful endeavour”. Taking a job in the civil service he began to work on a symphony and an opera, but these came to nothing. For the rest of his life a combination of unsettled personal circumstances,
a nervous temperament, and serious alcoholism contrived to limit his creative endeavours. Of the Russian “ Mighty Handful”, Mussorgsky’s music is perhaps the most roughhewn, earthy, and immediate. MILESTONES
1852
Enters Imperial Guard Cadet School
1861
Forced to work family estate following emancipation of the serfs
1865 1867 1872
First serious alcoholic episode Writes St John’s Night on the Bare Mountain Composes The Nursery (song cycle)
1874
Revised version of Boris Godunov; Sunless (song cycle); Pictures at an Exhibition
1875
Songs and Dances of Death (song cycle) St John’s Night on the Bare Mountain is a dramatic musical portrait of the witches’ Sabbath, held in the mountains near Kiev.
KEY WORKS SALAMMBÔ OPERA
UNFINISHED
ocv
Between 1863 and 1866, Mussorgsky was living in an artists’ commune with five other men. In these creative surroundings, he worked on the libretto and music for an opera, Salammbô, based on Flaubert’s tale of the siege of Carthage. However, by 1865 his drinking was beginning to get the better of him, and he never completed the work. Some of the music from Salammbô has survived and is still performed, including the fine choral piece Chorus of Priestesses.
SUNLESS, AND SONGS AND DANCES OF DEATH SONG
sv
While they are not as well known as his instrumental works, for many commentators it is Mussorgsky’s songs that are his true masterpieces. The musical language is direct and unadorned, emotional without being overwrought or melodramatic. But perhaps most striking are the protagonists in his songs – not the fanciful lovers and poets of the lieder tradition, but the old, insane, poverty-stricken, and desperate.
281
M ODE ST M USSORGSK Y
FOCUS BORIS GODUNOV OPERA
d 210:00
p5
ocv
Identifying the “real” Boris Godunov is not straightforward. Mussorgsky produced two complete versions during his lifetime, the second in response to the opera’s initial rejection from the Maryinsky Opera. To compound the problem, Rimsky-Korsakov famously took upon himself the task of smoothing Mussorgsky’s characteristically abrasive orchestration. His version is colourful and attractive, and was popular for many years. Nevertheless, it is now broadly agreed that RimskyKorsakov’s alterations do little to enhance the work. Mussorgsky aimed
to portray life in its true colours, and this is reflected in his music. As a consequence, Boris Godunov is now usually performed in one or other of its original versions. The opera is based on a story by Alexander Pushkin concerning the eponymous King’s murderous accession to the throne. Musically, the most important innovation in the opera lies in Mussorgsky’s use of the speech patterns of Russian language as the basis for his music. Rather than setting dialogue to pre-composed melodies, Mussorgsky’s vocal lines follow the pitch and rhythm of spoken Russian. This gives the opera a sense of “reality”, as characters appear to converse with each other in a manner that the Russian audience would immediately have recognized. PICTURES AT AN EXHIBITION SOLO PIANO
d 35:00
p4
s
1873 saw the sudden death the artist Viktor Hartmann. The following year an exhibition of his works took place and Mussorgsky, who had been a close friend, saw an opportunity to write a musical tribute. This impressive work for piano opens with a Promenade, which recurs several times; with its steady pulse, but alternating tempo, it seems to suggest a viewer wandering around the gallery, pausing to inspect pictures more closely. The remaining 11 pieces are vivid interpretations of the individual paintings. The breadth of Mussorgsky’s musical inspiration is unparalleled, conjuring images that range from playful to eerie or majestic. Pictures at an Exhibition is better known these days in Ravel’s colourful orchestration from 1922, which, although an impressive interpretation, lacks something of the original’s intensity and earthiness.
282
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – RUSSI A N
Nikolai Rimsky-Korsakov b 1844–1908
n Russian
w c.130
Rimsky-Korsakov was a friend of Mily Balakirev and member of the “mighty handful”, a group of five composers led by Balakirev who aimed to develop an authentically Russian art music. Rimsky-Korsakov’s music, much of it based on themes from Russian folklore, is justly renowned for its brilliant, colourful orchestration. He was later important as a teacher and counted Prokofiev and Stravinsky among his pupils. LIFE AND MUSIC
Following his elder brother into the navy, Rimsky-Korsakov began composing a symphony in his final year at naval college after making the acquaintance of Balakirev. This proved impossible to complete while at sea, and by the end of his three-year tour of duty he had almost resolved to give up music altogether. On returning to shore, however, he was persuaded to finish the symphony and, after its successful premiere, decided on a switch of career. A committed nationalist, Rimsky-Korsakov wrote 15 operas on Russian themes and used folk melodies in many of his instrumental compositions. He had an instinctive
mastery of the orchestra, although, arguably, his handling of large-scale form does not compare with that of contemporaries such as Borodin. MILESTONES
1861
Meets Balakirev; starts Symphony No. 1
1865
Symphony No. 1 premiered by Balakirev
1871 1887
Leaves navy to study music full-time Composes Capriccio Espagnol
1888
Composes Sheherazade and Russian Easter Festival Overture
1889
Completes Borodin’s opera Prince Igor with Glazunov
1896
Orchestrates Mussorgsky’s opera Boris Godunov
KEY WORKS
Church hymnal. In the colourful music, Rimsky-Korsakov tried to evoke images César Cui described Rimsky-Korsakov’s of ancient pagan rituals suggested by the Easter celebrations. Oddly, Tsar Symphony No. 1 as the first Russian Alexander III disliked it and banned it symphony. Whilst not literally true, it from any concert he attended. was certainly the first to make explicit use of Russian folk themes – very clear in the slow movement. LE COQ D’OR SYMPHONY NO. 1 ORCHESTRAL
d 27:00
p4
o
OPERA
RUSSIAN EASTER FESTIVAL OVERTURE ORCHESTRAL
d 16:00
p1 o
This is based on three melodies from the Obikhod, the Eastern Orthodox After his first opera, Ivan the Terrible, Rimsky-Korsakov wrote 14 others. They form his most important legacy.
d 120:00 p 3 o c v
Rimsky-Korsakov’s final opera, The Golden Cockerel, is perhaps his finest. Based on a story by Pushkin, its fairytale setting belies a sharp political satire. As ever, the work brims with attractive melody and radiant scoring.
283
NI KOL A I R I M SK Y- KOR SA KOV
FOCUS SHEHERAZADE SYMPHONIC SUITE
d 45:00
p4
o
Like many Russian composers and artists, Rimsky-Korsakov was fascinated by the Islamic cultures over Russia’s borders, using them as a source of inspiration and an “exotic” reference. Sheherazade is a large-scale suite in four movements. It is based on the tale of The Thousand and One Nights in which a young woman changes a cruel sultan’s character by recounting stories. Whilst Rimsky-Korsakov was especially drawn to four of the stories, to which the four movements of his work correspond, Sheherazade is not strictly descriptive. (He was initially persuaded to include programmatic titles for each of the movements, but later withdrew them.) Neither is it symphonic, in the sense of containing extensive development of themes. Rather, Rimsky-Korsakov described it as a “kaleidoscope of fairy-tale images and designs of Oriental character”, in which the music attempts to capture the mood of each story. Certain melodies recur throughout the work, however, notably the austere theme that opens the first movement – associated with
the Sultan – and the sinuous solo violin melody heard shortly afterwards, representing Sheherazade herself. CAPRICCIO ESPAGNOL ORCHESTRAL
d 18:00
p5
o
Spanish music was popular with Russian composers as part of the general interest in the exotic, and Rimsky-Korsakov’s enduringly popular Capriccio Espagnol is based on themes drawn from a volume of Spanish folk melodies. The main musical ideas are a morning, an evening, a Gypsy dance, and an Asturian song. In a sense, the work is Rimsky-Korsakov par excellence – limited musical argument, but brilliant orchestral colour. He emphasized that it should be thought of as a piece for orchestra rather than an orchestration of a piece that could otherwise stand alone. INFLUENCES
Rimsky-Korsakov taught several important composers, including Prokofiev and Stravinsky. However, his major influence is in his mastery of orchestration – his treatise on the subject has become the standard reference work, and many composers have imitated (but few bettered) his handling of musical colours.
284
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – RUSSI A N
Anton Rubinstein b 1829–1894
n Russian
One of the very few 19th-century pianists who could stand comparison with Liszt, Anton Rubinstein (brother of Nikolai) was also outstanding as a teacher and conductor. He toured Europe as a child virtuoso, and then as a mature artist known for his huge repertoire and remarkable stamina (in the US he played 215 recitals in under nine months). He was also twice director
w 200
of the St Petersburg Conservatory. He composed prolifically – and lucratively, thanks to his fame – but many of the grandiloquent pieces he composed can feel glib and superficial. However, his opera Demon was a huge success, with the great Russian bass Fyodor Chaliapin often in the title role, and his Melody in F, Op. 3, No. 1, proved lastingly popular. MILESTONES
1848
Becomes chamber virtuoso to Grand Duchess Helena Pavlovna, Russia
1864 1871
Composes Piano Concerto No. 4 Demon, opera, published
1871
Conducts Philharmonic Concerts in Vienna
1872
Tours US with Henryk Wieniawski
The founding of St Petersburg Conservatory put the city on a par with Vienna, London, Paris, and Berlin, and soon attracted world-famous musicians to Russia.
Anatol Liadov b 1855–1914 n Russian w 100 Born into a highly for The Firebird, which Stravinsky musical family, Liadov snapped up. Many of his pieces are never completed any arrangements of folk songs collected large-scale works. from various parts of Russia, and he Talented but rather lazy, he was expelled brought vivid orchestral colour and from Rimsky-Korsakov’s composition characterization to these miniatures. classes for non-attendance, idled his He collaborated with Rimsky-Korsakov summers away at his wife’s country house, and Balakirev, and his student Prokofiev and neglected Diaghilev’s commission found him likeable, but pedantic. MILESTONES
1878
Starts teaching at St Petersburg Conservatory
1890
Composes Pro starinu, piano ballade
1897
Commissioned to collect folk songs by Imperial Geographical Society
1909
The Enchanted Lake, Op. 62, and Kikimora, Op. 63, tone poems, published
Liadov described Baba Yaga (1904) as a “tone picture after a Russian fairytale” and used a large orchestra, including a xylophone, to create sounds of the forest and other atmospheric effects.
285
NATI O NA L SCH OO L S – RUSSI A N
Sergey Liapunov b 1859–1924
n Russian
Mikhail Ippolitov-Ivanov w 80
Liapunov’s modest composing success didn’t come until he was in his 40s, and then mainly thanks to encouragement and promotion from his friend Balakirev. In addition to conducting, Liapunov toured as a pianist and wrote with a complete understanding of the instrument. His best pieces were the works for piano, such as the Liszt-influenced 12 Transcendental Studies, and his piquant songs, such as “The Mountain Peaks”. MILESTONES
1893
Commissioned to collect folk songs
1905
Finishes 12 Transcendental Studies, Op. 11, for piano
1910
Professor at St Petersburg Conservatory
1913
Composes Prelude and Fugue in B minor, Op. 58, for piano
b 1859–1935
n Russian
w 80
A craftsman in the Russian academic vein rather than an original genius, Ippolitov-Ivanov’s style and technique changed little throughout his career, taking the form of folk song-based nationalism with an Oriental twist and, after the Revolution, hints of Uzbek, Kazakh, Turkmen, or Arabic music. His popular Caucasian Sketches shows the influences of Georgia, where he lived for a few years, teaching and conducting. MILESTONES
1884 1893 1894 1895 1900
Conductor of Imperial Opera, Tiflis Professor at Moscow Conservatory Caucasian Sketches, orchestral suite Writes Armenian Rhapsody, symphony Composes Assia, opera
1934
Publishes memoirs: Fifty Years of Russian Music
Anton Stepanovich Arensky b 1861–1906 n Russian w c.80 Arensky was made a professor at the teach Rachmaninov and Scriabin. An Moscow Conservatory immediately on eclectic composer, influenced by Chopin, graduating with a gold medal from St Tchaikovsky, and Mendelssohn, among Petersburg, having studied composition others, he worked unusual rhythms into under Rimsky-Korsakov. He went on to his lyrical and sentimental music. As well as writing operas, he also composed church music, songs, symphonies, and elegant piano pieces. Arensky’s last years were spent successfully as a composer, pianist, and conductor, but were blighted by his addictions to alcohol and gambling. MILESTONES
1888 1894 1891
Directs Russian Choral Society Composes Piano Trio No. 1 A Dream on the Volga, opera, published
1895
Becomes Director of Imperial Chapel, St Petersburg
1900
Composes Egyptian Nights, ballet
Arensky, seen here in his workroom, is best known for his charming, elegant, and melodically inventive Piano Trio No. 1 in D minor.
286
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – RUSSI A N
Alexander Scriabin b 1872–1915
n Russian
w c.200
Original to the point of eccentricity, Scriabin ranks among the 20th century’s most important composers for the piano, and was one of its greatest musical innovators. In the later years of his short life, an all-consuming interest in mystical philosophy pervaded every aspect of his world. As his beliefs became ever more bizarre, so he pushed the boundaries of harmony and performance to their limits. LIFE AND MUSIC
After setting out as a concert pianist, Scriabin injured his right hand, which put a temporary halt to his performing career but gave him more time to compose. Scriabin’s early pieces, almost exclusively for the piano, show a clear affinity with the Romantics, with many works in characteristically Chopin-esque forms. In later years, however, Scriabin became increasingly interested in Helene Blavatsky’s “theosophy”. These beliefs came eventually to dominate his thinking about music, which in turn pushed his musical language in radically new directions. Nevertheless, he retained a curious reliance on classical formal principles.
MILESTONES
1888
Studied at Moscow Conservatory
1896
Composes 24 Preludes, Op. 11; Piano Concerto, Op. 20
1898
Professor of Piano at the Moscow Conservatory
1903 1907 1909 1909
Writes Piano Sonata No. 4, Op. 30 Poem of Ecstasy, Op.54, symphonic poem Composes Prometheus, Op.60, symphony Moves to Brussels for two years
1911
Writes Piano Sonata No. 7, Op. 64 (“White Mass”)
1913
Composes Piano Sonata No. 8, Op. 66
1913
Writes Piano Sonata No.9, Op. 68 (“Black Mass”)
1915
Dies 27 April in Moscow, leaving The Mysterium unfinished
KEY WORKS PIANO CONCERTO ORCHESTRAL
d 28:00
p3
os
The Piano Concerto of 1896, Scriabin’s first orchestral score, was well received by audiences and attracted him a degree of early fame. With distinct echoes of Chopin and Rachmaninov (a student friend of Scriabin’s) it stands as a fascinating contrast with his more extraordinary later works. SONATA NO. 9, “BLACK MASS” SOLO PIANO
d 09:00
p1
s
After Scriabin described his Sonata No. 7 as the “White Mass”, the ninth was soon dubbed the “Black Mass”. Whereas the former work is radiant,
even joyous, the latter is among his most dark, knotty works, emphasizing the dissonant minor-ninth interval and ending with a grotesque march. THE MYSTERIUM MULTIMEDIA
d 7 DAYS
The Mysterium was left incomplete – Scriabin had barely begun work on it before his sudden death. Sketches indicate a seven-day long multimedia spectacle intended for performance in the Himalayas. Scriabin believed that this performance would act as a purification ritual, leading to the rebirth of the world.
287
A L E XA N DE R SCR I A B I N
FOCUS PROMETHEUS – THE POEM OF FIRE ORCHESTRAL
d 25:00
p1
PIANO SONATA NO. 4, OP. 30 SOLO PIANO
osc
d 8:40
p2
s
Scriabin’s oeuvre consists in large part of piano works – he wrote many Prometheus – The Poem of Fire hundreds of preludes, is the last of Scriabin’s five études, and impromptus. symphonies, and one of Central to these is the the last pieces he composed series of ten sonatas, before his death. It takes as which began in 1892 its basis the Greek myth in in the sound world of which Prometheus defies Rachmaninov and Zeus to give mankind Chopin and ended in command of fire. For 1913 with a work that is Scriabin, symbolism on the very verge of operated at every level atonality. Sonata No. 4 in the work, from the was composed during a so-called “mystic chord”, summer of extraordinary on which much of the was profoundly productivity for Scriabin, harmony is derived, to the Scriabin influenced by Helene Blavatsky’s in which he completed specification of a wordless, Theosophical Movement and, while in London, he visited the some 40 piano pieces. white-robed chorus. room in which she died in 1891. Moreover, the work was FIRST MOVEMENT (ANDANTE 3:50) intended to be an early – perhaps the The first movement demonstrates some first – example of multimedia of Scriabin’s most sensuous writing. It performance. Scriabin wrote a is based on one theme, introduced complete part for “Tastiera per Luce” delicately and developed through a (“keyboard of lights”), which would series of unexpected harmonic shifts. flood the performance space with SECOND MOVEMENT (PRESTISSIMO VOLANDO different coloured light according to 4:50) The second movement explodes which combination of keys was pressed. into life with a buoyant theme. A Considered for its purely musical more lyrical second subject follows, merits, Prometheus is a striking work, then develops into a reintroduction of and contains many moments of a theme from the first movement. sensuous orchestration and bold, After a recapitulation and coda, the otherworldly harmony. sonata closes with a virtuosic flourish.
288
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – RUSSI A N
achm “Only one place is closed to me, and that is my own country – Russia.” RACHMANINOV IN AN INTERVIEW FOR THE MUSICAL TIMES, 1930
289
SE RGE I R ACH M A N I N OV
Sergei Rachmaninov
anino b 1873–1943
n Russian
w 96
A highly praised conductor and outstanding pianist whose many recordings show his crisp technique, unostentatious approach, and outstanding clarity, Rachmaninov was also the last major composer of the great Russian late-Romantic tradition. Most of his music was written before 1917, when he left Russia never to return; appropriately, some of his symphonies and piano concertos radiate passionate yearning or nostalgia.
LIFE
After his father squandered the family fortune, Rachmaninov’s parents moved from a country estate to a crowded St Petersburg flat. His education was disrupted by their separation, so he was sent to the Moscow Conservatory. He boarded with his piano teacher in a severe routine of allday practice, starting at 6:00 am, and graduated with the highest possible marks for his composition and playing. His career started well: the opera Aleko was successfully premiered, and he enjoyed Tchaikovsky’s support. But a calamitous performance of his Symphony No. 1 (under an allegedly drunk Glazunov) drew savage reviews; for three years he could not face composing, and turned to conducting, with increasing success. However, a hypnotist doctor and musician, Nikolai Dahl, persuaded him to compose again. The Piano Concerto No. 2 was among the excellent works he now steadily produced. His reputation as composer, conductor, and performer grew. By his 40s he had toured the US, Russia, England, and Europe, but he lost his country estate in the Revolution and fled to Scandinavia. He spent his last 25 years in the US and Europe, working, touring, recording, and publishing music. Growing ill health made him cancel a concert tour, and he died of cancer aged 69.
To strangers Rachmaninov could seem unsmiling and aloof, but with friends and family in their home-made Russian enclave he was warm, content, and generous.
Total: 96
MUSICAL OUTPUT ORCHESTRAL (19)
7
5
3
CHAMBER (11)
5
5
1
PIANO MUSIC (29)
8
9
11
DRAMATIC (8)
4
1
3
CHORAL (10)
1
4
4
SONGS (19)
5
8
6
1873
1892
1901
4 1 1
1918
1943
290
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – RUSSI A N
MUSIC
The piano figures prominently in Rachmaninov’s output, both solo and with orchestra. His orchestral works include three symphonies, and he wrote over 80 lyrical songs. There is little chamber music, and his three operas suffer from unpromising librettos. His choral work Vespers shows his liking for religious chant. His music up to the critically mauled Symphony No. 1 is energetic and highly competent, if sometimes derivative (the Tchaikovskyish opera Aleko, for instance). But when he started composing again after his years of self-doubt, Rachmaninov’s style developed significantly into the now-familiar sweeping melodies, subtly and richly scored – for example, in the long, seamless lines of the Piano Concerto No. 2 or Symphony No. 2. Among the few works he wrote after leaving Russia are the Rhapsody on a Theme of Paganini, Symphony No. 3 and Piano Concerto No. 4.
MILESTONES
1891
Composes Piano Concerto No. 1
1892
Graduates as composer; prelude in C sharp minor, Op. 3, No. 2, composed
1893
Successful premiere of Aleko
1897
Disastrous premiere of Symphony No. 1; takes conducting post
1899
First international appearance, London
1900
Consults psychologist Dr Dahl; receives auto-suggestive therapy to deal with nervous breakdown
1901
Piano Concerto No. 2 composed, dedicated to Dr Dahl
1902 1908
Marries cousin Natalia Satina Symphony No. 2 premiered
1910
Now an established composerconductor-pianist; tours US
1917 1918
Flees Russia on outbreak of Revolution Decides to live in US
1919
Makes his first recording; continues to record with Ampico for ten years
1934 1936
Writes Rhapsody on a Theme of Paganini Symphony No. 3 completed
KEY WORKS VESPERS, OP. 37 CHORAL
d 50:00
PIANO CONCERTO NO. 3, OP. 30 p 15
oc
Also known as the All-Night Vigil or Solemn Vespers, this is Rachmaninov’s setting of the service that takes place in Orthodox churches before important festivals. Nine of the pieces are based on traditional chants, with Rachmaninov’s harmonies and variations. The central section is No. 9, the story of the Resurrection.
ORCHESTRAL
d 40:00
p3
os
The whole of this tightly structured piece comes out of the bare, twisting opening theme. Large in scale and emotional range, it shows Rachmaninov’s skill in writing long and beautifully phrased themes. It premiered in New York in 1909.
RHAPSODY ON A THEME OF PAGANINI, OP. 43 ORCHESTRAL
d 25:00
p 26
os
After his troubled Fourth Concerto had a lukewarm reception, this – his final concerto-style work – proved a great success. Based on Paganini’s familiar Caprice No. 24, it is a set of variations that ingeniously combines the lyrical with the brilliant, and spontaneity with organization.
Rachmaninov’s Piano Concerto No. 2 became famous when it was used to great effect in David Lean’s 1946 film Brief Encounter.
SE RGE I R ACH M A N I N OV
291
FOCUS PIANO CONCERTO NO. 2, OP. 18 ORCHESTRAL
d 35:00
p3
os
INFLUENCES
Rachmaninov’s music was considered outdated and emotionally clichéd after his death by some, and has had little influence on Western composers (though Shostakovich’s Piano Concerto No. 2, for example, has a Rachmaninov-like slow movement). However, his reputation is now secure as the last of a great line.
The endlessly flowing lyricism of Rachmaninov’s first and most enduring success – the happy result of his confidence-building sessions with Dr Dahl – has inspired direct and indirect use in pop music and films. FIRST MOVEMENT: (MODERATO, 11:00) Eight ominous piano chords introduce a sombre first theme, contrasted with the more optimistic second; a strident, martial short figure is repeated as a device to link the two. SECOND MOVEMENT: (ADAGIO SOSTENUTO, 12:00) An aching theme, sparsely woven between piano, solo winds, and strings, flows with a gentle sadness that seems to have no relief in sight.
to complete his comeback after the disasters of his first attempt at a symphony. Most of his works were composed in his idyllic country estate, Ivanovka, but the spacious No. 2 came from his time in Dresden. FIRST MOVEMENT (LARGO, 19:00) A low, sombre motto theme opens this broad movement. It turns into flowing and resolute, but tragic, long melodies, with sunnier sections and some impassioned climaxes.
THIRD MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO SCHERZANDO, 12:00)
SECOND MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MOLTO, 9:00)
After a bustling start, two minutes or so in comes the nostalgic and sincere theme that brought Rachmaninov worldwide fame, played on oboe and violas and then taken up by piano. The theme recurs in more impassioned forms before the determined but unsettled finish.
A vigorous and bright movement, sparklingly orchestrated, containing a trademark yearning theme, and with an unexpectedly subdued finish. THIRD MOVEMENT (ADAGIO, 14:00) Sumptuous, classic Rachmaninov that goes straight into a long-breathed, poignant clarinet melody against quietly intimate strings, and builds to some magnificently surging, almost triumphant, emotion with a tranquil finish.
SYMPHONY NO. 2, OP. 27 ORCHESTRAL
d 55:00
p4
o
After the success of his Concerto No. 2, Rachmaninov produced this, possibly his greatest orchestral work,
FOURTH MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO VIVACE, 13:00)
A bustling and vivacious rounding-off of a remarkable work.
292
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – RUSSI A N
Alexander Glazunov b 1865–1936
n Russian
w c.150
Glazunov was an important figure in early-20th-century Russian music: he taught Shostakovich and helped RimskyKorsakov complete Borodin’s opera Prince Igor, which had been unfinished on the latter’s death. Glazunov’s own compositions, whilst popular in their day, were conservative – a likeable but unchallenging blend of Germanic Classical with a somewhat outmoded Russian nationalism. LIFE AND MUSIC Glazunov studied with Rimsky-Korsakov, and his Symphony No. 1 was performed when he was just 16. Much of his adult life was spent as professor, and then director, of the St Petersburg Conservatory, and it was here that he had his most lasting influence as mentor to the “new” Russian school of composers. He was remembered as a strict teacher with a genuine concern for his students, but whose unabashed conservatism could jar with their progressive ideas; he famously walked out of the premiere of his student Sergei Prokofiev’s Symphony No. 1. Co-written with RimskyKorsakov, Glazunov’s Cleopatra was performed by the Ballets Russes in typically exotic costumes.
MILESTONES
1881
Composes Stenka Razin, symphonic poem, and Symphony No. 5
1884
Visits Liszt in Weimar
1897
Conducts Rachmaninov’s Symphony No. 1 while drunk, causing it to fail
1899
Appointed professor at the St Petersburg Conservatory
1900 1903 1904 1928 1934
Composes The Seasons, ballet Writes Symphony No. 7 (“Pastorale”) Composes Violin Concerto Leaves Russia for Paris Writes Saxophone Concerto
Glazunov’s compositions were highly polished, if slightly backward-looking. He achieved the most successful balance of Russian and European elements of any composer of the nationalistic school, led by Balakirev. Many of Glazunov’s works were premiered by Balakirev.
KEY WORKS THE SEASONS BALLET
d 60:00
p 15
o
Written for the Russian Imperial Ballet, The Seasons is perhaps the last work in the Russian Classical ballet tradition before Stravinsky changed the genre forever. It is rarely danced, but has become Glazunov’s most popular concert work: charming, inventive, and well scored. VIOLIN CONCERTO ORCHESTRAL
d 20:00
p3
os
Glazunov’s Violin Concerto was written for violinist Leopold Auer, and later taken up by the brilliant Jascha Heifetz
(a former pupil of Auer’s), whose advocacy is chiefly responsible for its continued popularity. The first section develops a beautiful melody with strongly Russian overtones, before an extended cadenza links to the virtuosic finale. SYMPHONY NO. 5 ORCHESTRAL
d 35:00
p4
o
This is the most popular of Glazunov’s symphonies. Although clearly derivative, particularly of Mendelssohn in the Scherzo and of Tchaikovsky in general, it is a good example of his blending of Russian themes with Classical forms.
293
NATI ONAL SC H O O L S – E A ST E UROP E A N
Henryk Wieniawski
Moritz Moszkowski
b 1835–1880
b 1854–1925
n Polish
w c.50
A child violin prodigy with a concert career, Wieniawski became the great international violin virtuoso of his time after playing his own Concerto No. 1 in Leipzig. He went on to teach at the St Petersburg Conservatory and composed many of his best works there. His music, like his playing, combined Paganini-like technique, Romantic expansiveness, and Slavonic emotion. His two concertos are often played. MILESTONES
1843 1853 1860 1862
Admitted to Paris Conservatoire Composes Violin Concerto No. 1 Settles in St Petersburg Composes Violin Concerto No. 2
1872
Tours US with Anton Rubinstein; exhaustion and onset of heart trouble
1875
Goes to teach in Brussels for two years
n German
w 100
At age 17, Moszkowski, a piano prodigy, was teaching at the Berlin Conservatory. However, nerves cut short his early, glittering concert career, and he concentrated instead on composition. Sales of his melodic piano works then made him wealthy. He settled in Paris, where he was in demand as a teacher, and married the composer Cécile Chaminade’s sister. Later, his fortunes declined: his wife and daughter died, his music became unfashionable, and he lived and died alone in poverty. MILESTONES
1873 1897 1898 1914 1921
Debut as pianist, Berlin Settles in Paris; height of fame Writes Piano Concerto, Op. 59 Bankrupted during World War I Friends hold benefit concert in US
Josef Suk b 1874–1935
n Czech
Suk was Dvoˇrák’s favourite composition pupil at Prague Conservatory. At 18 he joined the renowned Czech Quartet as second violinist and played over 4,000 concerts with it. After his Serenade for Strings was published (on Brahms’s recommendation), he became a leading Czech composer. Suk was most at home in instrumental music, but, unlike Dvorˇák, was uninfluenced by folk. His style developed
w c.90
from lyrical Romanticism to a more complex, individual language with a masterful sense of colour. His Asrael Symphony is one of his finest works.
MILESTONES
1885 1892 1898 1906 1917 1922
Begins study at Prague Conservatory Composes Serenade for Strings Marries Otilka, Dvoˇrák’s daughter Composes Asrael Symphony Ripening, tone poem, tells his life story
1933
Retires from Czech Quartet
Appointed professor of composition at Prague Conservatory
Suk’s emotional Asrael Symphony, named after the Angel of Death, was written to express his grief at the death of his wife in 1905 and of Dvoˇrák in 1904.
294
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – E A ST E URO PE A N
Bedrich Smetana b 1824–1884
n Czech
w c.150
The music of Bedrich Smetana has become synonymous with Czech nationalism and greatly influenced later generations of composers, including Dvorˇák. A native of Bohemia (then controlled by Austria), Smetana wrote several operas and a magnificent cycle of symphonic poems depicting his homeland. His musical style, while clearly of the Romantic tradition, is attractively melodious and direct. LIFE AND MUSIC
Smetana worked first in Prague and then Gothenburg, with moderate success, as a pianist and composer. By 1861, his nationalist sentiments compelled him to return to Prague. Unlike many “nationalist” composers, Smetana made comparatively little use of folk melodies. Rather, he wrote operas and programmatic pieces based explicitly on Czech stories and places – his own colourful and dramatic musical voice thus came to embody Czech music. Smetana led a difficult life – his first wife and three of four daughters died, and he contracted a syphilitic
MILESTONES
1848
Writes Six Characteristic Compositions; founds music school in Prague.
1856 1861 1863
Moves to Gothenburg, Sweden Returns to Prague The Brandenburgers of Bohemia performed
1866
Conducts Bohemian Provisional Theatre Orchestra
1876 1882
String Quartet No. 1, “From my Life” Má Vlast (complete version) performed
infection that led to deafness and the acute tinnitus that drove him to his death in a mental asylum.
KEY WORKS SIX CHARACTERISTIC COMPOSITIONS, OP. 1 SOLO PIANO
d 22:30
p6
s
Struggling to make ends meet, in desperation Smetana sent his recently completed Six Characteristic Compositions to Franz Liszt, with a dedication and a plea for financial aid. While Liszt was unable to help financially, he was impressed with the work and sent it to his publisher. Although Smetana made no money, praise from such an esteemed figure gave him confidence. STRING QUARTET NO. 1 CHAMBER
d 28:00
p4
e
Subtitled “From my Life”, this quartet ends dramatically on a piercing note held by the violin – a direct musical representation of Smetana’s tinnitus.
THE BRANDENBURGERS OF BOHEMIA OPERA
d 165:00
p3
ocv
First performed at the Prague Provisional Theatre in 1866, Smetana’s first patriotic opera is notable not only because it made his name in Prague (winning the Prague opera competition) and marked the beginning of his most productive period, but also because it was his first extended composition to be based explicitly on Bohemian subject matter.
B E DR I CH SM E TA NA
295
FOCUS VYSEHRAD (13:00) This first tone poem, cast in a more or less straightforward sonata form, refers to episodes from The Bartered Bride was Smetana’s Czech history. second opera and his first attempt at a comedy, written – he later claimed – VLTAVA (11:00) Vltava traces the progress “to spite those who accused me of of the river from its source high in the being Wagnerian” after the altogether Sumava mountains, through the more serious Brandenburgers of Bohemia. forests and rural villages into Prague. First staged in Smetana makes 1866, hot on reference here the heels of to folk songs Brandenburgers, as a means of Smetana soon depicting revised the work, locations. adding a number SÁRKA (10:00) Sárka of popular Czech is the name of numbers, such as a Bohemian The Bartered Bride contains some of Smetana’s most attractive music, full of colour and humour. drinking songs warrior-woman The Overture has become a concert-hall favourite. and polkas. It is who, in legend, an engaging love story, and all the led an army of maidens to claim characters are given specific musical vengeance against her unfaithful lover. features, such as key signatures, which FROM BOHEMIAN FIELDS AND GROVES (12:00) are maintained throughout the opera. This poem is a musical description The final version was staged in 1870. of Smetana’s beloved homeland, the countryside, and the rural people. MÁ VLAST TÁBOR (12:00) Named after an ancient ORCHESTRAL d 71:00 p6 o town in south Bohemia, this tone poem is based on a stirring choral Má Vlast (My Country) is an enormous piece, “Ye who are God’s Warriors”. cycle of six symphonic tone poems – with expansive melodies and dramatic BLANÍK (13:00) The final poem in the rhythms – which Smetana wrote cycle tells of how the valiant Hussites between 1872 and 1880. Dedicated to marched to save their land. The choral the city of Prague, it stands unmatched melody from Tábor returns, but now in the classical canon as a profound transformed into a march interspersed statement of nationalism. with the sounds of shepherds piping.
THE BARTERED BRIDE OPERA
d 120:00
p3
ocv
296
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – E A ST E URO PE A N
Dvo
“I should be glad if something occurred to me as a main idea that occurs to Dvorˇák only by the way.” JOHANNES BRAHMS
ˇ ÁK A N TON Í N DVO R
297
Antonín Dvorˇák
orák b 1841–1904
n Czech
w 189
Of all the 19th-century nationalists, Dvorˇák was perhaps the most successful in absorbing elements of national folk music into a sophisticated Classical idiom. Hailed as a champion of Slavic music, Dvorˇák also spent several years in America, where his ideas about national music had a profound impact on a generation of composers. His substantial output includes ten operas, nine symphonies, and much chamber music.
LIFE
Dvorˇák’s father was an innkeeper and butcher in a village outside Prague, and the young Dvorˇák was destined for the same trade. However, he showed promise as a viola player and after studying at the Prague Organ School he took a position with the Bohemian Provisional Theatre Orchestra. During this period he was also composing in a style increasingly influenced by the nationalist music of Smetana, who conducted the theatre orchestra for a time. Dvorˇák was awarded a Ministry of Education stipend for composition in 1875, by a panel that included Brahms. A couple of years later, he won it again; Brahms was once more one of the judges, and was now sufficiently impressed with Dvorˇák’s compositions to recommend them to his publisher. Through this connection, Dvorˇák’s name became widely known across Europe over the next decade, and he gained a strong following in England, where he conducted a series of concerts. His fame now firmly established, in 1891 he was invited to become Director of the National Conservatory of Music in New York. Dvorˇák attacked this new role with gusto, and composed a series of works betraying the more or less explicit influence of American folk music. He returned to Prague in 1895, and lived there until his death.
A quiet, deeply religious ruralist at heart, Dvorˇák was never happier than in the countryside of his native Bohemia.
Total: 189
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (9)
2
3 3
1
3
2
16
13
11
6
14
4
3
21
12
12
5
2
1
2
20
17
6
2
CONCERTOS (7) CHAMBER (42) PIANO MUSIC (24) OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (50) OPERAS (10) VOCAL (47)
2 1841
1860
1870
3
1880
1
1890
2
1900
1904
298
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – E A ST E URO PE A N
MUSIC
Dvorˇák is often compared with Brahms, no doubt in part because the two became good friends and were great admirers of each other’s music. Dvorˇák wrote some of his greatest works in the Classical forms of the symphony, piano trio, and string quartet, of which Brahms is regarded as a master. Both had an interest in folk music, although in Brahms’s case this was not the music of his native country but of the Hungarian gypsies he had heard as a boy. Dvorˇák’s musical temperament was rather different from that of Brahms. He never felt a weight of expectation from composing in the shadow of Beethoven. Even so, some of Dvorˇák’s symphonies, especially the The Bohemian Polka was one of Dvorˇák’s popular Slavonic Dances.
mighty No. 7, rank among the finest in the genre. Much has been made of Dvorˇák’s capacity for incorporating Bohemian folk music into Classical models, in works such as the “Dumky” Piano Trio, Op. 90. By the standards of the time, he was not progressive in terms of harmony or form, but his lyrical melodies – Bohemian in style, but rarely, if ever, taken from actual folk music – are wholly distinctive. MILESTONES
1857
Attends organ school in Prague
1866
Joins Bohemian Provisional Theatre Orchestra
1873
Cantata Hymnus, Op. 30, performed
1874
Brahms recommends Dvorˇák to the publisher Simrock
1877 1878 1885
Stabat Mater, Op. 58, completed Slavonic Dances, Book 1, Op. 46 Symphony No. 7, Op. 70
1892
Director of the National Conservatory of Music in New York
1893
Symphony No. 9, Op. 95, “From the New World”
1900
Rusalka, Op. 114
1901
Returns to Prague and becomes director of Conservatory
KEY WORKS SYMPHONY NO. 7, OP. 70 ORCHESTRAL
d 40:00
p4
o
If the No. 9 is Dvorˇák’s best-known symphony, the No. 7 is in some ways perhaps the best. Written for the London Philharmonic Society, it is a sombre, even tragic work, less obviously influenced by folk music than the other late symphonies.
for orchestra were written. The pieces are not based on folk melodies but are unmistakably in the folk music style. STABAT MATER, OP. 58 ORATORIO
d 85:00
p 10
cvo
Based on the medieval Latin poem depicting Mary’s grief at Christ’s crucifixion, the mammoth Stabat Mater was begun in 1876 after the death of Dvorˇák’s daughter Josefa. SLAVONIC DANCES, OP. 46, 72 ORCHESTRAL d 38:00 p 8 o He then laid it aside, but was moved Dvorˇák wrote his first Slavonic Dances at to complete it some years later, after the death of two more daughters. This the instigation of Simrock, the publisher who had made a commercial was the first of his works that Dvorˇák conducted in England, a country where success of Brahms’s Hungarian Dances. he established a long-lasting reputation Perhaps to maximize the potential and great affection for his music. market, versions for piano duet and
ˇ ÁK A N TON Í N DVO R
299
FOCUS
solo, is one of the most famous pieces of Classical music. Under the ORCHESTRAL d 42:00 p 4 o name “Going Home”, the melody Dvorˇák believed America’s folk music is often now mistaken for a genuine could produce a distinctive national Negro spiritual. musical voice, yet, surprisingly, the THIRD MOVEMENT (SCHERZO, 8:30) The “New World” does not contain any thrilling Scherzo was based on authentic American tunes. material from Dvorˇák’s abandoned opera Hiawatha. FIRST MOVEMENT (ADAGIO, 9:30) Written in curiously strict sonata form, the FOURTH MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO CON FUOCO, movement builds to a rousing climax. 11:30) This combines themes from earlier in the work with march-like SECOND MOVEMENT (LARGO, 12:30) The music to produce a thrilling climax. Largo, with its famous cor anglais SYMPHONY NO. 9, OP. 95, “FROM THE NEW WORLD”
Adagio – Allegro molto; Quadruple time; 1E minor; Quadruple time; 2 Largo; D flat major; Ternary form Sonata form
Allegro con fuoco; Scherzo – Molto 4E minor; Quadruple time; 3E minor; vivace; Triple time; Sonata form Scherzo and Trio form
Coda Intro Exposition Dev Recap 1
2
3
4
5
Horns introduce first theme
6
7
8
A 9
B
A
Scherzo
Coda Trio Scherzo
Exposition
Dev
Recap
Coda
10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35 36 37 38 39 40 41 42
Second theme
Cor anglais introduces main theme
Cor anglais reintroduces main theme
Flute and oboe introduce first theme
Solo clarinet
First-movement theme recalled by horns
CELLO CONCERTO, OP. 104 ORCHESTRAL
d 33:00
p3
os
This concerto has become a central work in the repertoire of the cello. Dvorˇák wrote it originally for his friend the cellist Hanus Wihan, but they fell out after Wihan made changes to the solo part and added two elaborate cadenzas, which Dvorˇák refused to include in the final version. Wihan eventually declined the premiere, which was given instead to Leo Stern. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO, 12:00) A lengthy orchestral introduction presents the main themes of the work before the soloist enters. Various development wrote in 1887. follows, before a radiant, full-orchestra The main theme finally returns, rendition of the lyrical second theme this time led by the French horns. and a triumphant close in B major. SECOND MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MODERATO, 10:30) SECOND MOVEMENT (ADAGIO MA NON TROPPO, The rondo-form finale begins as a cheerful march, with plenty of 10:30) The woodwind presents the opportunities for display from the expressive main theme before being joined by the soloist. A central section soloist, before slowing to recall themes from earlier in the work. follows, quoting from a song Dvorˇák
300
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – E A ST E URO PE A N
Leos Janáˇcek b 1854–1928
n Czech
w c.150
Janáˇcek is amongst the most significant opera composers of the 20th century. A late developer in composition, he was nearly 50 before he completed his first successful opera, Jenufa, and all of his best-known works date from after this time. Perhaps more than any other nationalist composer, aspects of his native folk music were a fully integrated part of his compositional voice. LIFE AND MUSIC
After studying in Prague, Janáˇcek moved to Brno, where he founded an organ school and made his living as a teacher. While dabbling in composition in a broadly late-Romantic idiom, he studied Moravian folk song and began to develop the idea that melodic lines should reflect the rhythms and pitch of Czech speech. This concept gave rise to the modal harmonies and seemingly disjointed, repetitive phrases of his mature style. In 1917, Janáˇcek became infatuated with Kamila Stösslová and a copious correspondence followed. Their relationship remained unconsummated, but she inspired many of his late works, notably the opera Káta Kabanová.
MILESTONES
1874
Attends Prague Organ School
1881
Becomes founding director of Brno Organ School (later Brno Conservatory)
1887
Writes first opera, Sárka, but rights to libretto are refused
1894 1894
Begins work on Jenufa, opera Jenufa performed for the first time
1916
Revised version of Jenufa premiered in Prague to great acclaim
1917 1921 1923 1926
Meets 25-year-old Kamila Stösslová Opera Káta Kabanová receives premiere Completes opera The Cunning Little Vixen Composes Sinfonietta and Glagolotic Mass
1928
Writes opera From the House of the Dead, staged 1930, two years after his death
KEY WORKS JENUFA OPERA
d 120:00
GLAGOLITIC MASS p3
ocv
This was Janáˇcek’s first full-blown attempt to write music according to his theory of “speech melody”. First staged in Brno in 1904, it was later greatly reorchestrated (at the insistence of Karel Kovarovic, director of Prague Opera) and presented successfully in Prague. This was to prove a pivotal moment in Janáˇcek’s career. Janáˇcek’s entertaining opera The Cunning Little Vixen was inspired by animal stories in a cartoon strip.
MASS SETTING
d 40:00
p8
oscv
Janáˇcek composed a large body of choral music, of which his masterpiece is the Glagolitic Mass. Almost certainly never intended for liturgical use ( Janáˇcek was a confirmed atheist) it can instead be seen as a statement of Slavic nationalism. The title refers to the alphabet used to write Old Church Slavonic. A thrilling, dramatic work, with outbursts of brass and strong rhythms, the Mass contains a notably virtuosic organ solo before the orchestral close.
FOCUS FROM THE HOUSE OF THE DEAD OPERA
d 90:00
p3
ov
SINFONIETTA ORCHESTRAL
d 22:00
p5
o
Janáˇcek’s last orchestral work, and With a long-standing interest in Russian probably his best known, grew out literature and culture, Janáˇcek based his of an initial idea to write a series of fanfares for a gymnastic competition last opera (to his own libretto) on in Brno. However, it developed into Dostoevsky’s novel The House of the Dead, though the result is more a series an exuberant tribute to the town he had lived in since his student days, of vignettes than a single story. After with each movement (after the initial Janácek’s death, parts of the score of Act III were found. Two of his pupils, fanfare) portraying a part of it. believing the opera unfinished, FANFARE (ALLEGRETTO–ALLEGRO–MAESTOSO) “completed” it, adding a more uplifting The Sinfonietta is notable for its bold finale and substantially changing the inclusion of 12 trumpets. Nine of the orchestration. It is now thought that them are heard here in chorus. Janácek’s sparse orchestration and bleak THE CASTLE (ANDANTE–ALLEGRETTO) In reality ending were deliberate, and the opera is a prison, this building is depicted by usually performed as originally written. a sprightly, slightly sinister dance against a lyrical theme led by strings. ACT ONE Goryanchikov is brought to a Siberian prison camp. He is THE QUEEN ’ S MONASTERY (MODERATO) interrogated and flogged. Other Beginning as a nocturne, the music prisoners tease an eagle with a broken builds to a dramatic climax, then wing, then tell stories about their lives. disappears as quickly as it began. ACT TWO Goryanchikov teaches a THE STREET (ALLEGRETTO) The bustle of a Tatar boy, Alyeya, to read and a priest Brno street is announced by a trumpet dispenses Easter blessings. The fanfare which is then taken up in prisoners put on two plays. Alyeya is complex counterpoint by the orchestra. attacked and wounded by a prisoner. THE TOWN HALL (ANDANTE CON MOTO) ACT THREE In the prison hospital The most developed movement builds Alyeya recovers and a prisoner dies. towards a climax: the 12 trumpets are Goryanchikov and the eagle – now finally heard together in a thrilling recovered – are released to freedom. recapitulation of the opening fanfare.
302
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – AUST RO - G E R M A N
Carl Goldmark b 1830–1915
Ernö von Dohnányi
n Hungarian
w c.60
Largely self-taught, Goldmark established himself as a composer during his 30s, while conducting, teaching, and writing reviews in Vienna. His eclectic musical style incorporated elements of Hungarian folk and Jewish culture (his father was a cantor). His exotic opera Die Königin von Saba (The Queen of Sheba) was a triumph in Vienna and later staged worldwide. His later works were more modest successes, but he became a noted musical figure in Budapest and Vienna, and a good friend of Brahms. MILESTONES
1858 1860 1875
Organizes concert of own works Composes String Quartet, Op. 8 Opera Die Königin von Saba premiered
1876
New orchestral work Rustic Wedding, Op. 26, receives great popular acclaim
Bohuslav Martinu˚ b 1890–1959
n Czech
b 1877–1960 n Hungarian w c.120
Dohnányi was the most important Hungarian musical figure of the 20th century. By his mid-20s he was the greatest composer-pianist after Liszt. After ten years teaching in Berlin he returned home and reformed Hungary’s musical life through teaching, conducting, radio, and concerts. His lyrical, vibrant works often show humour (his Variations on a Nursery Rhyme are often played), and his chamber music is particularly successful. MILESTONES
1920
Performs all Beethoven’s piano works
1928
Head of piano and composition at Hungarian Academy in Budapest
1930s Struggles against Nazi influences 1944 Composes Symphony No. 2 1949
Settles in US as composer-pianist at Florida State University
Viktor Ullmann w 383
Martinu was such a good violinist that his home town funded him at Prague Conservatory. Expelled for laziness, he moved to Paris, where he became recognized as a composer. Blacklisted by the Nazis for pro-Czech activities, he fled to the US, but later returned to Europe. His large output shows influences from Renaissance to jazz, using springy rhythms and themes generated from small fragments. MILESTONES
b 1898–1944
n Czech
w 70
The career Ullmann was building in Prague as a freelance composer, teacher, journalist and broadcaster was cut short by Nazi anti-Jewish policies when he was sent to Terezin concentration camp. In two years of extraordinary musical life there, he directed the Studio for New Music, wrote reviews, performed, and composed satisfying and accessible music for concerts for prisoners, many being excellent musicians. Ullmann died at Auschwitz; his manuscripts were saved. MILESTONES
1898
Born Teschen (now Cesky Tesin in the Czech Republic)
1923 1934 1938 1941 1953 1957
Studies in Paris with Albert Roussel Writes Piano Concerto No. 2 Composes String Quartet No. 5 Flees to US as refugee Composes Symphony No. 6 Moves to Switzerland
1933 1942 1943 1943
Writes Schönberg Variations for orchestra Sent to Terezin by the Nazis String Quartet No. 3 composed Writes Hölderlin-Lieder, voice and piano
1943
Writes opera Der Kaiser von Atlantis (The Emperor of Atlantis) satirizing Hitler
1958
Writes The Greek Passion, opera
1944
Dies at Auschwitz
303
NATI ONAL SCH OO L S – AUST RO - GE R M A N
Max Bruch b 1838–1920
n German
w c.200
Bruch was an important figure in 19th-century German musical life, both as a composer and a conductor. He is chiefly remembered for his melodic Violin Concerto No. 1, although he also composed much choral music and several operas. Conservative by nature, Bruch believed music should be tuneful and accessible, and vehemently opposed the innovations of contemporaries such as Richard Strauss and Max Reger. LIFE AND MUSIC Bruch was born in Cologne and received his first music lessons from his mother. A musical prodigy, his Symphony No. 1 was premiered when he was just 14. After study in Frankfurt, he returned to teach in Cologne and began to establish himself as a composer and, chiefly, conductor. Various posts followed, including three years at the Liverpool Philharmonic Society, before he became professor of composition at the Berlin Academy in 1891. Bruch’s straightforwardly Romantic idiom was essentially backward-looking, especially when compared with that of his later contemporaries. However, he had an undoubted gift for melody, and his best works, including his Symphony No. 3 and his famous Violin Concerto No. 1, make up for in beauty what they might seem to lack in depth.
MILESTONES
1863
Produces Die Loreley, the second and most enduring of his three operas
1866
Writes Violin Concerto No. 1
1867
Appointed director of court orchestra at Schwartzburg-Sonderhausen
1880
Appointed conductor of the Liverpool Philharmonic Orchestra
1881
Composes Kol Nidrei, orchestral work; marries the singer Clara Tuczek
1883
Conductor of the Breslau Orchesterverein; extensive US tour
1891
Becomes professor of composition at Berlin Academy; keeps post until 1910
1893
Honorary doctorate from Cambridge
1898
Begins two years as conductor of Scottish Orchestra
KEY WORKS VIOLIN CONCERTO NO. 1 ORCHESTRAL
d 22:00
p3
os
This concerto, in G minor, is Bruch’s best-known work, and one of the most popular violin concertos in the repertoire. The first movement is an extended dialogue between soloist and orchestra which flows without pause into the second, an idea Bruch adapted from Mendelssohn. The famous Adagio shows Bruch’s lyrical gift at its finest and Kol Nidrei, with its richly emotional cello part, was inspired by the Jewish prayer sung on the eve of Yom Kippur.
has passages of quite exceptional beauty. The implications of the concerto’s massive popularity were not lost on Bruch, who was known to muse (correctly, it transpired) that he would probably be remembered for this work alone. KOL NIDREI ORCHESTRAL
d 11:00
p1
os
Written for solo cello and orchestra, this piece was written in Liverpool and premiered there by the cellist Robert Hausmann. Based on a Jewish prayer, Bruch’s setting is remarkable for the cello’s evocation of an anguished baritone human voice.
304
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – AUST RO - G E R M A N
Joseph Rheinberger b 1839–1901
n German
Rheinberger’s lavish talents as organist and composer, but primarily as a teacher, saw him progress quickly from student to professor at the Munich Conservatory, and he received many honours through a long and successful career. His wife was a poet, and he set many of her works – amongst his large output of orchestral, chamber, and vocal music – which were masterfully crafted in traditional styles. His work is most familiar to organists
w 200
and Catholic choirmasters, with the 20 organ sonatas among his finest achievements. He is also remembered for his fine church music, which includes numerous Masses and three Requiems. As organist and choral conductor at St Michael’s Church in Munich from 1860–66, Rheinberger composed many richly-textured sacred works.
MILESTONES
1851
Moves to Munich to study
1859
After 100 unreleased pieces, publishes his Op. 1
1867
Becomes a professor; marries Franziska von Hoffnaass
1869 1894 1898
Writes Der Tümers Töchterlein, opera Ennobled Composes Mass in F, Op. 190
Alexander von Zemlinsky b 1871–1942
n Austrian
Zemlinsky was known chiefly as an excellent conductor and as a champion of Czech music. He held various posts in Vienna, Prague, and Berlin, before fleeing from the Nazis to New York. As a composer, his relatively traditional music was more successful in his early career than later on, when it was eclipsed by his pupils’ modernism – he taught Berg, Schoenberg
w c.70
(his brother-in-law), and Webern. The intense, emotional quality of much of his music (such as in Die Seejungfrau) reflects his rejection by Alma Schindler, another of his pupils, in favour of Mahler. In his last years, Zemlinsky had to turn to composing hackwork to make ends meet. He suffered a series of strokes and died almost forgotten. MILESTONES
1896 1903 1921 1923
Opera Sarema wins major prize Die Seejungfrau, symphonic fantasy Der Zwerg, opera, performed Composes his Lyric Symphony
1924
Conducts premiere of Schoenberg’s Erwartung
1938
Flees to New York
The rise of the Nazi Party in Germany, in 1933, forced Zemlinsky to move to Vienna. In 1938, after the Anschluss, he emigrated to the US along with many other Austrian Jews.
NATI ONAL SCH OO L S – AUST RO - GE R M A N
305
Hugo Wolf b 1860–1903
n Austrian
w c.350
One of the greatest masters of Lieder, Wolf composed some 300 songs, developing and extending the tradition of Schubert and Schumann. A committed disciple of Wagner, his use of Leitmotiv – and his complete integration of music and text – transformed the Lied into a truly dramatic form. Wolf ’s music was very much affected by the depressive episodes from which his suffered throughout his life. LIFE AND MUSIC After briefly attending the Vienna Conservatory, Wolf scraped together an impecunious existence until he secured a job as music critic for the Wiener Salonblatt in 1884. There he made a name for himself with caustic writing, an ardently pro-Wagnerian stance, and an implacable antipathy towards Brahms. From 1887 he resolved to compose full-time, and in the following nine years produced all of his most significant works. Eventually overcome by the mental illness that had dogged his adult life, he died in an asylum aged just 42. His musical significance rests on his songs, which are characterized by an unusual affinity with the poetic text and an intensity of emotional expression redolent of large-scale dramatic forms, such as opera or symphony.
MILESTONES
1875
Attends the Vienna Conservatory – dismissed in 1877
1870s Contracts syphilis 1880
Composes Italian Serenade for string quartet
1883 1884 1887
Writes Penthesilea, symphonic poem Becomes critic for Wiener Salonblatt First songs published
1889
Writes settings of Goethe (51), Mörike (53), and Eichendorff (20)
1890 1891 1895 1896
Writes Spanisches Liederbuch Composes Italienisches Liederbuch (vol. 1) Der Corregidor, opera, performed Writes Italienisches Liederbuch (vol. 2)
1897
Mental breakdown, leading to terminal illness; committed to asylum
KEY WORKS GOETHE LIEDER LIEDER
p 51
sv
Schubert made extensive settings of Goethe, and by choosing to set the same poet, Wolf consciously aligned himself with the great Lieder tradition. The Goethe songs date from Wolf ’s most productive period and typify his mature style. The texts were given prominence, and were thus acknowledged as the inspiration for his music. Wolf’s admiration for literature is shown by his setting of texts by many great poets from Shakespeare to Mörike.
SPANISCHES LIEDERBUCH LIEDER
p 44
sv
For the Spanish songs, Wolf chose German translations of Spanish texts from the 17th and 18th centuries. He allowed his musical imagination free reign to capture the Mediterranean character of the texts, and the resulting songs are filled with dance rhythms and pseudo-guitar figuration. Admired for this colourful, evocative, and inspiring Spanish collection, Wolf was perceived, in certain quarters, to be one of the finest songwriters of his time.
306
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – AUST RO - G E R M A N
Max Reger b 1873–1916
n German
w 500+
Despite being a prolific and wide-ranging composer, Reger’s music has failed to capture audiences’ imaginations. At its best, it has the authority of Brahms, allied with more progressive harmony; at its worst, it can seem dense, dry, and harmonically wayward. Much admired by his professional colleagues, Reger was nonetheless a difficult character who made many enemies and aroused strong opinions. LIFE AND MUSIC Reger led an unremarkable life. After studying with the great musicologist Reimann, he gained a post at the Leipzig Conservatory, where he remained until his death. He was famously hard-living and hard-drinking, partaking of everything (some would say composition included) to excess. Reger’s music can arguably be seen as the missing link between Brahms and Schoenberg as, like them, he venerated Bachian counterpoint. Often, however, the density of his contrapuntal writing and incessant shifts of harmony make his music hard to follow. His orchestral music can often feel almost impenetrable, but his large volume of chamber works is perhaps his most significant contribution to the concert repertoire.
MILESTONES
1886
Becomes church organist in Weiden
1890
Begins music studies with Heinrich Reimann in Munich and Wiesbaden
1899
Has mental and physical breakdown
1905
Appointed professor of composition at Munich Academy
1907
Appointed professor of composition at Leipzig; composes Variations and Fugue on a Theme by J A Hiller
1909
Has successful concert tour of UK
1911
Becomes conductor of ducal orchestra at Meiningen
1913
Composes Introduction, Passacaglia, and Fugue in E minor
1915
Composes Clarinet Quintet
KEY WORKS VARIATIONS AND FUGUE ON A THEME BY J A HILLER ORCHESTRAL
d 40:00
p 13
o
Among the more approachable of Reger’s orchestral works, this set of 11 variations and a fugue is based on a theme from Johann Adam Hiller’s stage work Der Aerndtkranz. Somewhat akin to a longer, more austere version of Brahms’s Academic Festival Overture, the work nonetheless bursts with invention and elaborate scoring. Arnold Böcklin’s The Isle of the Dead inspired Reger to compose his orchestral Four Böcklin Tone-Pictures in 1913 .
INTRODUCTION, PASSACAGLIA AND FUGUE IN E MINOR ORGAN
d 30:00
p3
s
Of all Reger’s output, the works he composed for organ, most of which were written before he was 25, have established the most secure position in the repertoire. Indeed, in some quarters he is regarded as the most significant organ composer since Bach. The organ was the perfect medium for Reger to indulge his passion for counterpoint, as is well illustrated in this monumental work, commissioned by the city of Breslau.
NATI ONAL SCH OO L S – AUST RO - GE R M A N
307
Franz Schmidt b 1874–1939
n Austrian
A highly regarded and much-honoured pianist, cellist, conductor, and teacher in Vienna, Schmidt also found time to compose some impressive, large-scale works. These often show a Hungarian influence (he was from a Hungarian-speaking German family), as well as Classical-Romantic accomplishment and, in the fine works for organ, the influence of J S Bach. Schmidt’s life was not easy: he battled against poor health all his life, his
w 50
mentally ill first wife was murdered by the Nazis, and his daughter, commemorated in his Symphony No. 4 (his last), died shortly after birth. It was his symphonies that earned him most fame, although his opera Notre Dame from which he drew an orchestral gypsy-style intermezzo, was also an international success.
MILESTONES
1901 1904
Starts teaching at Vienna Conservatory Completes Notre Dame, opera
1930
Composes Variationen über ein Husarenlied (Variations on a Hussar Song), orchestral
1932
Composes Symphony No. 4
1937
Completes Das Buch mit sieben Siegeln (The Book with Seven Seals), oratorio; composes Solemn Fugue for organ
Schmidt’s oratorio The Book with Seven Seals, composed between 1935 and 1937, was the only vocal work he completed apart from his two operas. It is inspired by biblical visions of the Last Judgement.
Sigfrid Karg-Elert b 1877–1933
n German
Karg-Elert’s life was unusual: he married the daughter of the woman who had borne him an illegitimate son. His musical life was also unusual: despite being a talented pianist, he specialized in composing for the then popular art-harmonium, developed in France in the late 19th century. From
w c.150
1924, he gave weekly radio harmonium recitals from his house in Leipzig. He also composed many works for organ, which were influenced by Impressionism and historical polyphonic styles. Popularity in England (a festival of his organ music was held in London) then made him unpopular in Germany. Short of money, he toured the US, but disastrously. MILESTONES
1906
Composes Konzertstücke, harmonium
1910
Completes 66 Chorale Improvisations for organ
1912 c1918 1919 1930
Composes Sonata No. 2, harmonium Destroys 20 works in an artistic crisis Becomes professor at Leipzig Karg-Elert Festival held in London
An excellent organist, Karg-Elert also composed extensively for the harmonium. Among his best-known works are 33 stylistic studies inspired by the styles of composers as diverse as Palestrina and Schoenberg.
308
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – AUST RO - G E R M A N
Fritz Kreisler b 1875–1962 n Austrian w Unknown A violin virtuoso of legendary sweet he produced an operetta, a string quartet, tone, expressiveness, and natural ability, and a variety of solos. More surprisingly, Kreisler was a child prodigy who won the Kreisler proved also to be an imaginative Paris Conservatoire’s Gold Medal at 12. hoaxer, admitting in 1935 that many of His virtuoso career – which lasted nearly the 18th-century violin solos that he had “discovered”, apparently by names such 50 years – was disrupted by spells of fighting in World War I, fleeing the Nazis, as Gaetano Pugnani or François and a traffic accident in 1941. Best known Francoeur, had in fact been written by for his evocative, rich-toned performances him. Not all critics were amused. But his dazzling, attractive forgeries continue to of the Brahms appeal to violinists and audiences, and and Beethoven violin concertos, they are frequently performed, though he also gave the now are firmly attributed to Kreisler. first recital of MILESTONES Elgar’s Violin 1882 Enters Musikverein Konservatorium Concerto. An 1889 Tours the US before medical studies accomplished 1899 Starts his virtuoso career in Berlin composer, too, A virtuoso violinist of effortless flair, Kreisler was widely renowned for his rich, insightful performances.
1910 1914 1919 1935 1943
Performs Elgar’s Violin Concerto Fights for Austria in World War I Writes Apple Blossoms, operetta Admits to compositional hoaxes Becomes US citizen
Hanns Eisler b 1898–1962
n German
After receiving free lessons from Schoenberg in the 1920s, Eisler discovered Marx, and became a committed communist. Disaffected with new music, he wrote strongly political songs, theatre, and cabaret music, and film scores in an easily understood, yet clever style. In the 1930s, playwright MILESTONES
1923 1925 1930 1937 1948 1949 1957
Composes Piano Sonata No. 1, Op. 1 Teaches music in Berlin Writes Die Massnahme, music for stage Composes the “German” Symphony Deported from the US Writes Auferstanden aus Ruinen, East Germany’s national anthem Schweyk in zweiten Weltkrieg, for stage
During America’s “Red Scare”, Eisler fell victim to the infamous witch-hunts spear-headed by Joe McCarthy (centre). Tried by the House Un-American Activities Committee, Eisler was found guilty and deported.
w Unknown
Bertolt Brecht became a lifelong friend and collaborator. When Hitler came to power, Eisler’s work was banned and he was exiled. He fled to the US, where he wrote songs and film music, including the score for Fritz Lang’s Hangmen Also Die. In the 1940s he fell foul of McCarthyism, and was deported to East Germany, where he wrote music for stage and film.
NATI ONAL SCH OO L S – AUST RO - GE R M A N
309
Carl Orff b 1895–1982
n German
w 20
Despite composing countless large-scale stage works, Orff ’s fame rests almost entirely on just one, the hugely successful Carmina Burana. But perhaps his most lasting legacy lies in his innovative attitude to music education. Realizing the intrinsic relationship between music and movement, Orff stressed the value of playful participation, particularly through the use of voice and percussion. LIFE AND MUSIC Orff was born, raised, and educated in Munich, where in 1924 he co-founded a school for gymnastics, music, and dance. His hands-on approach emphasized direct experience and active participation, particularly through the use of voices and simple percussion instruments. Orff ’s own music reflects Stravinsky’s influence and a passion for Classical texts. Striving for a musical language that would engage the listener’s primitive impulses, Orff ’s sound-world is filled with pulsing rhythms, percussion, and direct vocal expression, achieving a powerfully visceral and sensual appeal.
MILESTONES
1912 1914
Attends Munich Academy of Music Leaves Academy to join army
1924
Co-founds the Günther School (with Dorothee Günther)
1930 1937
Writes Music for Children, Vol. 1 Carmina Burana, cantata, premiered Antigone, opera, performed
1943 1950 1961
Appointed professor of composition at Munich High School for Music Founds Orff Institute, in Salzburg, providing courses for music teachers
KEY WORKS CARMINA BURANA CHORAL
d 60:00
p 25
MUSIC FOR CHILDREN ocv
Conceived for the stage, but more often performed as a concert oratorio, Carmina Burana is a setting of old German texts found at Benediktbeuern Monastery. However, its subject matter is rather less than holy, as the work’s subtitle, Cantiones profanae, implies. For instance, Bibunt Omnes, which closes the central section, is a drinking song. The passage most often played on film is the evocative finale O Fortuna, now one of the best-known pieces of 20th-century classical music.
ENSEMBLE
p5
o
Whilst not strictly part of his serious output, Orff ’s Das Schulwerk, Musik für Kinder (Schoolwork, Music for Children) ranks with Carmina Burana as his most significant and lasting contribution. Written for very young children to play with simple percussion instruments, Orff ’s musical “schoolwork” shows his flair for and theory of teaching music. The panoramic stage pageant Carmina Burana, famous for its infectious rhythms and arresting vocals, enjoyed instant and phenomenal success.
310
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – SCA N DI NAV I A N
Edvard Grieg b 1843–1907
n Norwegian
w c.80
Grieg is undoubtedly Norway’s greatest composer and is responsible, together with Sibelius and Nielsen, for putting Scandinavia on the musical map. His exploration of Norway’s folk music, and collaborations with Norwegian writers, helped him to develop a style that was unmistakably nationalist in spirit. Generally more comfortable with smaller-scale forms, he wrote many songs, piano pieces, and chamber works. LIFE AND MUSIC
After studying in Leipzig, Grieg moved to Copenhagen to develop his career as a pianist. It was there that he met the young Norwegian composer Rikard Nordraak, who emphasized to him the need for a distinctive Norwegian music. On his return to Norway, Grieg began studying traditional folk music, and elements of this gradually pervaded his own romantic musical language. Sometimes derided as a miniaturist, it is nonetheless true – with the notable exception of the majestic Piano Concerto – that his best work is found in his lyrical songs, or his exquisitely crafted instrumental pieces.
MILESTONES
1858 1863 1865 1866 1867 1868
Studies in Leipzig Moves to Copenhagen Composes Violin Sonata, No. 1, Op. 8 Moves to Christiania (now Oslo) Marries Nina Hangerup, his first cousin Writes Piano Concerto in A minor
1874
Awarded a national artists’ grant; moves back to Bergen
1876
Writes music for Henrik Ibsen’s drama Peer Gynt, Op. 23
1880
Becomes conductor of the Harmonien Orchestra in Bergen
1884 1895
Holberg Suite, Op. 40 (piano version) Composes Haugtussa, Op. 67
KEY WORKS LYRIC PIECES SOLO PIANO
p 66
HAUGTUSSA, OP. 67 s
SONG CYCLE
Grieg wrote ten volumes of “Lyric Pieces” for solo piano between 1867 and 1901. These delightful miniatures, full of references to traditional dance music, nature, and nationalist sentiment, show Grieg’s art at its finest. They became a lucrative source of income for Grieg in his later years. Peer Gynt tells the story of a young rogue who travels the world in search of fortune and fantastical adventures.
d 30:00
p8
sv
Haugtussa is a song cycle to poems by Arne Garborg, and one of many works that Grieg wrote for his wife Nina to sing. Telling the story of a simple shepherdess and her ill-fated love affair, Grieg’s delightful settings evoke images of the Norwegian countryside. HOLBERG SUITE ORCHESTRAL
d 19:00
p5
o
Originally composed for piano, the Holberg Suite is now better known in its orchestrated version. Sometimes cited as an early example of musical NeoClassicism, Grieg’s charming score is a pastiche of a French dance suite that was popular in Ludvig Holberg’s time.
311
E DVA R D GR I E G
FOCUS PIANO CONCERTO, OP. 16 ORCHESTRAL
d 27:00
p3
os
As a student in Leipzig, Grieg heard Schumann’s Piano Concerto, and his own concerto owes a clear debt to that work. Another influence was Liszt, who saw the work in manuscript and reportedly impressed the composer by playing it perfectly at sight. Premiered to great success in Copenhagen, the concerto is now among the most popular in the repertoire. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MOLTO MODERATO
The opening bars of the Piano Concerto must be one of the most instantly recognizable in all Classical music – above a roll of timpani, the piano enters with a dramatic sequence of descending octaves. The remainder of the movement is a compressed sonata form, with a passionate cadenza appearing before the close. SECOND MOVEMENT (ADAGIO 6:00) This lyrical movement is deceptive in its simplicity, disguising a sophisticated command of harmony. THIRD MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MODERATO MOLTO E MARCATO 9:00) Full of virtuosic writing for the soloist, the concerto’s finale is its most distinctively Norwegian movement, with references to folk dances and even imitations of the hardanger (a Norwegian instrument). 12:00)
PEER GYNT SUITES NO. 1, OP. 46, AND NO. 2, OP. 55 ORCHESTRAL
d 32:00
p8
o
Based loosely on Norwegian fairy tales, Peer Gynt was originally written as an extended prose-poem; however, its popularity led Ibsen to produce a stage version in 1876. Grieg’s two Peer Gynt suites were drawn from 23 short pieces he composed as incidental music for the play’s first production. For Grieg, a master of the miniature, incidental theatre music was an ideal form – the perfect medium for his memorable short character pieces. Among the eight pieces that comprise the two suites, three have become especially well known. Morning Mood, which opens the first suite, sets a beautiful rocking melody to a backdrop of woodwind bird calls. In the Hall of the Mountain King is a tongue-in-cheek depiction of the Troll King’s lair, with a tentative theme gradually accelerating into grotesque dance. Solveig’s Song, the final movement of the second suite, is based around a typically lyrical melody for strings with harp accompaniment.
INFLUENCES
Grieg has come to be somewhat marginalized in the history of Classical music. Nonetheless, his most important influence was surely on the French composers of the early 20th century. Ravel said that – besides Debussy – there was “no composer to whom I feel a closer affinity”. Today, his work is returning to critical favour.
312
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – SCA N DI NAV I A N
Carl Nielsen b 1865–1931
n Danish
w c.120
Nielsen was one of the most important symphonic composers of the 20th century, and certainly the most famous Danish composer in history. He developed a highly individual compositional voice, at times romantic and passionate, at others aggressive and almost atonal, but always highly charged. In addition to six symphonies, he wrote three concertos, two operas, quartets, and a popular wind quintet. LIFE AND MUSIC
Despite a rural upbringing as one of 14 children, Nielsen learned piano, violin, and trumpet. After studying at the Copenhagen Conservatory, he became a violinist in the Danish Royal Theatre Orchestra. Somewhat shielded from the European mainstream, and receiving little formal compositional training, his music developed along a highly individual path. His harmony, whilst essentially tonal, remains unique; he often created tension by using keys in opposing blocks, the work finishing in the “winning” key. The idea of struggle was central to his music, often explicitly so, as in his Symphony No. 5 where the drummer is instructed to improvise, as if to drown out the orchestra.
MILESTONES
1884
Attends Copenhagen Conservatory
1886
Joins Royal Theatre Orchestra as second violinist
1894 1901
Writes Symphony No. 1 Saul and David, opera, performed
1902
Composes Symphony No. 2, “The Four Temperaments”
1908
Becomes conductor of the Royal Theatre Orchestra
1911
Symphony No. 3, “Sinfonia espansiva”
1916
Appointed professor at Royal Danish Conservatory; writes Symphony No. 4, “The Inextinguishable”
1922 1925 1928
Composes Symphony No. 5 Writes Symphony No. 6, “Semplice” Clarinet Concerto premiered
KEY WORKS SYMPHONY NO. 1 ORCHESTRAL
d 33:00
p4
o
This symphony gives the first example of Nielsen’s “progressive tonality”. A struggle between G minor and C major leads eventually to the work’s conclusion in the latter key, despite opening in the former. One reviewer described the sound of the symphony as “a child playing As a young violinist in the Royal Theatre Orchestra, Nielsen played in his own Symphony No. 1.
with dynamite” and the work is now seen as an important forerunner to Nielsen’s later musical development. MASKARADE OPERA
d 80:00
p3
ov
Nielsen’s comic opera shows a less familiar side of his music. Written extremely quickly, it is a glorious comedy of social conventions with an inspired, if somewhat chaotic, score. Still hugely popular in Denmark, it has been somewhat neglected elsewhere.
313
CA R L N I E L SE N
FOCUS SYMPHONY NO. 4, “THE INEXTINGUISHABLE” ORCHESTRAL
d 37:00
p4
o
Probably Nielsen’s most popular symphony, this work’s curious title refers not to the symphony itself, but rather to the “elemental will of life”, which, like music, is inextinguishable. Nielsen recognized his Symphony No. 4 as the beginning of a new, “organic” phase in his composition – the development of a direct musical language that was not programmatic, but which gave the appearance of growing naturally and spontaneously of its own volition (for the first time, the four movements are linked together). It was written at a difficult time for Nielsen: his marriage was on the rocks and he had resigned from the Copenhagen Opera. Also there is no doubt that World War I had an impact on the symphony, especially in the musical battle between two sets of timpani in the final movement. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO 12:00) The first movement pits an insistent triplet theme, introduced in counterpoint between wind and strings, against a radiant second subject in thirds. SECOND MOVEMENT (POCO ALLEGRO 5:00)
The second movement is a pastoral, led by the woodwind in a manner that is at once almost naively folklike and yet oddly unsettled. THIRD MOVEMENT (POCO ADAGIO QUASI
The slow movement begins with a brooding theme on unison violins, punctuated by timpani beats and joined in a sparse counterpoint by the violas and cellos. A solo violin introduces a warmer theme before emphatic woodwind restatements of the opening material build to a stormy climax.
ANDANTE 10:30)
FOURTH MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO –
The finale is a dramatic duel between two timpanists, positioned at either side of the stage.
GLORIOSO – TEMPO GIUSTO 9:30)
SAGA-DRØM ORCHESTRAL
d 09:00
p1
o
This delightful work – based on Njal’s Saga – describes the passage in which Gunnar Hlidarende dreams of being pursued by wolves. Low strings open the work with a dreamy melody over a pedal bass. After a chorale on the brass, accompanied by ostinato figures on the strings, a slightly faster section is led by the woodwind. Technically the most remarkable, the central section is a sequence of overlapping cadenzas for six instruments that enter one at a time and are left to play at their own tempo before being brought to a halt by the entry of the strings. A final passage of muted trumpet fanfares brings the work to a gentle conclusion. INFLUENCES
Whilst his earliest works show the clear influence of Beethoven and Brahms, Nielsen’s unique mature style sets him apart. Few later composers have tackled the Classical symphony with such originality and vigour; along with Sibelius and Mahler, Nielsen may be thought to have had the last word on the subject.
314
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – SCA N DI NAV I A N
Johan Svendsen b 1840–1911
n Norwegian
Fredrik Pacius w 40
After an early career as a virtuoso violinist, Svendsen turned to composing. His music – which shows a natural mastery of large, traditional forms – complements that of his good friend and compatriot Grieg. However, he was also in such demand as a conductor that he composed little of importance after moving to Copenhagen in 1883. Although his style is Romantic, it contains elements of Norwegian folk music. Only two of his symphonies survive; in 1882 the manuscript of the third was burned in a jealous rage by his American wife, from whom he was later divorced.
b 1809–1891 n Finnish w Unknown
After moving to Helsinki to lecture at the university, Pacius became a central figure in Finnish musical life. Whilst organizing concerts and conducting choirs, he wrote pieces in the style of Mendelssohn and Louis Spohr that include a string quartet, a violin concerto, songs, stage music, and the beginnings of a symphony. His singspiel Kung Karls jakt (The Hunt of King Charles) was his most important work, and his patriotic song “Vårt Land” (“Our Country”) was adopted as Finland’s national anthem.
MILESTONES
1876 1877 1881
Composes Symphony No. 2, Op. 15 Norwegian Rhapsodies published Writes Romance for violin and orchestra
MILESTONES
1828 1834 1848 1852 1887
Violinist, court orchestra, Stockholm Settles in Helsinki Writes “Our Country”, patriotic song The Hunt of King Charles, opera Composes Loreley, opera
Armas Järnefelt b 1869–1958 n Swedish w Unknown and gave the first Swedish perfomances Järnefelt’s working life of works by Mahler and Schoenberg. was spent in Finland Järnefelt’s main fame as a composer and Sweden. After rests on two lyrical pieces for orchestra: studies in Helsinki, Praeludium – from music for the drama Berlin, and Paris, he held various significant posts as opera and The Promised Land and Berceuse. He also wrote choral works, piano music, and court conductor in Stockholm before film scores in a Romantic style, often returning to Finland. He was especially with evocative Finnish titles. well known for his interpretations of Sibelius, who was his brother-in-law, MILESTONES
1892 1903 1904
Sister Aino marries Sibelius Becomes director of Helsinki opera Writes Berceuse for small orchestra
1907
Conductor of Royal Opera, Sweden; composes Praeludium for small orchestra
1910 1932
Takes Swedish nationality Returns to Finland
Situated in the heart of Stockholm, the Royal Opera House was where Järnefelt delighted Swedish audiences as composer and conductor from 1907 to 1932.
315
NATI ONAL SCH O O L S – SCA N DI NAV I A N
Christian August Sinding b 1856–1941
n Norwegian
Though now a rather distant second to Grieg, Sinding was very much the “other” Norwegian Romantic composer in his lifetime. He went to Leipzig to study violin, but quickly proved to be an adept and prolific composer, writing rich, strong music clearly influenced by Wagner and Liszt.
w c.150
He stayed in Germany for many years, financed by the Norwegian government, and was also professor of composition at the University of Rochester, New York, for two years. Perhaps because of the Romantic density and heaviness of his music, his work declined in popularity after his death; however, the well-known piano piece The Rustle of Spring is often heard in recitals and found on CD. MILESTONES
1874 1884 1889 1890 1896 1898 1912
Studies at Leipzig Conservatory Composes Piano Quintet, Op. 5 Piano Concerto, Op. 6, published Writes Symphony No. 1, Op. 21 The Rustle of Spring, Op. 36, No. 6 Writes Violin Concerto No. 1, Op. 45 Composes The Holy Mountain, opera Sinding wrote many lyrical songs, principally of Norwegian texts, and was honoured by the government in 1921 for his contribution to national music.
Rikard Nordraak b 1842–1866
n Norwegian
Selim Palmgren w 25
Sent to business school in Copenhagen at 15, the young Nordraak studied music instead and became an ardent member of the new national movement in art. He founded Euterpe – a society to promote Scandinavian composers – with his friend Grieg. His simple, economical music includes Norway’s national anthem, “Ja, vi elsker dette landet” (“Yes, We Love This Land”). Nordraak was still developing as a composer when he met his premature death, but his influence on Grieg makes him a seminal figure in Norwegian music. MILESTONES
1859 1860
Joins New Norwegian Society Writes Four Dances for piano, Op. 1
1864
“Ja, vi elsker dette landet” first sung, 17 May
1865 1866
Maria Stuart i Skotland, incidental music, published Contracts tuberculosis and dies
b 1878–1951 n Finnish
w c.500
Palmgren is best known for his evocative, wideranging, and graphic piano music: he wrote five concertos (No. 2 being an international success at the time) and more than 250 solo pieces. The works show a strong sense of mood and imagery: a fine pianist, Palmgren knew first-hand how to exploit the instrument’s possibilities. After an early career conducting the Finnish Students’ Choral Society, he concentrated on performing and toured widely across Europe and the US. For the last 15 years of his life he taught at the Sibelius Academy in Helsinki. MILESTONES
1907
Composes 24 Preludes, piano
1913
Piano Concerto No. 2, “Virta” (“The River”), completed
316
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – SCA N DI NAV I A N
Sibe
“I have more skill, but he is greater.” RICHARD STRAUSS ON SIBELIUS
317
J E A N SI B E L I US
Jean Sibelius
elius b 1865–1957
n Finnish
w 134
Sibelius ranks alongside Mahler and Carl Nielsen as one of the most important symphonists of the 20th century. His earlier, often fervently nationalist works were in a late-Romantic idiom, but in later years he developed a highly original musical language characterized by slowmoving harmony and distinctive, sometimes stark orchestration. Sibelius composed a number of tone poems based on Nordic subjects.
LIFE
Born into a Swedish-speaking family, Sibelius went to Helsinki to study law, but soon abandoned this in favour of full-time music study at the Helsinki Music Institute (now the Sibelius Academy). He befriended the composer Ferruccio Busoni, who encouraged him to seek further experience in Europe. After two years in Berlin and Vienna, Sibelius returned to Finland in 1892, taking a position at the Institute. Success came almost instantaneously with the vast symphonic poem Kullervo. Based on a character from Finnish mythology, it was a bald statement of nationalism at a time when Finland was itself a Grand Duchy under Russia’s control. The Finnish cultural establishment took to Sibelius immediately, and his native fame was assured from that point on. However, it was not until his Symphony No. 1 (1899) that he began to achieve international recognition. In 1904, unable to concentrate on composition in Helsinki, he built a house in the country and lived there for the rest of his life. Around this time his mature style began to emerge, less overtly patriotic and more concerned with “pure” music. The next 20 years were the most productive of Sibelius’s life, although, after the bleak tone poem Tapiola in 1926, he wrote little in his final three decades.
An austere, unsmiling, yet good-natured and humorous man, Sibelius found inspiration in the nature and landscape of his native Finland.
Total: 134
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (7) OTHER ORCHESTRAL (33)
1
2
2
3 10
7
15
CHAMBER (13)
2
1
1
9
PIANO (26)
2
4
8
12
DRAMATIC (15)
1
6
8
SONGS (15)
1
5
6
3
CHORAL (25)
2
11
4
8
1865
1875
1885
1895
1905
1915
1928
1957
318
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – SCA N DI NAV I A N
MUSIC
Finland had no significant tradition of art music before Sibelius, and so it is no surprise that his major early influence was Tchaikovsky. Most of the works up to the Violin Concerto (1903) are conspicuously late Romantic and somewhat Russian in tone, their individuality coming more from their overtly nationalist programme than any unusual musical characteristics. Gradually, however, Sibelius’s view of music – especially symphonic music – began to change. This is best illustrated by an oft-quoted conversation he had with Mahler, when the latter visited him in Helsinki in 1907. Discussing the most important aspects of a symphony, Sibelius admired “severity of style and the profound logic that creates an inner connection between all the motifs”. Mahler countered to the contrary that “the symphony must be like the world. It must embrace everything.” For Sibelius, the symphony was an organic
MILESTONES
1886 1889
Studies in Helsinki; befriends Busoni Begins studies in Europe
1892
Composes Kullervo, Op. 7, symphonic poem
1899
Composes Symphony No. 1, Op. 39; Finlandia, Op. 26, first performed
1902 1904
Symphony No. 2, Op. 43, composed Moves out of Helsinki
1907
Meets Mahler in Helsinki; composes Symphony No. 3, Op. 52
1909
Composes String Quartet Op. 56, “Voces intimae”
1914 1923 1924
Honorary doctorate from Yale Composes Symphony No. 6, Op. 104 Symphony No. 7, Op. 105, composed
1926
Composes symphonic poem Tapiola, Op. 112
form, growing naturally from its opening bars. It is not fanciful to hear the increasing influence of Finnish natural life in the rugged, starkly beautiful music of his late works.
KEY WORKS KULLERVO, OP. 7 TONE POEM
d 72:00
p5
SYMPHONY NO. 4, OP. 63 ocv
Kullervo is not normally counted as one of Sibelius’s symphonies, but it is certainly symphonic in scope. A huge work, this tone poem takes as its text portions of the Kalevala – an epic poem compiled by the writer Elias Lönnrot from Finnish folk sources – which was itself a cornerstone of the burgeoning 19th-century Finnish nationalist movement.
ORCHESTRAL
d 38:00
p4
o
This piece was written in 1911, during a period of personal difficulty for Sibelius. Still convalescing from an operation to remove a throat tumour, he was under pressure to compose from his new publisher. The symphony contains some of his most difficult, stark music, and was described even by the composer himself as a “psychological” work. TAPIOLA, OP. 112 TONE POEM
Much of Sibelius’s music refers to stories from Finnish mythology collected in the Kalevala, such as the story of Lemminkäinen’s mother in his Lemminkäinen Suite.
d 19:00
p1
o
Tapio is the god of the forest in the Kalevala, and Sibelius’s Tapiola is a symphonic poem depicting his dark, magical kingdom. This late work is a fine example of Sibelius’s organic approach to composition; most of the material evolves directly from the murky opening theme.
FOCUS
The now familiar version appeared in 1919, having been altered in significant respects, most especially In 1899, Sibelius wrote music to in the collapsing together of the first accompany a series of patriotic two movements. This piece remains tableaux depicting events in Finnish probably Sibelius’s most popular and history, exhibited as part of the Press accessible symphony, a good-natured Celebrations and intended as a statement of Finnish nationalism. Parts work that stands in total contrast to of the work were performed in concert the stark, brooding Symphony No. 4. later in the year, and the stirring finale, FIRST MOVEMENT (TEMPO MOLTO MODERATO – originally titled “Finland Awakes”, LARGAMENTE – ALLEGRO MODERATO 13:00) An soon became popular with audiences. opening section scored for wind, horns, The following year Sibelius revised the and drum presents the main theme, work as a stand-alone concert version. which is subsequently developed Finlandia opens with dramatic before a toccata-like section brings swells of brass and rumbling timpani, the movement to a grandiose close. immediately conjuring images of the SECOND MOVEMENT (ANDANTE MOSSO, QUASI wild Finnish landscape. This music ALLEGRETTO 8:00) The Andante is a set of is developed by the strings and variations on a simple, pastoral theme woodwind, before trumpet fanfares presented after a short introduction. usher in a livelier section derived from THIRD MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO MOLTO 9:00) the opening theme. This leads to the The finale is one of the most exciting famous “Finlandia Hymn”, sung first movements in Sibelius’s symphonic by the woodwind and then the strings, oeuvre. Its second main theme, played before the faster music returns to bring by the horn, was likened by one critic the work to a rousing conclusion. to Thor swinging his hammer. FINLANDIA, OP. 26 TONE POEM
d 8:30
p1
o
SYMPHONY NO. 5, OP. 82 ORCHESTRAL
d 30:00
p3
o
Originally written in 1915 and presented as part of his 50th birthday celebrations, Sibelius was unhappy with performances of this symphony and immediately set about revising it.
INFLUENCES
In stylistic terms, Sibelius’s influence on later composers is difficult to gauge since – along with the Danish composer Carl Nielsen – he represents the very end of a long tradition. However, his impact on Scandinavian music in general, and Finnish music in particular, was inestimable, as was his contribution to the development of the tone poem.
320
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – B R I T I SH
Elg
“There is music in the air. All you have to do is take as much as you require.” EDWARD ELGAR
321
E DWA R D E LGA R
Edward Elgar
gar b 1857–1934
n English
w 79
For many, Elgar will always be associated with the imperial optimism of the late Victorian and Edwardian ages. Yet, his works – like the man himself – are more complex than their bluff exterior often suggests. His music encompasses not only the outwardly confident tone of his grand public works, but also the intimate, spiritual outpourings of a deeply sensitive musician. He wrote relatively little after the death of his wife in 1920.
LIFE
One of the constants of Elgar’s life was his love for the countryside of his native Worcestershire and the Malvern Hills. He and his family returned many times to this part of England, where he had spent his early career as a freelance musician, regularly travelling the countryside to visit his piano pupils. It was one of these pupils, Caroline Alice Roberts, whom he later married and who gave him much of the encouragement he needed to concentrate more fully on composition. Despite initial difficulties in gaining national recognition as a composer, Elgar soon built up a solid reputation during the 1890s based on a series of choral works for festival performance. It was his “Enigma” Variations, however, that truly cemented his national reputation as a composer. Following this success, his other works were hugely anticipated: the masterly oratorio The Dream of Gerontius, the two symphonies, and the concertos for violin and cello, all of which confirmed his place at the forefront of British music. He often cast himself as an outsider due to his lack of academic training, his social status as the son of a shopkeeper, and his deep Roman Catholic faith in a largely Protestant society. Elgar was an extremely private man, never happier than when spending time with family or friends.
Elgar would often take music manuscripts from his father’s music shop into the countryside to study them, which forged his strong association between music and nature.
Total: 79
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (2)
2
CONCERTOS (3)
3
OTHER ORCHESTRAL (43) CHAMBER (19)
1
CHORAL (12)
1857
1880
3
5
13
14
5
8
2
3
6
4
2
1890
1900
1910
3
1920
5
1930
1934
322
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – B R I T I SH
MUSIC
A largely self-taught composer, Elgar absorbed elements of style from many different sources. There is a pervasive element of chromaticism in his music that adds colour and unexpected, yet innovative, turns of phrase. This fluid musical language allowed him, for example, to move easily between depictions of heaven and hell in The Dream of Gerontius, yet conversely also provided one of the biggest stumbling blocks for musicians attempting first performances of his works. Elgar was also a consummate master of orchestration, having learnt his skills as a young man in his role as a jobbing musician. Many of his scores, such as the Pomp and Circumstance Marches and other public and ceremonial works, are full of the opulent, Edwardian textures for
MILESTONES
1872
Leaves school; works as organist, piano teacher, conductor, and violinist
1889
Marries Caroline Alice Roberts
1890
Overture Froissart, Op. 19, performed at the Three Choirs Festival, Worcester
1899 1900 1904 1908 1910 1911 1919 1924
“Enigma” Variations, Op. 36 The Dream of Gerontius, Op. 38 Knighted Symphony No. 1, Op. 35 Violin Concerto, Op. 61 Writes Symphony No. 2, Op. 63 Cello Concerto, Op. 85, composed Appointed Master of the King’s Music
which he is best known. Other works, however, like the poignant miniatures in the Serenade for Strings, demonstrate his subtle understanding of the intimate in music.
KEY WORKS THE DREAM OF GERONTIUS, OP. 38 ORATORIO
d 95:00
p2
POMP AND CIRCUMSTANCE MARCH, OP. 39, NO. 1 cvo
Based on Cardinal Newman’s 1861 poem, The Dream of Gerontius portrays the death of an old man and his journey to rebirth in the next world. With its intensely moving operatic solos and imposing choruses depicting devils and angels, it has now become a regular fixture in the British choral repertoire.
ORCHESTRAL
d 6:00
p1
o
This ebullient and optimistic march (1901) was an immediate success. Its central section was later used by Elgar in his Coronation Ode of 1902 to the words of “Land of Hope and Glory”. SYMPHONY NO. 2, OP. 63 ORCHESTRAL
d 56:00
p4
o
Elgar’s joyous second symphony shows the composer in all his moods: noble, introverted, quixotic, and confident. The expansive second movement is particularly imposing. VIOLIN CONCERTO, OP. 61 ORCHESTRAL
English cellist Jacqueline du Pré (1945–87) won fame for her performances of Elgar’s Cello Concerto. Her life was tragically cut short by multiple sclerosis.
d 54:00
p3
os
Composed at the same time as the Symphony No. 2, the Violin Concerto is itself symphonic in conception. Elgar’s work demonstrates his subtle appreciation of the violin and develops a true musical partnership between soloist and orchestra.
323
E DWA R D E LGA R
FOCUS
XII). In the case of Sinclair, the music is not a portrait of the man himself, but of the organist’s bulldog, Dan. The most heartfelt variations describe Elgar’s wife, Caroline Alice Elgar (I); his publisher, August Jaeger (IX), whose majestic and brooding variation goes under the pseudonym of “Nimrod”, the hunter; and himself (XIV, forming the finale).
VARIATIONS ON AN ORIGINAL THEME (“ENIGMA”), OP. 36 d 30:00
ORCHESTRAL
p 15
o
Elgar brought an unusual personal touch to his variations, using his original theme as a prism through which can be glimpsed his “friends pictured within”. Over the course of 14 variations, Elgar provides musical character sketches of authors and poets (Richard Baxter Townshend in variation III, Richard Penrose Arnold, V), local dignitaries (William Meath Baker, IV; architect-pianist Troyte Griffith, VII), close friends (the calmness of Winifred Norbury, VIII; the delicate laugh of Dora Penny, X), and of course musicians (amateur pianist Hew David Steuart-Powell, II; violinist Isabel Fitton, VI; Hereford Cathedral organist George Robertson Sinclair, XI; amateur cellist Basil Nevinson, CELLO CONCERTO, OP. 85
SECOND MOVEMENT (LENTO – ALLEGRO
Querulous semiquavers and light, staccato orchestration mark the brief, elusive Scherzo. The last major composition that Elgar completed opens with an THIRD MOVEMENT (ADAGIO, 4:45) The anguished statement on the cello, cello takes centre stage in this momentarily soothed by the clarinet. almost continuous elegy. A subtle, lilting melody gains in FOURTH MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO – MODERATO – intensity to become the main theme, ALLEGRO, MA NON TROPPO, 10:45) The marchtaken up by the soloist and orchestra like main theme gives way to the in turn. Even the lighter moments in cello’s passionate ruminations. The the second subject are haunted by anguished statement from the first the inevitable return of the opening. movement reappears briefly. d 27:00
ORCHESTRAL
p4
os
MOLTO, 4:15)
FIRST MOVEMENT (ADAGIO – MODERATO, 7:15)
– Adagio; 2molto;Lento Allegro 3Ternary B flat minor; G major; form
– Moderato; 1EAdagio minor; Ternary form Second theme Intro A 1
B 2
3
5
6
Coda
Scherzo form A
4
– Moderato – Allegro, ma 4 Allegro non troppo; E minor; Sonata form
Scherzo 7
First theme played by strings, then soloist Introductory statement on cello
8
9
Lento
10
A 11
12
B 13
14
15
A 16
Intro 17
18
Cello is accompanied only by strings, clarinets, bassoons, and horns
A 19
B 20
A 21
22
B 23
24
A 25
C 26
27
28
29
Heart-rending phrase Cadenza from third movement Introductory statement from first movement
324
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – B R I T I SH
Sir Charles Stanford b 1852–1924
n Irish
Sir Granville Bantock
w c.300
b 1868–1946
At the Royal College of Music, in London, Stanford taught many future English composers. His religious music is familiar to Anglican churchgoers, and he also enjoyed success in Europe and the US, particularly with his Irish Symphony, which Mahler conducted in New York. His style is light and lyrical and definitely “British”, though his love of Ireland is revealed in his use of folk melodies. Stanford’s beautiful setting of Mary Coleridge’s “The Bluebird” is a well-known choral piece.
w 250
MILESTONES
MILESTONES
1879 1883 1887 1896 1910
n English
In between teaching at Birmingham University, travelling widely, and promoting the work of other composers, Bantock composed prodigiously: often works for large orchestra, but also brass band, choral, chamber, and piano pieces, and children’s songs. Though popular in his lifetime, his music has since fallen out of favour. It is characterized by uncomplicated harmonies and pseudo-Oriental or Celtic subjects. His tone poem Fifine at the Fair (1901) and overture Pierrot of the Minute are sometimes heard.
Writes Service in B Professor of composition at RCM Composes Symphony No. 3, “Irish” Shamus O’Brien, opera, performed Writes “The Bluebird”, part-song
1908 1915 1924 1928 1933
Writes Pierrot of the Minute, overture Composes Hebridean Symphony The Seal Woman, Celtic folk opera Pagan Symphony performed Writes Prometheus for brass band
Sir Hubert Parry b 1848–1918
n English
Parry’s stirring Blake setting “Jerusalem”, written in 1916, is one of the most familiar pieces of music in England, and shows his imaginative, craftsmanlike style. Educated, in the upper-middle-class way, at Eton and Oxford, Parry was a musical amateur working in insurance until he was almost 30. However, he rose to become a major figure in the revitalizing Parry’s rousing and noble unison song “Jerusalem” – a setting of words from William Blake’s Preface to Milton – became almost a second British national anthem during and after World War I.
w c.200
of English music: as a scholar working on the new Grove Dictionary of Music; as a professor at the Royal College of Music (and later at Oxford University); and as a highly accomplished composer. His first major success was the cantata Blest Pair of Sirens, which established him as one of England’s leading composers and resulted in a string of commissions – plus a knighthood and baronetcy. Although an avowed agnostic, he produced some of Britain’s finest sacred choral music. MILESTONES
1877 1880 1883 1887 1888 1898 1900 1908 1916
Leaves Lloyd’s of London Prometheus Unbound performed Professor of music history at RCM Composes Blest Pair of Sirens, cantata Judith, oratorio, performed Receives knighthood Becomes professor of music at Oxford Created a baronet Writes Songs of Farewell
325
NATI O NA L SCH O O L S – B R I T I SH
Ethel Mary Smyth b 1858–1944
n English
Born into a military family, Smyth was a battler: a persistent champion of women’s causes, and of her own vigorous, ideasfilled works. Against her parents’ wishes, she studied music in Leipzig, where she gained private and public success with early pieces. Back in England, “E M Smyth’s” orchestral works impressed critics, but she struggled to have her
w c.100
operas staged. Germany premiered many, but World War I closed that avenue. A prominent member of the suffrage movement, Smyth had intense love affairs with women of note. She gained official recognition in her 60s – as conductor, broadcaster, writer, and campaigner, as well as for her revived music – but sadly, deafness stopped her composing. MILESTONES
1877
Studies in Leipzig, Germany
1890
Debut of orchestral works, Crystal Palace, south London
1906
The Wreckers, opera, premiered in Leipzig
1911
Writes “The March of the Women”, suffragette anthem Made a dame
1922
When jailed at London’s Holloway Prison in 1912, Smyth led her fellow suffragettes in “The March of the Women”, conducting with her Government-issue toothbrush.
Samuel Coleridge-Taylor
Roger Quilter
b 1875–1912
b 1877–1953
n English
w c.160
The son of a black father, from Sierra Leone, and a white English mother, Coleridge-Taylor fought racial prejudice all his life, but musically enjoyed great respect – from Elgar among others – and popularity: his Hiawatha’s Wedding Feast was England’s most-performed choral work for ten years. His accomplished, sweetly Romantic style became unfashionable after his premature death from pneumonia, but is now enjoying a small revival. MILESTONES
1890 1899
Studies violin at RCM Writes Hiawatha’s Wedding Feast
1903
Becomes professor of composition at Trinity College, London
1904 1906 1907
Compose 24 Negro Melodies Tours US; meets President Roosevelt Writes Thelma, opera
n English
w 125
Trained in Germany, but English in style, Quilter was a shy, cultured, and welltravelled man from a moneyed family, with a wide circle of artistic friends. He was known in England as a songwriter – many of his works were performed by the major singers of the early 1900s. However, frequent illness meant composing was more difficult than seemingly effortless results suggest. His wealth may have diminished when he was blackmailed about his homosexuality, but he had used it generously to help Jewish friends flee Austria before World War II. MILESTONES
1905
Composes To Julia, song cycle
1922
Children’s Overture included in first broadcasted BBC concert
326
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – B R I T I SH
Frederick Delius b 1862–1934
n English
w c.120
Although Delius spent the majority of his life abroad, he is generally remembered as a quintessentially English composer who wrote evocative and timeless orchestral tone poems. The mountainous wilderness of Scandinavia, the tropical orange plantations of Florida, and the delicate beauty of rural France all find a place in the haunting and harmonious music of this truly cosmopolitan composer. LIFE AND MUSIC
Enamoured of music from a very young age, it soon became clear that, despite the wishes of his family, Frederick Delius was not destined to become a businessman, but would make music his life’s work. Studying in Leipzig, and eventually settling in France, Delius produced a succession of outstanding orchestral works – particularly in the first decade of the 20th century – which show the influence of Wagner and Grieg. In
later years, Delius’s music was championed by the conductor Sir Thomas Beecham, even as his debilitating illness made it necessary for him to dictate his final works through his amanuensis, Eric Fenby. MILESTONES
1884
Takes on an orange plantation at Solano Grove, Florida
1886 1887 1897 1901 1903 1904 1908 1912 1914
Studies at Leipzig Conservatory Composes Florida Suite Moves to Grez-sur-Loing Writes A Village Romeo and Juliet, opera Marries German painter Jelka Rosen Composes Sea Drift, choral work Writes In a Summer Garden for orchestra On Hearing the First Cuckoo in Spring Requiem to text by Frederick Nietzsche
Delius and his wife, Jelka, made their home in Grez-sur-Loing, near Fontainebleau, and received a steady stream of friends and admirers.
KEY WORKS BRIGG FAIR – AN ENGLISH RHAPSODY ORCHESTRAL
d 19:00
p1
o
Introduced to the Lincolnshire folk song “Brigg Fair” by his friend Percy Grainger, Delius used it as the basis of a series of orchestral variations. IN A SUMMER GARDEN ORCHESTRAL
d 15:00
p1
o
Inspired by Delius’s own charming garden in Grez-sur-Loing, this evocative work even has a central
episode to represent the gentle River Loing. The piece is dedicated to the composer’s wife – painter and avid gardener Jelka Rosen. VIOLIN SONATA NO. 3 DUO
p3
e
This was one of Delius’s last works, and was completed with the assistance of Eric Fenby. It was first played to the composer by the celebrated British violinist May Harrison, accompanied by pianist and composer Arnold Bax.
327
F R E DE R I CK DE L I US
FOCUS A MASS OF LIFE CHORAL
d 100:00
p2
ocv
One of Delius’s most ambitious works, this choral masterpiece was completed in 1905 and is a wholly secular affirmation of humanity – although even here there are moments of unease and despair. The text was carefully compiled by Delius and the German conductor Fritz Cassirer from Friedrich Nietzsche’s Also Sprach Zarathustra. Together they selected a balanced sequence of 11 soliloquies that were particularly well suited to Delius’s musical temperament. It is a huge and vigorous work with powerful choral writing and some imaginative orchestration, particularly in the evocative “Night Song”. THE WALK TO THE PARADISE GARDEN ORCHESTRAL
d 10:00
p1
o
This piece began life as an intermezzo in Delius’s opera A Village Romeo and Juliet, which was based on a short story by the Swiss writer Gottfried Keller. Like the Shakespearean tragedy, the story tells of two families at odds over the rights to a piece of land between their farms. Despite the farmers’ enmity, their children, Sali and Vreli, begin to meet in secret, and eventually fall in love. The purpose of the intermezzo was to smooth the transition between scenes for a Berlin production of the opera in 1907, and represented Sali and Vreli making their way to the Paradise Garden, a run-down inn that stood on the disputed piece of land. Delius’s music captures the very essence of the opera as the two leading characters come to terms with their hopeless situation of forbidden love. Although the opera is seldom performed now, the intermezzo is a popular favourite of the concert hall.
ON HEARING THE FIRST CUCKOO IN SPRING CHAMBER
d 8:00
p1
o
Written for small orchestra, this is one of two pieces composed by Delius between 1911 and 1912, the other being Summer Night on the River. In each work, the composer’s colourful orchestration is strikingly suggestive of a pastoral idyll in France that appealed strongly to the English imagination; the subtle rhythms and instrumentation create a benign sense of rural tranquillity. As its title clearly implies, On Hearing the First Cuckoo in Spring is liberally interspersed with the call of the cuckoo, represented in the ensemble by the clarinet. The piece also introduces a Norwegian folk song, “In Ola valley, in Ola dale”, which Delius found in a collection published by Grieg as Norske Folkeviser.
328
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – B R I T I SH
“What we want in England is real music, even if it be only a music-hall song.” RALPH VAUGHAN WILLIAMS IN THE VOCALIST, 1902
329
R AL P H VAUGH A N W I L L I A M S
Ralph Vaughan Williams b 1872–1958
n English
w 82
A child of the late 19th century who received his training at the hands of the Victorian founders of the English musical renaissance, Ralph Vaughan Williams became one of the key British composers of the 20th century. Influenced by traditions as varied as English folk song and Tudor polyphony, he composed prolifically in many genres and continued to explore his own distinct musical style until well into his 80s.
LIFE
Although born into an affluent, professional family and educated both at Cambridge and London’s Royal College of Music, Vaughan Williams firmly believed that music was for everyone. A socialist at heart, his dedication to music at all levels led him to devote his energies not only to the sophisticated high art of the symphony, but also to the simple beauty of everyday music like folk song and church hymns. He is often credited with leading the English “pastoral” school of composers and it is true that some of his works, such as The Lark Ascending, the English Folksong Suite, and Fantasia on “Greensleeves” are infused with this style. He was, however, a Londoner and an urbanite, and scores for his symphonies and film music are as challenging and sophisticated as those of any 20th-century European composer. Despite his prolific output, Vaughan Williams’s creativity matured slowly. He was highly critical of his works, revising them until he was absolutely satisfied, and often shared sketches with his great friend Holst, whom he trusted to give honest opinions on his current music projects. An acknowledged agnostic, he nevertheless used Christian themes and morality as the basis for many works, including his opera The Pilgrim’s Progress, based on Bunyan’s novel.
Vaughan Williams was of the great setters of English poetry, and vocal music comprises a large part of his output.
Total: 82
MUSICAL OUTPUT SYMPHONIES (9)
1
2
1
2
3
CONCERTOS (9)
1
2
2
1
3
1
4
3
8
5
3
1
1
5
OTHER ORCHESTRAL (24)
3
CHAMBER (8)
4
OPERAS (11) CHORAL (21)
2 1872
1900
1 1910
1920
3
2
3
9 1930
6
1940
1950
1958
330
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – B R I T I SH
MUSIC
Vaughan Williams’s study at the Royal College of Music with Hubert Parry, Charles Villiers Stanford, and Charles Wood provided him with a thorough foundation in contemporary German music. His own compositional voice, however, was also inspired by the music of earlier traditions, such as the simplicity and directness of English folk songs and the modal music he encountered while editing The English Hymnal in 1904. He blended these elements with other styles and techniques – such as 16th-century polyphony and harmony, Baroque counterpoint, and the delicacy of French orchestration learnt from Ravel – into his own musical language in his mid-30s. During his long life, Vaughan Williams composed in almost every genre and was still active in his 80s when the creativity of many similarly long-lived composers had long since dried up.
MILESTONES
1890 1892
Enrols at the Royal College of Music Enrols at Trinity College, Cambridge
1895
Further study at the Royal College of Music; meets Gustav Holst
1897
Studies with Bruch in Berlin
1903
Collects first folk song, “Bushes and Briars”
1904 1908
Music editor of The English Hymnal Studies with Ravel in Paris
1910
A Sea Symphony and Fantasia on a Theme by Thomas Tallis composed
1914 1922
A London Symphony; The Lark Ascending Writes Mass in G minor
1923
Fantasia on a Theme by Thomas Tallis revised
1924
Writes Hugh the Drover
1940
Composes music for the film 49th Parallel
1943 1951 1953 1954
Symphony No. 5 composed Writes The Pilgrim’s Progress Sinfonia Antartica produced Tours US
KEY WORKS THE LARK ASCENDING ORCHESTRAL
d 15:00
p1
os
Taking George Meredith’s poem as the inspiration for this one-movement work for violin and orchestra, Vaughan Williams created exquisitely beautiful music that draws upon the contours of English folksong. Weightless cadenzas for the violin that disappear into the distance act as both prologue and epilogue. It was written in 1914 and revised in 1920.
MASS IN G MINOR MASS
d 24:00
p5
cv
This complete setting of the Mass for solo quartet and unaccompanied chorus makes use of the seamless, sinuous technique of 15th-century polyphony much admired by Vaughan Williams. It was first used liturgically by Sir Richard Terry and the choir of Westminster Cathedral. SINFONIA ANTARTICA ORCHESTRAL
d 39:00
p5
ocv
Based on material used for his score to the film Scott of the Antarctic (1949), this work shows Vaughan Williams the orchestrator at his best. Peppered with colourful percussion of all kinds, the Sinfonia portrays the stormy and changeable world of the Antarctic. Vaughan Williams used a vibraphone in his Symphony No. 8. Invented in the US at the beginning of the 20th century, it was used mainly by jazz musicians.
R AL P H VAUGH A N W I L L I A M S
331
FOCUS FANTASIA ON A THEME BY THOMAS TALLIS ORCHESTRAL
d 17:00
p1
oe
There are few works in the repertoire that are so arresting and can match the depth of sonority found in Vaughan Williams’s Fantasia on a Theme by Thomas Tallis. Composed for double string orchestra and solo quartet, it is based on the third tune in the Phrygian mode, “Why fum’th in fight?”, that Thomas Tallis contributed to Archbishop Parker’s Psalter of 1567. Vaughan Williams first encountered the melody when editing The English Hymnal. Written in one continuous movement, the Fantasia begins quietly as Tallis’s melody is picked out in pizzicato notes by the lower strings against an ethereal, sustained note in the violins. The theme is soon taken up by the larger ensemble with a fuller accompaniment before more intimate sections in which members of the solo quartet take elements of the theme, weaving independently against each other between interpolations from the larger ensemble in the manner of a concerto grosso. SYMPHONY NO. 5 ORCHESTRAL
d 35:00
p4
o
FIRST MOVEMENT (PRELUDIO, MODERATO)
Scored for a smaller orchestra than Vaughan Williams had used previously, this symphony uses musical material the composer had earmarked for his (then incomplete) opera based on Bunyan’s The Pilgrim’s Progress that had occupied him for almost 40 years. SECOND MOVEMENT (SCHERZO, PRESTO)
The brief Scherzo passes quickly, yet demonstrates that Vaughan Williams’s studies in orchestration with Ravel were hugely influential, with chorale-like moments for the brass and muted strings supporting a delicate and light texture peppered
INFLUENCES
One of the most important English composers of the 20th century, Ralph Vaughan Williams made a huge contribution to the development of classical music. Benjamin Britten owes him a particular debt, as does Gustav Holst and numerous film composers, including Jerry Goldsmith.
with ubiquitous cross-rhythms. THIRD MOVEMENT (ROMANZA, LENTO)
It is only in the Romanza that the composer allowed parallels to be drawn with the music for The Pilgrim’s Progress, since it uses material destined for the scenes portraying “The House Beautiful” in the opera. As the true heart of the symphony, the music is heartfelt, expansive, and wistful. FOURTH MOVEMENT (PASSACAGLIA, MODERATO)
The final movement, a joyous ending to a meditative work, is cast in the mould of a passacaglia with its static, repeating ground bass while the other instruments provide rhythmic and melodic interest above.
332
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – B R I T I SH
Gustav Holst b 1874–1934
n English
w c.120
Mainly remembered as the composer of The Planets, Gustav Holst was a true musical eclectic. He approached every composition from a fresh angle and drew his inspiration from sources as diverse as astrology, English folk song, Sanskrit poetry, Algerian melodies, and the poetry of Thomas Hardy. He was also a natural teacher with an ability to inspire the minds of children and adults alike. LIFE AND MUSIC
Like his lifelong friend Ralph Vaughan Williams, Holst studied composition at the Royal College of Music with Charles Stanford, a leading figure in the 19th-century renaissance of British music. After working as a trombonist and repetiteur, Holst became director of music at St Paul’s Girls’ School and also taught adults at Morley College, both in London. At the root of his music – mainly composed during the school holidays – is rhythm, and many of his works are based on ostinato patterns. His colourful harmonic style blends traditional tonality with inventive combinations of chords and spare, open intervals, giving his music a truly distinctive voice within his era.
MILESTONES
1895
Meets Vaughan Williams
1896
Becomes conductor of the Hammersmith Socialist Choir
1905
Appointed director of music at St Paul’s Girls’ School, Hammersmith
1906 1907 1908 1910 1913 1917 1920 1922 1927
Composes Somerset Rhapsody Joins staff of Morley College Visits Algeria Writes Beni Mora (Oriental Suite) Composes St Paul’s Suite for his pupils Composes The Hymn of Jesus The Planets premiered Completes The Perfect Fool, opera Composes Egdon Heath, tone poem
1932
Given a visiting lectureship at Harvard University
KEY WORKS THE HYMN OF JESUS CHORAL
d 21:00
p1
oc
This joyous and popular work combines Latin plainsong chants with Holst’s hallmark irregular rhythms, colourful harmony, and lush orchestration to portray the text from the Apocryphal Acts of St John, translated by the composer from the original.
BALLET MUSIC FROM THE PERFECT FOOL BALLET SUITE
d 11:00
p4
o
The popular ballet music from Holst’s one-act comic opera is now regularly featured in concert programmes. It is split into three dances, one each for the Spirits of Earth, Water, and Fire. These are conjured by a wizard evoked by a trombone. Earth has a low bass tune, Water a stately dance, and Fire a lively caper. Salisbury Plain was the inspiration for the Egdon Heath Thomas Hardy described in his novel The Return of the Native. In turn, this inspired Holst to write his austere tone poem Edgon Heath, considered one of his best works.
FOCUS URANUS , THE MAGICIAN (ALLEGRO, 6:00)
THE PLANETS ORCHESTRAL SUITE
d 49:00
p7
oc
Not so much a portrayal of the planets as celestial bodies as of the human traits they embody, Holst’s astrologically inspired orchestral suite has always enjoyed great popularity. MARS , THE BRINGER OF WAR (ALLEGRO, 7:00) Mars opens with a menacing fivebeats-in-a-bar ostinato over which music surges in waves through the orchestra with rising intensity before a sudden and abrupt ending. VENUS , THE BRINGER OF PEACE (ADAGIO, 8:00) In stark contrast to Mars, the mood of Venus is one of sensuous longing. Harps and woodwind solos emphasize the goddess’s gentleness. MERCURY, THE WINGED MESSENGER (VIVACE, 4:00) Quicksilver reactions and sparkling agility characterize Mercury, a brief and light scherzo movement. JUPITER , THE BRINGER OF JOLLITY (ALLEGRO GIOCOSO, 8:00) While depicting the majesty of this heavenly giant, the orchestra also emphasizes Jupiter’s jovial spirit. The central, broad sweep of melody was later used for the popular hymn “I vow to thee, my country”. SATURN , THE BRINGER OF OLD AGE (ADAGIO, 9:00) Beside the heartiness of Jupiter, the senility of Saturn is pulled into sharp focus. Tired, repeated patterns and heavy chords add weight to a solemn dirge on the brass.
Beginning with four striking brass notes that act as Holst’s musical calling card, this movement shows the quirky and changeable nature of the human spirit. NEPTUNE , THE MYSTIC (ANDANTE, 7:00) As he reaches the outer edges of the solar system and the human psyche (Pluto had not yet been discovered), Holst allows mysterious harmonies and a wordless, off-stage chorus of female voices to fade into nothingness. ST PAUL’S SUITE ORCHESTRAL
d 11:00
p4
o
This joyful, four-movement work was composed for the young string players of the school at which Holst taught for most of his life. JIG (VIVACE 3:00) The main theme is first played in unison by the upper strings. OSTINATO (PRESTO, 1:00) Based on a repeating pattern heard high in the violins, this movement is a lightfooted scherzo. INTERMEZZO (ANDANTE CON MOTO – VIVACE, 4:00)
A broad, lingering melody is interrupted twice by a frantic melody that Holst heard on a visit to Algeria. FINALE : THE DARGASON (ALLEGRO, 3:00) The finale takes us firmly back to London as two old English melodies, “The Dargason” (a dance tune) and “Greensleeves”, are combined in the finale to the suite.
334
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – B R I T I SH
John Ireland b 1879–1962
n English
w c.100
A pianist and composer in equal measure, Ireland originally trained as a performer, but gravitated towards composition in his teens. His mature musical voice is distinctive among British composers, reminiscent of the impressionistic style developed in France by Debussy and Ravel. Although he wrote for orchestral and chamber forces, Ireland’s main compositional legacy is for his own instrument, the piano. LIFE AND MUSIC Having spent eight years studying at the Royal College of Music in London from his early adolescence, it is unsurprising that Ireland devoted most of his life to teaching, performance, and composition. His works often have a real sense of place that reflects the inspiration he found in the countryside and his enduring association with county of Sussex and the Channel Islands. Ireland was particularly drawn to the verse of English poets, such as Alfred Edward Housman and Thomas Hardy. Ireland’s thorough compositional training under Charles Stanford is reflected in his detailed and disciplined craftsmanship and his ear for tonal colour.
MILESTONES
1893
Studies piano at the Royal College of Music; loses both parents
1904 1908
Becomes organist at St Luke’s, London Composes Phantasie Trio
1909
Violin Sonata No. 1 wins the Cobbett Prize
1917 1920 1927 1930 1936 1937 c.1947
Writes The Forgotten Rite for orchestra Composes Piano Sonata Sonatina for piano premiered Writes Piano Concerto in E flat major Writes A London Overture in B flat major These Things Shall Be, for orchestra Film score for The Overlanders released
KEY WORKS SONATINA SOLO PIANO
d 10:00
p3
s
It is possible to hear Ireland himself as pianist in this delicate work. A masterly Moderato opening is followed by a deeply sombre Lento, culminating in a bubbling and rhythmic Rondo. PIANO CONCERTO IN E FLAT MAJOR ORCHESTRAL
d 26:00
p3
os
When Ireland heard the young pianist Helen Perkin play Prokofiev’s Third Piano Concerto in 1930, he was so struck by her skill that he adapted his own Piano Concerto, making alterations to accommodate her small hands. Ireland took great delight in the English countryside, absorbing its mellow colours, soft tones, and lyrical sounds, which emerged in his music.
Cast in the traditional three-movement concerto format, it still remains true to Ireland’s characteristic, delicate style. A LONDON OVERTURE IN B FLAT MAJOR ORCHESTRAL
d 12:00
p1
o
Adapted from a comedy overture for brass, this orchestral version retains comic notes. A slow start leads to the main melody, based on a bus conductor’s cry of “Piccadilly!”
335
NATI O NA L SCH O O L S – B R I T I SH
Arnold Bax b 1883–1953
n English
w c.300
Early in his studies, Bax’s imagination was fired by the work of the Irish poet W B Yeats, whose Celtic verse and imagery provided the inspiration for some of the composer’s most exquisite and atmospheric tone poems, such as The Garden of Fand and Tintagel. The breadth of his output, rivalling that of the recently acclaimed Vaughan Williams, has put Bax and his music back on the map. LIFE AND MUSIC Coming from an affluent family, Bax always had his own private income and never had to earn his living through teaching or performing. Once he had discovered his affinity for W B Yeats and his The Celtic Twilight, Bax’s music developed rapidly, and he also published his own novels under the pseudonym Dermot O’Byrne. His atmospheric tone poems, written during World War I, evoke the magic of nature, reflecting the Romantic mood of Richard Strauss and the impressionistic style of Debussy. By contrast, the lush, evocative music of his
seven symphonies – each with three, rather than the more usual four, movements – incorporates the clarity and counterpoint he learned from Sibelius. MILESTONES
1893
Taken to concerts at the Crystal Palace, Sydenham, by his father
1900 1910 1917 1919 1922 1937 1939
Enrols at the Royal Academy of Music Visits Russia Writes November Woods, tone poem Composes Tintagel, tone poem Writes Symphony No. 1 Receives knighthood Symphony No. 7 premiered
The otherworldly beauty of the Celtic landscape, with its luminous skies and ancient stones, inspired the rhapsodic effects in Bax’s tone poems.
KEY WORKS THIS WORLDES JOIE CHORAL
d 10:00
p1
c
This piece for unaccompanied choir, from 1923, takes its words from a 14thcentury English prayer. The music builds from wistful homophonic textures in the first verse to passionate counterpoint underpinned by an insistent ostinato that is silenced only by the final note. TINTAGEL ORCHESTRAL
d 15:00
p1
o
This confident, evocative orchestral tone poem captures the powerful, elemental nature of the rough sea off the coast of
Tintagel in Cornwall, set against the Arthurian story of Tristram and Iseult. It quotes briefly from Wagner’s staged version of the legend and also mirrors Bax’s passion for the pianist Harriet Cohen, whom he had met in 1912. SYMPHONY NO. 6 ORCHESTRAL
d 40:00
p3
o
It is hard to choose just one of the seven symphonies that Bax wrote between 1922 and 1939, but No. 6, from 1934, and dedicated to the conductor Adrian Boult, is a model of focused musical thought showing Bax at his peak.
336
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – B R I T I SH
George Butterworth b 1885–1916
n English
Arthur Bliss w 15
In the English folk song revival of the early 1900s, no one set A E Housman’s lyrical poetry to music better than Butterworth, depicting the English countryside with haunting simplicity. A popular man, Butterworth was also a renowned folk dancer and collected folk songs. In World War I he received a Military Cross for bravery in battle shortly before his death, and left a tiny output of high quality and unfulfilled promise. MILESTONES
1906 1911
Starts collecting folk songs Writes A Shropshire Lad, six songs
1912
Composes Bredon Hill, songs, and Shropshire Lad, rhapsody
1913 1914 1916
Banks of Green Willow, idyll, orchestra Joins Durham Light Infantry Killed in action, Somme, 5 August
Gerald Finzi b 1901–1956
n English
n English
w 200
In some ways a natural successor to Elgar, whom he knew at Cambridge, Bliss wrote music that reflected his warm and outgoing personality. He served in World War I, and wrote his choral symphony Morning Heroes as a heartfelt tribute to those who died. Mixing modern and Romantic ideas, he skilfully matched his music to the purpose or the players, from brilliantly orchestrated, dramatic work for the ballet Checkmate to simple pieces suitable for amateur choirs or brass bands. MILESTONES
1922 1935 1953
Composes Colour Symphony Writes Things to Come, film score Master of the Queen’s Musick
1969
Composes music for the investiture of Prince Charles
Peter Warlock w 50
Finzi lived simply with his artist wife in rural Hampshire, and an individual, but English, accent runs through much of his music. When setting words, such as Hardy’s verse, he captured the essential atmosphere perfectly. His songs for piano and voice work beautifully, though he was neither a singer nor an accomplished pianist. Hospitable, yet introspective, Finzi was also a notable scholar and researcher, and his amateur orchestra promoted many new composers and performers. MILESTONES
c.1926 1930 1938 1949 1956
b 1891–1975
Writes Dies natalis, cantata Teaches at Royal Academy of Music Intimations of Immortality, choral work Writes Clarinet Concerto, Op. 31 Composes Cello Concerto, Op. 40
b 1894–1930
n English
w 125
Philip Heseltine was educated at Eton but received only an informal musical education. He enjoyed a lasting creative friendship with Delius, though his other relationships were often difficult, and he won public acclaim for the solo songs he wrote under the pseudonym Peter Warlock. A great admirer of early English music, he edited over 500 works, and set many songs in an idiosyncratic style, with influences from medieval music to Bartók. MILESTONES
1911 1918
Meets Delius Involved in occult in Dublin
1920
Edits The Sackbut, controversial music magazine
1922 Writes The Curlew, song cycle c.1926 Capriol Suite, orchestra, published 1930 Dies in gas-filled flat, possibly suicide
337
NATI O NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
Edouardo Lalo b 1823–1892
n French
w c.70
Lalo’s robust and inventive compositions impressed few people for most of his life. He worked as a teacher and violinist, playing in a string quartet and writing overlooked chamber music and an unperformed opera. But in his 50s, when his colleague Sarasate played Lalo’s violin concerto and Symphonie espagnole (his most popular work today), his reputation grew, and other orchestral works were performed to great acclaim. MILESTONES
1839 Abandons home to study in Paris c.1850 Writes two piano trios 1873
Composes Symphonie espagnole, violin and orchestra
1882 1887
Namouna, ballet, performed Symphony in G minor published
1888
Le Roi d’Ys, opera, triumphs at Opéra-Comique
In 1888 Lalo’s opera Le Roi d’Ys was performed seven years after its composition. It was popular and brought him the success he had hoped for.
Félix-Alexandre Guilmant
Cécile Chaminade
b 1837–1911
b 1857–1944
n French
w 100
It was inevitable that an outstanding organist such as Guilmant would settle in Paris, with its magnificent CavailléColl organs. As an energetic organ recitalist across Europe and America, known for his precision and clarity as well as his versatility in managing unfamiliar organs, he popularized and broadened the repertoire, exploring the work of both forgotten early composers and his gifted contemporaries. Guilmant succeeded Widor as organ professor at the Paris Conservatoire, and his compositional output includes eight attractive sonatas. MILESTONES
1871 1875 1902
Becomes organist at Sainte-Trinité Composes Organ Sonata No. 1 Organ Sonata No. 7 published
n French
w 400
Polished, colourful, witty, and typically French, Chaminade’s music – much of it piano pieces or mélodies – was highly saleable. Popular in both England and the US, recognition in France was slower, and she often had to battle against negative perceptions of female composers. A large proportion of her 400 works were published in her lifetime, but her late-Romantic style faded in popularity after her death. MILESTONES
1880 1888 1892 1896 1908
Writes Piano Trio No. 1 Composes Callirhöe, ballet Makes her London debut Concertstück, Op. 40, published Tours US to financial success
1913
First woman composer to be awarded the Légion d’Honneur
338
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
Camille Saint-Saëns b 1835–1921
n French
w 420
A composer, pianist and organist, as well as being erudite in other fields, Saint-Saëns was one of the most significant French cultural figures of the 19th century. His long life and music career encompassed the Romantic era and its transition into the modern age. He acted as a vital bridge between the French light-opera tradition and the new Romantic dawn of Wagner, while advocating a Classical renaissance. LIFE AND MUSIC
As a child prodigy, Saint-Saëns was hailed as the French Mozart. Classically inclined, but an admirer of Liszt and Wagner, he was influential in promoting new French music, although he rejected its later developments. His style was admired for its technical fluency, clarity of form, and sober elegance, but also charged with superficiality. However, there is much imagination, charm and melodic inspiration in his vast and versatile output, which includes symphonies, concertos, chamber works for often unusual combinations, organ music, operas, secular and sacred vocal music, and songs.
MILESTONES
1846 1851
Official debut as solo pianist Enters Paris Conservatoire
1857
Appointed organist at La Madeleine; retains prestigious post for 20 years
1867
Writes Les noces de Prométhée, cantata, his first success
1868 1871 1875 1877 1880
Composes Piano Concerto No. 2 Co-founds National School of Music Composes Danse macabre Opera Samson et Dalila premiered Composes Violin Concerto No. 3
1886
Composes “Organ” Symphony and Carnival of the Animals
1915
Goes on triumphant American tour
KEY WORKS DANSE MACABRE SYMPHONIC POEM
d 7:30
p1
o
Saint-Saëns’s most famous symphonic poem is a quintessential blend of fantastical imagination and Classical rigour. At midnight, skeletons (depicted by xylophones, used for the first first time in Classical music) emerge from their graves to dance in a churchyard. SYMPHONY NO. 3, “ORGAN” ORCHESTRAL
d36:00 p2 o s
Saint-Saëns’s most ambitious symphonic work initiated a renaissance of this
genre in France. Evolving rather than transforming the traditional fourmovement form, it has two long movements, each in two sections. The organ appears in the second movement. VIOLIN CONCERTO NO. 3 IN B MINOR ORCHESTRAL
d 29:00 p 3 o s
This fine French violin concerto deftly combines heroic themes, lyrical poetry, and swashbuckling virtuosity – a masterly fusion of varied influences. Saint-Saëns’s lifelong interest in lepidoptery began in childhood. His musical talents were also evident early on: he started composing at five.
CA M I L L E SA I N T- SA Ë N S
339
FOCUS
The Hebrews lament the betrayal of his people and their God for a woman. This opera was promoted by Liszt, who SCENE TWO (25:00) At the bacchanalia in organized its 1877 premiere in Weimar, the temple, Samson is taunted by the but its biblical subject was balked at by high priest and Dalila. Samson pleads the French public until 1892. Its novel with God to restore his strength and combination of a grand symphonic brings the temple crashing down. style and memorable set pieces drew criticism from reactionary quarters, but LE CARNAVAL DES ANIMAUX made it much loved by a wider public. INSTRUMENTAL d 22:30 p 14 e Samson exemplifies the dual Saint-Saëns did not design his “Grand tendencies of the composer’s style, the Zoological Fantasy” for general oratorio-like first act suggesting the performance. In fact, worried that it influence of Bach and Handel, while might compromise his reputation as a the more dramatic and lyrical second serious composer, he banned it from and third acts are in line with the concerts altogether, excepting the 13th tradition of Meyerbeer and Gounod. movement, “The Swan”. The ban was only lifted by a provision in his will. A ACT ONE (47:00) Refusing to worship the Philistines’ deity, Dagon, Samson leads royal lion, hens and cocks, tortoises, a Hebrew uprising. Despite warnings, an elephant, kangaroos, an aquarium, birds, donkeys, pianists (told to play he is seduced by the beguiling Dalila. like beginners), fossils, and a swan are ACT TWO (42:00) The Philistine high all described in The Carnival of the priest orders Dalila to extract from Samson the secret of his strength. She Animals before a rousing finale. The work includes joking references to appeals to Samson to put love above other composers’ music and his own his god or people, and to confide his secret to her. He refuses at first, but is Danse macabre. “The Aquarium” and the finale are especially popular with the then persuaded to follow her into her public, and the cello melody in “The house. Dalila allows the Swan” is one of the most famous in all Philistine soldiers to enter. Classical music. ACT THREE , SCENE ONE (11:00) Samson turns a treadmill in prison, blinded and shorn. SAMSON ET DALILA OPERA
d 125:00
p3
ocv
340
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
Gabriel Fauré b 1845–1924
n French
w c.255
Unlike his mentor, Saint-Saëns, Fauré singularly succeeded in staying in tune with the artistic developments of his times, whilst retaining his own highly distinctive Romantic essence. Composer of a famous Requiem and widely regarded as master of the French song, he also created a very fine body of chamber and piano music. His gift for melody has tended to obscure the introspective, impassioned depth of his music. LIFE AND MUSIC
The son of a country schoolmaster, Fauré was a protégé of Saint-Saëns’s and took over from him as organist of the Church of La Madeleine in Paris. Prevented by financial struggles from composing regularly, his success was long in coming. While not obviously revolutionary, the stylistic independence that made him adaptable to the huge musical changes of his time also provoked the antagonism of reactionary peers. However, he was surprisingly made director of the Conservatoire and became venerated as the grand old man of French music. His musical spirit evolved from the sensuality of his youth to a darker, then a more forceful, and eventually a sparser style.
MILESTONES
1861
Becomes Saint-Saëns’s piano student
1871
Participates in foundation of the Société Nationale de Musique
1875 1876 1877 1887 1893
Composes Piano Sonata, Op. 13 Composes Violin Sonata No. 1 Made choirmaster at La Madeleine “Clair de lune”, Op. 46, No. 2, song Completes La bonne chanson, song cycle
1896
Becomes composition teacher at Paris Conservatoire
1898 1900 1903 1905 1913 1921
Composes Pelléas et Mélisande, suite Completes Requiem Experiences early signs of deafness Made director of Paris Conservatoire Pénélope, opera, premiered Writes Nocturne No. 13, for piano
KEY WORKS PELLÉAS ET MÉLISANDE INCIDENTAL MUSIC
d 20:30
p5
o
Fauré was commissioned to set incidental music for the English premiere of Maeterlinck’s Symbolist play of 1892, Pelléas et Mélisande, while Debussy was working on his own operatic version of it. The quasi-fairy tale concerns Princess Mélisande’s doomed Fauré’s lyric drama Penelope was a success in Monte Carlo in 1913, but is now little heard.
love for her husband’s younger brother. Fauré’s resulting suite is considered to be his orchestral masterpiece. CLAIR DE LUNE SONG
d 2:30
p1
sv
This most celebrated of all Fauré’s songs, initiating his association with Verlaine’s poems, is imbued with the characteristic melancholy of his darkest period. The independence between voice and piano, and the importance given to the latter, were absolutely novel in their time.
FOCUS REQUIEM MASS
d 39:00
p7
ocv
Fauré’s most famous work was composed in stages and has existed in slightly different versions. Initial elements of its composition may be traced back to 1877. Work on the Requiem itself started in 1887, “for no reason at all…for pleasure, if I dare say so,” he commented. Its complete, sevenmovement version was completed only in 1892, but just for a small, intimate orchestra. The full symphonic score was finally published in 1900. Fauré’s conception imbues the sober majesty of the Requiem form with a uniquely uplifting spirituality. Faced with criticism that, as a Mass for the dead, his work was not weighty enough, he responded, “It has been described as a lullaby of death. But that is how I perceive death: like a joyful deliverance, an aspiration to the bliss of the hereafter, rather than a painful experience.” The opening Introit et Kyrie and Offertoire movements are closer to the sombre mood one expects, but the Sanctus and Pie Jesu elevate the music towards ethereal realms. The great soprano solo of the Pie Jesu and the soprano voices in the choir were intended for children’s voices. The Agnus Dei follows in a similar vein, but takes a dramatic turn that sets up the Libera Me, where the baritone solo imparts a darker and more tragic
mood. These contrasts between light and gravity are resolved by the celestial In Paradisum, its extended, floating phrase one of the most spiritually blissful moments in music. LA BONNE CHANSON, OP. 61 SONG CYCLE
p9
ev
Fauré found his ideal poetic model for his melodies in the work of Paul Verlaine, setting nine of his poems in this song cycle. The free treatment of the poetic material, the expressive outpouring for the voice and the prominence of the piano, seemed alien to the mélodie genre and disconcerted many listeners. However, the cycle was soon recognized as the most open and richest expression of Fauré’s bold and fiery nature. Inspired by his liaison with Emma Bardac, later Debussy’s second wife, Fauré organized the poems to chart the journey of this love, described in the second song, as “towards paradise”. He also created a musical unity by organizing the cycle around five recurrent themes, often stated by the piano, four of which are rejoined in the last song. The first appears in the opening, setting the overall mood of rapt happiness. Occasional moods of anxiety, especially in the fourth and fifth songs, give way to the depiction of a summer’s-day wedding. The motif of a singing lark in the last song heralds the return of spring.
342
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
Henri Duparc b 1848–1933
n French
w 25
Perhaps no composer’s place in history is assured by such a small output as Duparc’s with his 14 remaining songs. His reputation as the finest representative of the French mélodie genre, along with Fauré, rests on just a few songs in a life plagued by illness. An obsessive perfectionist, he destroyed most of what little else he produced, and an extreme neurasthenic condition gradually left him blind and paralyzed. LIFE AND MUSIC Originally set for a career in law, Duparc was swayed towards music by César Franck, who considered him his most gifted pupil. Duparc was a friend and admirer of Saint-Saëns, who introduced him to Liszt and Wagner. His poetic intensity, in part inspired by Wagner (whom he nonetheless did not seek to copy) and encapsulated in his phrase “I wish to be moved”, was tempered by a taste for simplicity. It found its ideal context in the setting of songs, to which Duparc largely devoted himself. He wrote most of these for voice and piano, but some he later orchestrated. He nurtured plans for theatrical works, but a strange neurasthenic condition left him unable to compose after 1884. Blind and paralyzed for many years, he immersed himself in an increasingly mystical existence.
MILESTONES
1867
Produces his first composition
1868
Writes first songs, including “Chanson triste”, “Soupir”, and “Le galop”
1869
Writes “Au pays où se fait la guerre”
1871
Writes “La vague et la cloche”, song; participates in the founding of the Société Nationale de Musique
1873 1874 1879 1880
Composes Poème nocturne for orchestra Composes Lénore, symphonic poem Song “Le Manoir de Rosemonde” Song “Sérénade florentine”
1882
Composes “Phidylé”, song, and Benedicat vobis Domine, motet
1883 Writes songs “Lamento”, “Testament” 1884 Composes “La vie antérieure”, song c.1886 Begins work on an opera, Roussalka
KEY WORKS CHANSON TRISTE SONG
d 3:00
p1
sv
This is one of three songs remaining from Duparc’s first set of five, and was later orchestrated by the composer. Supported by a flowing accompaniment, the meltingly beautiful melody is shaped over a vast vocal range. It is one of his most passionate songs and shows complete maturity in its purity of design and characteristic delicacy. Henry Duparc’s song “Phidylé” is a setting of a poem by Leconte de Lisle. Its long-spun melody rises to a radiant climax.
LE MANOIR DE ROSEMONDE SONG
d 2:45
p1
sv
This most darkly dramatic song, reminiscent of Schubert in its obsessive rhythmic impulses, fully reveals the tortured undercurrents of Duparc’s art. LA VIE ANTÉRIEURE SONG
d 4:40
p1
sv
One of two settings of poems by Baudelaire, Duparc’s last existing work seems eerily imbued with a sense of finality. Its majestic eloquence shifts to an elegiac mood that is intensified by the piano’s fading close.
NATI O NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
343
Vincent d’Indy b 1851–1931
n French
w Unknown
D’Indy was a conservative figure whose music school, the Schola Cantorum, rivalled the Paris Conservatoire with considerable success. A pupil of César Franck, whom he idolized, d’Indy was not admired by modernists who wanted to re-establish a tradition of pure French music free from any hint of the academic. He had some success as a composer in his day, but his compositions are nowadays seldom played. LIFE AND MUSIC Born into a military family, d’Indy never shed his reputation as a conservative musician. Parental pressure forced him to study law, but he tenaciously continued musical activities during his 20s. In his 30s he began to achieve acclaim, first with the cantata Le chant de la cloche (The Song of the Bell) and then with the Symphonie sur un chant montagnard français (Symphony on a French Mountain Air), both
reflecting his interest in French folk song and its revival. The re-editing of past French music was another passion, for example the operas of Rameau. His teaching was based on the study of music history, while his compositions centred on Teutonic musical structure. MILESTONES
1875
Graduates from Paris Conservatoire
1885
Wins Grand prix de la ville de Paris for cantata Le chant de la cloche
1885
Made secretary of Société Nationale de Musique promoting French music
1886 1905
Writes Symphonie cévenole Writes Jour d’été à la montagne
1920
Marriage to much younger second wife inspires late-flowering creativity D’Indy and his followers, Déodat de Sévérac and Joseph Canteloube, inspired a revival of folk song in France in parallel with a similar trend in Britain led by Vaughan Williams.
KEY WORKS SYMPHONY ON A FRENCH MOUNTAIN AIR ORCHESTRAL
d 24:30
p3
os
This piece by d’Indy is also called Symphonie cévenole, reflecting its inspiration in the folk music of the Cévennes region of central France. It uses the device of colouristic change rather than thematic development for its effect. L’ÉTRANGER OPERA
p2
ocv
D’Indy’s most successful opera was first staged in 1903 in Brussels. He wrote his own libretto for it about a stranger
arriving in a closed community. Though shot with modernism, the music still leans towards 19th-century techniques. JOUR D’ÉTÉ À LA MONTAGNE ORCHESTRAL
p3
o
Recalling La mer by Debussy, A Summer’s Day in the Mountains attempts to capture a whole day’s experiences in the three movements of a quasi-symphony. It depicts the passage of time between dawn and nightfall and has brilliantly evocative orchestration. A late flowering of Impressionism, it has been overshadowed by the works of Debussy and Ravel.
344
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
Emmanuel Chabrier b 1841–1894
n French
w Unknown
Chabrier could be considered an early Impressionist: he was admired by Debussy and Ravel, and was a friend of Manet. Gathering material for his most famous orchestral piece, España, he worked like a “plein-air” painter, noting down dance melodies and castanet rhythms from the streets of Andalucia, and subsequently transforming them through kaleidoscopic scoring for a large orchestra. LIFE AND MUSIC Chabrier came from the Auvergne, and was pressed into studying law by his father. Although he spent 20 years as a civil servant, he managed to produce several comic operas during this time. He also became notorious for his alcoholinspired improvizations in the bars and cafés of Paris. An ardent Wagnerian, he was moved to tears when he heard the love theme of Tristan und Isolde in 1880. As a result of this experience, and of his growing success during the 1870s, he resigned from his administrative position to dedicate himself to music. There followed his most productive period during which he wrote music in all genres.
MILESTONES
1858 1862
Begins studies in law Composes nine melodies
1873
Publishes an Impromptu dedicated to Manet’s wife
1880
Composes Pièces pittoresques
1883
España premiered and subsequently arranged as a piano duet
1888
Writes the Marche joyeuse
1890
Begins work on Briseïs, an opera to a libretto after Goethe
1894
Dies as a result of syphilis, leaving collection of Impressionist paintings
KEY WORKS ESPAÑA ORCHESTRAL
p1
o
España is a collage of Spanish dances collected in the streets of Andalucia. A precursor of Ravel’s Boléro, it orchestrates the dances in a highly characteristic way. Chabrier described it as a “piece in F and nothing more”. Stravinsky and Poulenc were particular fans. PIÈCES PITTORESQUES SOLO PIANO
p 10
s
Chabrier’s longest set of piano pieces incorporates elements of popular music, some impressionistic pieces – for example “Sous bois” (“In the Woods”) – and French regional folk dances that evoke his Auvergnat roots. They also contain some music in the “antique’’ style, reworking Baroque minuets, a technique that was later used by both Ravel and Debussy.
Chabrier had many friends among the writers and artists of Paris. An ebullient and colourful character, he wrote brilliant letters and many humorous songs.
MARCHE JOYEUSE ORCHESTRAL
o
Originally written as a two-part piano work in 1883, Chabrier orchestrated the two as a pastorale and march in 1888. Further revision resulted in the version that is frequently performed today.
NATI O NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
345
Charles-Marie Widor b 1844–1937
n French
w c.100
Born in Lyon to a family of organ builders, Widor quickly gained a reputation as an organist in the French provinces. In his mid-20s, he replaced Lefebure-Wély at St Sulpice in Paris, where he remained for 64 years, still performing in his 90s. He also taught organ and composition at the Paris Conservatoire, but his thorough Germanic schooling (his own teacher had come from a line extending back to Bach) led to clashes with the
more Gallic, contemporary Fauré. Widor wrote many ballets, operas, songs, and orchestral works, but his greatest compositional achievement were the magnificent ten Symphonies for Solo Organ, which vary from the austere and demanding No. 7 and No. 8 to the popular Toccata – the finale from No. 5 – a familiar component of wedding ceremonies. MILESTONES
1870 1872 1880 1887
Becomes organist at St Sulpice, Paris Writes Organ Symphonies Nos. 1–4 Composes La korrigane, ballet Writes Organ Symphonies Nos. 5–8
1891
Succeeds César Franck as organ professor at the Paris Conservatoire
1896
Succeeds Théodore Dubois as professor of composition In his hour-long monumental Symphony for Organ No. 8, Widor pushed organ technique and artistic inventiveness to its absolute limit.
Ernest Chausson b 1855–1899 n France w c.75 a composer grew in Parisian musical Growing up amid salon circles through his 30s as he abandoned culture and in financial Wagner for a more intimate, exotically comfort, Chausson flavoured personal style. After writing dabbled at writing and Poème, his most popular work today, he drawing, and qualified as a started to refine his style, but died in a barrister, but then decided to become cycling accident, aged 44. However, as a musician, inspired by hearing Wagner secretary of the Société Nationale de in Germany. His talents impressed his Musique for ten years, he did much to teacher Massenet, and his reputation as encourage French contemporary music. MILESTONES
1877
Sworn in as barrister; writes first song
1879 1882 1883
Studies under Massenet Writes Viviane, symphonic poem Marries (five children)
1895
Finishes Le roi Arthus, opera, after ten years
1896
Writes Poème for violin and orchestra
Chausson led a quiet life shared between his family and his salon, which drew figures such as Ysaÿe and Debussy. Here Debussy plays a piano duet with Mme Chausson.
346
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
Deb
“It is unnecessary for music to make people think… it would be enough if it made them listen.” CLAUDE DEBUSSY, 1900
347
CL AUDE DE BUSSY
Claude Debussy
bussy b 1862–1918
n French
w 227
Emerging as a radical innovator from within the conservative French music scene of the late 19th century, Debussy virtually single-handedly changed the course of European musical development. By dissolving traditional rules and conventions into a new language of unsuspected possibilities in harmony, rhythm, form, texture, and colour, he created a rich body of work that would leave an indelible imprint on 20th-century music.
LIFE
Overcoming his simple background and his family’s lack of affinity for music, Debussy entered the prestigious Paris Conservatoire at the age of 12. Early aspirations for a career as a concert pianist were unfulfilled, however, and his non-conformist tendencies were frowned upon. Although he was awarded the Grand Prix de Rome for composition in 1884, his earliest published works met with little success. Very much self-educated, Debussy travelled across Europe, absorbing the Oriental cultures that were being increasingly revealed to Westerners, and coming into contact with the leading artistic figures of the day. From 1892, his music started to attract wider attention, although it was not for another decade that the significance of his ground-breaking ideas became fully recognized. Debussy was also an outspoken music critic, writing under the pseudonym Monsieur Croche (Mr Quaver). He had to endure trials in his private life, including financial struggles, the distancing of many friends after he left his first wife for the woman who would become his second, and a long battle with cancer. Debussy died just a few months prior to the end of World War I, by then an internationally celebrated composer.
Debussy’s works provoked sharply divided opinions and fierce controversies, but by the early 1900s he was established as the figurehead of a new music movement.
Total: 227
MUSICAL OUTPUT ORCHESTRAL (16)
5
5
5
1
CHAMBER (10)
2
1
1
6
PIANO MUSIC (92)
6
16
24
46
OPERAS (1)
1
BALLETS (5)
1
4
SONGS (83)
50
17
7
9
OTHER VOCAL (20)
9
2
4
5
1862
1880
1890
1900
1910
1918
348
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
MUSIC
It was apparent early on that Debussy conceived music in a novel way, but it took him time to assimilate and crystallize his ideas. His Prélude à l’aprèsmidi d’un faune marked the definitive spreading of his wings: thereafter, he took every genre – orchestral, vocal, piano, and chamber music – to new realms. His ability to perpetually build on his innovations and to renew himself creatively could leave even his most ardent followers confused. Though he has been called an Impressionist, Debussy’s allusions to many idioms and movements, always masterfully integrated, are stamped with an individuality and inventiveness that defy all categorization. His interest in contemporary as well as ancient artistic currents, and in foreign, often exotic influences (including Spain and the Orient), reflected his insatiable curiosity and abhorrence of repetition.
MILESTONES
1873
Begins studies at Paris Conservatoire
1880
Attends composition class of Ernest Guiraud
1884 1893 1894
Awarded the Grand Prix de Rome Composes String Quartet Writes Prélude à l’après-midi d’un faune
1899
Writes Nocturnes, for orchestra; marries Rosalie Texier
1902
Pelléas et Mélisande, opera, completed and premiered
1903
Has affair with singer Emma Bardac; writes Estampes
1905 1907
Completes La mer Completes Images, for piano (2 sets)
1908
Success in England brings international fame
1912
Completes Images, for orchestra
1913
Completes Preludes, for piano (2 sets); produces Jeux, ballet
1915 1916 1917
Composes Cello Sonata Sonata for Flute, Viola, and Harp Violin Sonata completed
KEY WORKS ESTAMPES SOLO PIANO
d 12:00
SONATA FOR VIOLIN AND PIANO p3
s
Of these three works, “Pagodes” reflects the influence of Javanese gamelan music, “La soirée dans Grenade” evokes sultry Andalusia, and “Jardins sous la pluie” echoes the keyboard styles of Bach and Chopin. The three distinct pieces are united by their stylized clarity and economy, inspired by the prints – in particular from Japan – that the title refers to.
DUO
d 13:00
e
PRÉLUDE À L’APRÈS-MIDI D’UN FAUNE ORCHESTRAL
Debussy was influenced by the gamelan, an Indonesian music ensemble that typically plays gongs, chimes, metallophones, and cymbals.
p3
Debussy’s final composition, and the last piece he performed, is the third of a projected series of six chamber works. In a kaleidoscopic array of moods and idioms, these three brief movements display a broad variety of styles.
d 9:30
p1
o
Debussy’s first major orchestral experiment was, notwithstanding its striking novelty, immediately hailed as a masterpiece. Its escape from formal rigour and its highly imaginative orchestral colours heralded the dawn of a new age for classical music. The seductive flute theme is contrasted by another melody that is the culminating expressive point of the work.
349
CL AUDE DE BUSSY
FOCUS PELLÉAS ET MÉLISANDE OPERA
d 150:30
p5
ocv
Based on Maeterlinck’s Symbolist play, Debussy’s only opera has five acts, and its scenes are linked by orchestral interludes. Rejecting Italian conventions, it took opera beyond the sphere of Wagner’s influence. The all but spoken style of the vocal parts and the delicacy of the orchestration lend the music an abstract quality that seemed almost scandalous at the time. However, the opera’s originality and uniquely haunting beauty were quickly recognized and Debussy’s musical reputation was established. ACT ONE (30:30) Golaud, grandson of King Arkel, finds a strange and alluring girl, Mélisande, lost in the woods. He persuades her to follow him home and we later learn that he has married her. ACT TWO (27:00) While in the park with Pelléas, Golaud’s younger half-brother, Mélisande drops her wedding ring in a fountain. At the same time Golaud is injured, and while Mélisande is tending to him he notices the ring is absent. He angrily sends her away to search for it, accompanied by Pelléas. In a grotto by the sea, where Mélisande claimed she lost the ring, she is scared away by three paupers. ACT THREE (31:30) Golaud finds Pelléas embracing Mélisande’s hair, cascading down onto him from her balcony. He chides them as children. ACT FOUR (37:00) Golaud warns Pelléas to keep away from Mélisande and violently confronts her. When he surprises them again, he kills Pelléas. ACT FIVE (24:30) Racked with guilt, but still consumed by jealousy, Golaud pleads for Mélisande’s forgiveness while seeking to find out the nature of her love for Pelléas. Having just given birth to a daughter, Mélisande dies without resolving the mystery.
LA MER ORCHESTRAL
d 24:30
p3
o
Debussy’s largest purely orchestral work consists of three symphonic sketches of seascapes. It is the closest thing to a symphony that he ever composed. DE L’ AUBE À MIDI SUR LA MER (8:30) This section charts the morning progression of the sun, from the first glimpses of light, and its rise to its zenith.
JEUX DE VAGUES (7:00) Part two explores the manifold perspectives of the sea through the play of light on the water (the rise and fall of waves, shimmering surfaces, the rush of the surf). DIALOGUE DU VENT ET DE LA MER (9:00)
Part three reiterates fragments of the first section, and depicts the dramatic interaction of wind and water.
350
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
Gabriel Pierné b 1863–1937
n French
Louis Vierne w c.150
b 1870–1937 n French
MILESTONES
1882 1890 1907
Wins the Prix de Rome in Paris Becomes organist at St Clotilde Writes Les enfants à Bethléem, oratorio
1910
Takes over as principal conductor at the Concerts Colonne in Paris
1917 1923
Writes Piano Quintet Cydalise et le chèvre-pied, ballet, staged
w c.70
Blind at birth, but given limited vision by an operation at six, Vierne became an outstanding organist and composer. A teaching assistant at the Paris Conservatoire, he was also organist at Notre-Dame for 37 years. Composed in enlarged symbols on huge sheets of paper, Vierne’s six dazzling, wide-ranging symphonies for organ (inspired by the Cavaillé-Coll organs) are among the instrument’s finest and most-played works. Vierne’s later life was plagued by despair, illness, grief, and hardship; he died of a heart attack in mid-recital at Notre-Dame.
After winning the Prix de Rome for his cantata Edith, Pierné spent three years in Italy before returning to Paris to teach. He succeeded César Franck as organist at St Clotilde, but from his 40s he built a career as a composer-conductor. Pierné absorbed the styles of the time into his own balanced but individual language, and was always aware of his French cultural heritage. His charming, refined music covers all forms and genres.
MILESTONES
1899 Writes Organ Symphony No. 1 1900 Becomes organist at Notre-Dame 1926–7 Pieces de Fantaisie, Vols. 1–4, organ
Reynaldo Hahn b 1874–1947
n French
w c.150
Hahn’s songs powerfully evoke the cultured Paris salon around 1900, a milieu the composer knew well. Born in Venezuela to a German father, he came to Paris as a child, and by 16, having found fame with his charming songs (set to poems by Paul Verlaine), was moving in the city’s artistic circles, eventually working as critic, composer, and singer. Although he wrote much incidental music, as well as ballets, operas, and
operettas, he is best remembered for his songs. Hahn was a lover and lifelong friend of Marcel Proust, and his music is often about memories, such as the operetta Ciboulette, set in 19th-century Paris. Hahn fought for France in World War I, but was banned by the Nazis in World War II. He returned after the occupation to direct the Paris Opéra. MILESTONES
1885 1890 1909 1931 1934 1935 1945
Enters the Paris Conservatoire Writes Chansons grises, songs Takes French nationality Writes Piano Concerto No. 2 Becomes music critic for Le figaro Le marchand de Venise, opera, staged Directs the Paris Opèra
The darling of the beau monde, Hahn delighted Parisian society with his lyrical songs. A friend of Sarah Bernhardt (right), he was a star guest at her Belle Île parties.
NATI O NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
351
Paul Dukas b 1865–1935
n French
w 30
An intense perfectionist, Dukas composed scrupulously but slowly, turning out just a handful of choice, immaculately crafted pieces, much admired by Debussy. Among the most celebrated are the orchestral fantasy The Sorcerer’s Apprentice, popularized by Disney’s Fantasia; the widely acclaimed opera Ariane et Barbe-bleue; and the ballet La Péri, which established Dukas as a major modern composer. LIFE AND MUSIC A Parisian, Dukas was born into a musical family and made a career not only as a composer but also as a major music critic on the Gazette des Beaux Arts and other journals. Although his first attempts at opera failed, his Ariane et Barbe-bleue, set to a text by the Belgian Symbolist Maurice Maeterlinck ranks among the most important French pieces of the early 20th century. Dukas’s output was inhibited by his constant selfcriticism: he destroyed much of his own work before dying. Piano pieces, such as the “Rameau Variations” and the Piano Sonata, still remain in the repertoire of specialists, as do many of the orchestral pieces. Dukas’s broad-based teaching should not be forgotten, either, affecting such influential figures as Jean Alain, Maurice Duruflé, and Olivier Messiaen.
MILESTONES
1871
Enrolls at the Paris Conservatoire
1888
Wins second prize in the Prix de Rome for his cantata, Veléda
1891
Polyeucte, overture, staged in Paris
1892
Reviews Wagner’s Ring in London, embarking on a career as music critic
1896
Composes Symphony in C major
1897
The Sorcerer’s Apprentice, tone poem for orchestra, premièred
c.1901 Writes Piano Sonata in E flat minor 1902
Variations on a Theme by Rameau, the “Rameau variations”, premièred
1907 1910 1912 1926
Ariane et Barbe-bleue, opera, staged Teaches at the Paris Conservatoire Poème dansé La Péri, ballet, premièred Teaches at the École Normale
KEY WORKS ARIANE ET BARBE-BLEUE OPERA
d 120:00
p3
ocv
Dukas’s dramatic and spirited opera recounts the story of the serial polygamist Bluebeard, who imprisoned his first five wives. It was an instant hit, due in part to the exotic orchestrations symbolizing the wives’ bright jewels. Equally vivid is the driving, dynamic narrative, and choral folk song, evoking the actions and feelings of the busy townsfolk. When the apprentice sorcerer asks an enchanted broom to fetch water in Dukas’s most famous fantastical piece, he is overwhelmed by the response.
THE SORCERER’S APPRENTICE ORCHESTRAL
p1
o
Based on Goethe’s ballad about an enchanted broom, Dukas’s tone poem can be ingenious, as he portrays the zealous antics of the broom sometimes amusingly but always tunefully, with jovial interjections from the woodwind.
352
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
Erik Satie b 1866–1925
n French
w c.50
An eccentric figure of enormous importance in French music and admired by Debussy and John Cage, among others, Satie described himself as a “medieval musician who had wandered by mistake into the 20th century”. His early piano pieces are now popular classics and his later ballets for the Ballets Russes and Swedish Ballet are masterful collaborations between choreographers, designers, and costumiers. LIFE AND MUSIC Satie never embraced tradition. Like Chabrier, his youthful idol, he played the piano in cabarets, and popular music was important in his often irreverent compositions. Many had unusual titles: there is a Bureaucratic Sonata and some Pieces in the Form of a Pear, written in response to an accusation that his music was formless. In the 1890s he founded the Metropolitan Church of Jesus Christ the Conductor, associated with a mystical movement known as the Rose+Croix. In 1905 he enrolled as a returning learner in Vincent d’Indy’s Schola Cantorum and was a model pupil. He secured fame after World War I with his ballet commissions.
MILESTONES
1878
Enters Paris Conservatoire and hates it
1887
Takes up bohemian lifestyle in Montmartre; publishes Sarabandes for piano – first characteristic work
1888
Composes Gymnopédies for piano
1911
Ravel performs some of Satie’s pieces at Société Musicale Indépendante.
1914
Publishes Sports et divertissements, piano pieces, in facsimile of own handwriting
1917
Collaborates with Cocteau, Massine, and Picasso on Parade, ballet
1920
Composes Socrate, symphonic drama
KEY WORKS GYMNOPÉDIES SOLO PIANO
d 7:45
p3
s
These piano pieces have become Satie’s most celebrated work. Orchestrated by Debussy and arranged by many others, the dreamy, dismembered waltzes are easy to play, and have a magic rarely matched. SOCRATE TEXT SETTING
d 30:15
p1
sv
Considered to be the apex of his work, here extracts from Plato are set in a bare, simple style which inspired the modernist group known as Les Six, to which Satie was something of a father-figure.
In Entr’acte by film maker Réné Clair, Satie and French painter and designer Francis Picabia load a cannon in slow motion. The film was conceived by Picabia for showing during the interval of Satie’s ballet Relâche.
FURNITURE MUSIC PARADE BALLET
d 14:30
SOLO PIANO
p1
o
Satie’s fullest ballet score, the music contains a typewriter, the siren of the Titanic, and a bouteillophone – a set of bottles played by a Chinese conjuror.
p1
s
Satie’s great statement, which would now be called conceptual art, is music for a concert interval: a short phrase played over and over again. It is surpassed only by his 24-hour-long, repetitious Vexations.
353
NATI O NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
Albert Roussel b 1869–1937
n French
w 100
After a stint in the navy, Roussel decided on a career in music at the unusually late age of 25. Despite not having enjoyed the widespread attention it deserves, his output is considered by many to be the finest French music to have been written between the wars. It shows Roussel’s subtle and highly personal absorption of diverse styles, together with a great atmospheric sensitivity and rhythmic drive. LIFE AND MUSIC Having resigned his naval commission to devote himself to music, Roussel was still studying when his early compositions caught the music world’s attention around 1906. His training with the conservatively inclined Vincent d’Indy, traces of Debussy’s influence, and exotic musical ideas gained from travels to India and Southeast Asia in 1909 are reflected in the first period (1898–1913) of his creative output. After World War I, he gradually left these early influences
behind. The works of his mature period (1926–37), which show an increasing interest in chamber music, are often described as Neo-Classical. They have a new, austere mood with strong Stravinskylike rhythms and innovative harmonies. MILESTONES
1894
Leaves navy; begins music studies
1902
Begins 12 years’ teaching at Schola Cantorum in Paris
1909 1913 1918 1930 1931 1935
Travels to India and Indochina Writes Le festin de l’araignée, ballet Completes opera-ballet Padmâvatî Composes Symphony No. 3 Composes Bacchus et Ariane, ballet Completes Symphony No. 4, his last Roussel’s opera-ballet Padmâvatî successfully combined his own style with Indian modes that he heard during his travels in India and Southeast Asia.
KEY WORKS SYMPHONY NO. 3 ORCHESTRAL
d 22:15
LE FESTIN DE L’ARAIGNÉE
p4
o
This bright and vigorous work, shaped in a conventional four-movement form, breathed new life into a genre that had seemed in decline. BACCHUS ET ARIANE BALLET
d 36:15
p2
o
Composed in 1930, this ballet has a rhythmic vitality and melodic inspiration that make it a worthy successor to Debussy’s and Ravel’s works in the genre. Roussel adapted each of the two acts into an orchestral suite, the second suite being one of his more popular works.
BALLET
d 32:00
p2
o
The Spider’s Banquet, Roussel’s best-known work and his first masterpiece, shows traces of Debussy’s influence. The plot of this ballet is set in a garden, where a spider, preparing to feast on insects caught in its web, is killed instead by a praying mantis. These costumes were designed for one of the first performances of Le festin de l’araignée
354
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
Maurice Ravel b 1875–1937
n French
w 88
Following in Debussy’s path, Ravel established a distinctly French style that broke away from Romantic conservatism. A blend of sober refinement and luxuriant exoticism, his work is characterized by exquisite craftsmanship: Stravinsky described him as “the most perfect of Swiss clockmakers”. This has sometimes obscured the moving quality of his melodies and the troubled undercurrents of his music. LIFE AND MUSIC
Faced at first with a reactionary establishment, Ravel soon came to be recognized as the most significant French composer of the early 20th century after Debussy. His attachment to Classicism was fused with eclectic and adventurous tastes. While preserving the integrity of his own style, he drew inspiration from many idioms, and boldly – often wittily – blurred the boundaries between serious and light music. Much of his work plays on the contrast between chiselled technical perfection and fantastical imagination. A meticulous perfectionist, his output was only moderately sized, but of consistently
high quality, covering chamber music, songs, an important body of piano works, and orchestral and stage scores, often originally written for piano. MILESTONES
1889
Enters Paris Conservatoire as a piano student
1898
Begins composition studies with Fauré; first published works
1905 1908 1911 1912 1920 1925 1928
Writes Miroirs for piano Composes Rapsodie espagnole, orchestra L’heure espagnole, opera, produced Daphnis et Chloé, ballet, performed Completed La valse L’enfant et les sortilèges, opera Boléro first produced
KEY WORKS LE TOMBEAU DE COUPERIN SOLO PIANO
d 25:00
p6
s
This suite for piano, written in homage to the French 18th-century composer, showcases Ravel’s clarity, precision, and grace. Each of the six movements recreates past forms and is dedicated to friends who fell in World War I. LA VALSE BALLET
d 12:30
p1
o
Composed in the years following World War I, and originally intended as commission by the ballet impresario Diaghilev, Ravel’s satirical and haunting evocation of the Viennese waltz reveals, perhaps most clearly, the dark undercurrents of his postwar music.
BOLÉRO ORCHESTRAL
d 15:30
p1
o
In Ravel’s best-known composition, two melodic ideas build up in an inexorable crescendo. Boléro’s brilliant orchestration, and the obsessively repetitive nature of its music, generate the tension for which the piece is famous. Bright, imaginative costumes and colourful orchestration were integral parts of Diaghilev’s Ballets Russes.
FOCUS DAPHNIS ET CHLOÉ BALLET
d 49:00
p3
oc
This ballet was commissioned in 1909 by Serge Diaghilev for his legendary Ballets Russes company. The reception of the first production, in 1912, was lukewarm. However, the work was soon hailed not only as one of Ravel’s masterpieces, but also as one of the high points in a golden age for ballet. The plot is set in a fanciful pastoral setting of Greek antiquity. FIRST PART: The lovers Daphnis and Chloé are separated by a lively dance of nymphs, shepherd lads and lasses. Chloé is seized by pirates. Daphnis implores the god Pan to rescue her. SECOND PART: Chloé is made to dance for the pirates and tries to flee, in vain. The god Pan arrives just in time to scatter the pirates. THIRD PART: This section opens with a famous sunrise scene, one of the most intoxicatingly voluptuous musical passages ever written. The reunited lovers dance in Pan’s honour, in a closing bacchanalia. The opulent orchestration calls for large and varied instrumental forces and an unseen, vocalizing choir. There are two concert suites of Daphnis and Chloé, of which the second, depicting the famous sunrise and bacchanalia, is the most often presented.
PIANO CONCERTO IN G MAJOR ORCHESTRAL
d 26:30
p3
os
Composed in 1929, this much-loved piece proved to be Ravel’s last largescale work. The two exuberant outer movements frame a lyrical slow movement of haunting beauty. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRAMENTE)
Here, brilliant and bawdy exuberance, brimming with impish humour and surprising twists and turns, displays Ravel at his most carefree. SECOND MOVEMENT (ADAGIO ASSAI) Inspired by the slow movement of Mozart’s clarinet quintet, this extended theme is one of Ravel’s most elaborate and moving melodic ideas, at once serene and elegiac. It is first presented by the piano in a long opening solo, and later reiterated by the cor anglais amidst the soloist’s crystalline decorations. THIRD MOVEMENT (PRESTO) Ravel was never more mercurial than in this chase between piano and orchestra, the dazzling virtuoso fireworks spiced up with jazzy inflections. INFLUENCES
While Ravel’s style is highly distinctive, his search for chiselled perfection was no doubt too personal and rarefied to be widely imitated. He did not have specific disciples, but his ability to remain relevant to 20thcentury music, while embracing tonality and reworking past forms, anticipated Neo-Classicism.
356
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
Joseph Canteloube b 1879–1947
n French
Born into a musical family of the Auvergne, the young Canteloube was fascinated by the folk music he heard on country walks. Not until his early 20s – now married, having lost both parents – did he study music seriously (with d’Indy). He moved to Paris to further his studies and built a career, moving in circles passionately dedicated MILESTONES
1902 1907 1923 1933
Meets composer Vincent d’Indy Studies at Schola Cantorum, Paris Writes Chants d’Auvergne, series 1 and 2 His second opera, Vercingétorix, produced
1941
Writes article defending complex orchestrations
1954
Writes Chants d’Auvergne, series 5
w c.150
to rediscovering, preserving, and popularizing folk music. He collected folk tunes and harmonized them, sometimes simply for amateur use, sometimes in a more elaborate, Impressionistic style. He also gave piano recitals – impressing Debussy – and lecture-recitals. Canteloube had limited success with his original compositions, but his very popular Chants d’Auvergne, while only “arrangements” of folk songs, are so exotically orchestrated that they are virtually original works.
Canteloube’s most well-known works are arrangements of folk songs from the volcanic hills of the Auvergne.
Lili Boulanger b 1893–1918
n France
Lili Boulanger’s life was brief – in contrast with that of her sister, Nadia, the renowned teacher of composition, who lived into her 90s. But Lili made history, aged only 19, as the first woman to win the prestigious Grand Prix de Rome (her father had won it in 1835) with her cantata Faust et Hélène, which thereafter had great success in Paris. She wrote many of her finest works – mostly with mystical or biblical themes – in her
w 54
gravely beautiful, clear, and dramatic style, during her stays in Rome, but these were cut short by World War I. After arriving home, she became terminally ill as a result of her immune system having been destroyed by childhood pneumonia. With remarkable serenity thanks to her strong faith, she dictated her intensely poignant Pie Jesu to Nadia on her deathbed in 1918. MILESTONES
1913 1913 1914 1916 1917
Composes Faust et Hélène, cantata Wins Grand Prix de Rome Writes Clairières dans le ciel, song cycle Visits Italy for second time Completes two symphonic poems
1918
Composes incidental music for Maeterlinck’s play La princesse Maleine; dictates Pie Jesu on deathbed
Lili Boulanger’s mother was a singer and her father taught at the Conservatoire. Her sister Nadia (left, with fellow competitors), won a Prix de Rome.
NATI O NA L SCH O O L S – F R E N CH
357
Jacques-François Ibert b 1890–1962
n French
w Unknown
Ibert was an important French composer of the first half of the 20th century. He was dedicated to the idea of continuing the French traditions of lightness, conciseness, and clarity, and adopted to this end a Neo-Classical style. His most celebrated works are a flute concerto and an orchestral divertissement. Several operas, some remarkable chamber music, and songs complement these more celebrated works. LIFE AND MUSIC Ibert was a Parisian and played an important part in French musical life. He devoted himself to composition in his late teens, working as a piano teacher and accompanist to support himself. He also played for the silent cinema, an activity which was later to result in several film scores. His first major successes were in the 1920s, when several of his works were performed in Paris. Work at the Paris Opéra – for both ballet and opera – earned him further success. The latter part of his life was spent as director of the French Institute in Rome, where winners of the Prix de Rome (a prize awarded to musicians and which he himself had won) were awarded a subsidized year of working on their own projects. Works for the ballet, opera, radio, and film make up a considerable part of his output.
MILESTONES
1910
Is admitted to Paris Conservatoire, and later studies with Paul Dukas
1919
Wins Grand Prix de Rome at first attempt with Le poète et la fée, cantata
1922
First public concert of his works given at Concerts Colonne in Paris
1924
Impressionistic orchestral pieces Escales premiered with great success
1927
One-act opera Angélique is received well at the Paris Opéra.
1926 1933
Composes Divertissement, for orchestra Composes Flute Concerto
1937
Appointed director of Académie de France in Rome (until 1960)
1955
Begins two years as director of Paris Opéra-Comique
KEY WORKS FLUTE CONCERTO ORCHESTRAL
p3
os
One of the challenges of the concerto repertoire, this piece builds on the French tradition of flute-playing, arguably the best-developed and most advanced in the European tradition. ANGÉLIQUE OPERA
p1
ocv
This farcical opera tells of a woman who has been put up for sale by her Among the film scores that Ibert wrote is one for the 1948 film Macbeth, starring Orson Welles.
husband. To portray the irony, Ibert claimed to have used “the minimum of instruments for the maximum result”. DIVERTISSEMENT ORCHESTRAL
p6
o
If Neo-Classicism means using modern harmonies and phrase lengths within the frame of Classical forms, then Ibert’s Divertissement is a masterpiece of the genre. It was written as incidental music for Eugène-Martin Lebiche’s play The Italian Straw Hat, and has a joyous mood typical of the 1920s.
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – SW I SS
358
Frank Martin b 1890–1974
n Swiss
w 73
Although Martin lacked any formal musical training, he became one of the foremost teachers and composers of his generation. Initially drawn to theory, his early works, now mostly forgotton, were excessively theoretical. With maturity, he developed a personal language, based on the 12-tone system, and a personal style, delicate and expressive, reflected in such masterpieces as Petite symphonie concertante. LIFE AND MUSIC Born into an extended Swiss Calvinist family, Martin’s music was initially suffused with craft and workmanship, quite the reverse of the more hedonist style adopted by his French peers. Martin’s work for the Institut JaquesDalcroze (where the teaching method was based on rhythm) affected his compositions profoundly. Rhythmic innovation became one of his hallmarks. Although his music evolved through a variety of styles – sometimes tonal, and for a time 12-toned – all bear the composer’s personal stamp, transcending his shifts in style. Martin’s studies of Indian, Ancient, and Bulgarian music coloured his work throughout his life, particularly with regard to rhythm. While he composed profusely, his work remains largely undervalued.
MILESTONES
1918 1922
Shuttles between Zurich, Rome, Paris Starts work on his Mass for two choirs, eventually staged in 1962
1923
Settles in Paris
1926
Returns to Geneva to study; writes Rhythmes, symphonic suite
1928
Teaches at Institut Jaques-Dalcroze in Geneva, Switzerland
1933
Piano Concerto No. 1 premiered; founds and directs the Technicum Moderne de Musique in Geneva
1941
Writes Le vin herbé, secular oratorio
1945
In terra pax, cantata for Armistice Day, broadcast on Swiss radio
1946 1950
Settles in Amsterdam Teaches at the Cologne Conservatoire
KEY WORKS PETITE SYMPHONIE CONCERTANTE ORCHESTRAL
p4
os
A traditional symphony in the Teutonic four-movement framework, this piece reworks the elements of sonata, slowmovement, Scherzo and finale in a refreshingly modern way. Both solemn and witty, it is brilliantly orchestrated. IN TERRA PAX MASS SETTING
p 12
ocv
An intense, emotional choral work, premiered just after World War II, In terra pax is a quasi-Requiem. Martin associated the first part with the horrors of war, and the second with a return to peace and the need for forgiveness.
In Martin’s Le vin herbé, Tristan and Isolde fall in love, provoking the jealousy of King Mark (far right), with tragic results, played out by a dark-toned chorus.
NATI O NA L SCH OO L S – I TA L I A N
359
Pietro Mascagni b 1863–1945
n Italian
w 60
One of the leading Italian composers and conductors of his time, Mascagni is renowned chiefly as an opera composer, although he also wrote songs, piano pieces, and orchestral music. He achieved sudden success with his opera Cavalleria rusticana, remembered today as the first verismo (realistic) opera, but which overshadowed the rest of his output, such as the lyrical comedy L’amico Fritz. LIFE AND MUSIC The son of a baker, Mascagni read law before moving to Milan to study at the Conservatorio, which he left after three years to pursue a career conducting opera. After some minor successes, his reputation was made overnight when Cavalleria rusticana won the prestigious Sonzogno competition. Although he wrote some 15 operas, all well received, none attained the lasting popularity of Cavalleria rusticana. Mascagni is often cited as the first composer of verismo opera, a term referring to the authentic depiction of everyday life in artworks; in fact, he wrote in a range of styles and forms, such as comedy, and some of his works were unashamedly populist in tone. Mascagni’s reputation became somewhat tarnished through his close links with Mussolini’s fascist regime.
MILESTONES
1881
In Filanda, cantata, wins first prize in a music competition in Milan
1882
Enters Conservatorio di Milano
1885
Leaves Conservatorio to conduct operetta season in Parma
1886
Becomes master of music at the Philharmony of Cerignola
1890
Cavalleria rusticana, opera, wins Sonzogno contest in Rome
1891
L’amico Fritz, comic opera, staged
1902
Incidental music for Hall Caine’s The Eternal City premiered in London
1903
Becomes director of the Scuola Musicale Romana in Rome
1929 1940
Directs La Scala in Milan 50th tour of Cavalleria rusticana
KEY WORKS CAVALLERIA RUSTICANA OPERA
d 70:00
p1
ocv
Based on a short story by Giovanni Verga, Cavalleria rusticana is a powerful tale of forbidden love, betrayal, and revenge set in rural Sicily. The fast-paced plot revolves around Turridù, his conquests, and his betrayals. After seducing Santuzza, he revives an affair with an old flame, Lola, now married to Alfio. A smash-hit at its premiere in Rome, Mascagni’s tense, racy opera thrilled the audience and received 60 curtain calls.
On hearing of Lola’s betrayal, Alfio challenges and kills Turiddù on Easter Sunday, heightening the pathos. While there is little formally innovative about the opera – Mascagni relied on the standard format of arias and recitatives – its originality lies in its inclusion of everyday reality in the world of opera. In an effort to create a sense of realism, Mascagni used much of the original play’s coarse language and set it to earthy, folk-style music. As a result, Cavalleria is often hailed as the first verismo opera.
360
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – I TA L I A N
Ferruccio B Busoni b 1866–1924
n Italian
w 325
A multi-talented musician best known in his own lifetime as a brilliant piano virtuoso, Busoni was also a leading avantgarde critic, theorist, and teacher at the forefront of the new microtonal and electronic music. Renowned also for his creative transcriptions of J S Bach for the piano, he was less well known as a composer in his own right, but his music is now highly acclaimed as both visionary and progressive. LIFE AND MUSIC
Born to musical parents in Tuscany, Busoni showed early promise and toured widely as both performer and conductor. Espousing the “Young Classicism”, based on the styles of J S Bach, Mozart, and Liszt, he promoted the music of young composers, such as Schoenberg, while also taking an active interest in ethnic folk music, such as the Native American melodies that surge through Indianisches Tagebuch. It is hard to distinguish his original music from his transcriptions, as he tended to quote existing music in his own works. Although he taught in many musical centres, his home for much of his adult life was Berlin.
MILESTONES
1875
Concerto début; and enrols at the Vienna Conservatory
1880 1891
Studies in Graz with Wilhelm Mayer Teaches at Helsinki Conservatory
1890
Wins the Rubinstein Prize for piano and composition; teaches in Moscow
1894
Settles in Berlin
1901
Gives masterclasses in Weimar; promotes new music concerts in Berlin
1902 1907 c.1911 1915 1916 1920
Composes Piano Concerto in C major Writes Sketch of a New Aesthetic of Music Die Brautwahl, opera, staged Settles in Zürich during World War I Composes opera Turandot Writes Sonatina super Carmen
KEY WORKS SONATINA SUPER CARMEN IN A MAJOR, K284 SOLO PIANO
d 9:00
p1
s
Although detesting verismo opera, Busoni recreates themes from Bizet’s Carmen in his own style, achieving a subtle study of Carmen, rather than a medley of tunes. Opening with Bizet’s Act 4 chorus, he follows with the “Flower Song”, the “Habanera”, and the finale motive. Native American music inspired Busoni’s radical Indianisches Tagebuch, with its sonorous Hopi tunes and flowing rhythms.
DOKTOR FAUST OPERA
d 180:30
p6
ocv
Completed posthumously in 1925 by Philip Jarnach, Busoni’s masterpiece is a powerful and mysterious opera that embraces the profundities of the Faustian legend more completely than any other. Although based in part on Marlowe’s semifarcical Dr Faustus, Busoni’s drama reveals the innate beauty of human nature. Though Classical in form, the music is lush, chromatic, and richly inventive.
FOCUS PIANO CONCERTO IN C MAJOR ORCHESTRA
d 71:35
p5
osc
A massive work, demanding stamina and skill from the pianist, Busoni’s epic concerto, with its strong male chorus and huge orchestra, sounds more like a choral symphony than a concerto. A particularly unusual element is the inclusion of a choral setting of the “Hymn to Allah” from Adam Oehlenschläger’s play Aladdin. PROLOGO E INTROITO (15:40) The strings open with a long melody interrupted by a horn-call. The Introito follows with the entry of the soloist. A cadenza is heard before the second subject enters on the woodwind, then another cadenza and a recapitulation follow before the movement ends with a serene coda recalling the Prologo. PEZZO GIOCOSO (9:45) The second movement opens with wild upward runs on the piano and a grotesque Turkish dance. After a short cadenza, the clarinet plays a traditional and lyrical Neapolitan song, “Fenesta che lucivi” (“The light through the window”), interspersed with piano figuration. The lively dance is revived before the movement dies away. PEZZO SERIOSO (23:00) After the Introito, the first section unfolds into a powerful, grand chorale with a variation. In the second section, the piano opens with a new theme, quickly followed by a resurgence of the opening music. The third section subsides into tranquillity.
ALL’ ITALIANA (12:00) Italian
songs, dances, and marches fuse with a dazzling piano cadenza, evoking “the crowded Roman street”. CANTICO (10:50) The uplifting finale opens in E minor, recalling earlier themes. The male chorus sings “Hebt zu der ewigen Kraft Eure Herzen” (“Lift up your hearts to the Eternal Almighty”) to the tune of the first movement’s Introito, providing a glowing end to this grand concerto. FANTASIA CONTRAPPUNTISTICA IN D MINOR SOLO PIANO AND DUO
d 50:00
p 12
es
This impressive and influential piano music was composed in two versions, for both piano solo and duet, in 1910. Fascinated by both counterpoint and Bach, Busoni was inspired not only to complete Bach’s unfinished Art of Fugue, but to build a keyboard work around it. Believing that Bach’s Contrapunctus XIV would have consisted of four fugues, Busoni completed the fugue on the letters of Bach’s name (in German the musical letter “B” is B flat, and “H” is B). Busoni composed a fourth fugue using a variety of elegant and polished contrapuntal techniques and variations, while also adding a chorale theme with variations.
362
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – I TA L I A N
Ottorino Respighi b 1879–1936
n Italian
w c.35
Respighi is the first Italian composer after Scarlatti whose fame does not rest on opera. He was a leading member of the so-called “generation of 1880”, which tried to revive Italian music by going back to its roots in the Renaissance and Baroque eras. At one time hugely popular, his star has fallen since World War II, though there are now signs of a revival of interest in his music. LIFE AND MUSIC
The son of a piano teacher, Respighi grew into a man of wide culture in many languages, as well as a gifted violinist, pianist, and composer. A shy man, he shrank from the controversies between classicists and modernists in Italian music in the 1920s and1930s, though by temperament he sided with the former. After an uncertain start as a composer, he established the essential elements of his style in The Fountains of Rome. This showed an orchestral mastery learned from studying under Rimsky-Korsakov, and later from Ravel and Strauss, as well as a passion for old music, mostly Italian, which worked its way into nearly everything he wrote.
MILESTONES
1891
Starts studying violin, viola, composition
1900
Visits Russia for first time and studies orchestration under Rimsky-Korsakov
1906 1913 1916
Begins lifelong research into old music Settles in Rome to teach composition The Fountains of Rome is a huge success
1923
Appointed director of Conservatorio di Santa Cecilia, but resigns in 1926
1924 1927 1931
Completes The Pines of Rome Composes Trittico Botticelliano Finishes third Ancient Airs and Dances suite
1932
Fascist government honours him with membership of Reale Accademia
1932
Signs petition condemning modernist trends in Italian music
KEY WORKS THE PINES OF ROME TONE POEM
d 21:00
p4
o
This was one of two sets of Roman tone poems that Respighi wrote as sequels to The Fountains of Rome. It introduces new elements, such as the recording of a nightingale’s song in “Pine Trees of the Janiculum” and a
memory of Ancient Roman triumphs in the “Via Appia” finale – to some an uncomfortable reminder of fascism. THE BIRDS ORCHESTRAL SUITE
d 25:00
p5
o
This charming orchestral suite of 1927 is entirely based on pre-existing music: the Prelude and “The Cuckoo” on pieces by Pasquini, “The Dove” on music by French composer de Gallot, “The Hen” (the most famous) on a piece by Rameau, and “The Nightingale” on an anonymous English piece. This set was designed for the premiere in 1934 of La fiamma (The Flame), one of Respighi’s eight rarely staged operas.
363
OT TOR I N O R E SP I GH I
FOCUS ANCIENT AIRS AND DANCES ORCHESTRAL SUITES
d 48:00
p4
o
Based on a collection of Renaissanceperiod lute music, this work consists of three suites for chamber orchestra, each in four movements. The first was so successful that Respighi wrote two more, in 1923 and 1928. The dances are based on dance forms popular at courtly entertainments and masques that Respighi found in ballets and dance manuals of the 16th and 17th centuries. The first suite consists of a balleto, a gagliarda, a villanella, and a “masquerade”. Although each movement is based on the metre and rhythm of the dance, they are not historical reconstructions but charming and beautifully coloured evocations of the past.
personal. The four pieces portray various fountains in Rome at “the hour in which their character is most in harmony with the landscape”. The final “Villa Medici Fountain at Sunset”, for example, simply evokes the scene, painting tolling bells and rustling leaves, whereas “The Triton Fountain in the Morning”, in which naiads and tritons join in a frenzied dance, depicts the myths associated with that fountain. TRITTICO BOTTICELLIANO TONE POEM
d 17:00
p3
o
These orchestral evocations of paintings by the great Italian Renaissance painter Sandro Botticelli were dedicated to the American patroness of music Elizabeth Sprague Coolidge. Although Respighi’s long study of early music, from medieval to Baroque, can be heard in every bar, the music is actually all his THE FOUNTAINS OF ROME TONE POEM d 16:00 p4 o own. The first piece, “La primavera”, is full of trilling birdsong and the rustling This was Respighi’s first completely successful work, and perhaps his best. of new leaves, and evokes Vivaldi’s “Spring” as much as Botticelli’s. The Here, the ponderous quality of his early work has been replaced by a new second, “L’adorazione dei Magi”, has an allusion to the Epiphany hymn lightness of touch. The “silver rose” “Veni, veni Emmanuel”, while the last, music from Richard Strauss’s Der Rosenkavalier can be heard in the bright, “The Birth of Venus”, is a beautiful celeste-coloured orchestral sound, but example of Respighi’s orchestral wizardry, here used to summon up it is absorbed into waves and gentle sea breezes. something entirely
364
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – I TA L I A N
Ruggiero Leoncavallo b 1857–1919
n Italian
After a musical training in Naples, Leoncavallo led a bohemian existence in Paris, playing the piano in cafés and composing sporadically. He moved to Milan’s artistic circles, earning money from writing. On seeing the success of Pietro Mascagni’s Cavalleria rusticana, he composed his own short realist opera, I Pagliacci, a polished piece calculated to appeal. It was an instant hit in Milan, and the aria “Vesti la giubba” was the first recording to sell a
w c.80
million copies. But he found problems in Italy, partly due to his litigious nature and partly to bad luck. His La bohème was eclipsed by Puccini’s, and Leoncavallo faded from public view. The dramatic climax to the intense, verismo opera I Pagliacci shocked its first audiences with the graphic, on-stage murder of Canio’s faithless wife.
MILESTONES
1876
Graduates from Naples Conservatory
1890
Collaborates on the libretto for Puccini’s opera Manon Lescaut
1892 1897 1900
I Pagliacci, opera, successfully staged La bohème, opera, staged Zazà, opera, premiered successfully
1904
Enrico Caruso records arias “Vesti la giubba” and “Mattinata”
Ermanno Wolf-Ferrari b 1876–1948
n Italian
Wolf was his German father’s name, Ferrari his Italian mother’s, and he always felt torn between the two cultures. He shuttled between Munich and Venice, and his operas combine German graveness with
w c.50
Italian lightness. Switching to music after first studying painting, Wolf-Ferrari won international fame fairly early with his cantata La vita nuova and opera Le donne curiose. For six years he headed the Liceo Benedetto Marcello in Venice, then left for Munich to compose in seclusion. During World War I he wrote little, but resumed with success in the 1920s, until war loomed again at the close of his life. MILESTONES
1901 1902 1906
La vita nuova, cantata, succeeds widely Directs the Liceo Benedetto Marcello I quatro rusteghi, comic opera, staged
1909
Writes Il segreto di Susanna, comic opera; moves to Munich to compose full-time
1927
Composes opera Das Himmelskleid
1939
Becomes professor of composition at the Salzburg Mozarteum in Austria
In the witty and fast-paced opera I quatro rusteghi, the rebellious beau Filipeto (left) balks at his arranged marriage, with unexpectedly comic consequences.
365
NATI ONAL SCHOO L S – SPA N I SH A N D L AT I N
Pablo Martín de Sarasate b 1844–1908
n Spanish
w 55
One of the most famous violin virtuosos of his time, Sarasate was the dedicatee of some of the best-loved works in the repertoire. His own Spanish-flavoured compositions are almost all showpieces for the violin, written to display his dazzling technique and passionate playing. He made several famous arrangements of works by other composers, including the popular Carmen Fantasy (1883) based on Bizet’s opera. LIFE AND MUSIC Born in Navarre to an artillery bandmaster, Sarasate was an infant prodigy who gave his first public concert in Caruña at the age of eight and went on to play regularly at the court of Queen Isabel II in Madrid. At age 12, Sarasate’s mother arranged for him to study with Jean Alard at the Paris Conservatoire. En route to Paris, his mother died of a heart attack, but the boy was rescued by the Spanish Consul. At 17, he won the coveted Premier Prix, establishing his career as a performer. Sarasate’s compositions, mostly fantasies on Spanish melodies or themes from popular operas, were written primarily for his own performances. Renowned for his sweet tone and pure style, he was the dedicatee of many works, some of which have become repertory staples,
including Edouard Lalo’s Symphonie espagnole and Camille Saint-Saëns’s Introduction and Rondo Capriccioso. Ever the caballero (cavalier), Sarasate reputedly received hundreds of propositions from admiring female fans, but remained a lifelong bachelor. MILESTONES
1852
Public debut, aged eight, in Caruña
1856
Travels to the Paris Conservatoire to study with Jean Alard; mother dies of a heart attack en route; catches cholera
1859 1861
Embarks on first major concert tour
1874 1878 1883
Performs Lalo’s Symphonie espagnole Composes Zigeunerweisen for orchestra Carmen Fantasy, Op. 25, composed
Wins the Conservatoire’s prestigious Premier Prix; makes London debut
KEY WORKS CARMEN FANTASY OP. 25 ORCHESTRAL
d 11:30
p5
os
Following the lead of many performercomposers before him, Sarasate wrote several concert fantasies on themes from popular operas, including Mozart’s Don Giovanni and The Magic Flute, and Verdi’s Forza del destino. Generally short and showy, such fantasies were popular with his audiences. The Carmen Fantasy, based on Bizet’s hot-blooded opera A spectacular showcase for violin, Zigeunerweisen demands the utmost sensitivity and virtuosity.
Carmen, is essentially a set of variations on five of the best-known melodies, such as the emotionally charged Habanera. ZIGEUNERWEISEN ORCHESTRAL
d 8:00
p3
os
Literally “Gypsy Airs”, Zigeunerweisen is a showpiece for violin and orchestra based on Spanish folk melodies arranged by Sarasate. After a lively start, full of technical trickery, a slow central section demands absolute control and tone, before closing with a breakneck finale.
366
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – SPA N I SH AN D L AT I N
Isaac Albéniz b 1860–1909
n Spanish
w c.150
Albéniz is a key figure in the Spanish musical renaissance of the late 19th and early 20th centuries. Through his indefatigable efforts as impresario, conductor, pianist, and composer, he became the first Spanish musician since Tomás Luis de Victoria to enjoy an international reputation. His piano music, above all the masterly series of tone poems Iberia, enlarged the domain of piano colour and expressivity. LIFE AND MUSIC
Albéniz was pushed into the role of travelling virtuoso at eight by his needy family. His amazing facility as pianist and improviser won him worldwide fame, and by the 1880s he was pouring out a stream of piano character pieces, most hardly more than written-out improvisations. But his ambition grew; in the 1880s he wrote two piano concertos and a symphonic piece and, in the 1890s (by then living in London), tried his hand at operetta. In 1894, Francis Burdett Money-Coutts, the banking heir, became his patron. Albéniz then divided his time between operatic projects based on MoneyCoutts’s Arthurian libretti, works on Spanish themes, and concert tours.
MILESTONES
1865 1868
Gives first public concert Begins life of travelling virtuoso
1882
Becomes conductor of a Spanish zarzuela company
1886 1887 1890 1896
Writes Suite española No. 1 for piano Performs first concert of his own music Moves to London with family Pepita Jiménez premiered in Barcelona
1900
Returns to Spain; is discouraged by poor reception of his zarzuelas and moves back to Paris
1902
Completes opera Merlin; moves to Nice to ease symptoms of Bright’s disease
1909
Completes Iberia, master piano work
1998
First-ever full concert performance of Merlin with orchestra
KEY WORKS SUITE ESPAÑOLA NO. 1 SOLO PIANO
d 40:00
p8
s
This suite of character pieces, written in 1886, is like a foretaste of Iberia, but without the latter’s exuberant technical difficulty. The common feature is the evocation of Spanish folk idioms. “Sevilla” is inspired by flamenco forms and “Asturias” is a soleá (a rapid folk dance) interrupted by a song with Composer Felipe Pedrell taught Albéniz, inspiring him with his own enthusiasm for folk music.
Arab overtones (Albéniz liked to claim that deep down he was a Moor). PEPITA JIMÉNEZ COMIC OPERA
d 120:00
p2
ocv
Albéniz’s most successful opera has a Spanish theme but an English libretto by Francis MoneyCoutts. Its constant evocation of thrumming guitars makes it sound familiar, partly because of its influence on betterknown works by Manuel de Falla.
367
I SA AC A L B É N I Z
FOCUS IBERIA SOLO PIANO
MERLIN d 37:00
p 12
s
Worried about his declining health, friends persuaded Albéniz in 1905 to lay aside his operatic plans. Instead, he worked on these 12 character pieces (divided into three books), which turned out to be his masterpiece. Each is a portrait of a Spanish locale. Some, such as El Albaicín (an old quarter of Granada) or Málaga, are conventionally picturesque choices; others, such as Lavapiés (a poor district of Madrid), are surprising. All of them weave extraordinarily subtle webs of sound, in which a simple skeleton (such as an ostinato, or an accompaniment figure with typical guitar-inspired Spanish harmonies) is encrusted with layers of chromatic decoration. When he heard pianist Joaquín Malats perform “Triana” from Book 2, Albéniz was inspired to new heights in Books 3 and 4 in both technical difficulty and density of the inner parts. The influence of these works on later piano music was immense. No less a composer than Olivier Messiaen ranked Iberia alongside Bach’s The Art of Fugue and the late sonatas of Beethoven.
OPERA
d 137:00
p3
ocv
Under the terms of his contract, Albéniz was obliged to set Francis Money-Coutts’s three opera libretti about King Arthur to music. Though enthusiastic, he completed only Merlin. Like so many late 19th-century musicians, Albéniz was a passionate Wagnerian (he was a founder of Barcelona’s Wagnerian Association). Wagner’s influence can be heard in the grandeur of the first-act finale and the pervasive use of Leitmotifs. There is even a direct quotation of the “peace motif ” from Siegfried. All this will surprise anyone who knows Albéniz only through his “Spanish” piano music, but some of the Merlin music, notably the “Saracen Dances”, recalls the more familiar Albéniz of Iberia. INFLUENCES
Albéniz’s worldwide fame gave Spanish music-making a confidence it had lacked for three centuries. His subtle use of folk-like idioms, and his amazingly refined use of the piano’s resources of colour and chromatic decoration, inspired later Spanish composers such as Granados and de Falla, and were much admired by Debussy and Ravel.
368
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – SPA N I SH AN D L AT I N
Enrique Granados b 1867–1916
n Spanish
w 25
Granados was one of a group of composers who were interested in developing a peculiarly Spanish form of art music by distilling the essence of Spanish indigenous folk music and blending it with the Romanticism of Schumann and Liszt. A virtuoso pianist as well as a composer, Granados died tragically at the peak of his career, before his potential had been completely fulfilled. LIFE AND MUSIC Granados studied in Barcelona under Felipe Pedrell, then in Paris, where he met the important French composers of the day, including d’Indy, Dukas, and SaintSaëns. In 1890 he returned to Barcelona and began developing his career as a concert pianist. His music, much of it for piano and intended for his own performance, was strongly influenced by the nationalist ideas of Pedrell, as shown by his use of folk themes. But it was also Romantic in nature, with an advanced appreciation of chromatic harmony. Granados died when the liner taking him home from the premiere of his opera Goyescas was sunk in the English Channel.
MILESTONES
1887
Goes to study with Charles Wilfrid de Bériot at Paris Conservatoire
1892
Gives Spanish premiere of Grieg’s Piano Concerto
1892
Three orchestrated pieces from Danzas españolas given premiere
1901
Founds Granados Academy (later Marshall Academy) in Barcelona
1911 1915
Composes Goyescas, suite for piano Completes Goyescas, opera
1916
Drowned with wife when English liner Sussex hit by German torpedo
KEY WORKS GOYESCAS SOLO PIANO
d 55:00
p6
s
Perhaps Granados’s greatest work is his piano suite Goyescas, a set of pieces inspired by the dramatic paintings and tapestries of Goya. Granados makes full use of the rich late-Romantic harmonic palette, whilst incorporating distinctively Spanish rhythms and melodic shapes. GOYESCAS OPERA
d 70:00
p1
ov
Although Granados had already written several zarzuelas, he had long wanted to expand his piano work Goyescas into an opera. He finally began to arrange and extend the music with librettist Fernando Penquet, fitting the words around it. The resulting one-act opera was produced successfully in New York, although it has ultimately been felt to suffer from a thin plot and has not entered the repertoire.
Describing his piano suite Goyescas, Granados said that in his music he wanted to create “a palette of emotions such as appear in Goya’s paintings”.
DANZAS ESPANOLAS SOLO PIANO
d 65:00
p 12
s
The Spanish Dances are a set of 12 short pieces evoking the folk music of Spain, without being literal arrangements of folk tunes. In 1892, three of the pieces were performed in an orchestral version, bringing Granados’s name to wider notice.
369
NATI ONAL SCHOO L S – SPA N I SH A N D L AT I N
Manuel de Falla b 1876–1946
n Spanish
w 25
The greatest Spanish composer since the Golden Age of Cristóbal de Morales and Tomás Luis de Victoria, de Falla took the picturesque, Romantic Spanish style forged by Albéniz and Granados and imbued it with the modernism of Debussy and Stravinsky. In his later works, he turned his back on the gorgeous, Impressionistic sound-world of his ballets to create a very Spanish form of Neo-Classicism. LIFE AND MUSIC Precocious as a pianist but slow to start as a composer, de Falla’s real fame came with his ballets, particularly The ThreeCornered Hat. Composed for Diaghilev’s Ballets Russes, it is strongly influenced by French Impressionism. An intensely religious man, de Falla retreated to the calm of Granada in the 1920s, where he developed a new, spare style in which the influence of old Spanish music replaced
picturesque “Spanishisms” (a trend begun in The Three-Cornered Hat). Distressed by the Spanish Civil War and murder of his friend, the poet Lorca, Falla accepted an invitation to Argentina, where he then remained. His last 20 years were spent writing the huge, unfinished L’Atlántida. MILESTONES
1905 1913 1919 1920 1922
La vida breve wins opera competition La vida breve finally premiered, in Nice El sombrero de tres picos premiered Moves from Madrid to Granada Manages flamenco festival with Lorca
1926
Finishes Harpsichord Concerto; begins L’Atlántida, opera-oratorio
1939
Moves to Buenos Aires The first work to result from de Falla’s blending of French Impressionist and Spanish national styles was his luxurious Midnight in the Gardens of Spain of 1915.
KEY WORKS LA VIDA BREVE OPERA
d 60:00
p2
ov
Written as an entry for a competition (which it won), this passionate, fastmoving zarzuela, A Short Life, tells of a gypsy girl who dies of a broken heart after her fiancé marries another girl. Despite the influences of Wagner and contemporaries such as Puccini, the mature de Falla can already be heard. EL SOMBRERO DE TRES PICOS BALLET
d 38:00
p2
o
The premiere of The Three-Cornered Hat – a story of mistaken identities – at the Alhambra Theatre in London in 1919
was one of the greatest triumphs of Diaghilev’s Ballets Russes. The sets were by Picasso and choreography by Massine. Deriving its style from flamenco cante jondo (deep song), de Falla’s music was praised for freeing itself from Debussy and Ravel. HARPSICHORD CONCERTO CHAMBER
d 13:00
p3
es
Written for the great harpsichordist, Wanda Landowska, and much admired by Stravinsky, this ranks among the masterpieces of 1920s Neo-Classicism. The first movement quotes from a 15thcentury Spanish song, and the second from Tomás de Victoria’s Tantum Ergo.
370
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – SPA N I SH AN D L AT I N
Heitor Villa-Lobos b 1887–1959
n Brazilian
w c.1,000
Astonishingly prolific, the composer Villa-Lobos was a larger-than-life character who has attained legendary status in Brazil. He made an extensive study of the folk music of his native country, which he incorporated into an eclectic musical style. This knowledge later formed the basis for sweeping reforms in the Brazilian music education system under the nationalist government of the 1930s. LIFE AND MUSIC
Villa-Lobos’s influences were as diverse as his own musical style. As a young man he played as a café musician, toured Brazil exploring indigenous music, and studied in Paris. Almost inevitably, for a composer who wrote with such ease and fluency, the quality of his output is variable. His best works are perhaps those in which his reverence for the Baroque is most obvious, such as the Bachianas brasileiras series. Rarely seen without a cigar and a broad smile, Villa Lobos was renowned for his rumbustious character and passionate advocacy of Brazilian music, an area in which he had an enormous impact as an educator.
MILESTONES
1905
Visits northeast Brazil to collect folk music
1917 1918
Writes Amazonas, tone poem Composes A Prole do Bebê, No.1, suite
1923
Moves to study in Paris, funded by government grant
1929
Completes Chôros series
1930
Returns to Brazil and becomes director of music education for new nationalist government
1938 1940 1944 1945 1951
Writes Bachianas brasileiras No. 5 Five Preludes for Guitar performed Composes The Green Mansions, film score Completes Bachianas brasileiras series Writes Concerto for Guitar
KEY WORKS CHÔROS NOS. 1–14 SUITE
p 14
e
The Chôros date from the 1920s and were Villa-Lobos’s own take on the “chorinho”, a style of music that evolved in Rio de Janeiro in the late 19th century, blending European music with Afro-Brazilian rhythms. Scored for In his tone poem Amazonas, VillaLobos uses an array of ethnic percussion instruments.
different instrumental ensembles, they present a kaleidoscope view of Brazilian music, as filtered through the young composer’s active imagination. No. 5, for piano, is particularly fine. CONCERTO FOR GUITAR ORCHESTRAL
d 18:00
p3
os
The popular guitar concerto is one of comparatively few of Villa-Lobos’s works to have taken a firm hold in the repertoire. An exciting piece, the finale in particular is full of syncopation and brilliant scoring. Villa-Lobos advocated the use of an amplifier to lift the volume of the guitar, but very few performers choose to use one.
FOCUS FIVE PRELUDES FOR GUITAR SOLO GUITAR
d 17:00
p5
s
Villa-Lobos’s characterful guitar music has helped establish his international reputation, no doubt thanks to his idiomatic writing for the instrument (he was an excellent guitarist himself ). Each of the five Preludes is a portrait of a different aspect of Brazilian life, and – as ever with Villa-Lobos – they are quite stylistically diverse. NUMBER ONE (4:30) A typically Braziliansounding melody is played in the mid-range of the guitar, accompanied by plucked chords. NUMBER TWO (2:30) This Prelude depicts the Capadocia, a cocky native of the city of Rio. The first part is filled with light-hearted swagger, whilst the central section is a flurry of fast picking and parallel chords. NUMBER THREE (3:00) Prelude No. 3 is a homage to Bach, opening with a figure in almost bitonal counterpoint, and leading to a middle section of toccata-like figuration. NUMBER FOUR (3:30) A haunting melody in the lower reaches of the instrument depicts the rainforest, returning – after a dramatic central section – in shadowy form using guitar harmonics. NUMBER FIVE (3:30) The final Prelude, a homage to the lively and sophisticated social life of Rio, is a playful waltz that recalls themes from some of the earlier Preludes.
BACHIANAS BRASILEIRAS NO. 5 SUITE
d 08:30
p2
ev
The series of Bachianas brasileiras are, like the Chôros, scored for a variety of different ensembles. Written as a homage to Bach, Villa-Lobos makes a thorough attempt to fuse the composer’s contrapuntal procedures with the spirit of Brazilian music. The fifth of the series is perhaps his best-known work. Villa-Lobos was a fine cellist, and it is surely his affinity for the instrument that enabled him to conjure a wide range of textures and sounds from this unusual ensemble of eight cellos and solo soprano. ARIA (CANTILENA) The Aria begins with a pizzicato bassline accompanying a gentle counterpoint. The soprano enters with a wordless vocalise, shadowed by one of the cellos, intoning a vocal line with a distinctly Brazilian flavour. The central section is a setting of a poem in Portuguese, an impassioned paean to the moon. The opening material then returns, the soprano now humming the melody. DANÇA (MARTELO) The second movement is a lively dance. The soprano sings a poem that describes a native Brazilian bird, and has to negotiate all manner of fast, repeated words and sudden leaps.
372
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – SPA N I SH AN D L AT I N
Joaquín Rodrigo b 1901–1999
n Spanish
w c.200
Rodrigo is among the most significant Spanish composers of the 20th century. His approachable style, with its echoes of Spanish folk music, changed little throughout his long career. However, his influence has been significant and, while he wrote in many genres, he is remembered mainly for his guitar music. Blind from childhood, Rodrigo’s prodigious output was composed using braille. LIFE AND MUSIC An attack of diphtheria rendered Rodrigo blind from the age of three. Nonetheless, as a child he showed great aptitude for music, studying firstly in Spain and then, following his fellow Spaniards, Granados and Albeniz, in Paris. While hardly progressive, Rodrigo’s music is an appealing blend of Spanish-inflected melody (although often without direct-reference folk sources) with a subtlety learned from his studies with Dukas, and, at times, a certain Stravinskian coolness – characteristics epitomized in the celebrated Concierto de Aranjuez. Not a guitarist himself, it is notable that his large output contains many works for the instrument, and as such he played a significant role in establishing the guitar in the classical mainstream.
MILESTONES
1918
Studies composition at Valencia
1927
Moves to Paris to study with composer Paul Dukas
1933
Marries the Turkish pianist Victoria Kamh
1935
Writes Sonada de adios for piano, in memory of Dukas
1939
Returns to Spain; composes Concierto de Aranjuez
1942
Writes Concierto heroica for piano and orchestra
1947
Appointed Manuel de Falla professor of music at Madrid University
1954
Fantasía para un Gentilhombre produced
1963
Awarded Légion d’Honneur by the French government
KEY WORKS CONCIERTO DE ARANJUEZ ORCHESTRAL
d 20:00
p3
os
Inspired by the beautiful Rococo palace at Aranjuez, this is certainly the most famous work in the guitar repertoire, and one of the best-known pieces of classical music of the 20th century. The two outer movements are full of dance rhythms, while the gorgeous second is a masterpiece of subtle scoring – the evocative melody shared between the guitar and cor anglais. The guitar is the instrument with which Rodrigo is most associated, but he never played it himself.
FANTASÍA PARA UN GENTILHOMBRE ORCHESTRAL
d 22:00
p4
os
Rodrigo’s second best-known work for solo guitar and orchestra. Premiered in San Francisco by the renowned guitar virtuoso Andrés Segovia (the gentleman of the title), the work is a fantasy on themes from the 17th-century Spanish composer Gaspar Sanz. SONADA DE ADIÓS SOLO PIANO
d 4:00
p1
s
Rodrigo studied with the renowned composer Paul Dukas. His death in 1935 affected him deeply, and the touching Sonada de adiós was written as a homage to his friend.
NATI ONAL SCHOO L S – SPA N I SH A N D L AT I N
373
Carlos Chávez b 1899–1978
n Mexican w c.200 example, his six symphonies) plus some of his own (such as the four “Solis”). They often show indigenous influences, sometimes using folk instruments – based on historical research, such as in the Aztecinfluenced Xochipilli. His works are characterized by strong rhythms, a “Mexican accent”, and MILESTONES spiky dissonance, but 1921 Debut as composer: Piano Sextet avoid repetition and 1922 Marries Otilia Ortiz, pianist cliché. He was also influenced by the 1925 Becomes head of OSM (Mexico Symphony Orchestra) music of Stravinsky and Schoenberg. 1928 Director of National Conservatory
Composer, conductor, teacher, administrator, and writer, Chávez was a prolific and major figure in the development of Mexican music in the 20th century. Trained as a pianist, but self-taught as a composer, he directed the Conservatory and Institute of Fine Arts, created and headed major national orchestras, and promoted both radical new music and native Mexican music to all social classes. Chávez’s works cover traditional genres (for
1932
Composes Caballos de vapor, ballet
1947
Forms OSN (National Symphony Orchestra)
Xochipilli was written to commemorate an exhibition of Mexican Art in New York.
Alberto Ginastera b 1916–1983
n Argentina
Ginastera’s Panambi made his name while still a student, and he went on to become the major Argentinian composer of the 20th century. He combined superb composing technique and eloquence with a strong sense of national identity: the virile rhythms and tough sounds of Estancia vividly suggest gauchos out on the ranch. However, his music also ranges from the
w c.100
charming (Impresiones de la Puna) to complex contemporary techniques (String Quartet No. 1). He directed the National Conservatory and taught – sometimes at loggerheads with the Perón government. In mid-career he wrote film music to support himself, but later commissions piled up: in his last 12 years, working in Switzerland, he composed prodigiously. MILESTONES
1941 1948 1954
Writes Estancia, ballet/orchestral suite Composes String Quartet No. 1 Pampeana No. 3, orchestra, performed
1966
Don Rodrigo, opera, is a success in New York
1971
Remarries and moves to Switzerland
The atmospheric rhythms and meditative effects in some of Ginestera’s later works suggest the wild landscape of the Argentinian Pampas.
374
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – A M E R I CA N
Steven Collins Foster b 1826–1864
n American
w c.300
The American songwriter Stephen Foster has, curiously, become something of a cult figure. Perhaps because of his unrivalled ability to capture the essence of 19th-century American life and aspiration, he has come to be regarded as almost a folk hero, and his songs as authentic folk songs. In truth the bald facts of his life are rather mundane, rendering his achievements all the more remarkable. LIFE AND MUSIC Foster initially worked as a bookkeeper for his brother’s steamboat business in Cincinnati, where he enjoyed his first major success with “Oh! Susanna”. On returning to Pennsylvania in 1950, he decided to become a professional songwriter, a genuinely pioneering decision, as there was then no real “music business”. Although almost wholly self-taught, Foster published his first song in his teens, and went on to write around 200 others. His songs were motivated by social purpose – both to capture the spirit of the American people, and to portray a world in which all were equal. At times, he deliberately adopted the musical and poetical style of immigrant groups, such as the cotton planters, which may be one reason why his works were mistaken for folk songs.
MILESTONES
1844
Publishes his first song, “Open Thy Lattice Love”
1846
Moves to Cincinnati to work as a bookkeeper for his brother
1848
Writes “Oh! Susanna”, song
1850
Returns to Pennsylvania to become a professional songwriter; composes the song “Camptown Races”
1851
Writes “Old Folks at Home (Swanee River)” and “Laura Lee”, songs
1853
Visits friends in Bardstown, Kentucky, inspiring him to write “My Old Kentucky Home”, song
1854
Composes “Jeanie With the Light Brown Hair”, song
1862
Writes “Beautiful Dreamer”, song
KEY WORKS OH! SUSANNA SONG
d 3:00
p1
BEAUTIFUL DREAMER sv
The song “Oh! Susanna” achieved huge popularity when it was taken up as the unofficial anthem of the “forty-niners”, the families travelling to California in the American gold rush. Most would not have known that it was written just a year earlier; as such, it stands as a fine example of Foster’s ability to write songs with the timeless appeal of folk standards. A rhythmic minstrel song capturing the ebullient spirit of the gold rush, “Oh! Susanna” was Foster’s first and most enduring success.
SONG
d 3:00
p1
sv
Foster’s later songs rarely rivalled his earlier ones for popularity, bar the serenade “Beautiful Dreamer”, made famous by Bing Crosby in the 1940s. MY OLD KENTUCKY HOME SONG
d 3:00
p1
sv
Foster wrote many evocative songs about the American South. “My Old Kentucky Home”, inspired by a visit to friends in the region, has since been adopted as the official state song.
NATI ONA L SCH OO L S – A M E R I CA N
375
Louis Moreau Gottschalk b 1829–1869
n American
w 130
Arguably the first American nationalist composer, Gottschalk was a virtuoso pianist and performer, whose flair won the praise of Chopin and Berlioz. Much of his life was spent touring outside his native country, yet the US remained his spiritual home and his music retained elements of the Afro-Creole qualities that shaped his early life. He composed much piano music, two symphonies, and two operas. LIFE AND MUSIC Gottschalk was born in New Orleans, of French-Creole descent. At the age of 13, apparently quite of his own accord, he determined to study in Paris. Although denied admittance to the Conservatoire, he studied privately, establishing himself as a pianist after a dazzling début in 1844. Indeed, his playing was greatly admired by both Chopin and Berlioz, who described his “irresistible prestige and…sovereign power” at the keyboard.
Gottschalk’s composing, almost always secondary to his performing, has often been dismissed as mere light music, and his works have been largely forgotten today. However, his style can be seen as uniquely American in its exuberant integration of disparate influences. MILESTONES
1842 1853 1856 1854
Travels to Paris; studies privately Returns to the US to tour widely New York concerts highly acclaimed Moves to West Indies for three years; composes La Nuit des Tropiques
1862 Returns to the US for the Civil War 1865 Forced to leave the US after scandal c.1868 Composes La Gallina: Cuban Dance A charismatic Creole virtuoso from French New Orleans, Gottschalk dazzled audiences with his heady mix of Romantic idioms and Afro-Creole folk music and rhythms.
KEY WORKS THE LAST HOPE; THE DYING POET SOLO PIANO
d 6:00
p1
s
The Last Hope and The Dying Poet are amongst the many overtly sentimental encore pieces that Gottschalk composed for use in his own performances. These two were particular favourites with his audiences, which were reported to have been largely made up of female admirers. SYMPHONIE ROMANTIQUE: LA NUIT DES TROPIQUES ORCHESTRAL
d 16:00
p2
os
La nuit des Tropiques, written on the island of Guadaloupe during Gottschalk’s
three-year spell in the Caribbean, effectively fuses Romantic idioms with Afro-Creole folk music and Latin American dance rhythms, achieving striking colouristic effects. Whilst rarely performed nowadays, it has assumed a certain historical importance as the first genuine American symphony. That said, it bears little formal similarity to its European counterparts and is more akin to the freer form of symphonic poem. Its evocative mood and name probably derives from Félicien David’s symphonic ode, Christophe Colomb, staged in 1847. A curious point of note is the fugue on a Cuban theme in the second movement.
376
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – A M E R I CA N
Amy Marcy Cheney Beach b 1867–1944
n American
w 300
Amy Beach was one of the first US composers to gain a significant reputation outside her native country, and remains one of the foremost female composers of her time. Finding inspiration in Romanticism and the European folkmusic tradition of her New England ancestors, she composed copiously throughout her life, and in later years developed a significant performing career. LIFE AND MUSIC Amy Beach would almost certainly have made a career as a concert pianist, but her husband encouraged her to limit public appearances and concentrate instead on composition (she later returned to the platform following his death in 1910). In this she was immensely talented but largely self-taught, learning orchestration from a treatise by Berlioz and counterpoint by writing out fugues from Bach’s Well-Tempered Clavier.
Whilst not especially innovative, her music is well constructed and shows a sophisticated grasp of harmony. In works such as the Piano Concerto she demonstrated an ability (and willingness) to tackle large-scale forms. Her output is large and covers all the major genres. MILESTONES
1885
Debut with Boston Symphony Orchestra; marries Dr Henry Beach
1896 1898 1910
Composes Gaelic Symphony, Op. 32 Writes Three Browning Songs, Op. 44 Death of husband
1911
Concert tour to Europe; remains in Germany until 1914
1914
Settles in New York Beach composed music for the opening of the Women’s Building at the World’s Columbian Exhibition, held in Chicago in 1893.
KEY WORKS GAELIC SYMPHONY, OP. 32 ORCHESTRAL
d 43:00
p4
o
Rather than follow Dvorˇák’s example of using Native American and Negro music to forge a national style, Beach turned instead to the Celtic folk tradition. Her Gaelic Symphony incorporates Irish melodies and was the first symphony by an American composer to gather significant attention in Europe. PIANO CONCERTO, OP. 45 ORCHESTRAL
d 36:00
p4
os
Beach’s Piano Concerto is a large-scale, bravura masterpiece in the manner of contemporary late-Romantic concertos
such as those of Tchaikovsky and Grieg. Three of the four movements are based on material from Beach’s own songs, including one to a poem by her husband. She premiered the work herself with the Boston Symphony Orchestra in 1900. THREE BROWNING SONGS, OP. 44 SONG
d 7:00
p3
sv
Beach composed over 100 songs, and it was for these that she was remembered until her revival in the mid-1970s in the wake of the US feminist movement. The Three Browning Songs, and in particular the delightful first song, “The Year’s at the Spring”, have proven enduringly popular.
377
NATI ONA L SCH OO L S – A M E R I CA N
John Philip Sousa b 1854–1932
n American
w 250
A composer, conductor, bandleader, and patriot, John Philip Sousa was known as the “March King”. He composed many of the world’s best-known military band pieces, including The Stars and Stripes Forever, the official march of the United States. In addition to his band music, which remains immensely popular with bands today, his output included some 15 operettas and many songs. LIFE AND MUSIC After Sousa attempted to run away with the circus at age 13, his father – a military trombonist – apprenticed him to the Marines. Following his discharge in 1875, and a spell conducting theatre orchestras, he returned to the military to assume leadership of the US Marine Band. He went on to form his own hugely successful band in 1892, touring all over the world and setting new standards for the quality of marching band performance. From his first published composition in 1872 until the end of his life, Sousa wrote constantly, and his position as bandleader gave him ample opportunity to showcase his works. His 135 marches, many celebrating US places or events, are full of delightful melodies and possessed of a distinctive, good-natured swagger.
MILESTONES
1867 1875
Father enlists Sousa in the Marines Discharged from Marines
1880
Returns to the military to lead the US Marine Band
1888
Composes march Semper Fidelis
1889
The Washington Post, march, first performed
1892
Forms the Sousa Band
1895
Composes El Capitan, his first successful operetta
1896 1899 1900 1901 1905 1910
Composes The Stars and Stripes Forever Composes march Hands across the Sea Sousa Band tours Europe Second European tour Third European tour Sousa Band’s world tour
KEY WORKS THE STARS AND STRIPES FOREVER MARCH
d 3:30
p1
e
Sousa and his wife were on vacation in Europe when they heard of the death of his manager, David Blakely. Thinking over the news whilst onboard the ship returning to the US, Sousa began to hear “a rhythmic beat of a band playing within my brain”. That melody was in his mind for the remainder of the voyage, and was to become The Stars and Stripes Forever, perhaps his most enduringly popular march. John Philip Sousa was the inventor of the sousaphone, a now familiar instrument in the marching-band ensemble.
THE LIBERTY BELL MARCH
d 3:30
p1
e
The Liberty Bell is well known as the theme tune to the classic British comedy series Monty Python’s Flying Circus. It is a fine example of Sousa’s musical craft – a rousing march, with a memorable theme and a hint of humour.
378
NATIO NA L SCH O O L S – A M E R I CA N
Edward MacDowell b 1860–1908
n American
w c.70
One of the first US composers to establish a reputation outside his country, MacDowell was held as the most important US composer of his day. As a pianist and teacher he founded the music department of Columbia University and, with his wife Marion, the MacDowell artists’ colony, which still exists. His musical style owes much to the influence of his teacher, Joachim Raff, but became more individual in later years. LIFE AND MUSIC
MacDowell studied first in New York, then Paris, but it was in Germany that he settled, teaching the piano and establishing a career as a performer. Success as a composer followed his return to the US in 1888. After teaching at Columbia University, his final years were spent between New York and his house in Peterborough, New Hampshire. The artists’ retreat he founded there with his wife in 1907 has flourished ever since. Inevitably, given his education, MacDowell’s music was strongly influenced by the German Romantics, which may be the reason why it fell out of favour in the US between the two world wars.
MILESTONES
1876
Moves to Paris to attend Conservatoire
1878
Dissatisfied with instruction in Paris, so moves to Wiesbaden
1879
Studies composition at Frankfurt Conservatory with Joachim Raff
1881
Made professor of piano at Darmstadt; composes First Modern Suite
1882 1884 1886 1888 1892
Composes Piano Concerto No. 1 Becomes piano teacher at Wiesbaden Composes Piano Concerto No. 2 Returns to US and settles in Boston Writes Sonata tragica and “Indian” Suite
1896
Given first chair of music at Columbia University; writes Woodland Sketches
1907
Founds MacDowell Colony with wife
KEY WORKS SONATA TRAGICA SOLO PIANO
d 26:00
p4
SUITE NO. 2, “INDIAN” s
MacDowell’s four substantial piano sonatas are all inspired by European mythology except this, his first one. It is his most personal – a tribute to the death of his teacher and friend, Raff.
ORCHESTRAL SUITE
d 30:00
p5
o
MacDowell felt that native Indian music held far more potential than Negro music as a source of inspiration for an “American” style. In this largescale work for orchestra he employed material that has been traced to the Iroquois and Chippewa tribes. FIRST MODERN SUITE SOLO PIANO
The MacDowell Colony at Peterborough, New Hampshire, is the oldest artists’ colony in the US. Its oldest building was originally the composer’s home.
d 30:00
p5
s
Despite its title, MacDowell’s First Modern Suite for piano was resolutely in the European style he learned from his time studying with Raff. Nevertheless, is it full of charming music and extremely idiomatic for the piano.
FOCUS WOODLAND SKETCHES SOLO PIANO
d 18:30
p 10
s
Some of MacDowell’s best-known music is contained in the late sets of short piano pieces Woodland Sketches and New England Idylls. Influenced by the American landscape, particularly that of his country retreat in New Hampshire, the musical language is sparse, direct, and even folksy compared with his earlier piano works. The individual pieces in Woodland Sketches are all evocatively titled. The famous “To a Wild Rose”, which opens Woodland Sketches, and the eighth piece, “A Deserted Farm”, are perfect examples of pared-down piano writing – beautifully simple melodies arranged over poignant, mildly dissonant chords. “An Old Trysting Place” has richer harmony and the feel of an old choral setting, whilst “To a Water Lily” uses the full range of the piano to suggest a deep lake. “Will o’ the Wisp” is full of gleeful good humour. The most direct folk allusion is in “From an Old Indian Lodge”, which imitates the rhythms of Native American chant. Although some of the pieces are now performed separately, MacDowell intended them to be played together: in fact, the final piece, “Told at Sunset”, quotes from some of the earlier movements as if in reminiscence. PIANO CONCERTO NO. 2 ORCHESTRAL
d 24:00
p3
os
Received with success at its premiere in 1889, this work was described by one critic as sounding “a model of its kind – the kind that Johannes Brahms
gave the world over 30 years ago in his D minor Concerto”. If this is a little over-stated, there is no doubt that the work cemented MacDowell’s position as the foremost composer in the US. The Concerto No. 2 is a distinctive and interesting work, made unusual by its adoption of a slow first movement and a Scherzo second, and by the many dance rhythms that feature throughout. It has also remained popular, largely thanks to US pianist Van Cliburn. FIRST MOVEMENT (LARGHETTO CALMATO, 10:00)
After a short introduction led by the brass, the soloist enters with an intense, passionate cadenza. Cellos and clarinets introduce the lyrical second theme. SECOND MOVEMENT (PRESTO GIOCOSO, 7:00)
This good-humoured section is a rondo, filled with quicksilver passages for the piano and almost jazz-like in its constant syncopation. THIRD MOVEMENT(LARGO – MOLTO ALLEGRO, 7:00) Beginning darkly with cellos leading a slow introduction, the mood lightens into a lively waltz, in which the soloist recalls themes from the first movement.
381
MODERN MUSIC
1900
—
Music since 1900 has developed in a wide variety of styles, many of them strongly influenced by ideological, social, and technological changes. Whereas composers of earlier times attempted to adopt and develop established styles, much music of the 20th century seems – at least on the surface – to break with the past. he first half of the 20th century was dominated by two very different composers who both established themselves in Europe before the First World War and who both ended their lives in California: the Austrian Arnold Schoenberg and the Russian Igor Stravinsky. Schoenberg and his followers – raised on the high Romanticism of composers like Mahler and Wolf – saw themselves as building on the Austro-Germanic tradition. At the same time, Schoenberg’s interest in painting indicates a close relationship between the Expressionism of artists such as Kokoschka and Kandinsky, and of his own music and that of his followers, such as Berg. Igor Stravinsky sprang to fame with his Russian ballets, such as The Firebird (1909) and The Rite of Spring (1913),
T
CONCERT BY FELIX JOHANNSEN-RANDEL (1924)
Movements and ideas in music in the 20th century tended to reflect – directly or indirectly – the major contemporary movements in art.
and reinvigorated music with the primitive force of his rhythmic language, mirrored in the angular lines of the paintings of Picasso from the same period.
NEO-CLASSICISM Later Stravinsky looked back to the past by drawing on styles and actual materials of the 17th and 18th centuries, and this style or spirit of “Neo-Classicism” was embraced by many contemporary composers, especially in France. Stravinsky’s Pulcinella (1918) was the seminal example of Neo-Classicism, and even as late as his The Rake’s Progress (1948–51) there is a sense of reverting to the traditions (and plots) of the past. In France, Ravel’s music was sufficiently objective in its poise and clarity to adapt to the Neo-Classical ethos, as is shown in his Le tombeau de Couperin (1917–19), and even Debussy in his Suite Bergamasque succumbs to the charms of the past. In Britain,
382
STRAVINSKY’S RITE OF SPRING
SCHOENBERG AND SERIALISM
Schoenberg devised the 12-note process of composition, whereby a pattern of all 12 semitones (known as a “series” or “row”) should be used in a particular order before any one is repeated. The relationship between the notes of the row would always be maintained, though it was permissible to transpose the row (start on a different pitch), to reproduce it in “retrograde” (in reverse) or “inversion” (upside-down), and the notes could be combined simultaneously in chords. The idea was to avoid any sense of key or tonality. This way of composing became known as “serialism” and dominated music in the mid-20th century. INFLUENTIAL THEORY
Arnold Schoenberg’s Harmonielehre (Treatise on Harmony) was published in 1911.
For this production by the Kirov Ballet in 2003, the original costumes and Nijinsky’s choreography were reconstructed from contemporary records.
Walton and Constant Lambert took up the Neo-Classical style, while in Germany, Hindemith explored the forms of earlier periods, most notably in his series of duo sonatas for orchestral instruments and piano.
JAZZ Just as many composers turned to the past to react against Romanticism, others found in jazz a perfect foil to the music of the previous century. Virtually no composer in Paris was immune to the influence of jazz: Stravinsky composed a Rag-time (1918); Milhaud composed the first jazz fugue in his ballet La création du monde (1923); and Ravel’s Violin Sonata (1923–27)
TIMELINE: MODERN MUSIC 1905 s Einstein proposes Theory of Relativity
1900 w 1902 Debussy’s opera Pelléas et Mélisande
1911 s Stravinsky’s ballet Petrushka with Nijinsky in title role
1907 Start of Cubist movement in the paintings of Picasso and Braque
1905 1907–08 Schoenberg composes Verklärte Nacht
1910 1913 Première of Stravinsky’s ballet The Rite of Spring; noise of opposing factions in audience drowns the music
1915 1914–18 First World War
383
M O DE R N M USI C
make settings of folk songs of their own countries, and other composers such as Ligeti, Reich, and Volans would be influenced (in very different ways) by the music of Africa.
contains a blues movement. At the same time, in the USA Gershwin was creating concert works, such as Rhapsody in Blue, that bridged the divide between popular and “serious” music.
FOLK INFLUENCES Elsewhere, composers explored their musical folk heritage. In eastern Europe, Béla Bartók and Zoltán Kodály both travelled extensively to make recordings of folk songs and dances. The Australian composer and pianist Percy Grainger was equally industrious, collecting music from various parts of the world. In North America, Aaron Copland began to use cowboy songs, Quaker hymns, and Latin-American material in his own work, creating an immediately identifiable American style. Later, European composers as diverse as Britten and Berio would 1920 First commercial broadcasting, in Pittsburgh. Pennsylvania
1924 Gershwin’s Rhapsody in Blue performed in New York; death of Puccini
1920 1920 “Les Six”– name given to group of six French composers including Poulenc and Milhaud
1925 Berg’s opera Wozzeck performed in Berlin
1925
MUSIC AND POLITICS In Russia, several distinct and important voices emerged during the 20th century. Prokofiev spent some time in the West, and was influenced by the Neo-Classicism he found in Paris, whereas Shostakovich remained in the Soviet Union and was forced to pay lip-service to the Socialist Realism of the Soviet authorities. Political interference also surfaced in Nazi Germany, where Jewish composers were banned during the 1930s and even the music of non-Jewish composers, such as Anton Webern and Alban Berg, was outlawed as “degenerate art”. Among the potentially great composers who died or were killed in Nazi camps was the Moravian Gideon Klein and the Czech Viktor Ullmann.
WRITER JEAN COCTEAU WITH “LES SIX” IN 1925
The group consists of (from left to right) Milhaud, a drawing of Auric, Cocteau at the piano, Honegger, Tailleferre, Poulenc, and Durey.
1931 Varèse’s Ionisation scored for percussion and two sirens
1935 s Gershwin composes Porgy and Bess
1930 w 1929 The Threepenny Opera by Kurt Weill and Bertolt Brecht
1933 Hitler becomes Chancellor of Germany
1935 1938 Anschluss: annexation of Austria by Germany; Prokofiev writes score for Eisenstein film Alexander Nevsky
384
MOD E R N M USI C
Some composers remained resolutely independent from other movements. Olivier Messiaen took religion as an important unifying factor for his music and at the same time used exotic scales and bird song. Pierre Boulez, meanwhile, was initially influenced by Messiaen, but later rejected his teacher and instead became a high priest of formalism, taking the principles of serialism to a new level.
MODERN TRENDS In the USA, John Cage, who had studied with Schoenberg, turned his back on serialism and looked to the music and philosophy of the East for inspiration, while bizarre conceptual MUSIC FOR STAGE AND SCREEN
The American stage musical has attracted composers from Gershwin (Porgy and Bess) to Bernstein (West Side Story) and Stephen Sondheim. Fugitives from Europe in the 1930s, including Erich Korngold and Miklós Rózsa, found work in Hollywood alongside American composers such as Bernard Herrmann (Citizen Kane and Taxi Driver). Well-known classical composers who have also written film scores include Vaughan Williams, Milhaud, Prokofiev, Copland, Walton, and Philip Glass. An especially successful modern film composer is John Williams (of Star Wars fame). WEST SIDE STORY
Bernstein’s musical demonstrated the composer’s surefire popular touch.
GREAT FILM SCORES
Music plays a key role in cinema, whether Bernard Herrmann’s score for Hitchcock’s Psycho (right) or Ennio Morricone’s for Sergio Leone’s Dollars trilogy.
preoccupations inspired the work of Karlheinz Stockhausen, one of whose works involves a string quartet performing in mid-air in four helicopters. Technology impacted on all types of music, through recording and through the use of synthesized sound; Edgard Varèse, for example, created a tape-only piece, Poème électronique, for Le Corbusier’s Philips Pavilion at the Brussels Expo of 1958. A group of composers who emerged in the late 1960s were the minimalists. Terry Riley, Philip Glass, and Steve Reich composed music based on the repetition of simple motives that many found mesmerizing. Ultimately this style was taken up by composers who sought to reintroduce elements of development, such as John Adams, who has composed orchestral music and opera of romantic proportions both in scale and richness of expression. Just as the minimalists rebelled against the
TIMELINE: MODERN MUSIC 1939 Germany invades Poland; start of Second World War in Europe
1944 Bartók’s Concerto for Orchestra receives its first performance in Boston
1940 1941–44 Siege of Leningrad; Shostakovich dedicates his Symphony No. 7 to city’s heroism
1953 s Death of Stalin allows Soviet artists slightly more freedom
1957 Bernstein’s West Side Story opens on Broadway
1950 w 1953–55 Boulez composes Le marteau sans maître
1960 1955–57 Stockhausen composes Gruppen
1968 Berio’s Sinfonia
1973 American troops withdraw from Vietnam
1970 1962 s Britten’s War Requiem performed in Coventry Cathedral
385
complexity of serialism, so a group of European composers, including John Tavener, Henryk Górecki, and Arvo Pärt, developed music that was equally simple in its construction, but emerged out of a spiritual calm.
CROSSOVER MUSIC Popular music forms, such as jazz, rock, and folk music, inspired a great many modern classical composers, but musical cross-fertilization in the
1976 Philip Glass’s minimalist opera Einstein on the Beach; Górecki’s Symphony No. 3
1980
1985 First compact discs come on sale
20th century was by no means a oneway traffic. Jazz big band leaders such as Duke Ellington used an adapted orchestral format, with a wide instrumental range. In the 1950s and ’60s, producers such as Frank Sinatra’s collaborator Nelson Riddle and The Beatles’ producer, George Martin, frequently aspired to full classical orchestral effects. In rock music, a number of bands such as Deep Purple and Pink Floyd dabbled with orchestral compositions. The impressive catalogue of over 1,200 compositions by the radical American musician Frank Zappa ranged from scatalogical heavy guitar rock to a ballet (Lumpy Gravy, 1968), an opera (200 Motels, 1971), and his final work, the Yellow Shark suite (1992), which saw him working with the Ensemble Moderne. FRANK ZAPPA CONDUCTING
Zappa rehearses with the London Symphony Orchestra for a concert at the Barbican in 1984.
1989 s Fall of Berlin Wall; collapse of communism in Eastern Europe
1991 Breakup of the Soviet Union
1990 w 1987 John Adams’ opera Nixon in China
2000 1990 Magnus Lindberg composes Marea
2000 s Turnage’s opera The Silver Tassie, based on the Sean O’Casey anti-war play, opens in London
2003 US-led invasion of Iraq
2010
386
MOD E R N M USI C – SE CON D V I E N N E S E S C H O O L
Schoe “My music is not modern, it is merely badly played.” ARNOLD SCHOENBERG
387
A R N O L D SCH O E N B E RG
Arnold Schoenberg
enberg b 1874–1951
n Austrian
w 213
Schoenberg has probably inspired more misunderstanding and controversy than any other 20th-century composer. He remains a paradox: his music broke with the past and yet he saw himself as part of a tradition of Germanic music and his abandonment of tonality as an inevitable step in music progress. He was also a great, self-taught teacher. His music can seem unapproachable, but he could also arrange Strauss waltzes.
LIFE
Schoenberg was born in Vienna, where his father owned a small shoe shop. He began composing as a child, but met Alexander von Zemlinsky (his only teacher) when already a young adult, working in a bank. He converted to Protestantism from Judaism in 1898 and three years later married Zemlinsky’s sister Mathilde. Their circle of friends included Berg and Webern (who had become pupils of Schoenberg), Mahler, and the painter Richard Gerstl, who gave art lessons first to Schoenberg – himself a talented artist – and later to Mathilde. In 1908, Mathilde briefly left her husband for Gerstl, who committed suicide when she subsequently returned to Schoenberg. Mahler’s death in 1911 was another blow to Schoenberg, and it was only when he moved to Berlin that he was able to regain some confidence. In 1933, horrified at the German antiSemitism of the time, Schoenberg rejoined the Jewish faith in a ceremony witnessed by the painter Marc Chagall. Later that year he left Europe permanently, moving first to Boston and then to Los Angeles, where he took a teaching post at the University of California. Friends and near neighbours to his Hollywood home included George Gershwin and the writer Thomas Mann.
Schoenberg’s death seemed to justify his superstitious belief in numerology: he died on Friday 13 July 1951, at 13 minutes before midnight.
Total: 213
MUSICAL OUTPUT CONCERTOS (4) OTHER ORCHESTRAL (13)
3
5
PIANO MUSIC (20)
3
9
6
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (24)
4
11
2
OPERAS (4) SONGS (86)
2 1874
1884
2
2
3
2 3
1
CHORAL (62)
2
2
2 12
3
1
3
6
27
13
59
6
11
7
1
1894
1904
1914
1924
1934
1944
1951
388
MOD E R N M USI C – SE CON D V I E N N E S E S C H O O L
MUSIC
After writing his early music in a lateRomantic style, Schoenberg developed a completely new musical language. Works such as the Chamber Symphony No. 1 and the String Quartet No. 2 took dissonance to levels which audiences had not previously encountered. The last movement of String Quartet No. 2 appropriately quotes the German poet Stefan George: “I feel the air of other planets”. The Three Pieces, Op. 11, for piano confirm this new and strange planet: they are effectively atonal and expressionist. This “free atonality” liberated Schoenberg from writing in any particular key, and
MILESTONES
1898 1899 1911 1904 1906 1909 1911 1912 1928 1933 1941 1942
Converts to Protestantism Writes Verklärte Nacht, Op. 4 Gurrelieder produced Berg and Webern become pupils Chamber Symphony No. 1, Op. 9 Three Pieces, Op. 11, for piano Meets Kandinsky Pierrot lunaire, Op. 21 Variations, Op. 31, for orchestra Emigrates to US Becomes US citizen Writes Ode to Napoleon Buonaparte, Op. 41
traditional melodies were replaced by expressive gestures and extremes of pitch or dynamics. He later pared his music down in a way that reflected the Neo-Classicism of the day (for example the Six Little Pieces), and in his final years he strove towards some reparation with tonality. The opera Moses und Aron – begun in 1932– was one of Schoenberg’s unfinished works. Ever superstitious, he spelt “Aron” with one “r” to avoid a title with thirteen letters.
KEY WORKS SUITE, OP. 25 SOLO PIANO
d 24:30
p5
s
Schoenberg wrote little music for solo piano and tended to treat the instrument as a laboratory, experimenting with new compositional ideas on the instrument. As a result, the piano yielded many of Schoenberg’s most interesting ideas, and the wonderfully fresh Suite for piano, composed in 1921, is no exception. It was the first work to be created in its entirety from a single note row – the first use of Schoenberg’s influential 12-note technique. Nevertheless, the novelty of the compositional method is offset by the traditional dance forms used: there is a prelude, gavotte, musette, minuet, and trio, and an energetic gigue.
ODE TO NAPOLEON BUONAPARTE, OP. 41 CHAMBER
d 15:32
p1
ev
The Ode to Napoleon Buonaparte is a setting of a poem by Lord Byron for a most unusual ensemble – speaker, string quartet, and piano. Schoenberg uses the 12-note procedure, but in fact much of the work sounds tonal and indeed the final cadence reaches the key of E flat – one of Beethoven’s favourite keys, and appropriately the same key in which the “Eroica” was written (a symphony also originally dedicated to Napoleon). Like Beethoven, Schoenberg despised dictators, and this work is aimed at Hitler and the fascism which had enveloped Europe at the time of its composition (1942).
389
A R N O L D SCH O E N B E RG
FOCUS PIERROT LUNAIRE, OP. 21 CHAMBER
d 32:00
p3
ev
Pierrot lunaire has gained a certain notoriety as one of Schoenberg’s most radical works despite the composer’s intention that it should be “light, ironic, and satirical”. It is a setting of poems by Albert Giraud about the traditional commedia dell’arte character Pierrot. The work is scored for a female reciter and a chamber ensemble of eight instruments (flute, piccolo, clarinet, bass clarinet, violin, viola, cello, and piano) played by five performers, who play together for the first time in the very last song. The work’s surreal quality is enhanced by the sprechgesang (speech-song) of the reciter, which appears to presage madness. PART ONE Pierrot fantasizes on the nature of love, sex and God. It is mostly calm, as in No. 5, the “Valse de Chopin” and No. 7, “Der kranke Mond” (“The Sick Moon”). In No. 2 however, Columbine’s violin solo is neurotically active. PART TWO This is where the expressionist nightmare world truly makes itself felt in grotesque and sometimes violent music; No. 13, “Enthauptung” (“Beheading”). No. 8, “Night”, (“Nacht”) is a passacaglia (a set of variations on a ground bass). PART THREE Pierrot begins his journey home to Bergamo and a sense of calm returns in songs that verge on the sentimental, such as “Heimfahrt” (“Homeward journey”). There are also moments of great contrapuntal ingenuity such as No. 18, “Der Mondfleck” (“The Moon-spot”) where Pierrot turns round to look at himself – this is represented by a palindromic canon between violin and cello, which reverse their lines from the middle of the piece onwards. The final piece almost resolves tonally in the key of E major, as if Schoenberg had begun to come to terms with his personal and artistic crises of the previous years.
GURRELIEDER CANTATA
d 120:00
p3
ocv
This epic cantata was originally conceived as a song cycle based on a text by Jens Peter Jacobsen. It is the story of Waldemar, a medieval king of Denmark, and charts his doomed love for Tove, his blasphemy, penance, and the summer winds which sweep him and his ghostly retinue away in the dawn. The work is immersed in romantic symbolism and calls for a gigantic orchestra, choruses, soloists, and narrator. Significantly, it opens with an ethereal sunset, evoked by shimmering woodwind chords, and ends with a sunrise, symbolizing hope for the future. INFLUENCES
Schoenberg was influenced by composers as diverse as Bach and Mahler. His own influence was immense, partly through his teaching (such composers as Berg, Webern, and John Cage were among his pupils), but also through the wide adoption of serialism on both sides of the Atlantic after 1950.
390
MOD E R N M USI C – SE CON D V I E N N E S E S C H O O L
Anton Webern b 1883–1945
n Austrian
w c.31
Webern’s legacy was relatively small in terms of works, but substantial in terms of subsequent influence. All his music is immaculately crafted and he developed Schoenberg’s 12-note procedures in distinctive ways. Most of Webern’s compositions are extremely concise – he was able to compress a range of emotions into a few bars of music – yet they are among the most important works of the 20th century. LIFE AND MUSIC
Webern was born into the middle class in Vienna (his father was a mining engineer). Although he studied musicology under Guido Adler at the University of Vienna, it was Schoenberg who was to be the decisive influence on his music. Webern enjoyed some success as a conductor in the 1920s but gradually withdrew from public life. His music was banned by the Nazis and his teaching activities were restricted after the Anschluss. During the Second World War he moved outside Vienna to escape the bombing of the city; ironically, he was shot one night (just after the war had ended) while smoking a cigar outside his daughter’s house.
MILESTONES
1904
Becomes a pupil of Schoenberg
1906
Graduates with a doctorate from the University of Vienna
1908
Composes Passacaglia, Op. 1 Six Bagatelles for String Quartet, Op. 9; moves to Berlin with Schoenberg; marries Wilhelmine Mörtl
1911
1913
Five Pieces, chamber orchestra, Op. 10; undergoes psychoanalysis with Albert Adler
1925
Teaches at the Israelisches Blindeninstitute in Vienna
1928 1936 1938 1940
Writes Symphony, Op. 21 Variations for Piano, Op. 27, published Composes String Quartet, Op. 28 Writes Variations for Orchestra, Op. 30
KEY WORKS PASSACAGLIA, OP. 1 ORCHESTRAL
d 10:20
p1
o
This is an early work, written whilst Webern was still a pupil of Schoenberg. It is Romantic in style and is one of the last works he wrote to have a key signature (D minor).
occasional chords. The quality of tone changes continually – Webern entirely avoids long Romantic phrases – and the entire work is based on complex principles of symmetry. PIANO VARIATIONS, OP. 27 SOLO PIANO
SYMPHONY, OP. 21 CHAMBER
d 8:00
p2
e
Although titled “Symphony”, this work is for a small chamber orchestra (clarinets, horns, harps, and strings) and avoids the development principles to be found in traditional symphonies. The texture is transparent, mostly consisting of single notes with
d 7:00
p3
s
These variations contain symmetries which cannot be detected by the listener, but were clearly important to Webern. For example, the note row used for all three movements, when turned around on itself and upside down, is identical to the original form.
A N TON W E B E R N
391
FOCUS FOUR SONGS FOR VOICE AND INSTRUMENTS, OP. 13 SONG
d 07:00
p4
ev
These four songs – which were composed during World War I – draw together poems of four different poets. That Webern composed so many songs at this time shows not only that he was interested in literature, but also how important it was for composers of free atonal music to have a structure in which to work. Each song is accompanied by a chamber ensemble (including woodwind, brass, percussion, and string instruments), and the different combinations of instruments reveal Webern’s fascination for variations in timbre. WIESE IM PARK ( LAWN IN THE PARK ) is a setting of a poem by Karl Kraus. The delicate vocal part consists of short motives with numerous dissonant intervals. Webern draws attention to important words – such as the word “Wunder” (wonder) – by means of expressive leaps, or through sudden changes in instrumental colouring.
DIE EINSAME ( THE LONELY GIRL ) is a setting of a poem by Wang-Seng-Yu. As in the first song, there is much word-painting, including a climax on the word “Sehnsucht” (longing) in the middle of the song. Appropriately for the theme of solitude, the song finishes with the voice alone. IN DER FREMDE ( IN A FOREIGN LAND ) is another setting of a Chinese poem – this one written by Li-Tai-Po. The use of the celesta is particularly exotic, and the emphasis given to the word “Mond” (moon) is reminiscent of Schoenberg’s Pierrot lunaire. EIN WINTERABEND ( A WINTER EVENING ) is a setting of words by Georg Trakl and further pursues the idea of dislocation and solitude, by contrasting the warmth and cheerfulness of a brightly-lit house with the loneliness of the wanderer. The wide and dissonant intervals of the vocal part are highly suggestive of the wanderer’s pain and suffering. Webern’s acute awareness of timbre is present in the very last note – a ghostly harp harmonic.
392
MOD E R N M USI C – SE CON D V I E N N E S E S C H O O L
Alban Berg b 1885–1935
n Austrian
w 83
Although he composed relatively few works, Berg is one of the most distinctive voices of the early 20th century. Much of his music employs the new 12-tone principles of his teacher Schoenberg, but still retains a Romantic generosity and the emotional intensity of Expressionism. His music is inherently dramatic: many of Berg’s later works are linked to programmes and some are autobiographical. LIFE AND MUSIC
Berg was born into a middle-class Viennese family, but his first formal training in music came from Schoenberg at the relatively advanced age of 19. The relationship with Schoenberg was always to be strained, as Berg attempted to please his teacher, but rarely succeeded in doing so. Although his Piano Sonata, Op. 1, marked a new artistic confidence, it was not until the 1920s that his reputation became firmly established, particularly with the success of his opera Wozzeck. After completing his Violin Concerto, Berg spent time in the countryside, where an insect bite brought about the infection that was to result in his death.
MILESTONES
1901 1904 1908 1910
Takes job as a civil servant Begins studies with Schoenberg Composes Piano Sonata, Op. 1 Marries Helene Nahowski
1912
Composes Five Altenberglieder for voice and orchestra
1915
Called up for service in the Austrian army
1923
Works performed in ISCM Festival in Salzburg
1925
Composes Chamber Concerto; Wozzeck receives its premiere in Berlin
1926
The Lyric Suite for string quartet
1928
Begins opera Lulu, which remains unfinished
1935
Composes Violin Concerto
KEY WORKS CHAMBER CONCERTO CHAMBER
d 30:00
p3
es
The Chamber Concerto, for piano and 13 wind instruments, reveals Berg’s fascination for anagrams: its themes contain musical equivalents of letters in his own name and in those of Arnold Schoenberg and Anton Webern, the other members of the Second Viennese School. Despite complex counterpoint and structural symmetries, Berg described the work as “full of friendship, love, and a world of human and spiritual
references”. LYRIC SUITE ORCHESTRAL
d 27:00
p3
o
Originally composed as a work for string quartet, Berg arranged the three central movements for orchestra. The first and last movements are written according to the principles of Schoenberg’s 12-tone system, but the slow movement contains a Georg Büchner’s 1914 play Wozzeck gave Berg the plot for his opera of the same name, one of his most successful works.
FOCUS VIOLIN CONCERTO ORCHESTRAL
d 25:00
p2
os
Soon after he began composing this 12-tone work, Berg was made known of the death of Manon, the daughter of the architect Walter Gropius and Alma Mahler. She had suffered from poliomyelitis, and was only 18 years old when she died. Berg decided to dedicate the Violin Concerto to her memory – the work is inscribed “To the memory of an angel”. FIRST MOVEMENT This movement consists of two sections: a dreamy and quasi-improvisational Andante and a dance-like Allegretto. Berg used some pre-existing melodies, such as a Carinthian folksong in the Allegretto, which is played by the horn. SECOND MOVEMENT This also consists of two sections, Allegro and Adagio. The Allegro is the most tortured and Expressionist part of the concerto and represents the suffering of Manon. This culminates in a flourish for the violin, which gives way to another quotation, this time from Bach’s harmonization of the Lutheran chorale “Es ist genug” (“It is Enough”). This chorale enters very quietly, played by clarinets, and this must surely be one of the most poignant moments in any concerto. The soloist soars above the orchestral parts (representing the soul of Manon rising to heaven). Symbolically, the folk tune from the first movement makes a return appearance as a flicker of life before the violin plays the entire note-row to end the work.
WOZZECK OPERA
d 105:00
p3
ocv
Berg saw Büchner’s play Wozzeck in Vienna in 1914 and knew immediately that he should set it to music. However, World War I intervened and this atonal, Expressionist opera was completed only in 1921. ACT ONE Wozzeck, an infantry soldier, is ridiculed by his captain. His lover Marie flirts with a passing drum-major, inviting him into her home. ACT TWO Hearing of Marie’s infidelity, Wozzeck confronts her, but she denies any wrongdoing. Wozzeck spies on her as she dances with the drum-major. Back at the barracks, he starts a fight with the drum-major; Wozzeck is knocked unconscious to the ground. ACT THREE The next day, when out walking, Wozzeck stabs Marie in the throat. Later, drinking at a nearby tavern, Wozzeck notices the blood on his hands. Rushing to a pond, he throws in his knife, but, frightened by the bloodred moon, he tries to retrieve it to throw it in deeper, but accidentally drowns. INFLUENCES
Berg was greatly influenced by his teacher, Schoenberg, but also by late-Romantic composers such as Wagner and Richard Strauss. Always the most popular of the Second Viennese School with audiences, his own influence on composers has continued to grow since his death, particularly towards the end of the 20th century.
394
MOD E R N M USI C – F OL K M USI C TO A RT M U S I C
Bar
“Bartók’s name…stands for the principle and the demand for regeneration stemming from the people, both in art and in politics.” ZOLTÁN KODÁLY
395
B É L A BA RT Ó K
Béla Bartók
rtók b 1881–1945
n Hungarian
w 695
Hungary’s most important composer of the 20th century and a major exponent of modern music, Bartók was also an outstanding specialist in music folklore and a teacher of wide repute. His music was invigorated by the themes, modes, and rhythmic patterns of the Hungarian and other folk-music traditions he studied, which he synthesized with influences from his contemporaries into his own distinctive style.
LIFE
Bartók was born in southern Hungary to parents who were both teachers and amateur musicians. His idyllic childhood was disrupted in 1888 by the death of his father, and his mother was compelled to move between different towns in the region. The young Bartók composed enthusiastically, but suffered from various childhood illnesses. In 1899, he entered the Academy of Music in Budapest, where he shone as a pianist: he was soon invited to perform in Vienna, Berlin, and Manchester, among other cities. In 1906 Bartók met his contemporary Kodály and discovered that they shared an interest in folk music. Eventually they collected music from all over Eastern Europe. Bartók’s first wife was Márta Ziegler, who assisted him in his field trips to collect folk music; the couple divorced in 1923 and Bartók subsequently married the pianist Ditta Pásztory, who bore him a son, Péter, in 1924. Bartók left Hungary after the German invasion of Austria and settled in New York in 1940. Life in the US proved precarious, although some financial security was provided by the intervention of friends such as Sergei Koussevitsky, who commissioned new works from him. After a long period of ill health, Bartók died in New York while completing his Third Piano Concerto.
In 1907 Bartók was made Professor of Piano at the Royal Academy of Music in Budapest and in 1911 he and Kodály founded the New Hungarian Music Society
Total: 695
MUSICAL OUTPUT CONCERTOS (6)
1
1
1
3
OTHER ORCHESTRAL (31)
1
9
4
8
8
1
PIANO MUSIC (436)
47
140
68
31
149
1
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (65)
7
5
1 3
5
47
2
4
3
55
30
DRAMATIC (3) CHORAL (36) SONG (118)
1881
1890
1900
1910
30 25 1920
1 1930
4 1940
1945
396
MOD E R N M USI C – F OL K M USI C TO A RT M U S I C
MUSIC
Bartók’s early music clearly shows the influence of German Romantics such as Richard Strauss. However, his interest in folk music exerted a strong pull and, even when he refrained from using actual folk tunes, his melodic and rhythmic language showed the folk character. Much of the music Bartók wrote around 1910 (such as the Allegro barbaro for piano) was percussive in style, mirroring the primitivism of Stravinsky’s music of the same period.
Bartók’s music is meticulously crafted, with remarkably clear proportions: different parts often mirror each other, and the three sections of the ballet The Wooden Prince, for example, are arranged symmetrically. Bartók’s most Expressionistic phase was after World War I in such compositions as the pantomime The Miraculous Mandarin. His later music powerfully evokes the night noises of the Eastern European countryside in its slow sections. MILESTONES
1899 1906 1907 1909 1911 1914 1923 1928 1936
In 1917, Bartók (centre) travelled through Romania with his fellow Hungarian composer Zoltan Kodály (right) and Joan Busitia to collect native folk songs.
1937 1938 1940 1943
Enters Academy of Music, Budapest Meets Kodály; plans folk-song collection Professor at Academy of Music Marries Márta Ziegler Bluebeard’s Castle, Op. 11 Begins The Wooden Prince, Op. 13 Divorces Ziegler; marries Ditta Pásztory First concert tour of the US Music for Strings, Percussion, and Celeste Begins Violin Concerto No. 2 Contrasts written for Benny Goodman Leaves Hungary for the US Concerto for Orchestra
KEY WORKS MUSIC FOR STRINGS, PERCUSSION, AND CELESTE ORCHESTRAL
d 34:00
p4
o
This piece was written for Paul Sacher and the Basle Chamber Orchestra in 1936. As with many of Bartók’s works, percussion features strongly, not only as a means of rhythmic organization, but also as colour. He integrates folk music and original material highly successfully in this work. BLUEBEARD’S CASTLE, OP. 11 OPERA
d 32:00
p1
ov
Bluebeard’s Castle is a one-act opera of 1911, based on a libretto by Béla Balázs. The work is a dark and Expressionistic examination of the human soul, involving just Duke
Bluebeard and his new wife, Judith. The two characters are represented by different kinds of music: Bluebeard by pentatonic melody and Judith by tortured chromatic lines. MIKROKOSMOS SOLO PIANO
p 153
s
Between 1932 and 1939, Bartók composed over 150 short piano pieces as part of a set called Mikrokosmos. Ranging from easy to concert-standard, they reflected his wish to introduce Eastern European and Arabic folk tunes to a wider audience, as well as to create piano pieces for his young son Péter to learn. Many of these pieces show Bartók’s interest in mirror images between left- and right-hand patterns.
B É L A BA RT Ó K
397
FOCUS CONCERTO FOR ORCHESTRA ORCHESTRAL
d 37:30
p5
o
The conductor Sergei Koussevitsky commissioned the Concerto for Orchestra in memory of his late wife, Nathalie. The title reflects Bartók’s admiration for the virtuosity of Koussevitsky’s orchestra. INTRODUCTION (ALLEGRO NON TROPPO – ALLEGRO
The first movement begins mysteriously with a theme in the low strings accompanied by whispering violin tremolandos. Instrumental groups are gradually added until the bright and energetic Allegro Vivace begins with a theme from the violins. A second theme is introduced by solo trombone in regular metre.
VIVACE)
GAME OF THE PAIRS (ALLEGRETTO SCHERZANDO)
The second movement features pairs of instruments, which move at all times in parallel: the bassoons (a sixth apart) are followed by oboes (a third apart), clarinets (a seventh apart), flutes (a fifth apart), and, finally, trumpets (a second apart). The chorale-like middle section is given to the brass. ELEGY (ANDANTE NON TROPPO) Bartók called the third movement a “lugubrious death song”. The opening theme on
INFLUENCES
Bartók was greatly influenced by the folk music of Eastern Europe. In his youth he admired the music of Richard Strauss and later in his career developed an interest in Baroque music as well as the compositions of contemporaries such as Stravinsky. He influenced the composers Lutoslawski and Britten.
low strings recalls the beginning of the first movement. The misty section for flutes and clarinets that follows is accompanied by string tremolandos and harp glissandos. The music becomes more and more agitated until the passionate material from the first movement reappears. INTERMEZZO INTERROTTO (ALLEGRETTO) This movement was apparently influenced by a broadcast of Shostakovich’s Symphony No. 7. Bartók thought that Shostakovich’s patriotism was misguided and quoted a theme of that work in raucous parody. There is then an outrageous response from muted trumpets, clarinets, and trombones. FINALE (PRESTO) The finale is announced by a horn fanfare and athletic strings. The flurry of movement never lets up, and the coda is a brilliant and exciting culmination to one of the great orchestral works of the 20th century.
398
MOD E R N M USI C – F OL K M USI C TO A RT M U S I C
George Enescu b 1881–1955
n Romanian
Despite his astounding memory for music – he knew every note of Wagner’s The Ring of the Nibelung – and his prodigious ability as a violinist, Romania’s greatest composer was a modest man. Perhaps too modest: he wrote prolifically, but published only 33 works with opus numbers. When he conducted his folk-inspired Poème roumain in Bucharest at 17, he instantly became a figure of national importance. Enescu
w c.300
spent his long career moving between France and Romania, performing internationally, composing (his main love), and developing Romanian musical life. His music reflects the variety of stylistic changes he saw in his lifetime, and his chamber works are especially fine. A perfectionist, he spent ten years writing his opera, Oedipe. MILESTONES
1889 1893 1898 1926 1936 1946 1954
First public performance, aged eight Studies at Paris Conservatoire Poème roumain for orchestra triumphs Composes Violin Sonata No. 3 Oedipe, opera, premiered in Paris Exiled from Romania; falls ill Writes Chamber Symphony
Although Enescu’s work transcends nationalism, he never abandoned his beloved native country.
Zoltán Kodály b 1882–1967
n Hungarian
An all-round, practical musician who needed little formal tuition, Kodály did his doctoral thesis on Hungarian folk song, which he collected in rural tours over many decades. Like his friend Bartók, he used it to inspire his own melodic, inventive work, much of it choral. His flourishing career – as academy teacher, critic, scholar, and composer – was affected by the war, but was revived internationally by Psalmus Hungaricus. To the end of his life he toured worldwide, both lecturing MILESTONES
1915 1926 1927 1933 1939 1945
Solo Cello Sonata Op 8 Composes Háry János, Singspiel Psalmus Hungaricus premiered in London Composes Dances of Galánta, orchestra Writes The Peacock variations, orchestra Becomes president of the Hungarian Arts Council
w c.250
and conducting his own works. Composing for 70 years, and constantly promoting Hungarian music, Kodály was lavishly honoured at home and abroad. His logical step-by-step teaching methods are still highly influential today. As a keen educator, Kodály devoted much of his time to visiting Hungarian schools and was actively involved in the development of music for children.
399
MOD ERN M USI C – FO L K M USI C TO A RT M USI C
Percy Grainger b 1882–1971
n Australian
w 186
Grainger was a virtuoso pianist, a collector, and arranger of folk songs, and a highly original composer. With an unusual breadth of creative vision, his interests spanned the ages – from medieval music to the latest developments by his contemporaries Delius and Grieg. He was a pioneer of what he called “free music” and was particularly keen that music should be available for all. LIFE AND MUSIC Grainger studied for a short time with Ferruccio Busoni in Germany, but despite a mutual admiration for each other’s abilities, their temperaments were too different to remain on close terms. When he moved to London in 1901, Grainger began to establish himself a reputation as a concert pianist. During his 20s he became friendly with Edvard Grieg, who encouraged him to collect English folk songs; these form the basis for many of his inspired settings, such as Country Gardens and Molly on the Shore. Often experimental in his approach, Grainger’s interest in “free music” led him to come up with the new idea of “elastic scoring” – meaning that a work could be played by whatever instruments happened to be available, rather than by a prescribed instrumentation.
MILESTONES
1894 1895
Makes his début in Melbourne Studies in Frankfurt
1901
Moves to London; composes Hill Song No. 1
1903
Tours Australia, New Zealand, and South Africa
1907 1913
Writes Molly on the Shore, orchestra Composes The Warriors, orchestra
1914
Tribute to Foster published; moves to US
1917
Serves in US Army
1918
Composes Country Gardens, folk-song setting
1922
Mother commits suicide
1928
Marries Ella Ström at premiere of To a Nordic Princess, Hollywood Bowl
KEY WORKS HILL SONG NO. 1 CHAMBER
d 27:00
p1
e
Grainger considered this to be his finest work, and it was originally scored for a highly unusual ensemble of wind instruments: with the exception of the piccolos, the group comprised doublereed instruments which produce a nasal sound quality (he asked for oboes, cor anglais, bassoons, and contrabassoon). He later felt that this was not realistic and rescored the work in 1923 Grainger’s close bond with his mother was only broken when she committed suicide by jumping off a New York skyscraper.
for an even more diverse group. There are five main sections, and the “fast walking pace” is somewhat obscured by the frequently changing metre. TRIBUTE TO FOSTER CHORAL
d 21:00
p1
ocv
Late in life, Grainger recalled his mother having sung him to sleep with the tune of Stephen Foster’s “Camptown Races”. His Tribute to Foster uses an up-tempo version of the tune in its outer sections and a slow lullaby version in the middle section, in which the choir play “musical glasses”.
400
MOD E R N M USI C – N E O- CL A SSI CIS M
Strav “Music is given to us with the sole purpose of establishing an order in things, including, and particularly, the coordination between man and time.” IGOR STRAVINSKY
401
I GO R STR AV I N SK Y
Igor Stravinsky
vinsky b 1882–1971
n Russian
w 127
Generally considered to be the greatest composer of the previous century, Stravinsky’s long life spanned continents, cultures, and eras. As an iconic figure in the modern arts, he was perhaps equalled only by Pablo Picasso, whose early innovations created the same shock and excitement. He also resembled Picasso in his gift for radical artistic transformations, yet, despite this quality, Stravinsky always remained ineffably himself.
LIFE
Stravinsky was born near St Petersburg, where his father was principal bass singer with the Imperial Opera at the Mariinsky Theatre. Borodin, Dostoyevsky, and Stravinsky’s future teacher, RimskyKorsakov, were family friends. Stravinsky’s talent was not obvious at first, and he was forced to study law at St Petersburg University, applying himself to music in his free time. Success came in 1910, with the commission of The Firebird from Serge Diaghilev, director of the Ballets Russes. The ballet’s Paris premiere also launched the career of another Diaghilev protégé, the dancer Vaslav Nijinsky, and was hugely successful. Diaghilev encouraged Stravinsky to develop his “Russian” vein, commissioning further ballets such as The Rite of Spring, whose premiere prompted part of the audience to riot. Stravinsky joined Europe’s artistic elite, with many of whom (Picasso, Gide, Cocteau) he went on to collaborate in further ballets. Settling in Switzerland, then France, Stravinsky was never to live in Russia again. In mid-career, he fell increasingly under the influence of the European “Classical” heritage. Having fought off tuberculosis, he fled World War II, moving to the United States and spending his final years in the company of other notable émigrés in Hollywood.
Despite its “shocking” modernity, Stravinsky’s music is also very structured, precise, and controlled, full of artifice and theatricality.
Total: 127
MUSICAL OUTPUT CONCERTOS (2)
1
1
OTHER ORCHESTRAL (22)
3
7
8
4
OTHER INSTRUMENTAL (47)
4
22
16
5
OPERAS (3)
2
1
BALLETS (12)
1
6
4
1
SOLO VOCAL (25)
7
9
3
6
CHORAL (16)
1
3
5
7
1882
1910
1930
1950
1971
402
MOD E R N M USI C – N E O- CL A SSI CIS M
MUSIC
music shocked and excited, flying in Stravinsky’s musical output falls into the face of the accepted rules of music three main periods: “Russian”, composition. However, in time (and “Neo-Classical”, and “serial” (or “12-tone”). From his teacher, Rimsky- to the displeasure of those who had admired him for his uncompromising Korsakov, Stravinsky had learnt to orchestrate in the exquisite, iridescent originality), his music returned to the tonal idiom. Stravinsky created colours that characterize The Firebird. the “Neo-Classical style”, which its As Serge Diaghilev challenged him detractors called “classicism with to find an ever-more Russian wrong notes”. Arnold Schoenberg, style, Stravinsky began to inventor of the 12-tone system, incorporate Russian folk was particularly disdainful of tunes (something the touchy such backsliding, and the composer played down in mutual recriminations which later years) and to invent often marked relations between new sounds based Neo-Classicists and serialists (not on pounding, irregular excluding Schoenberg’s rhythms and pungent and Stravinsky’s own harmonies. The somewhat inflammatory result was an entirely statements) made it all original kind of music the more astonishing to beyond simple many when, in the US, tonality and which Stravinsky underwent (especially in The Rite of Serge Diaghilev, Russian his final metamorphosis, Spring) could not be impresario and founder of the and himself took up the written in a constant Ballets Russes, gave Stravinsky his first ballet commission. 12-tone method. time signature. Such MILESTONES
1902
Studies law at university, and composition with Rimsky-Korsakov
1940
The Rite of Spring features in Walt Disney’s animated film Fantasia
1909
Premiere of Scherzo fantastique; Diaghilev commissions The Firebird
1945
Writes “Ebony” Concerto for Woody Hermann’s jazz band
1910
Debussy expresses his admiration; he and Stravinsky become friends
1951 1962
Premiere of The Rake’s Progress, opera Revisits Russia
1913
Premiere of The Rite of Spring
1964
1920
At Diaghilev’s suggestion, arranges music by Pergolesi for Pulcinella
Composes Elegy on the death of John F Kennedy; completion of Requiem Canticles, his last major work
1921
Writes Les noces and embarks on love affair with Vera Sudeykina
1926
Returns to the Russian Orthodox Church after experiencing a “miracle” in Venice
1927
Premiere of Oedipus Rex; the work is poorly received
1928
US premiere of Apollon Musagète
1937
Adopts French citizenship; writes last piece in Europe, Dumbarton Oaks
1939
Sails for the US after the deaths of his eldest daughter and first wife
In 1913, with choreography by Vaslav Nijinsky, Stravinsky’s The Rite of Spring received its troubled premiere at the Théâtre de Champs-Elysées, Paris, a theatre which is still in existence today.
403
I GO R STR AV I N SK Y
KEYWORKS THE FIREBIRD BALLET
d 45:00
p1
OEDIPUS REX o
OPERA-ORATORIO
d 48:00
p2
ocv
The ballet tells the story of the battle between the magical Firebird and the demon Kashchey. Dancers who missed their cues at the premiere blamed their confusion on the unusualness of the orchestration.
Stravinsky’s collaborator Jean Cocteau based the text of this “opera-oratorio” on Greek tragedy, yet Stravinsky chose to set the text in Latin. Between movements, a spoken narration keeps the audience abreast of the story.
LES NOCES (“THE WEDDINGS”)
THE RAKE’S PROGRESS
BALLET
d 25:00
p4
ec
The most startlingly scored of all Stravinsky’s works, Les noces evokes both the earthiness of peasant life and the hieratic splendour of Russian Orthodox ritual. PULCINELLA BALLET
d 38:00
p1
ov
Inspired by the Italian commedia dell’arte, this work arranges music by Pergolesi and his 18th-century contemporaries. However, by slight changes of harmony and idiosyncratic orchestration, Stravinsky makes the music entirely his own. APOLLO MUSAGÈTE BALLET
d 30:00
p2
o
A ballet of Classical poise and restraint, scored for strings alone, Apollo began Stravinsky’s connection with the inspired choreographer of so many of his later works, George Balanchine. AGON BALLET
d 24:00
p3
o
An ingenious conflation of styles and periods, Agon takes inspiration from Renaissance dance and works by his contemporaries Boulez and Stockhausen. The Firebird premiered in Paris in 1910. Its success transformed Stravinsky’s career and strengthened his friendship with Diaghilev, with whom he produced two more balletic works: Petrushka (1911) and The Rite of Spring (1913).
OPERA
d 135:00
p3
ocv
This work, with a libretto by W H Auden and Chester Kallman, was based on the series of engravings of the same name by English 18thcentury painter and moralist William Hogarth. A “number opera” with arias and recitatives, it marked the end-point of Stravinsky’s Neo-Classical phase. It was Stravinsky’s largest work, and premiered in Venice in 1951. INFLUENCES
Stravinsky’s impact on other composers was immediate. Edgard Varèse’s Amèriques is full of reminiscences of The Rite of Spring. In fact, most music of recent times could not have been written without Stravinsky’s innovations. VillaLobos, Hindemith, Messiaen, Britten, Poulenc, Bernstein, Pärt – all these composers owe him a profound debt.
404
MOD E R N M USI C – N E O- CL A SSI CIS M
FOCUS THIRD MOVEMENT (CON MOTO, 4:00) A movement with a pronounced “finale”, returning to the Baroque model. Yet Stravinsky abandons counterpoint in favour of his characteristic games of deft chordal interplay, shifting accents and sprightly syncopation.
DUMBARTON OAKS CONCERTO
d 11:00
p3
o
Written at a time of many crises in Stravinsky’s life, Dunbarton Oaks is a reminder of his assertion that music “expresses nothing but itself ”. The work met with a mixed reaction on its premiere, being deplored by those who thought serious composers should be in the vanguard of a continuous musical revolution. FIRST MOVEMENT (TEMPO GIUSTO, 4:00) The opening movement is reminiscent of J S Bach’s “Brandenburg” Concertos. The modest instrumental forces and the regularity of the metre all hark back to Baroque practice.
PETRUSHKA BALLET
SECOND MOVEMENT
This has a sly, jazzy insouciance. It features flute and violin as solo instruments – plus the clarinet, an instrument that was unknown in Baroque times.
(ALLEGRETTO, 3:00)
d 32:00
p2
p4
o
Dumbarton Oaks takes its name from the estate of Robert Woods Bliss, who commissioned the piece for his 30th wedding anniversary in 1938.
the Adolescents”, in which young girls dance to the insistent stamping of a single chord repeated continuously with changing accents, while off-beat horn chords punch the air. After further ritual dancing, the first part of the ballet breaks off in mid-air like a terrifying cliff-hanger. PART TWO (16:30) Both parts of the ballet begin quietly and end in pulsing violence. In the dawn-like introduction
THE RITE OF SPRING BALLET
d 32:00
Stravinsky first intended Petrushka to be a concert work for piano and orchestra, but he became possessed by the idea of the piano representing “a puppet suddenly endowed with life, exasperating the patience of the orchestra with diabolical cascades of arpeggios”. Diaghilev soon persuaded him that the work was destined to be a new ballet.
o
The Rite of Spring, set in primeval Russia, portrays a ritual in which a young girl dances herself to death to win the favour of the god of Spring. The ballet is a work of savage ecstasy, driven forward by its powerful, primitive rhythms. PART ONE (15:30) After the mysterious Introduction comes the “Dance of
1“The Adoration of the Earth”“Dance of the
In the “Mock Abduction”, young men seize the girls in a sexual rite “Spring Rounds”
Adolescents”
“Adoration of the Earth” “Games of the Rival Tribes”
“Procession of the Sage”
Introduction 1
2
Solo bassoon quotes Lithuanian folk song
3
4
String chords punctuated by horns
5
6
7
Bass drum
8
9
String chords
10
11
Tam-tam makes first appearance
12
13
14
“The Dance of the Earth”, a wild, frenzied celebration
15
16
Blackamoor, dances with the Ballerina. He is portrayed by a trumpet, she by a coy flute; mechanically tender, the music stutters and preens, evoking the reedy sonorities of a fairground organ. FOURTH PART (13:00) Suddenly Petrushka is chased from a tent and cut down by the Blackamoor’s scimitar. The crowd disperses, and in the eerie twilight Petrushka (or his ghost) returns to haunt the terrified showman – and to taunt anyone in the audience who might have been moved by the tale.
FIRST PART (10:00) Petrushka is set in St Petersburg during the Shrovetide Fair. Superimposing a number of characterful instrumental lines and harmonies, the music evokes the ebb and flow of the crowd, interspersed with the antics of street entertainers. SECOND PART (4:00) Petrushka is in his cell. Hiccups of melody suggest the jerking puppet, whilst melancholy, discordant reveries of piano and clarinet evoke Petrushka’s hopeless love for the heartless Ballerina. THIRD PART (5:00) Petrushka’s rival in love, a handsome, scimitar-wielding
to the second part, some of the strings play delicate harmonics while others sound shudders of fearful anticipation. Stravinsky keeps several dramatic orchestral effects in reserve for the final climax. As the girl chosen for the sacrifice dances herself to death, the horns play “with bells up”, projecting their exultant high notes straight over the heads of the orchestra and out into the auditorium.
2 “The Sacrifice”“Mysterious Rounds of
The ecstatic rhythms of The Rite of Spring have ensured its continuing popularity, both as a ballet and as a concert piece. This performance at Avignon in 1995 was choreographed by Pina Bausch.
“Glorification of the Chosen One” “Evocation of the Ancestors”
the Adolescents”
Victim finally dances herself to death
“Sacrificial Dance”
“Ritual of the Ancestors”
Introduction 17
18
Bass drum
19
20
21
Alto flute
22
23
Bass drum announces new number
24
25
26
Cor anglais and alto flute
27
28
Trumpets and piccolos
29
30
31
32
Bass drum and tam-tam
406
MOD E R N M USI C – N E O- CL A SSI CIS M
Darius Milhaud b 1892–1974
n French
w 426
Milhaud was incredibly prolific and it is unavoidable that his output should be uneven in quality, but it is studded with brilliant little jewels as well as works of vast ambition. Much of his work is saturated with the colour and warmth of his native Provence and an optimistic spirit, which, in later life, survived critical disfavour and decades in which severe arthritis confined him to a wheelchair. LIFE AND MUSIC Milhaud entered the Paris Conservatoire at 17 and then, in 1917, was taken to Rio de Janeiro by poet and diplomat, Paul Claudel, so that they might work on music theatre projects together. The music of Brazil made a lasting impression on Milhaud. Despite deep-seated differences, (he was unshakeably Jewish in his faith, Claudel a proselytizing Catholic), they collaborated for many years. In later life, Milhaud’s career as a teacher alternated between the Paris Conservatoire and the US. His pupils covered the spectrum of 20th-century music and included Iannis Xenakis, Stockhausen, and Dave Brubeck.
MILESTONES
1909
Studies violin at Paris Conservatoire, then composition there
1917
Composes Les Choëphores for stage; travels to Brazil with Claudel
1920s Is member of “Les Six”, a radical young French composers’ group 1919
Writes ballet Le bœuf sur le toit in collaboration with Jean Cocteau
1921 1930 1940
Ballet L’homme et son désir premiered Opera Christophe Colomb is acclaimed Leaves Nazi-occupied France for US
KEY WORKS LES CHOËPHORES MUSIC THEATRE
d 33:00
p7
LE BŒUF SUR LE TOIT ocv
Some of Milhaud’s first and finest music was for Claudel’s translation of Aeschylus’s Oresteia. Devising a way of setting texts of elemental force, Milhaud had passages spoken by the chorus or narrator to a purely percussion backing. The “Incantation” section is stern, bracing, rich, and atmospheric. Milhaud wrote Saudados do Brazil in 1920–21 as a dance suite for piano, but later orchestrated it.
BALLET
d 15:30
p1
o
This was Milhaud’s most popular work right from the start, even though it includes bi-tonal passages (music in two keys at once), one of his favourite devices. He was dismayed that people thought of him as a prankster, largely because of this witty and joyous tribute to the music of Brazil. But, however uproarious it sounds in his hands, he said that he sensed the dark side of this gaiety.
407
M ODER N MUSI C – N E O - CL A SSI CI SM
Paul Hindemith b 1895–1963
n German
w 415
A prolific composer and amazingly gifted all-round musician, Hindemith wrote significant pieces for almost every known instrument in classical music, many of which he could play himself. His early works, often mixing jazz with Neo-Classicism, labelled him a mischief-maker – a far cry from the pedant detractors accused him of becoming later on. His best works, such as Mathis der Maler, resound with a timeless nobility. LIFE AND MUSIC Always a composer first and foremost, Hindemith nonetheless spent the first half of his life making his living as a full-time performer. He became first violinist at the Frankfurt Opera House while still a student at the city’s conservatory and was soon playing viola in professional quartets. Hearing of the death of King George V the night before appearing as a soloist in England, he wrote his Trauermusik for violin and string orchestra at one sitting – allegedly on the train. During the Nazi era, he lived in the US, teaching composition at Yale. His youthful exuberance sometimes surfaced even in later works such as his Concerto for Orchestra and Symphonic Metamorphoses on a Theme of Weber, but his style is generally characterized by his love of Baroque counterpoint and Classical forms.
MILESTONES
1918
Serves as a military bandsman
1921
Opera Murderer, Hope of Women, to a libretto by Expressionist painter Oskar Kokoschka, causes outrage
1922
Completes Kammermusik No. 1
1923
Programmes the Donaueschingen Music Festival, where his song cycle The Life of Mary is premiered
1929
Plays in string trio with cellist Emmuel Feuermann
1934
Fürtwangler premieres Mathis der Maler in Berlin, and defends Hindemith against Nazis in a newspaper article
1940 1953
Takes US citizenship Returns to Europe
1957
Conducts premiere of his opera The Harmony of the World in Munich
KEY WORKS KAMMERMUSIK NO. 1, OP. 24 NO. 1. CHAMBER
d 15:00
p4
e
Hindemith modelled his early “Chamber Music” series on Bach’s “Brandenburg Concertos”. Most feature a solo instrument, but this work is for a band of equals, playing – among other instruments – xylophone, accordion, trumpet, and siren. The music is inventive and uproarious in equal measure. It was written to inaugurate the Donaueschingen Festivals in 1921 with a minimum of pomposity. Kammermusik No. 6 is scored for the viola d’amore, a Baroque instrument favoured by Hindemith.
MATHIS DER MALER – SYMPHONIE ORCHESTRAL
d 27:00
p3
o
This symphony consists of preludes and studies for an opera Hindemith later wrote on the life of the German painter Matthias Grünewald. It portrays panels from the Isenheim altarpiece: the Concert of the Angels, Entombment of Christ, and Torments of St Anthony. The last movement is an instrumental version of the opera’s climactic scene, when the anguished painter identifies himself with the tormented saint – surely an echo of Hindemith’s own predicament in the troubled 1930s.
408
MOD E R N M USI C – N E O- CL A SSI CIS M
Francis Poulenc b 1899–1963
n French
w 185
Poulenc was well aware that he was not a musical innovator, but believed there was still a place for new music that used familiar means. As a master of natural, unpretentious melody, Poulenc has few rivals; his manner of blending Neo-Classical harmonies with the bittersweet touches of French popular song gives his music a distinct and subtle charm, even when it touches on tragedy. LIFE AND MUSIC Poulenc was born into a cultured and wealthy Parisian family (the pharmaceutical giant Rhône-Poulenc still carries its name). Although he studied piano from childhood, he was 22 years old before he went to Charles Koechlin for composition lessons. He joined the group of young French composers known as “Les Six” and, in 1923, Diaghilev commissioned a ballet from him Les biches which achieved popular and critical success. From the 1930s, Poulenc gave concerts of his own songs with the baritone Pierre Bernac. By turns joyous and melancholy, sacred and profane, Poulenc’s music faithfully reflects its composer – a manic depressive, a devout Catholic, and one of the few public figures of his time to be openly (and often turbulently) gay.
MILESTONES
1913
Studies piano with Ricardo Viñes
1918
First piece La Rhapsodie Negre performed in public. Stravinsky helps him find a publisher
1924
Les biches performed by the Ballet Russes in Monte Carlo.
1934
Forms duo with Pierre Bernac
1936
Makes pilgrimage to Notre-Dame de Rocamadour, and writes Litanies à la vierge noire
1938
Concerto for organ, strings and timpani
1948
First tours America with Bernac
1957
Composes his great opera, Les dialogues des Carmélites
1958
La Voix Humaine to text by Cocteau
KEY WORKS SONATA FOR OBOE AND PIANO CHAMBER
d 13:00
p3
e
Poulenc had a gift for chamber music and a special understanding of wind instruments. Towards the end of his life, he wrote a number of sonatas for piano and wind, and this proved to be the last. Dedicated to the memory of Prokofiev, it is a plangent, elegiac piece – all the more haunting for being the composer’s own swansong. Perhaps Poulenc’s greatest success was his surrealist comic opera, Les Mamelles de Tirésias, based on a farce by Apollinaire.
CONCERTO FOR ORGAN, STRINGS, AND TIMPANI ORCHESTRAL
d 22:00
p7
o
In middle life, after the death of a close friend, Poulenc was increasingly drawn to religion. In 1938, when he wrote this piece, he joked that it showed a “Poulenc who was on his way to joining a monastery”. Yet the work’s seven sections cover the gamut of his style, ranging from irreverent burlesque to gothic majesty. The key (G minor) is perhaps an indication of its debt to Bach’s G minor Fantasia.
409
M ODER N MUSI C – N E O - CL A SSI CI SM
William Walton b 1902–1983
n English
w 121
A largely self-taught composer, Walton was one of the great traditionalists of the 20th century. In time, he became the pre-eminent British “establishment” composer, inheriting the mantle of Elgar, both for his mastery of the English choral style and for his celebrated ceremonial music. A man of fastidious musical taste, his major works are relatively few, but of magisterial quality. LIFE AND MUSIC Walton owed much to his fortunate early connections. A boy chorister at Christ Church Cathedral, Oxford, he stayed at the university to study music, and was befriended by the Sitwells, an aristocratic family of writers who supported Walton whilst he established his career. His first famous work was Façade – an “entertainment” much influenced by the jazz of the “flapper” era – to which Edith Sitwell recited her melodious bohemian poetry. Walton’s finest pieces were all written early in his career – the expressive Viola Concerto, the stupendous oratorio Belshazzar’s Feast, and his renowned Symphony No. 1. His war-time film scores won him great popular acclaim. In later years, he lived with his Argentinian wife on the picturesque island of Ischia, near Naples.
MILESTONES
1912 1920 1922
Becomes a chorister in Oxford Moves in with the Sitwells Premiere of Façade
1931
Belshazzar’s Feast, oratorio, premiered to great acclaim
1935
Leaves the Sitwells, who disapprove of his liaison with Lady Alice Wimborne
1936
Writes Crown Imperial for George VI’s coronation
1939 1943 1951
Violin Concerto for Jascha Heifetz Writes film score for Henry V Receives knighthood
1956
Composes music for the coronation of Elizabeth II
1954
Troilus and Cressida, opera, performed
KEY WORKS SYMPHONY NO. 1 ORCHESTRAL
d 40:00
p4
BELSHAZZAR’S FEAST o
Most of this symphony was composed between 1932 and 1933, and the white heat of its intensity owes much to a turbulent love affair with Imma von Dörnberg, a baroness with whom Walton had been living in Switzerland. The four movement work was premiered late in 1935 by the conductor Sir Hamilton Harty; its rapturous reception proved to be the zenith of Walton’s life and achievements.
ORATORIO
d 35:00
p 10
ocv
This is a work of harsh splendour for orchestra, baritone soloist, and choir (for which, as a former boy chorister, Walton always wrote magnificently). Walton treats Belshazzar’s story not as sacred scripture, but as a lurid tale of the supernatural, and the work crams all the drama of an opera or film score into just half an hour. Walton’s magnificent film score for Laurence Olivier’s Henry V was one of his most outstanding achievements.
410
MOD E R N M USI C – N E O- CL A SSI CIS M
Constant Lambert b 1905–1951
n English
w 30
Lambert composed his first orchestral work at the precocious age of 13, but in later life could never dedicate himself to composition with the energy his talent deserved. He was not helped by poor health and alcoholism. His most successful work, the ebullient The Rio Grande, made such an impression on public and critics alike that it overshadowed his less extrovert pieces – a situation which perhaps persists even today. LIFE AND MUSIC Lambert’s father was a painter who left his family for Australia when Constant was only 15. After studying composition with Vaughan Williams at the Royal College of Music and conducting with Malcom Sargent, Lambert became friends with William Walton, Peter Warlock, and painter Charles Ricketts. He then met Serge Diaghilev, who commissioned the 22-year-old composer to write a ballet, Romeo and Juliet, but it was The Rio Grande in 1927 that made Lambert’s name. Always short of money, he pursued a busy career as a conductor, eventually becoming the founding music director of the Royal Ballet. He was also a gifted writer and in his final decade, he achieved notoriety as an eloquent, and sometimes merciless, critic.
MILESTONES
1920
Father deserts family
1920s Wins a scholarship at Royal College of Music in London 1923
Encounters jazz – a lifelong influence
1926
Co-recites with Edith Sitwell at premiere of Walton’s Façade
1926
Romeo and Juliet, ballet, premiered in Monte Carlo by Ballets Russes
1927 1931
The Rio Grande, acclaimed choral work Made music director at Sadler’s Wells
1934
Publishes Music Ho!, a well-written, richly personal view of recent music
1935
Finishes Summer’s Last Will and Testament Writes ballet, Horoscope, for Margot Fonteyn and Vic-Wells company
1938
KEY WORKS THE RIO GRANDE CHORAL
d 15:00
p3
HOROSCOPE osc
Setting a poem by Lambert’s friend, Sacheverell Sitwell, this is an Englishman’s fantasy portrait of Brazil. It provides a heady cocktail of languid exoticism, jazz, and rousing choral writing. SUMMER’S LAST WILL AND TESTAMENT CHORAL
d 50:00
p7
ocv
Lambert valued this haunting, valedictory piece as his best work, not only, perhaps, for its quality, but also because it was true to his melancholic nature. The sombre mood creates tensions which are finally released in the sixth movement’s frenetic dance of death. The last part sets words by the Elizabethan poet Thomas Nashe.
ORCHESTRAL
d 25:00
p5
o
Lambert’s one-act ballet Horoscope was a tribute to his close friendship with Margot Fonteyn and choreographer Frederick Ashton. The glittering orchestral suite that Lambert drew from it consists of five contrasting dances. Dame Margot Fonteyn (seen here in Horoscope) and Lambert were both leading figures in the birth of English national ballet.
411
MODER N MUSI C – N O RTH A M E R I CA
Carl Ruggles b 1876–1971 n American
Walter Piston w 40
Ruggles had only eight works published, but was held in high regard by his experimentalist colleagues Charles Ives and Henry Cowell. Like them, he looked for radical new approaches to writing in his own independent style, creating largely atonal, dissonant music. He frequently revised his works and heard his longest and best-known piece, Sun-Treader, only from a recording. He turned increasingly to painting in later life. MILESTONES
1920s Work published in Cowell’s New Music Edition and is noticed by Ives 1924 1929 1931 1950 1965
Publishes Men and Mountains, orchestral Befriends Charles Ives Completes Sun-Treader, orchestral Finishes Evocations, piano, begun 1937 First hears Men and Mountains
b 1894–1976
n American
w 80
Largely self-taught as a musician (he trained as an engineer and painter) Piston learned various instruments in dance bands and ended up as a respected, meticulous, yet unpedantic teacher at Harvard. An expert in orchestration and theory, he wrote a set of highly esteemed textbooks and received many honours. His music is Neo-Classical in style and often notable for its strong rhythms. He had popular success with pieces such as The Incredible Flutist, his only stage work, and his even-numbered symphonies. MILESTONES
1926 1938 1943 1955 1959
Starts teaching at Harvard University Completes The Incredible Flutist, ballet Writes Symphony No. 2 Orchestration, textbook, published Composes Three New England Sketches
Edgard Varèse b 1883–1965
n French
Varèse’s driving ambition was to find radical new directions in music. After studying at the Paris Conservatoire, he spent much time in Berlin, befriending Busoni and Debussy (whom he introduced to Schoenberg’s atonality). It was in New York, however, that he pioneered new sounds, treading the border between organization and noise. Hyperprism provoked audience Varese said “I refuse to limit myself to sounds that have already been heard”. In the 1940s he adopted the ondes Martenot, (here played by Maurice Martenot). MILESTONES
1915
Leaves Europe to settle in New York
1922
Composes Hyperprism, for wind and percussion
1931 1936 1953 1954
Composes Ionisation, percussion Composes Density 21.5 for solo flute Starts experimenting with electronics Completes Déserts, instruments and tape
w c.50
outrage, but it, and pieces such as his percussion-plus-siren Ionisation, established his modernist credentials. His output was erratic, with many unfinished projects, and he suffered depression in the 1930s when refused research funds; but after World War II his advances in tape-based sound art proved revolutionary.
412
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
Iv
“When you hear strong, masculine music like this, stand up and use your ears like a man!” CHARLES IVES, TO AN AUDIENCE MEMBER WHO WAS HECKLING A NEW PIECE BY HIS FRIEND CARL RUGGLES
413
CH A R L E S I V E S
Charles Ives
es b 1874–1954
n American
w 313
Charles Ives was a great pioneer modernist who experimented with polytonality, multiple tempos, and many-layered textures decades before the famous European modernists. However, in many ways he was a conservative, and a religious, hymn-singing vein runs through even his most radical pieces. The combination of experiment and sturdy affirmation gives his music a strenuous aspirational quality.
LIFE
Ives was the son of a provincial bandmaster with adventurous musical tastes. George Ives’s fondness for getting his children to sing a hymn in one key while accompanying them in another left an indelible mark on his son’s music. Ives was a precocious child: by the age of 14 he’d become the youngest salaried organist in Connecticut and had composed dozens of works. He studied music for four years at Yale University under Horatio Parker, who succeeded in instilling some academic discipline into his unruly student. In 1898 Ives got a job as an actuary, and ten years later he married Harmony Twichell after a long courtship. Later he founded his own insurance firm with his old friend Julian Myrick, and his high-minded principles and hard work made it one of the most respected firms in New York. In 1912 the Iveses bought a farm, to which they invited poor families to stay. One of these agreed to have their daughter adopted; she became Edith Osborne Ives. In 1926 declining health forced Ives to give up composing and in 1930 he retired from the business. During the 1930s and ’40s his music, which had been ignored, was rediscovered by younger admirers. During the ’60s and ’70s his music was championed by Stokowski, Bernstein, and others, and his key pieces are now firmly in the repertoire.
The employees at Ives’s insurance firm pretended not to know about the “old man’s” weekend composing, which continued at breakneck pace up to and beyond World War I.
Total: 313
MUSICAL OUTPUT ORCHESTRAL (43)
4
CHAMBER (23)
14
20
4
7
14
2
1
KEYBOARD (23)
9
4
6
4
CHORAL (42)
12
17
7
5
1
SONGS (182)
22
76
31
51
2
1874
1894
1905
1915
1926
1954
414
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
MUSIC
Ives’s style is made of many disparate things, but the elements aren’t welded together; they keep their separateness. A typical Ives piece might have a sturdy hymn tune harmonized with sturdy chords (but in the wrong key), followed by a wildly rhapsodic line with tumbling piano chords, or it might feature a quick, all-American Stephen Collins Foster melody, next to slow, massive chordal clusters and Debussian shimmers. However, Ives doesn’t just put these ideas side by side; he puts them on top of each other, so that they sound simultaneously. Ives was the first
The Fourth of July from A Symphony: New England Holidays (1913), which celebrates life in small-town America, is one of Ives’s most popular works.
composer to write pieces that had radically different sorts of music going on at once, an effect apparently inspired by childhood memories of hearing brass bands approaching Danbury town square, each playing in a different key and at a different speed. The effect is joyously anarchic. Ives has none of the anxiety of European modernists like Schoenberg. But, despite its democratic appearances, in the end his music affirms conservative values. Chaos is typically subsumed into a hymn tune and a sense of mystical affirmation. MILESTONES
1888
Becomes youngest salaried church organist in Connecticut
1894
Begins four-year course at Yale
1907
Sets up own insurance business (Ives & Myrick) with Julian Myrick
1908
Marries Harmony Twichell
1915
Begins the mystical Universe Symphony; never completed
1916
Completes Fourth Symphony
1918
Heart attack persuades him to put his vast collection of sketches and manuscripts in order
1947
Receives Pulitzer Prize
KEY WORKS STRING QUARTET NO. 2 CHAMBER
d 29:00
p3
e
Ives described this quartet as an argument between four men who “converse, discuss, argue, fight, shake hands, shut up – then walk up the mountainside to view the firmament”. Lowell Mason’s hymn “Bethany” occurs in all three movements, and in the middle movement the second violin is cast as “Rollo”, a character in a well-known children’s book.
different kinds of music moving at different speeds into a meaningful near-chaos. There is a slow-moving string background, a series of woodwind phrases that become ever more dissonant, and an enigmatic repeated trumpet “question”. CONCORD SONATA SOLO PIANO
d 48:00
p4
s
This vast work was described by Ives as “one person’s impression of the spirit of the literature, the philosophy, and the men of Concord, THE UNANSWERED QUESTION ORCHESTRAL d 6:00 p 1 o Massachusetts, of over a half-century The first piece of Two Contemplations for ago.” As always with Ives, the music is peppered with quotations from chamber orchestra, this is a masterly marches and parlour songs. example of Ives’s ability to pile up
CH A R L E S I V E S
415
FOCUS THREE PLACES IN NEW ENGLAND ORCHESTRAL
d 18:00
p3
o
Composed between 1903 and 1914, this much-played orchestral piece follows the typical Ives progression from bracing co-existence of different elements, through riotous complexity, to a radiant vision of eternity. THE “ ST GAUDENS ” IN BOSTON COMMON (8:00) Subtitled “Col. Shaw and his Colored Regiment”, this section is an assemblage of marching tunes and songs, sounding as if overheard from a great distance. PUTNAM ’ S CAMP, REDDING , CONNECTICUT (6:00) An amalgam of two pre-existing pieces, Overture 1776 and Country Band March, this part is a perfect example of Ives’s layering of two tempos, one above the other. THE HOUSATONIC AT STOCKBRIDGE (4:00)
Inspired by the memory of a morning walk that Ives and his wife took along the misty banks of the Housatonic, this is a modern chorale prelude, the hymn tune heard through a beautifully woven orchestral mist. SYMPHONY NO. 4 ORCHESTRAL
d 31:00
p4
oc
This is the quintessential Ives work. The symphony is stuffed with quotations from hymns, marches, and songs. It absorbs many earlier and unfinished works, and the palette conjured by its vast orchestra ranges from the noisiest piled-up complexity to the ethereal delicacy of harp and violins. FIRST MOVEMENT (PRELUDE, MAESTOSO, (3:00) According to Ives, this asks the question “Why?”, to which the following movements offer three diverse answers. Stern fanfares are responded to by a beatific choir, with memories of “Bethany” and “Watchman, Tell us of the Night”.
SECOND MOVEMENT (ALLEGRETTO, 12:00)
This is the most extreme music Ives ever wrote. Crammed into this “comedy” is a riotous piled-up assemblage of melodies, quotations, polyrhythms, and quarter-tones which summon up the chaos of life itself. THIRD MOVEMENT (FUGUE, ANDANTE MODERATO, 8:00) A calm and correct fugue that, as Ives says, expresses “the reaction of life into formalism and ritualism”. FOURTH MOVEMENT (VERY SLOWLY, LARGO
Gathering everything heard so far into an affirmative apotheosis, a military-sounding dirge introduces memories of Ives’s childhood, a chorus singing “Bethany” leads to a climax, and then the music fades into an evocation of eternity.
MAESTOSO, 8:00)
INFLUENCES
In the 1950s, John Cage gave Ives’s American-sounding experiments a Zen Buddhist tinge, governed by chance. Elliott Carter went the other way, making Ives’s complexity much more ordered. Since the 1960s, Ives’s influence on composers as diverse as Luciano Berio, Frederic Rzewski, and Peter Maxwell Davies has been immense.
416
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
Roger Sessions b 1896–1985 n American w 42 than the public. However, this did not Born in Brooklyn, New trouble the idealistic, good-humoured York, Sessions was an intellectual prodigy – composer, who inspired many important he wrote an opera at 13, American composers during his long graduated from Harvard at 18, and and distinguished teaching career. spoke French, Italian, German, and Russian. An able symphonist, he wrote nine symphonies as well as four concertos, three piano sonatas and many vocal pieces, and much of his work was written after he was 60. His technically difficult music has generally proved more popular with students and musicians MILESTONES
1923
The Black Maskers, incidental music, first performed
1925 1957 1963
Moves to Europe for eight years Composes Symphony No. 3 Montezuma, opera, produced
1965
Begins teaching at the Juilliard School of Music
1971
Writes Concerto for Orchestra
The cantata When Lilacs Last in the Dooryard Bloom’d (1970) is an imaginative setting of verse from Leaves of Grass by Walt Whitman, Sessions’ favourite poet.
Virgil Thomson b 1896–1989
n American
Educated at Harvard, Thomson continued his studies in Paris, where he met Satie, who became a major influence on his work. There he also collaborated with fellow expatriate Gertrude Stein on his most famous work, the opera Four Saints in Three Acts,
w c.300
setting Stein’s wordplay and random remarks (tidied up by Thomson’s close friend, the painter Maurice Grosser) to a mosaic of hymn tunes, chant, and straightforward harmony. Back in the US he wrote film scores (often using American ingredients, such as cowboy tunes and spirituals) and orchestral pieces in various styles, and collaborated again with Stein. A fearless but respected critic, he lectured throughout the US and Europe; he also continued to compose, and received many honours. MILESTONES
In his score for Louisiana Story – a documentary about life in the bayou seen through the eyes of a Cajun boy – Thomson included many folk melodies.
1928
Writes Four Saints in Three Acts, opera
1940
Returns to New York; becomes music critic for the Herald Tribune
1936 1947
The Plow that Broke the Plains, film score Writes The Mother of Us All, opera
1948
Louisiana Story, film score, wins Pulitzer Prize
1968
Composes Lord Byron, opera
MODER N MUSI C – N O RTH A M E R I CA
417
Henry Dixon Cowell b 1897–1965
n American
w 996
Henry Cowell was one of America’s rugged “can-do” modernist spirits, in the same mould as Nancarrow, Charles Ives, and John Cage. However, a vein of traditional religiosity can be heard beneath the modern surface of his work, in his allusions to hymns and chorales. Cowell had a tremendously liberating effect on later composers; as Cage put it, he was “the ‘Open Sesame’ for new music in America”. LIFE AND MUSIC An unorthodox upbringing by parents who were “philosophical anarchists” left its mark on the young Cowell, and he found himself on the margins of musical life. In 1914, this talented “wild child” met his greatest mentor, ethnomusicologist Charles Seeger, who taught him much about modern music and what we now call “world music”. Cowell’s early works explore the modernist devices described in his pioneering book New Musical Resources and include tone clusters, graphic notation, the use of several simultaneous tempi and proto-electronic instruments, such as the rhythmicon. In later works an interest in Irish mythology comes to the fore, as part of a general move towards a startlingly eclectic sound-world combining modernism, “world music”, and naively simple diatonic melodies.
MILESTONES
1914
Cowell’s debut concert, includes Adventures in Harmony
1915
Composes Quartet Romantic
1923
European tour performing his ultra-modernist piano works
1927
Creates New Music – concert series, magazine, and record label
1928
Concerto for piano and orchestra
1930
New Musical Resources, his vision of music of the future, published
1933
Writes article Towards Neo-Primitivism about his interest ethnomusicology
1936
Homosexual encounter leads to arrest and four-year imprisonment
1949 1957
Works for Columbia University Composes Persian Set, chamber music
KEY WORKS EIGHT SIMULTANEOUS MOSAICS EXPERIMENTAL
d 9:00
p1
e
Despite its late date (1963), this piece is amazingly experimental in form. There is no full score, only a series of instrumental parts whose combination in time is left deliberately free. PERSIAN SET CHAMBER
d 20:00
p4
es
Cowell intended this work to be “a simple record of musical contagion, written at the end of a three-month stay in Iran”. Written for the Iranian lute (the tar) accompanied by a chamber orchestra, it is one of Cowell’s successful evocations of distant music cultures.
Cowell was a pioneer of innovative piano effects, such as playing groups of keys together in “toneclusters” and strumming the strings directly.
418
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
Gersh “I don’t think there has been such an inspired melodist on this Earth since Tchaikovsky…” LEONARD BERNSTEIN
419
GE O RGE GE R SH W I N
George Gershwin
hwin b 1898–1937
n American
w 369
George Gershwin was one of the most exuberantly talented and successful composers of the 20th century, and its most tragically short-lived. He had his first Broadway success in 1919 and his first “classical” success in 1924, and thereafter remained dominant in both fields, winning the respect of such severe “classical” masters as Rachmaninov and – amazingly – Arnold Schoenberg.
LIFE
Gershwin’s parents were Russian Jews who emigrated to the US in the 1890s. From 1910 Gershwin studied piano seriously and soon progressed to Chopin, Liszt, and Debussy. In 1914 he abandoned classical music in favour of Tin Pan Alley (though he returned to it later in life), by dropping out of high school to work for Jerome Remick and Co. In 1920 he had his first hit with “Swanee”, recorded by Al Jolson. Over the next four years he wrote five Broadway revues, two London shows, and three Broadway ones, one of which, Lady Be Good, was the first of many with lyrics by his brother, Ira. In 1924 he gave the premiere of his Rhapsody in Blue. His new wealth allowed him to move into a smart townhouse on the Upper West Side, and to seduce innumerable women. During the late 1920s he followed up the success of Rhapsody with other “classical” pieces including the Concerto in F and the Preludes. In 1928 he travelled to Europe and met Prokofiev, Milhaud, Ravel, and Berg. Throughout the ’30s he divided his time between concert tours as a pianist and composing musicals, including Strike up the Band and Girl Crazy. In 1936 he and Ira signed a contract with RKO film studios, which led to Shall We Dance?, A Damsel in Distress, and The Goldwyn Follies. Gershwin died at the height of his fame in 1937.
A true crossover artist, Gershwin’s serious compositions remain highly popular in the Classical repertoire, and his stage and film songs continue to be jazz and vocal standards.
Total: 369
MUSICAL OUTPUT ORCHESTRAL (6)
2
CHAMBER (9)
1
1
3
11
4
5
MUSICAL THEATRE (28)
13
FILM MUSICALS (7)
1
3 6
OPERAS (1)
1
SONGS (318)
3 1898
122 1919
96 1925
97 1931
1937
420
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
MUSIC
Gershwin’s importance in the history of American “classical” music should not obscure the fact that he was in essence a songwriter. His genius needed no more than the four-minute frame of the popular song, with its predictable verse-and-chorus structure. They fall into a number of types: the sturdy march song, such as “Swanee” and “Strike up the Band”; fast, syncopated songs, such as “Fascinating Rhythm” and “I got Rhythm”; the slow romantic ballad, of which the best-known are “Someone to Watch Over Me” and “Embraceable You”; and the mediumtempo song with an irresistible swinging beat, like “Nice Work if You can Get It”. Though formally simple, these songs are enriched by startlingly original modulations. The regular two- and four-bar phrases of his songs recur in Gershwin’s concert works, and in his opera Porgy and Bess, as do the characteristic
MILESTONES
1914
Starts work in Tin Pan Alley
1918
Has three songs accepted by Broadway shows
1919
First full Broadway show La La Lucille opens
1924
Lady be Good opens on Broadway; premiere of Rhapsody in Blue with Gershwin himself at the piano
1925 1928 1930 1932 1935
Concerto in F major premiered An American in Paris premiered Girl Crazy opens on Broadway Cuban Overture Porgy and Bess opens on Broadway
1936
Signs contract with RKO film studios and moves with his brother, Ira, to Hollywood, but dies the following year
“blue-note” harmonies of AfricanAmerican music. The concert works achieve their effect by their melodic appeal and accumulation of contrasts, although the Concerto in F major shows a remarkable subtlety of form.
KEY WORKS CONCERTO IN F MAJOR ORCHESTRAL
d 33:00
p3
os
Unlike the earlier Rhapsody in Blue, which was scored by an assistant, this piano concerto was scored by Gershwin himself. In the four years after composing Rhapsody in Blue, Gershwin made a close study of European modernist composers, so it is not surprising that, whereas the
earlier rhapsody had relied on simple alternations of soloist and orchestra, the concerto makes use of thematic transformation (the recurrence of a main theme in different guises to lend unity to the piece). The result was the pinnacle of Gershwin’s achievement as a concert composer. AN AMERICAN IN PARIS ORCHESTRAL
The film An American in Paris (1951), starring Gene Kelly and Leslie Caron, had a score by George Gershwin, lyrics by his brother Ira, and a book by Alan Jay Lerner.
d 22:00
p1
os
Gershwin said of this piece, “My intention here is to portray the impressions of an American visitor in Paris as he strolls about the city, listens to various street noises, and absorbs the French atmosphere.” An opening section of infectious gaiety leads to a slow, reflective blues, showing perhaps an attack of homesickness. However, cheerfulness returns, and at the end “the street noises and French atmosphere are triumphant”.
FOCUS PORGY AND BESS OPERA
d 190:00
p3
ocv
Given Gershwin’s love of AfricanAmerican idioms, it is not surprising that his one “serious” music drama should be on an African-American theme. The piece is criticized today for its clichéd, folksy image of AfricanAmericans, but Gershwin can hardly be blamed for accepting the mindset of his time. The opera remains a riveting and profoundly moving work. ACT ONE The action opens in Catfish Row, a poor fishing community. The drunken, brutal Crown kills a man during a craps game, then flees. The drug dealer Sportin’ Life offers to take Bess, Crown’s woman, to New York with him. Instead Bess goes to stay with the crippled Porgy. ACT TWO Porgy and Bess sing the love duet “Bess, You Is My Woman Now”, then Bess leaves for a picnic on an island. Crown appears at the picnic to reclaim Bess and she stays on the island with him. Two days later she is found, delirious. She wants to stay
with Porgy, but is afraid that Crown still has a fatal hold over her. The act ends with a hurricane starting to blow. ACT THREE Porgy kills Crown, but nobody gives him away. However, he is jailed for a week and, while he is away, Bess is drugged by Sportin’ Life, who takes her to New York. When Porgy is freed, he vows to find her and prepares to leave on his quest. Gershwin advertised the work as “an experiment in modern music”. The combined frisson of being fashionably new and risqué drew a glittering audience to the premiere. The work has a sectional form, with a big, slow central melody. The obvious jazzy elements in the score have obscured the distinctly Jewish tinge in the melodies, some of which recall synagogue chants.
RHAPSODY IN BLUE d 13:45
ORCHESTRAL
p1
os
The premiere of this piece in 1924 propelled Gershwin into the history books as the man “who first brought jazz into the concert hall”. In many people’s eyes, the idea that the “low”, socially disreputable popular music of African-Americans could fuse with classical music was too shocking to contemplate. Molto moderato 1Quadruple (initial tempo); time; B flat minor; Ternary form
Piano cadenza
Second piano cadenza
A
B 1
2
3
Piano enters Clarinet introduces first theme
4
5
Brass play new theme
6
7
8
Orchestra enters with lyrical theme
Coda 9
10
11
Third piano cadenza
12
13
Horns enter with faster version of lyrical theme
422
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
Copl
“I do not compose; I assemble materials.” AARON COPLAND
423
A A RO N COP L A N D
Aaron Copland
land b 1900–1990
n American
w 135
Aaron Copland is probably the best-known, and certainly one of the most profoundly gifted, classical composers that America has ever produced. In the 1930s and ’40s he synthesized jazz, Neo-Classical, and folk elements into a style that for many people summons up the spirit of his native country. This, combined with his energetic entrepreneurial and organizational gifts, makes him the key figure in 20th-century American music.
LIFE
Copland was born in New York into a prosperous family of Polish-Lithuanian Jews. During his teens he studied music privately, scoured libraries for scores of new music, took an interest in jazz and, from 1921, spent three years in Paris. While there he acquired a cast-iron technique and a Neo-Classical aesthetic from music teacher Nadia Boulanger, and was dazzled by Parisian artistic life. Back home, early works such as the Piano Concerto earned him the reputation of a hot-headed modernist. Lacking commissions, he staved off destitution by teaching and writing, and threw himself into the cause of new music. He was co-director of the Copland–Sessions concerts and co-founder of the Yaddo Festival, the Arrow Music Press, and the American Composers’ Alliance. In 1934 he wrote workers’ choruses and an article on proletarian music that got him into trouble with Senator McCarthy’s House Committee on Un-American Activities in the 1940s. However, by then he had become the musical voice of America with populist works such as El sálon México and the ballet Appalachian Spring, which won a Pulitzer Prize. In the 1960s he became American music’s wise, urbane father figure, dispensing advice and friendship to younger musicians like Bernstein.
Though best known to the public for his “Americana”, Copland was also a composer of jazz, avant garde, and serialist works.
Total: 135
MUSICAL OUTPUT ORCHESTRAL (33)
2
FILM SCORES / INCIDENTAL (14) CHAMBER (19)
7
6
11
3
1
8
4
11 1
4
2
1
5
PIANO MUSIC (26)
9
6
2
4
5
DRAMATIC (8)
1
2
3
1
1
CHORAL (13)
3
2
4
4
SONGS (22)
13
2
2
5
1900
1926
1937
1947
1958
1990
424
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
MUSIC
At first Copland behaved like a true avant-garde composer, shocking audiences with sharp dissonance and jazzy irreverence. But he was never an ivory-tower composer; he wanted his music to relate to contemporary issues, and to appeal to public taste. In the 1930s, under the impact of the Depression and a wave of left-wing sentiment among artists, he found a new awareness of himself as an American and as a citizen. In a series of ballets, Billy the Kid, Rodeo, and Appalachian Spring, he crystallized
Copland wrote extensively for films in the 1940s. His score for William Wyler’s 1948 film The Heiress, starring Olivia de Havilland, won an Academy Award.
the style that made him famous. It was a style rooted in the forms of Stravinskian Neo-Classicism, but this was united with a specifically American lyricism and feeling for landscape, both rural and urban. In the later years of his career, in the 1960s, he even succeeded in marrying Schoenberg’s 12-tone technique with his own personal sound-world. MILESTONES
1925
Completes first major work, the ballet Grohg
1938
Billy the Kid, first of his three great ballets, premiered by Lincoln Kirstein’s Ballet Caravan
1944
Appalachian Spring performed by Martha Graham Touring Company
1954
Elected to American Academy of Arts and Letters
1958
Debut with New York Philharmonic launches 20-year conducting career
1961
Moves to Peerskill NY, where he lives until his death
1964 1972
Presidential Medal of Freedom Ceases composing
KEY WORKS PIANO VARIATIONS SOLO PIANO
d 11:00
s
Copland said “this was the first of my works where I felt very sure of myself ”. It is generally regarded as the most impressive product of Copland’s “abstract” period in the early 1930s. The piece has an unusual combination of rhythmic propulsion derived from jazz and a very strict compositional logic, influenced by Schoenberg’s 12-tone system. SYMPHONY NO. 3 ORCHESTRAL
d 42:00
p4
o
Copland was aiming for a big statement in this work, appropriate to a time of national stress (he began writing the symphony during World War II). The “public” manner
culminates in the grandeur of the finale, which begins by quoting Copland’s earlier Fanfare for the Common Man. CLARINET CONCERTO ORCHESTRAL
d 17:00
p2
os
Like Copland’s earlier piano concerto, this consists of two movements separated by a cadenza. The first movement is one of his most inspired pastoral melodies, which unfolds over a stately slow-motion waltz accompaniment. The second explodes in jazzy fireworks, inspired by jazz clarinettist Benny Goodman, for whom the piece was written.
425
A A RO N COP L A N D
FOCUS
The young farmer and his bride-tobe act out their feelings of hope, excitement, and trepidation. Copland said he was inspired by Graham’s choreography, which he described as “prim and restrained, simple yet strong… the music reflects, I hope, the unique quality of a human being, an American landscape and a way of feeling”. Towards the end, the traditional Shaker tune “Simple Gifts” is first quoted and then subtly varied.
APPALACHIAN SPRING d 35:30
BALLET
p8
e
The third and most perfect of Copland’s “American” ballets, the work was commissioned in 1943 for the choreographer Martha Graham. It was originally scored for only 13 players, though it’s more often heard today in the arrangement Copland made for full orchestra. The ballet portrays a “pioneer celebration of Spring in a newly built farmhouse in Pennsylvania in the early 1800s”. Tempo: very slowly. Woodwind and strings play quietly. Each of the Tender duo for characters enters bride and groom
Bride’s solo dance expressing joy, fear, and presentiment of motherhood
Bride takes place among neighbours; piece ends with solemn passage, like the beginning
Fast dance started by strings
Coda 1
2
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
Sudden burst of action: vigorous dance as strings play in unison
10
11
12
13
14
The revivalist and his flock: square dance
15
16
17
18
19
20
Strings introduce Shaker hymn
21
22
23
24
Scenes of daily activity
25
26
27
28
29
30
Hymn reappears
31
32
33
34
35
Flute reintroduces first theme
12 POEMS OF EMILY DICKINSON SONG-CYCLE
d 28:00
p 12
vs
This setting of poems by the visionary, reclusive poet Emily Dickinson is one of the great song-cycles of the 20th century. They are set in Copland’s lean mature style, the piano part often confined to single notes in each hand, a style perfectly suited to the poems, which deal with the grandest subjects in the simplest language. The wideopen sounds of the music match Dickinson’s rural imagery, and the unfussy rhythms of the songs accords with the Biblical plainness of Dickinson’s verse. Within these limits the range of moods is vast: homely simplicity in “Nature, the gentlest mother”, a funereal tread in “I felt a funeral in my brain”, bugle-calls and rushing scales in “There came a wind like a bugle”.
426
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
Samuel Barber b 1910–1981
n American
w c.50
Barber’s music defies easy classification. Effortlessly lyrical, Romantic, and yet unmistakably contemporary, he achieved huge popularity without aligning himself to any school of composition or appearing concerned with modernist trends. His comparatively small output covered all genres, although he is best remembered for his vocal works and the Adagio for Strings, made famous by the conductor Toscanini. LIFE AND MUSIC
Barber trained both as a composer and singer at the renowned Curtis Academy. At a time when music was dominated by European modernists such as Schoenberg and Stravinsky, Barber’s easy Romanticism struck a chord with audiences. His gift for flowing, memorable melody lines served to mask the more contemporary aspects of his composition, notably an acute Barber’s Adagio for Strings owes its fame to Toscanini, who performed it with the NBC Orchestra in 1938.
handling of dissonance and highly inventive orchestration. His output, already less than prodigious, declined sharply after the failure of his opera Antony and Cleopatra at the New York Metropolitan in 1966. MILESTONES
1924 1931
Enrols at Curtis Institute Composes vocal work Dover Beach
1935
Fellow of American Academy in Rome
1936 1938 1939 1942 1947 1949 1958 1962
Composes Symphony No. 1 Arranges Adagio for Strings Composes Violin Concerto Serves in US Air Corp Composes Knoxville, Summer of 1915 Piano Sonata premiered by Horowitz Opera Vanessa wins Pulitzer Prize Composes Piano Concerto
KEY WORKS SYMPHONY NO. 1 ORCHESTRAL
d 22:00
p4
o
Barber’s Symphony No. 1 must be ranked as one of the great American orchestral pieces of the 20th century. It is a work of great power, at once traditional in form and yet original in the treatment of its theme.
growing up in the Deep South. Barber’s setting is extraordinary not only for its lyrical beauty, but also for the delicacy with which it captures the shifting moods of the text. As the soprano Leontyne Price later said, “You can smell the South in it.” HERMIT SONGS, OP. 29
KNOXVILLE, SUMMER OF 1915 SONG
d 16:00
p1
ov
Knoxville, Summer of 1915 was a short piece of prose by the American poet James Agee, recalling his feelings of wonder and confusion as a child
SONG
d 16:00
p 10
sv
The beautifully crafted Hermit Songs are settings of Irish monastic texts from the 8th to 13th centuries and are a wonderful illustration of Barber’s mastery of the voice.
427
SA M UE L BA R B E R
FOCUS ADAGIO FOR STRINGS ORCHESTRAL
d 8:30
p1
o
The poignant Adagio for Strings is Barber’s most popular work. Composed in 1936, the Adagio originally formed the central movement of his String Quartet, Op. 11. Two years later Barber rescored it for a full string orchestra, taking advantage of the extra resources to add weight and sonority. The form of the Adagio has been likened to a long arch, based on the gradual expansion of a single, simple theme. This is heard first in hushed tones on the violins, before a more strident presentation by the cellos. After a process of ascending development, an impassioned climax is reached, before the music breaks off abruptly, almost as if overcome by emotion. The work then concludes quietly, recalling fragments of the theme.
Perhaps because of its profoundly melancholic, contemplative tone, the Adagio has found wide resonance with the public and has been played at many funerals, including those of John F Kennedy, Roosevelt, and Einstein. In 1967, Barber re-scored it for chorus, setting the Agnus Dei text. Arguably less successful than previous incarnations, it was nevertheless popularized further in this guise in the film Platoon. VIOLIN CONCERTO ORCHESTRAL
d 21:00
p3
os
Commissioned for a child prodigy, the first two movements of the Violin Concerto were – according to the young violinist – insufficiently taxing to showcase his talent. In response, Barber wrote a finale so difficult that the young violinist couldn’t play it. FIRST MOVEMENT (ALLEGRO, 10:00) Melody abounds in this movement. Unusually, Barber chose to dispense with an introduction, the soloist launching immediately into the lyrical main theme of this sonata-form movement. SECOND MOVEMENT (ANDANTE, 8:00) A haunting solo oboe introduces the first theme, which is developed by the strings before the soloist enters after nearly three minutes and leads into a darker and more impassioned section. THIRD MOVEMENT (PRESTO IN MOTO PERPETUOSO, 3:00) An astonishing tour de force for the soloist against a background of wild rhythms from the orchestra, this finale could hardly cut a greater contrast with the first two movements.
428
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
John Cage b 1912–1992
n American
w 229
John Cage may well be the most original composer in the history of Western music. His life’s project was to repudiate the entire Western tradition, but not in a spirit of anger or negativity. Even at its most chaotic, his music comes across as exuberant and lifeaffirming. He used chance procedures to free sounds from the “bullying” effects of human intentions and rules, so that they could “be themselves”. LIFE AND MUSIC Born in Los Angeles, John Cage became interested in classical Indian music and Oriental philosophies. He formed a percussion orchestra before settling in New York in 1942 and beginning a lifelong collaboration with dancer Merce Cunningham’s dance company. His lifeproject began with a ruthless process of stripping away, starting with harmony and melody. (Cage’s earliest pieces are built out of pure rhythm, played on percussion or the “prepared piano”.) Then he stripped away intention and form by introducing chance operations into music, ending up with pure silence in his famous piece 4' 33". This led to a welcoming in, when any chance noises could become part of a “piece”. This is why Cage’s later music ranges from the simplicity of Two to the riotous complication of Roaratorio.
MILESTONES
1934
Meets Arnold Schoenberg and decides to dedicate his life to music
1938 Invents the “prepared piano” 1940s Studies Zen Buddhism 1948
Completes Sonatas and Interludes for prepared piano.
1950
Creates first “chance pieces” after reading Chinese book of I Ching
1952
Creates silent piece 4´ 33´´
1961
Variations II premiered; Silence (collected writings) brings him world fame
1978
Starts to “write” music as graphic designs at Crown Point Press
1979 1987
Roaratorio, with tape, premiered Employing randomness, writes Two, first of his late “time bracket” pieces
KEY WORKS SONATAS AND INTERLUDES SOLO PIANO
d 64:00
p 20
s
This sequence of 16 sonatas, interleaved with four interludes, attempts to represent the eight “permanent emotions” of ancient Indian thought, “and their common tendency towards tranquillity”. It is scored for “prepared piano”, Cage’s invention whereby metal and rubber objects are placed inside a piano to alter the sound. In 4’ 33” the pianist sits reading the score, shown here, for four minutes 33 seconds, but does not play.
VARIATIONS II CHAMBER
p1
e
This is perhaps Cage’s most extreme experiment in notation. The “score” consists of 11 transparent sheets bearing lines or dots. These are tossed down and the resulting patterns used to determine the basic characteristics of the sounds. ROARATORIO TAPE & VOCAL
d 75:00
p1
ev
This exuberant work – a joyous cacophony – for electronic tape and live performers is an attempt to translate James Joyce’s vast novel Finnegans Wake into sound.
MODER N MUSI C – N O RTH A M E R I CA
429
Roy Harris b 1898–1979
n American
Harris’s broad, sweeping melodies, robustly based on hymns and American folk tunes and with vigorous but unusual rhythms, suggest the Midwest landscapes he knew well (he grew up on a farm in Oklahoma and drove a truck during his college days). MILESTONES
1925 1926 1929
Andante for Strings wins competition Goes to study in Paris Injured in a fall; returns to US
1933
Conductor Sergei Koussevitsky commissions symphony from him
1934 1938
Completes first of his 13 symphonies Composes Symphony No. 3
w c.200
After winning a music competition, he went to New York, where he befriended Aaron Copland, and then to Paris to study under Nadia Boulanger. There, his Concerto for Piano, Clarinet, and String Quartet received acclaim. Back in the US, he established his “American” style with great success in his orchestral works. He taught at several institutes and was widely honoured. His Symphony No. 3 is often called the greatest American symphony.
The rugged landscape of the American West is reflected in a distinctly rugged quality in many of Harris’s works.
Conlon Nancarrow b 1912–1997
n American
Turning his back on an engineering career, Nancarrow studied music privately, fought in the Spanish Civil War, and – escaping anti-communist feeling in America – moved to Mexico City permanently. There he composed in isolation an extraordinary series of studies for the player piano, which could be “programmed” to automatically play
w c.75
music punched into piano rolls. The 50 or so works use an astounding variety of techniques, such as inhumanly fast tempos, relentless accelerations, and unimaginably mathematical crossrhythms. In the late 1970s Nancarrow’s music was discovered and recorded, and he found fame: he was given commissions, he was invited to international music festivals, and received a $300,000 award. In his early career, Nancarrow notated all his mature compositions on player-piano rolls. Most of them are impossible for human hands to play. MILESTONES
1930
Starts composing conventionally
1939
Refused US passport after having fought in Spanish Civil War
1940 1947 1948 1992
Moves to Mexico City Buys player piano Writes Study No. 1 for player piano Writes Study No. 52 for player piano
430
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
Leonard Bernstein b 1918–1990
n American
w 90
Bernstein was one of the most dazzlingly gifted musicians of the 20th century. He was also an immense personality, with huge intellectual curiosity. He achieved pre-eminence in two fields: conducting, and composing for Broadway musicals and dance shows. He was also an eminent composer of concert music, though here his achievement is more uneven and controversial. LIFE AND MUSIC
Bernstein was the son of a family of rabbis, and Jewish themes feature prominently in his music. By the end of his student years, it was clear his talents would be divided between “serious” music and Broadway. His greatest successes as a composer came before he was 40, both in the musical theatre (West Side Story, Candide) and in concert music (Symphonies Nos. 1 and 2 and Serenade). After becoming chief conductor of the New Bernstein became a “giant of the podium” the only rival to Herbert von Karajan.
York Philharmonic, conducting took up more of his time. However, he strove to compose at the same pace, while leading a complicated love life and showing support for unpopular causes such as the Black Panthers. “I’m overcommitted on all fronts,” he once said. MILESTONES
1939
Writes thesis “Race Elements in Music”; graduates from Harvard University
1943
Wins fame conducting New York Philharmonic when Bruno Walter is ill
1944
Symphony No. 1, ballet Fancy Free, and musical On the Town are big successes
1949 1953 1956
Composes Symphony No. 2 Is first American to conduct at La Scala Completes operetta Candide
1973
Lectures at Harvard televised in US and abroad as The Unanswered Question
1983
Opera A Quiet Place premiered
KEY WORKS CANDIDE OPERETTA
d 140:00
A QUIET PLACE p2
ov
Based on Voltaire’s brilliant satire of human folly written in 1759, this is one of Bernstein’s greatest creations. It reflects the 1950s trend for crossfertilization between the Broadway musical on one hand and “straight” theatre and opera on the other. Much of Candide’s verve springs from its joyous parodies of different styles: Baroque “moto perpetuo”, the “waltz aria” of French operetta, and even 12-tone music in the duet “Quiet”.
OPERA
d 150:00
p3
ov
Bernstein considered this the summation of his work. It takes Trouble in Tahiti, his early (1951) “operetta” about social malaise – which portrays the failing marriage of Sam and Dinah – and inserts it, unchanged, into a contemporary soap opera that opens 30 years later, at Dinah’s funeral. The use of flashback, the mix of musical styles, and the treatment of difficult themes, including homosexuality, make this a challenging work.
L E O NA R D B E R N ST E I N
431
FOCUS WEST SIDE STORY MUSICAL
d 90:00
p2
ocv
SYMPHONY NO. 2, “THE AGE OF ANXIETY”
Bernstein’s masterpiece, and one of the ORCHESTRAL d 36:00 p 2 o s great musicals of all time, takes the This symphony takes its scenario of idea of Shakespeare’s Romeo and Juliet three men and a woman who meet and transfers it to 1950s New in a New York bar during the Second York. Bernstein, Choreographer World War from W H Auden’s Jerome Robbins and writer ingenious long poem The Age of Anxiety. Arthur Laurents together For its relatively short length, the elaborated the story of symphony has a very complicated form: a native-born Polish boy and a it is a combination of piano concerto, Puerto Rican girl newly arrived in and theme and variations. In addition, America, describing how their love it is also divided into two parts. is thwarted by the constant warfare The first closely follows the poem’s between rival gangs on the city’s portrayal of “seven ages and seven West Side. Bernstein offered the job stages” – hence the 14 variations. of lyricist to the then-unknown The second portrays the goings-on Stephen Sondheim, who proved to back at the girl’s apartment and be a brilliant choice. The show’s debt begins with a dirge (this includes a to Rodgers and Hammerstein’s South 12-note row) followed by a strange Pacific can be seen in its mix of Bernstein was a noted masque in Bernstein’s most opera and Broadway idioms, the conductor of Mahler, brilliant jazz idiom and Brahms, and Copland. dramatic integration of dance, a final, affirmative chorale. and the use of song to highlight The combination of influences – social tensions. However, the hardBrahms, Hindemith, Berg, and jazz – edged gang music, and the sheer range makes for a fascinating, if only of Bernstein’s invention, takes this partially successful, mix. work far beyond its model. Bernstein later created a suite of orchestral INFLUENCES Symphonic Dances from the musical. Bernstein’s blending of classical “Americana” with jazz elements and his concern to address big metaphysical and social issues certainly find an echo in contemporary American music. However, his sources – jazz, Jewish music, and “classic” American composers such as Copland – still remain more influential than Bernstein himself.
432
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
Elliott Carter b 1908–
n American
w 100
Elliott Carter is the oldest of that vanishing breed of modernists born before World War II. Since the late 1940s he has clung to the unfashionable view that music has to be many-layered and full of complex cross-currents, because only then can it be true to the complexity of modern life. In his music of the 1980s and ’90s the textures thinned out, but the thought behind it was as quick and subtle as ever. LIFE AND MUSIC
Carter was born in New York into a prosperous lace-importing family that spent much of its time in Europe. Having got acquainted with new music through Charles Ives, he joined the long line of American composers who studied with the great Paris-based advocate of Neo-Classicism, Nadia Boulanger. In the late 1940s Carter had a creative crisis that led him to abandon his populist American NeoClassical stance in favour of an uncompromising modernism. Until the 1980s and ’90s this made him better known in Europe than America, but recently the American establishment has woken up to the fact that it has a great modernist master in its midst.
MILESTONES
1924
Meets Charles Ives
1926
Enters Harvard to study literature, Greek, and philosophy; studies music on the side at the Longy School
1932
Begins three-year stay in Paris
1939
Marries sculptress Helen Frost; begins teaching in Annapolis, US
1948
Composes “breakthrough” piece, the Cello Sonata
1960
String Quartet No. 2 wins Pulitzer Prize, New York Music Critics’ Award, and UNESCO First Prize
1976
Composes Symphony of Three Orchestras; premiere of vocal work A Mirror on Which to Dwell
1999
Premiere of opera What Next?
KEY WORKS STRING QUARTET NO. 2 CHAMBER
d 12:30
p4
e
This quartet followed a three-year gap in composing while Carter explored chord types and a new method of changing smoothly from one tempo to another, which he called “metric modulation”. Both these ideas can be seen in the String Quartet No. 2. The third guiding idea was that of music conceived as a drama played out by musical “characters”. Here the first violin is virtuosic and fantastic, the second violin is “laconic and orderly, sometimes humorous”, the viola is theatrically doleful, while the cello is played as impetuous.
WHAT NEXT? OPERA
d 50:00
p1
ocv
Carter’s first opera, premiered at Berlin Staatsoper under Daniel Barenboim, is a sparkling 50-minute comedy about a group of people marooned on a freeway after a car crash, trying to remember who and where they are. SYMPHONIA ORCHESTRAL
d 45:00
p3
o
In 1992, Carter embarked on his biggest project to date: a three movement piece for large orchestra lasting 45 minutes. Carter gave it the subtitle “Sum fluxae pretium spei” (“I am the Prize of Flowing Hope”).
433
E L L I OT CA RT E R
FOCUS A SYMPHONY OF THREE ORCHESTRAS ORCHESTRAL
d 15:45
p1
o
This single-movement orchestral work was Carter’s response to Hart Crane’s magnificent poem “The Bridge”, a mystical evocation of Brooklyn Bridge and the city of New York. In Hart’s poem the bridge becomes a symbol which spans a river and a continent, and which unites an ancient past and a technological future. To capture this visionary quality, Carter created a dense, glistening soundscape for three orchestras, the first consisting of brass, timpani, and strings, the second of percussion, clarinets, and solo strings, and the third of winds, horns, and upper strings. Each orchestra has its own repertoire of chords and melodic shapes, and its own independent succession of tempos. These are unfolded simultaneously, creating Carter’s most extreme experiment in collage. The piece begins
with a high trumpet solo, which has been described as the definitive portrait in sound of New York, and ends with a “factory-noise” coda that tumbles down to the depths of the orchestra. CELLO SONATA CHAMBER
d 21:45
p4
e
In the 1940s Carter had become dissatisfied with the populist style of his early works, and over the next decade he began to grope his way towards a new style. The second movement of the Cello Sonata, originally intended as the first, is in a jazz-tinged style, but the next two movements introduce musical ideas moving at different speeds. He then composed a new first movement, which instead of starting with a “theme” presents chords and intervals that act as a “quarry” for everything that follows. This movement picks up from the ending, which means the work is in the shape of an endless loop, with the “beginning” in the middle.
434
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
Milton Babbitt b 1916–
n American
After playing jazz, Babbitt was a music graduate by 19 and carried on studying privately. An early proponent of 12-tone music, he worked in music and mathematics university faculties, developing advanced theories of musical systems. He taught at
w c.110 Princeton and the Juilliard School, among others, and became a significant writer and lecturer – and, as well as being a major intellectual, he is also a sports fan and raconteur. Babbitt’s highly structured and complex works makes them unlikely to gain popular success, but they and his teachings have proved very influential. Frequently honoured, he was still composing and working well into his 80s. Babbitt’s exploratory compositions have involved at various times tape, synthesiser (including the 1960s model shown left), and conventional instruments. MILESTONES
Lou Harrison b 1917–2003
n American
1940
Composition for String Orchestra, 12-tone work
1960 1963 1970 1973 1982
Professor of music at Princeton Philomel, for soprano and synthesizer Composes String Quartet No. 3 Starts teaching composition at Juilliard Pulitzer Prize citation for life’s work
Leon Kirchner w c.220
Harrison was a US West Coast experimenter, synthesizing world native and Western styles, working in different tuning systems, and creating novel percussive sounds. With his partner William Colvig he developed “American gamelan”, from items such as garbage cans, tins, and baseball bats. He also wrote for standard Western instruments, usually with a lyrical flavour, and collaborated with Ives and Cage. His opera Young Caesar shows his advocacy of gay rights. MILESTONES
1946
Conducts premiere of Ives’s Symphony No. 3
1974
Composes Suite for Violin and American Gamelan
1988
Completes Young Caesar, opera
b 1919–
n American
w 50
Alongside a distinguished teaching career Kirchner has served as pianist and conductor. His music – sometimes agonised, sometimes driving and energetic – is firmly in the tradition of his mentor, Schoenberg, flowing and unfolding, but always governed by some underlying idea, and resistant to temporary musical fashions. He received a Pulitzer Prize for his Quartet No. 3. MILESTONES
1958 1961 1962
Composes String Quartet No. 2 Professor of music at Harvard Composes Piano Concerto No. 2
1973
Composes Lily, chamber ensemble and tape (arrangement of opera)
1997
Writes Of things exactly as they are, two singers, chorus, orchestra
MODER N MUSI C – N O RTH A M E R I CA
435
Ned Rorem b 1923–
n American
Rorem studied with Virgil Thomson (for whom he was secretary and copyist) and Copland at the Juilliard School. After winning prizes with the Lordly Hudson (best published song of 1948) and his Overture in C (Gershwin Prize) he went to Paris, where he lived for several years and became part of the artistic circles of Cocteau and Poulenc, one of his inspirations. Back in New York, where the success of his songs drew him, he taught at various institutes and
w c.450 increasingly developed his reputation as an excellent song composer (he has written nearly 400, with naturalness of word setting and advanced but never impossible harmonies) and as a writer (such as his elegant and frank diaries). During his time in Paris, Rorem wrote his entertaining journal The Paris Diary of Ned Rorem (1950–55).
MILESTONES
1951 1958 1965 1966
Goes to Paris Returns to New York Composes Miss Julie, opera Publishes The Paris Diary of Ned Rorem
1976
Air Music, orchestra, wins Pulitzer Prize
1997
Composes Evidence of Things Not Seen, song cycle
Morton Feldman b 1926–1987
n American
Spurning conventional academic training – he worked in the family business – Feldman was influenced by the new sounds of Varèse, the pioneering work of Cage, and especially New York’s 1950s abstract Expressionist school of painters and their faith in directness and instinct. His modernist pieces sometimes involve nonstandard notation (his series of pieces Projections and Intersections are Blue Penumbra, 1957 (oil on canvas) by painter Mark Rothko, a friend of Feldman’s and one who helped shape his sound world.
w c.150
written on graphical scores, with general directions rather than individual notes on a stave), and can be of immense length – his String Quartet II lasts almost six hours. One of his last works, Palais de Mari, is unusual for a late composition in that it is only 20 minutes long. It came about from a request for Feldman to sum up everything he was doing in his very long pieces and to condense that into a smaller piece. After some time in Berlin, where he gained several commissions, he returned to the US to teach composition in Buffalo. MILESTONES
1951 1971 1971 1973 1984 1986 1987
Composes Projections and Intersections Is granted a residency in Berlin The Rothko Chapel, singers and ensemble Appointed professor at SUNY, Buffalo Composes For Philip Guston, ensemble Composes Pallais de Maris Marries composer Barbara Monk
436
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
George Crumb b 1929– n American w c.60 evokes the horrors of Vietnam by asking Raised in a musical the string quartet players to shout and family accustomed to bow wine glasses, while Vox balaenae (The the classics, trained in Voice of the Whale) requires its musicians the conventional way to wear masks and perform under a blue rounded off at Berlin’s Hochschule, light (the latter also features an electric and having made a career in teaching, flute, an electric cello, and an amplified mostly at Pennsylvania, Crumb was at home with the standard repertoire. After piano). Many of his works set texts by Lorca, and the theatrical nature of initially being influenced by Webern, his music – he has become almost notorious for requiring unusual sounds and innovative sometimes trance-like, techniques in his relatively small but refined output. Black Angels, for example, other times explosive – MILESTONES has made 1965 Begins association with Pennsylvania it popular University with dance 1968 Wins Pulitzer Prize for Echoes of Time companies. and the River 1970
Writes Ancient Voices of Children; Black Angels, string quartet, produced
1973 2002
Writes Makrokosmos I-III for piano Joint residency at Arizona University
Poem of the Deep Song, one of several poems by Federico García Lorca set to music by Crumb.
Frederic Rzewski b 1938– n American A prodigiously talented pianist and composer, Rzewski went from Harvard and Princeton to Europe, where he performed and taught through the 1960s. He worked on radical jazz-based improvisation and live electronic projects, some with a socialist theme. He has been based in Rome and Liège since 1976 and teaches widely. His popular The People United is a 50-minute
w c.70 set of virtuoso variations in an astonishing array of styles on a worker’s revolutionary song; later works were more experimental, before a recent freer phase. Miles 49–56 of his mammoth seven-hour-long piano solo The Road involve playing the floor and stool, whistling, humming, screwedup paper, and a radio, plus sections for each hand alone. MILESTONES
1960 1962
Studies under Dallapiccola in Florence Premiere of Stockhausen’s Klavierstück X
1975
Writes The People United Will Never Be Defeated for piano
1983 1988 1998
Professor of composition at Liège Writes Triumph of Death, oratorio The Road written for piano
Rzewski’s magnum opus, The Road, is a musical “novel” composed of 64 parts, each marking a “mile” in the work’s journey.
437
MODER N MUSI C – N O RTH A M E R I CA
John Corigliano b 1938–
n American
w c.50
John Corigliano belongs to the same generation as the minimalists Reich, Glass, and Riley. But whereas they took a long and winding route to Romantic expressivity, via the severities of minimalism, Corigliano knew from the beginning that expressivity was his true home. His eclectic language, which calls on the evocative power of musical memory, has won him a wide audience. LIFE AND MUSIC Corigliano was a somewhat slow starter as a composer, and after studying at Columbia University he worked in classical music radio and as a concert programmer. Corigliano describes his early works, such as the Violin Sonata and the earlier movements of the Dylan Thomas Trilogy, as “a tense, histrionic outgrowth of the ‘clean’ American sound of Barber, Copland, Harris, and Schuman”. The later works, beginning with the Clarinet Concerto, present a very different musical palette, less driven and with many more layers. But it is not Elliott Carter’s intellectual complication at which Corigliano is aiming. Memory, nostalgia, and the evocation of different emotional worlds are what interest him, which is why he is a truly postmodern composer.
MILESTONES
1959
Graduates from Columbia University
1960
Works as music programmer at New York music station WXQR
1961
Starts work with Leonard Bernstein on the Young People’s Concert series
1971
Starts teaching at Manhattan School of Music
1977
Clarinet Concerto premiered by Bernstein in New York
1991
The Ghost of Versailles premiered in New York
1992
Teaches composition at Juilliard School in New York
1997
Feature film The Red Violin opens with score by Corigliano
2000
Premiere of Symphony No. 2
KEY WORKS A DYLAN THOMAS TRILOGY ORATORIO
d 90:00
p3
ovc
It took Corigliano around 40 years to complete this large-scale “memory play in the form of an oratorio”, as he calls it. It consists of setting of three poems by Dylan Thomas particularly dear to Corigliano: “Fern Hill”, “Poem in October”, and the darker “Poem on his Birthday”. As Thomas himself wrote, in his Poetic Manifesto (1951), “What the words stood for, symbolized, or meant was of very secondary importance; what matters was the sound of them.”
SYMPHONY NO. 1 ORCHESTRAL
d 43:00
p4
o
“During the past decade I have lost many friends and colleagues to the AIDS epidemic... My first symphony was generated by feelings of loss, anger, and frustration.” Each movement is a memorial to a different friend; the moment in the first when a memory of Albéniz’s “Tango” floats through the orchestra is typical of Corigliano’s directness. A still from The Red Violin, which features a haunting, complex, and lyrical score by Corigliano.
438
MOD E R N M USI C – N ORTH A M E R I C A
Steve Reich b 1936–
n American
w 46
One of the best-known American composers, Steve Reich is generally acknowledged as the most sophisticated of the four pioneer minimalists (the others being Te